Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n body_n disease_n humour_n 3,248 5 8.1860 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A14350 The common places of the most famous and renowmed diuine Doctor Peter Martyr diuided into foure principall parts: with a large addition of manie theologicall and necessarie discourses, some neuer extant before. Translated and partlie gathered by Anthonie Marten, one of the sewers of hir Maiesties most honourable chamber.; Loci communes. English Vermigli, Pietro Martire, 1499-1562.; Simmler, Josias, 1530-1576.; Marten, Anthony, d. 1597. 1583 (1583) STC 24669; ESTC S117880 3,788,596 1,858

There are 93 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

fragrant_a and_o such_o as_o resemble_v the_o common_a pureness_n and_o usual_a form_n or_o face_n of_o thing_n neither_o be_v these_o thing_n neglect_v of_o the_o physician_n for_o even_o they_o themselves_o as_o hypocrates_n and_o galen_n report_n do_v very_o diligent_o examine_v their_o patient_n touch_v they_o because_o thereby_o they_o can_v find_v out_o the_o temperature_n of_o those_o humour_n which_o lie_v hide_v within_o the_o body_n but_o the_o cause_n why_o man_n do_v perceive_v the_o nature_n of_o these_o motion_n by_o vision_n when_o they_o be_v asleep_a and_o not_o wake_v be_v this_o for_o that_o they_o be_v always_o but_o small_a and_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o vanish_v as_o soon_o as_o we_o awake_v for_o outward_a thing_n which_o be_v still_o in_o our_o eye_n draw_v we_o to_o strong_a motion_n another_o way_n but_o be_v quiet_a from_o outward_a business_n we_o surcease_v and_o be_v free_a from_o the_o grosser_n thing_n which_o occupy_v our_o sense_n wherefore_o our_o fantasy_n do_v apprehend_v those_o sight_n and_o likeness_n of_o thing_n wake_v likeness_n be_v rather_o perceive_v in_o sleep_n than_o wake_v which_o humour_n always_o raise_v in_o we_o rather_o while_o we_o be_v asleep_a than_o when_o we_o be_v wake_v and_o that_o we_o perceive_v small_a thing_n far_o better_a when_o we_o be_v asleep_a than_o when_o we_o be_v awake_a it_o appear_v hereby_o in_o that_o we_o judge_v every_o small_a noise_n to_o be_v great_a thunder_n and_o if_o there_o happen_v but_o a_o little_a sweet_a phlegm_n to_o remain_v upon_o the_o tongue_n or_o roof_n of_o the_o mouth_n we_o think_v that_o we_o taste_v either_o honey_n or_o sugar_n or_o sweet_a wine_n or_o some_o dainty_a meat_n and_o sometime_o that_o we_o eat_v and_o drink_v very_o liberal_o wherefore_o those_o that_o be_v but_o small_a motion_n of_o humour_n do_v appear_v in_o the_o time_n of_o sleep_n to_o be_v exceed_a great_a for_o which_o cause_n the_o physician_n may_v hereby_o know_v the_o beginning_n and_o occasion_n of_o very_a many_o disease_n dream_n also_o be_v certain_a sign_n of_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o of_o desire_n hope_v joy_n mind_n dream_n be_v sign_n of_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o mirth_n and_o also_o of_o perfect_a quality_n wherefore_o fearful_a man_n do_v see_v other_o manner_n of_o thing_n than_o man_n of_o courage_n covetous_a man_n other_o thing_n than_o they_o which_o be_v in_o hope_n also_o the_o learned_a be_v wont_v to_o have_v far_o other_o manner_n of_o dream_n than_o the_o country_n man_n or_o crafts-man_n have_v for_o even_o when_o we_o sleep_v the_o mind_n be_v occupy_v about_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o be_v continual_o or_o common_o do_v there_o be_v also_o another_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v as_o we_o be_v well_o admonish_v by_o galen_n galen_n galen_n that_o there_o be_v certain_a kind_n of_o meat_n which_o be_v natural_o choleric_a phlegmatic_a or_o melancholic_a do_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o quality_n stir_v up_o about_o the_o fantasy_n of_o man_n in_o their_o sleep_n dream_n the_o quality_n of_o meat_n and_o drink_n do_v alter_v the_o similitude_n of_o dream_n as_o it_o be_v shape_n and_o similitude_n of_o thing_n agreeable_a to_o those_o humour_n although_o the_o temperature_n of_o the_o body_n of_o such_o do_v not_o of_o itself_o offend_v by_o those_o humour_n which_o thing_n also_o a_o physician_n must_v observe_v in_o dream_n namely_o to_o see_v what_o manner_n of_o meat_n the_o sick_a man_n use_v yea_o and_o wine_n as_o teach_v aristotle_n be_v immoderatelie_o take_v do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o sleep_n make_v many_o deform_a shape_n of_o thing_n when_o a_o dream_n be_v a_o sign_n it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o cause_n namely_o to_o those_o superfluous_a humour_n which_o it_o betoken_v and_o then_o it_o may_v also_o be_v call_v a_o sign_n of_o some_o event_n to_o follow_v for_o that_o from_o the_o selfsame_o cause_n that_o be_v from_o the_o humour_n which_o be_v betokened_a either_o health_n or_o sickness_n may_v be_v derive_v wherefore_o a_o dream_n as_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o humour_n so_o it_o give_v also_o a_o token_n of_o the_o effect_n that_o shall_v arise_v of_o it_o for_o of_o the_o same_o cause_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o humour_n arise_v as_o well_o the_o disease_n as_o the_o dream_n but_o yet_o have_v they_o not_o relation_n semblablie_o one_o of_o another_o for_o sickness_n or_o health_n be_v no_o token_n of_o dream_n 3_o but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o dream_n may_v sometime_o be_v call_v cause_n that_o happen_v do_v dream_n be_v sometime_o the_o cause_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o we_o do_v when_o one_o be_v move_v by_o a_o dream_n either_o to_o do_v or_o to_o make_v trial_n of_o any_o thing_n as_o when_o one_o be_v cure_v of_o the_o spleen_n because_o he_o bleed_v upon_o the_o back_n of_o his_o hand_n for_o so_o he_o be_v teach_v to_o do_v in_o his_o dream_n and_o sometime_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o learned_a man_n that_o they_o find_v out_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v in_o doubt_n of_o in_o such_o book_n where_o they_o see_v themselves_o in_o their_o dream_n both_o to_o find_v and_o to_o read_v they_o but_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o distinction_n which_o we_o bring_v pass_v sometime_o dream_n happy_o betoken_v those_o thing_n which_o come_v to_o pass_v namely_o when_o dream_n do_v happy_o or_o by_o chance_n betoken_v thing_n which_o afterward_o fall_v out_o that_o take_v place_n in_o such_o matter_n the_o cause_n whereof_o consist_v not_o in_o ourselves_o but_o be_v rather_o distant_a &_o far_o remoove_v as_o if_o we_o shall_v see_v a_o victory_n or_o a_o overthrow_n give_v in_o a_o camp_n a_o great_a way_n off_o from_o he_o or_o else_o one_o that_o be_v absent_a to_o be_v advance_v to_o exceed_a great_a honour_n these_o thing_n be_v join_v together_o as_o the_o peripatetic_n say_v by_o chance_n and_o can_v be_v compare_v together_o either_o as_o cause_n or_o as_o sign_n even_o as_o when_o we_o talk_v of_o any_o man_n if_o happy_o the_o same_o party_n come_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n we_o say_v lupus_n in_o fabula_fw-la the_o wolf_n be_v in_o presence_n and_o yet_o the_o talk_n with_o he_o be_v neither_o cause_n nor_o token_n of_o his_o come_n so_o therefore_o these_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v join_v by_o chance_n and_o also_o seldom_o have_v success_n for_o this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n that_o come_v by_o chance_n to_o happen_v but_o seldom_o dream_n who_o do_v natural_o for_o the_o most_o part_n see_v true_a dream_n 4_o moreover_o aristotle_n have_v teach_v who_o they_o be_v that_o before_o other_o know_v many_o thing_n aforehand_o by_o dream_n and_o this_o he_o ascribe_v chéeflie_o unto_o such_o as_o be_v idle_a and_o full_a of_o word_n next_o to_o melancholic_a and_o phrentike_a person_n alienate_v both_o from_o their_o mind_n and_o sense_n somewhat_o also_o he_o seem_v to_o grant_v unto_o kinsfolk_n and_o friend_n for_o these_o kind_n of_o man_n dream_v very_o much_o in_o their_o sleep_n pratler_n in_o very_a deed_n and_o idle_a person_n be_v altogether_o in_o their_o muse_n whereby_o they_o be_v fraught_v inward_o with_o fantasy_n and_o vision_n and_o those_o which_o be_v trouble_v much_o with_o melancholy_n do_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o strength_n &_o nature_n of_o that_o humour_n dream_v of_o very_a many_o thing_n and_o moreover_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v much_o give_v to_o private_a cogitation_n the_o phrentike_a sort_n also_o because_o their_o mind_n be_v void_a both_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o outward_a sense_n and_o eke_o of_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n therefore_o they_o be_v whole_o give_v up_o to_o idle_a imagination_n last_o friend_n do_v therefore_o in_o their_o dream_n see_v many_o thing_n of_o their_o friend_n because_o they_o be_v full_a of_o thought_n and_o care_n for_o they_o all_o these_o now_o rehearse_v be_v wont_v to_o foretell_v sundry_a thing_n by_o their_o dream_n because_o in_o such_o a_o diverse_a and_o in_o a_o manner_n infinite_a sort_n of_o dream_n and_o vision_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a but_o that_o some_o thing_n shall_v otherwhile_o happen_v true_a similitude_n a_o similitude_n they_o that_o exercise_n themselves_o all_o day_n long_o in_o shoot_v often_o hit_v the_o mark_n than_o other_o which_o do_v shoot_v but_o now_o and_o then_o and_o they_o which_o spend_v the_o whole_a day_n in_o play_v at_o table_n or_o die_n cast_v many_o more_o happy_a chance_n than_o they_o which_o seldom_o or_o little_a sport_n themselves_o in_o that_o kind_n of_o pastime_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o those_o sign_n similitude_n the_o necessity_n of_o effect_n must_v not_o be_v gather_v of_o dream_n which_o be_v sign_n a_o similitude_n which_o be_v
towards_o our_o neighbour_n and_o to_o communicate_v such_o thing_n as_o we_o have_v to_o they_o that_o want_n and_o to_o declare_v that_o which_o oftentimes_o come_v to_o my_o remembrance_n aristotle_n the_o ten_o commandment_n of_o moses_n compare_v with_o the_o ten_o predicament_n of_o aristotle_n the_o ten_o commandment_n seem_v unto_o i_o to_o extend_v as_o large_o in_o every_o respect_n touch_v honesty_n and_o dishonesty_n virtue_n and_o vice_n as_o the_o ten_o predicament_n of_o aristotle_n for_o even_o as_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o find_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n which_o apperteine_v not_o unto_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o predicament_n so_o there_o be_v no_o virtue_n no_o vice_n no_o honesty_n no_o dishonesty_n but_o may_v be_v refer_v unto_o some_o one_o of_o these_o ten_o commandment_n and_o as_o all_o the_o general_a word_n and_o special_a kind_n of_o the_o other_o predicament_n be_v resolve_v into_o the_o predicament_n of_o substance_n so_o may_v all_o outward_a sin_n be_v reduce_v into_o lust_n and_o as_o the_o predicament_n of_o substance_n have_v matter_n and_o form_n as_o the_o chief_a and_o principal_a ground_n so_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o our_o mind_n to_o sin_n be_v resolve_v into_o the_o naughtiness_n of_o our_o nature_n wherefore_o notwithstanding_o that_o in_o the_o law_n there_o be_v set_v forth_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v notorious_a and_o gross_a yet_o in_o they_o god_n require_v that_o which_o be_v command_v in_o the_o first_o and_o last_o commandment_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v the_o motion_n both_o of_o the_o body_n and_o of_o the_o mind_n honest_a and_o clean_a and_o that_o we_o shall_v fly_v from_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v forbid_v us._n beside_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o paul_n bring_v this_o as_o one_o only_o precept_n to_o wit_n thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n twain_o the_o commandment_n against_o lust_n be_v not_o right_o divide_v into_o twain_o i_o marvel_v therefore_o at_o some_o among_o who_o also_o be_v augustine_n which_o of_o one_o commandment_n do_v make_v two_o as_o though_o in_o the_o one_o be_v prohibit_v adultery_n when_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n after_o the_o wife_n of_o thy_o neighbour_n and_o in_o the_o other_o be_v forbid_v not_o to_o covet_v other_o man_n land_n house_n ox_n servant_n and_o maid_n but_o if_o ●he_v precept_n shall_v increase_v in_o number_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o lust_n after_o we_o shall_v of_o one_o commandment_n make_v in_o a_o manner_n infinite_a commandment_n for_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o we_o may_v covet_v our_o neighbour_n honour_n dignity_n vessel_n money_n garment_n and_o infinite_a other_o such_o like_a thing_n howbeit_o there_o be_v other_o which_o to_o keep_v the_o full_a number_n of_o ten_o in_o the_o commandment_n have_v leave_v this_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n undivided_a and_o have_v divide_v the_o first_o precept_n into_o two_o part_n so_o that_o in_o the_o first_o part_n they_o put_v this_o 4._o exod._n ●0_n 3._o and_o 4._o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o god_n and_o in_o the_o second_o thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n but_o i_o think_v that_o either_o of_o these_o part_n perteine_a to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o precept_n first_o which_o commandment_n be_v the_o first_o and_o i_o suppose_v the_o first_o commandment_n be_v set_v as_o it_o be_v before_o the_o rest_n in_o steed_n of_o a_o proheme_n i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n which_o have_v bring_v thou_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n for_o in_o those_o word_n we_o be_v command_v to_o count_v he_o for_o the_o true_a god_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v together_o with_o other_o god_n immediate_o be_v add_v the_o second_o precept_n wherein_o we_o be_v forbid_v to_o worship_v strange_a god_n and_o grave_v thing_n and_o image_n gospel_n in_o the_o first_o commandment_n be_v offer_v unto_o we_o the_o gospel_n and_o if_o a_o man_n will_v more_o narrow_o consider_v the_o thing_n he_o shall_v see_v the_o gospel_n offer_v unto_o we_o together_o with_o this_o first_o commandment_n for_o god_n in_o it_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n and_o in_o that_o which_o be_v mention_v of_o the_o delivery_n out_o of_o egypt_n be_v contain_v a_o promise_n touch_v christ_n but_o to_o return_v from_o whence_o we_o be_v digress_v we_o ought_v certeinlie_o to_o hold_v that_o by_o this_o precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n be_v prohibit_v our_o corrupt_a inclination_n and_o evil_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o we_o shall_v not_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v sin_n unless_o the_o law_n have_v show_v they_o unto_o us._n aristotle_n pighius_fw-la and_o such_o other_o like_o for_o that_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n affirm_v that_o these_o be_v not_o precept_n of_o the_o comparison_n between_o sin_n 4_o but_o as_o touch_v the_o comparison_n between_o sin_n 29._o in_o 1._o king_n 16_o vers_fw-la 29._o one_o sin_n may_v be_v reckon_v more_o gréevous_a than_o another_o god_n a_o compare_v together_o of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o difference_n be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o but_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o even_o as_o the_o disease_n and_o imperfection_n of_o body_n come_v through_o want_n of_o the_o temperateness_n of_o humour_n which_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o creature_n that_o live_v and_o as_o the_o proportion_n be_v more_o or_o less_o preserve_v disease_n be_v say_v to_o be_v more_o or_o less_o painful_a even_o so_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v of_o sin_n for_o according_a unto_o that_o that_o they_o do_v less_o or_o more_o go_v from_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n they_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v more_o or_o less_o gréevous_a howbeit_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o two_o table_n be_v give_v namely_o the_o first_o and_o the_o latter_a by_o reason_n whereof_o those_o sin_n which_o be_v do_v against_o the_o first_o table_n be_v more_o condemn_v than_o those_o which_o be_v against_o the_o latter_a table_n but_o this_o i_o will_v not_o have_v so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o all_o that_o be_v commit_v against_o the_o first_o table_n shall_v be_v account_v more_o wicked_a than_o that_o which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o latter_a for_o it_o may_v be_v that_o a_o man_n will_v violate_v some_o ceremony_n of_o no_o great_a importance_n which_o appertain_v to_o the_o first_o table_n who_o for_o all_o that_o shall_v not_o sin_n more_o gréevouslie_o than_o he_o which_o do_v commit_v either_o murder_n or_o adultery_n howbeit_o the_o comparison_n must_v be_v make_v between_o those_o sin_n which_o be_v of_o equal_a degree_n and_o greatness_n for_o set_v down_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o chief_a sin_n against_o the_o first_o table_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o great_a against_o the_o latter_a table_n then_o shall_v that_o be_v judge_v more_o gréevous_a whereby_o the_o first_o table_n be_v break_v than_o that_o which_o be_v do_v against_o the_o latter_a and_o even_o the_o same_o case_n must_v be_v in_o the_o mean_a sort_n of_o sin_n and_o also_o in_o the_o low_a so_o that_o ever_o you_o compare_v like_a with_o like_a sin_n by_o what_o mean_n grow_v the_o greatness_n of_o sin_n it_o happen_v also_o sometime_o that_o one_o man_n be_v more_o vehementlie_o move_v to_o sin_n than_o a_o other_o and_o certeinlie_o his_o sin_n shall_v be_v judge_v more_o gréevous_a that_o offend_v have_v small_a assault_n or_o provocation_n than_o he_o that_o by_o great_a violence_n be_v drive_v to_o transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o gréevousnesse_n also_o of_o the_o sin_n be_v sometime_o weigh_v according_a to_o the_o easiness_n or_o difficulty_n of_o forgive_a 32._o mat._n 12_o 32._o for_o christ_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v forgive_v which_o speak_v against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o that_o the_o fault_n of_o they_o which_o have_v blaspheme_v the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v further_o they_o transgress_v more_o gréevouslie_o which_o be_v most_o furnish_v with_o excellent_a knowledge_n for_o the_o servant_n which_o know_v the_o will_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o fulfil_v it_o not_o be_v much_o more_o beat_v than_o he_o that_o do_v offend_v upon_o ignorance_n also_o the_o heap_n of_o benefit_n bestow_v do_v add_v a_o more_o weight_n unto_o sin_n see_v they_o which_o transgress_v be_v adorn_v with_o many_o gift_n their_o sin_n be_v the_o more_o gréevous_a when_o they_o do_v transgress_v for_o the_o vice_n of_o ingratitude_n increase_v their_o sin_n over_o this_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n be_v weigh_v insomuch_o as_o prince_n and_o also_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v
seem_v more_o strange_a he_o labour_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o many_o reason_n and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr dogmatibus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la the_o 11._o chapter_n every_o kind_n of_o creature_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o body_n namely_o the_o very_a angel_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o fill_v all_o thing_n as_o god_n do_v but_o all_o thing_n be_v describe_v by_o place_n certain_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v shut_v up_o within_o his_o own_o body_n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n ad_fw-la quod_fw-la vult_fw-la deum_fw-la tertullian_n augustine_n excuse_v tertullian_n excuse_v tertullian_n in_o this_o sort_n that_o by_o this_o word_n body_n he_o mean_v his_o substance_n and_o that_o which_o god_n be_v in_o very_a deed_n as_o if_o he_o have_v therefore_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v a_o body_n lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o deny_v his_o essence_n whereas_o the_o common_a sort_n think_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v no_o body_n be_v not_o at_o all_o notwithstanding_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr genesi_fw-la ad_fw-la litteram_fw-la he_o be_v confute_v by_o this_o reason_n that_o be_v at_o the_o length_n overcome_v by_o the_o truth_n he_o confess_v that_o every_o body_n be_v passable_a for_o which_o cause_n lest_o he_o shall_v make_v god_n passable_a body_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v without_o body_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v deny_v he_o to_o be_v a_o body_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o such_o necessity_n to_o apply_v himself_o so_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o common_a people_n that_o he_o shall_v therefore_o speak_v false_o of_o god._n christian_n man_n be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v teach_v that_o like_o senseless_a grossehead_n which_o sort_n of_o man_n even_o aristotle_n confute_v they_o shall_v think_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o it_o be_v a_o body_n but_o they_o ought_v rather_o to_o have_v their_o mind_n lift_v up_o that_o study_v upon_o god_n they_o determine_v nothing_o beyond_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o unto_o that_o book_n de_fw-fr dogmatibus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la we_o must_v not_o attribute_v more_o than_o be_v meet_v augustine_n a_o book_n false_o ascribe_v to_o augustine_n for_o it_o be_v ascribe_v to_o augustine_n but_o the_o learned_a think_v that_o it_o be_v none_o of_o he_o 11_o the_o other_o which_o be_v sometime_o object_v be_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o anthropomorphite_n anthropomorphite_n anthropomorphite_n for_o they_o dispute_v that_o therefore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v without_o a_o body_n because_o the_o scripture_n do_v witness_v 27._o gen._n 1_o 27._o that_o man_n be_v make_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n which_o can_v not_o be_v unless_o he_o have_v a_o body_n as_o one_o of_o we_o for_o else_o the_o image_n shall_v have_v no_o likeness_n of_o that_o thing_n whereunto_o it_o be_v compare_v and_o they_o think_v moreover_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v on_o their_o side_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o do_v oftentimes_o ascribe_v the_o member_n and_o part_n of_o man_n body_n unto_o god_n augustine_n jerom._n augustine_n but_o jerom_n as_o augustine_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o fortunatianus_n cit_v he_o scorn_v that_o argument_n of_o they_o witty_o and_o learned_o if_o we_o allow_v this_o reason_n say_v he_o we_o may_v easy_o conclude_v that_o a_o man_n have_v wing_n because_o the_o scripture_n have_v sometime_o attribute_v they_o unto_o god_n unto_o who_o image_n it_o be_v manifest_v that_o man_n be_v make_v 24._o wherein_o consist_v the_o image_n of_o god_n ephes_n 4_o 24._o these_o man_n shall_v rather_o have_v consider_v that_o the_o image_n of_o god_n consist_v in_o holiness_n righteousness_n and_o truth_n as_o paul_n have_v teach_v which_o thing_n if_o they_o have_v mark_v they_o will_v not_o only_o have_v remoove_v a_o body_n from_o he_o but_o also_o have_v withdraw_v from_o their_o mind_n all_o such_o gross_a and_o carnal_a imagination_n why_o do_v they_o not_o as_o well_o say_v that_o god_n be_v a_o very_a bear_n a_o lion_n or_o a_o fire_n 9_o amos._n 3_o 8._o and_o 5_o 19_o deut._n 4_o 14._o heb._n 12_o 29._o psalm_n 94_o 9_o see_v that_o amos_n and_o moses_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n do_v so_o term_v he_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 94._o psalm_n he_o that_o plant_v the_o eye_n shall_v he_o not_o see_v and_o he_o that_o make_v the_o ear_n shall_v not_o he_o hear_v there_o say_v jerom_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v say_v he_o that_o plant_v the_o eye_n have_v he_o not_o a_o eye_n and_o he_o that_o make_v the_o ear_n have_v he_o not_o a_o ear_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o say_v lest_o while_o thou_o muse_v upon_o he_o thou_o shall_v be_v deceive_v and_o imagine_v he_o to_o have_v these_o kind_n of_o part_n christ_n why_o the_o scripture_n do_v attribute_v member_n unto_o christ_n and_o the_o scripture_n if_o sometime_o it_o attribute_v part_n or_o member_n unto_o god_n very_o it_o do_v it_o only_o to_o the_o intent_n it_o may_v help_v our_o weak_a capacity_n with_o the_o which_o although_o we_o can_v comprehend_v the_o substance_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v yet_o it_o labour_v by_o the_o help_n of_o certain_a special_a sign_n and_o shadow_n what_o it_o can_v to_o make_v we_o have_v some_o knowledge_n of_o it_o wherefore_o member_n be_v by_o a_o very_a profitable_a metaphor_n or_o translation_n attribute_v unto_o god_n that_o we_o by_o the_o due_a consideration_n of_o his_o quality_n may_v have_v our_o mind_n godly_a and_o faithful_o exercise_v and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o anthropomorphite_n have_v for_o that_o cause_n assever_v god_n to_o have_v part_n and_o member_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v to_o help_v man_n understanding_n they_o may_v have_v be_v excuse_v and_o not_o condemn_v condemn_v why_o the_o anthropomorphite_n be_v condemn_v but_o they_o be_v earnest_a that_o it_o stand_v so_o with_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n in_o very_a deed_n and_o therefore_o be_v justly_o and_o deserve_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v but_o what_o shall_v we_o answer_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n who_o concern_v the_o behold_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n in_o our_o country_n in_o heaven_n say_v we_o shall_v see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n 12._o 1._o co._n 13_o 12._o and_o so_o seem_v to_o grant_v unto_o our_o face_n and_o eye_n the_o power_n to_o see_v god_n and_o after_o a_o sort_n to_o devise_v a_o face_n for_o god_n himself_o augustine_n answer_v that_o there_o be_v a_o face_n also_o of_o the_o mind_n body_n there_o be_v a_o face_n also_o of_o the_o mind_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o body_n because_o paul_n say_v we_o now_o behold_v heavenly_a thing_n bear_v face_v not_o with_o a_o veil_n or_o cover_n as_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v with_o the_o jew_n when_o they_o speak_v unto_o moses_n 12_o but_o now_o that_o we_o have_v thus_o finish_v and_o conclude_v these_o thing_n let_v we_o brief_o set_v down_o certain_a other_o way_n whereby_o god_n be_v know_v in_o the_o life_n everlasting_a 12._o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v know_v the_o essence_n of_o god_n 1._o john_n 3_o 2._o 1._o co._n 13_o 12._o the_o saint_n shall_v know_v the_o essence_n of_o god_n not_o by_o their_o sense_n but_o by_o their_o soul_n or_o mind_n because_o john_n say_v when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v and_o paul_n testify_v the_o same_o thing_n say_v now_o we_o behold_v he_o as_o it_o be_v through_o a_o glass_n but_o then_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n and_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v gather_v of_o christ_n own_o word_n their_o angel_n do_v always_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o the_o father_n 10._o matt_n 18_o 10._o for_o in_o another_o place_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o just_a in_o that_o bless_a resurrection_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o angel_n of_o god._n 13._o matt._n 22_o 13._o whereupon_o it_o be_v conclude_v that_o we_o shall_v see_v god_n as_o well_o and_o no_o otherwise_o than_o the_o angel_n do_v therefore_o if_o they_o see_v his_o face_n we_o in_o like_a manner_n shall_v behold_v the_o same_o there_o be_v also_o another_o testimony_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 12._o 1._o co._n 13_o 12._o then_o i_o shall_v know_v even_o as_o i_o be_o know_v but_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o we_o be_v know_v unto_o god_n thorough_o and_o in_o every_o part_n of_o our_o substance_n yet_o be_o i_o not_o persuade_v know_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o whole_o and_o in_o all_o respect_n be_v know_v that_o the_o saint_n shall_v thorough_o and_o in_o all_o respect_n know_v the_o nature_n &_o substance_n of_o god_n except_o so_o far_o as_o their_o nature_n and_o capacity_n shall_v reach_v unto_o for_o thing_n measurable_a do_v in_o no_o wise_n comprehend_v that_o which_o be_v infinite_a and_o unmeasurable_a neither_o can_v the_o thing_n create_v
father_n also_o paul_n say_v that_o he_o know_v nothing_o else_o but_o christ_n 2._o 1._o cor._n 2_o 2._o and_o he_o crucify_v and_o indeed_o god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v visible_a in_o christ_n christ_n god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v visible_a in_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v join_v in_o one_o person_n with_o man_n wherefore_o they_o that_o see_v christ_n may_v avouch_v that_o they_o see_v god_n and_o he_o that_o acknowledge_v &_o behold_v he_o by_o faith_n do_v see_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o if_o he_o shall_v see_v moses_n burn_v bush_n therefore_o it_o be_v write_v unto_o the_o colossian_n that_o all_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v lay_v up_o in_o he_o 3._o colos_n 2_o 3._o 16._o in_o judge_n 6_o verse_n 22._o look_v in_o 2._o sam._n chap._n 24_o verse_n 18._o the_o presence_n of_o god_n strike_v a_o fear_n in_o the_o godly_a before_o pla_fw-la 3_o art_n 9_o exo._n 33_o 20._o john_n 1_o 18._o 1._o tim._n 6_o 16._o 16_o but_o in_o mark_v thou_o shall_v always_o perceive_v that_o the_o father_n of_o old_a time_n after_o they_o have_v once_o see_v god_n or_o any_o angel_n be_v in_o exceed_a great_a fear_n and_o be_v so_o astonish_v as_o they_o look_v but_o for_o present_a death_n and_o no_o marvel_n for_o it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o they_o what_o answer_n god_n make_v unto_o moses_n when_o he_o desire_v to_o see_v his_o face_n man_n shall_v not_o see_v i_o &_o live_v and_o john_n the_o baptist_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o first_o of_o john_n say_v no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n and_o paul_n unto_o timothy_n have_v confirm_v the_o same_o say_v no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n nor_o yet_o may_v see_v for_o he_o be_v invisible_a because_o he_o dwell_v in_o the_o light_n that_o can_v be_v come_v unto_o which_o thing_n also_o both_o gedeon_n and_o manoa_n the_o father_n of_o samson_n 30._o judg._n 6_o 22_o and_o 3_o 22._o gen._n 32_o 30._o do_v testify_v jacob_n likewise_o after_o his_o night_n wrestle_v wherein_o he_o think_v he_o have_v contend_v with_o a_o man_n when_o he_o perceive_v it_o be_v a_o angel_n maruel_v how_o he_o have_v escape_v safe_a and_o alive_a i_o see_v the_o lord_n say_v he_o face_n to_o face_n and_o yet_o my_o life_n be_v safe_a as_o though_o he_o can_v scarce_o believe_v it_o may_v be_v 19_o exod._n 20_o 19_o moreover_o the_o hebrews_n when_o the_o lord_n come_v down_o upon_o mount_n sinai_n to_o give_v the_o law_n be_v so_o dismay_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a that_o they_o say_v to_o moses_n we_o pray_v thou_o deal_v thou_o with_o god_n lest_o if_o he_o continue_v talk_v so_o with_o we_o we_o die_v every_o one_o and_o with_o these_o place_n that_o also_o make_v much_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la 11._o exo._n 24_o 11._o look_v in_o 1._o kin._n 19_o 11._o even_o when_o the_o covenant_n be_v make_v between_o god_n and_o his_o people_n and_o moses_n have_v recite_v the_o same_o and_o sprinkele_v the_o people_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o have_v bring_v the_o elder_n unto_o the_o mount_n where_o they_o see_v god_n sit_v upon_o a_o throne_n in_o great_a majesty_n and_o glory_n but_o after_o that_o vision_n be_v recite_v it_o be_v add_v and_o yet_o do_v not_o god_n stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n unto_o they_o which_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rare_a sight_n and_o a_o strange_a that_o man_n shall_v see_v god_n without_o all_o peril_n and_o danger_n of_o life_n wherefore_o every_o part_n of_o that_o be_v record_v as_o do_v by_o special_a prerogative_n death_n esaie_n 6_o 11._o jerom_n write_v of_o esaies_n death_n jerom_n also_o testify_v that_o esaie_n be_v slay_v by_o the_o jew_n under_o this_o colour_n because_o he_o say_v that_o he_o see_v god_n sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n they_o cavilled_a with_o he_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o lie_n forsomuch_o as_o god_n can_v be_v see_v of_o any_o man_n that_o live_v and_o therefore_o they_o uniustlie_o condemn_v he_o as_o one_o that_o teach_v the_o people_n his_o imagination_n not_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v show_v he_o these_o thing_n do_v they_o devise_v against_o that_o innocent_a prophet_n when_o as_o they_o have_v no_o other_o cause_n to_o lay_v against_o he_o 17_o the_o like_a example_n also_o be_v not_o want_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n when_o the_o lord_n reveal_v to_o his_o apostle_n a_o certain_a show_n of_o his_o glory_n &_o majesty_n upon_o mount_n tabor_n 6._o matt._n 17_o 6._o he_o shine_v with_o exceed_a great_a brightness_n &_o light_n &_o be_v whole_o change_v before_o they_o with_o who_o moses_n &_o elias_n be_v strait_a way_n present_a &_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n be_v hear_v from_o heaven_n these_o thing_n because_o they_o do_v many_o way_n excee_v the_o power_n of_o man_n sight_n the_o apostle_n eye_n may_v not_o endure_v they_o wherefore_o they_o fall_v prostrate_a upon_o the_o earth_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v dead_a also_o peter_n 5._o luke_n 5._o when_o at_o christ_n beck_n he_o have_v fish_v and_o catch_v a_o incredible_a number_n of_o fish_n for_o before_o that_o commandment_n he_o have_v labour_v long_o in_o vain_a woonder_v at_o the_o strangeness_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o perceive_v that_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v so_o afraid_a that_o he_o say_v to_o he_o i_o pray_v thou_o lord_n depart_v from_o i_o for_o i_o be_o a_o sinful_a man_n and_o can_v abide_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o godhead_n without_o peril_n and_o paul_n when_o he_o will_v make_v relation_n 3._o 2._o cor._n 12_o 3._o how_o he_o be_v take_v up_o even_o to_o the_o three_o heaven_n where_o he_o learn_v such_o heavenly_a thing_n as_o he_o can_v not_o by_o speech_n express_v unto_o man_n write_v whether_o in_o the_o body_n or_o out_o of_o the_o body_n i_o know_v not_o assure_o he_o dare_v not_o affirm_v that_o those_o thing_n happen_v unto_o he_o while_o he_o use_v the_o body_n and_o sense_n of_o this_o life_n wherefore_o it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o gedeon_n be_v not_o astonish_v without_o a_o cause_n 18_o but_o now_o i_o think_v if_o good_a to_o show_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o angel_n do_v seem_v to_o bring_v present_a destruction_n unto_o man_n peradventure_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o heavy_a mass_n of_o this_o body_n platonist_n platonist_n which_o as_o the_o platonist_n affirm_v be_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o dark_a and_o shadow_a prison_n wherewith_o we_o be_v so_o hinder_v that_o we_o can_v perceive_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v heavenly_a if_o happy_o we_o do_v sometime_o see_v they_o by_o and_o by_o we_o think_v the_o conjunction_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o be_v sunder_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v die_v out_o of_o hand_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o sight_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n be_v propound_v unto_o we_o because_o the_o divorce_n of_o the_o mind_n &_o of_o the_o body_n be_v at_o hand_n moreover_o aristotle_n aristotle_n aristotle_n in_o his_o metaphysic_n do_v witness_v that_o the_o power_n of_o our_o understanding_n be_v so_o little_a able_a to_o comprehend_v the_o thing_n divine_a which_o in_o their_o nature_n be_v most_o clear_a and_o manifest_a that_o it_o may_v justly_o be_v liken_v to_o the_o eye_n of_o owl_n and_o bat_n which_o can_v abide_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o sun_n or_o the_o light_n of_o the_o day_n they_o which_o thus_o judge_n do_v say_v somewhat_o but_o yet_o not_o so_o much_o as_o suffice_v for_o a_o plain_a declaration_n of_o the_o matter_n god_n the_o body_n be_v not_o give_v as_o to_o remove_v we_o from_o see_v of_o god_n the_o body_n from_o our_o first_o creation_n be_v not_o therefore_o give_v unto_o man_n to_o be_v any_o hindrance_n to_o our_o knowledge_n of_o god_n nor_o yet_o to_o shut_v up_o our_o soul_n as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o dark_a and_o blind_a prison_n for_o so_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n shall_v become_v guilty_a for_o make_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n bodily_a and_o corporal_a and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o 19_o gen._n 2_o 15._o and_o 19_o it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o history_n of_o genesis_n which_o testify_v that_o god_n be_v very_o familiar_a with_o our_o first_o parent_n notwithstanding_o they_o have_v body_n for_o he_o bring_v they_o into_o paradise_n which_o he_o have_v plant_v he_o show_v they_o the_o fruit_n whereof_o they_o may_v eat_v and_o concern_v other_o some_o he_o make_v a_o law_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o touch_v they_o and_o he_o set_v all_o live_a creature_n before_o adam_n that_o he_o
may_v call_v they_o all_o by_o what_o name_n he_o will_v wherefore_o the_o body_n be_v no_o let_n but_o that_o our_o first_o parent_n may_v use_v familiarity_n with_o god_n god_n sin_n remoove_v we_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v sin_n that_o remoove_v we_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n from_o thence_o come_v unto_o we_o the_o darkness_n blindness_n and_o ignorance_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n for_o this_o cause_n be_v we_o transform_v into_o mole_n bat_n and_o owl_n otherwise_o god_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v most_o clear_a yea_o &_o the_o very_a light_n itself_o unless_o the_o fowlenes_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v set_v between_o us._n perhaps_o thou_o will_v say_v it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o declare_v already_o that_o our_o blindness_n spring_v out_o of_o sin_n but_o it_o have_v not_o be_v show_v what_o the_o cause_n be_v that_o man_n be_v so_o afraid_a at_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n yes_o hereupon_o depend_v all_o this_o matter_n for_o man_n because_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o own_o blindness_n they_o be_v swallow_v up_o with_o that_o heavenly_a light_n be_v guilty_a in_o their_o own_o conscience_n do_v fly_v from_o the_o judge_n no_o less_o mighty_a than_o just_a for_o they_o in_o such_o wise_a conceive_v of_o the_o godhead_n that_o they_o know_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o pureness_n and_o righteousness_n thereof_o it_o can_v abide_v nothing_o that_o be_v filthy_a and_o unclean_a wherefore_o they_o think_v that_o to_o have_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o have_v the_o judgement_n prepare_v and_o punishment_n deserve_v present_o to_o be_v lay_v upon_o they_o 8._o gen._n 3_o 7_o and_o 8._o for_o this_o cause_n our_o first_o parent_n hide_v themselves_o immediate_o after_o they_o have_v transgress_v and_o be_v so_o great_o terrify_v at_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n that_o straightway_o they_o decree_v to_o shroud_v themselves_o among_o the_o tree_n in_o paradise_n which_o doubtless_o proceed_v of_o a_o trouble_a conscience_n see_v god_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n do_v cheer_n man_n and_o revive_v they_o as_o the_o author_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o comfort_n wherefore_o it_o be_v manifest_a enough_o that_o these_o inconvenience_n &_o terror_n have_v fall_v out_o not_o by_o any_o fault_n of_o he_o but_o by_o our_o own_o default_n wherefore_o john_n 3._o 1._o john_n 3_o 3._o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o his_o 1._o epistle_n give_v this_o wholesome_a admonition_n that_o he_o which_o hope_v to_o see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v shall_v prepare_v himself_o thereunto_o by_o purifieng_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o be_v clean_a and_o pure_a the_o five_o chapter_n of_o dream_n chief_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n the_o 7._o chapter_n vers_fw-la 13._o the_o jew_n seem_v to_o make_v three_o sort_n of_o dream_n 10._o three_o sort_n of_o dream_n out_o of_o gen_n 28_o verse_n 10._o the_o first_o they_o account_v altogether_o natural_a the_o second_o mere_a divine_a as_o when_o one_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o sleep_n by_o god_n and_o in_o the_o same_o be_v warn_v of_o thing_n secret_a and_o hide_a as_o we_o know_v be_v do_v in_o the_o first_o man_n adam_n 18._o gen._n 2_o 18._o when_o eve_n be_v frame_v out_o of_o his_o side_n for_o the_o lord_n cast_v he_o into_o a_o slumber_n and_o therein_o instruct_v he_o of_o the_o conjunction_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n the_o same_o we_o know_v be_v do_v to_o abraham_n when_o as_o god_n cast_v he_o into_o a_o sleep_n in_o the_o midst_n 12._o gen._n 15_o 12._o between_o the_o piece_n of_o flesh_n and_o tell_v he_o what_o shall_v happen_v unto_o his_o seed_n many_o year_n after_o the_o three_o sort_n of_o dream_n be_v mix_v of_o they_o both_o and_o be_v common_a with_o the_o prophet_n when_o natural_a sleep_n come_v upon_o they_o but_o yet_o god_n be_v present_a with_o they_o in_o their_o sleep_n and_o instruct_v they_o of_o thing_n to_o come_v of_o which_o sort_n be_v that_o of_o jacob_n 11._o gen._n 28_o 11._o about_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o ladder_n and_o see_v we_o purpose_v to_o speak_v somewhat_o large_o of_o dream_n 15._o in_o judg._n 7_o verse_n 13._o look_v in_o 1._o sam._n 28_o verse_n 15._o we_o will_v first_o see_v what_o may_v be_v say_v of_o they_o by_o natural_a reason_n and_o secondlie_o how_o much_o must_v be_v attribute_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o first_o aristotle_n hypocrates_n galen_n author_n ethnic_n author_n and_o diverse_a other_o famous_a philosopher_n have_v write_v much_o and_o among_o other_o aristotle_n in_o his_o little_a book_n de_fw-fr divinatione_fw-la per_fw-la sommium_fw-la if_o that_o be_v he_o and_o yet_o no_o doubt_n but_o it_o be_v both_o learned_o and_o clarklie_o write_v first_o say_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o divination_n by_o dream_n be_v not_o utterlie_o to_o be_v reject_v because_o common_o very_o much_o be_v attribute_v thereunto_o and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v receive_v in_o a_o manner_n of_o all_o man_n be_v never_o altogether_o false_a and_o he_o say_v moreover_o that_o there_o be_v many_o dream_n whereof_o there_o may_v be_v yield_v a_o very_a fit_a and_o convenient_a reason_n which_o as_o experience_n teach_v deceive_v not_o man_n but_o fall_v out_o true_a therefore_o it_o be_v not_o well_o to_o despise_v all_o manner_n of_o divination_n by_o dream_n yet_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o be_v well_o advise_v in_o admit_v of_o they_o see_v it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a matter_n to_o show_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o for_o that_o nature_n on_o this_o behalf_n work_v most_o obscure_o and_o aristotle_n do_v not_o think_v god_n aristotle_n do_v not_o think_v that_o dream_n be_v send_v by_o god_n that_o vision_n be_v send_v by_o god_n say_v that_o if_o they_o be_v send_v by_o he_o he_o will_v give_v they_o to_o such_o as_o be_v good_a and_o wise_a man_n but_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o the_o foolish_a and_o simple_a do_v many_o time_n prevail_v in_o this_o faculty_n moreover_o the_o brute_n beast_n have_v their_o dream_n but_o who_o will_v say_v that_o god_n give_v they_o the_o power_n of_o divination_n neither_o be_v vision_n occupy_v about_o the_o fantasy_n of_o man_n in_o their_o sleep_v to_o this_o end_n that_o thereby_o they_o shall_v prognosticate_v thing_n to_o come_v and_o beside_o if_o god_n do_v send_v such_o vision_n he_o will_v rather_o do_v it_o in_o the_o day_n time_n that_o man_n may_v with_o more_o diligence_n consider_v of_o they_o neither_o can_v we_o easy_o judge_v why_o he_o have_v choose_v the_o night_n for_o such_o a_o purpose_n and_o to_o conclude_v see_v god_n be_v not_o envious_a he_o will_v not_o so_o obscure_o warn_v they_o who_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o he_o will_v show_v those_o thing_n cléerelie_o &_o plain_o but_o dream_n be_v so_o dark_a and_o obscure_a that_o for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o man_n must_v repair_v to_o prophet_n and_o soothsaier_n these_o thing_n be_v gather_v in_o a_o manner_n out_o of_o aristotle_n whereby_o he_o whole_o transfer_v this_o thing_n from_o god_n unto_o nature_n as_o though_o the_o cause_n of_o dream_n shall_v be_v draw_v from_o thence_o but_o of_o those_o thing_n i_o will_v entreat_v more_o when_o i_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o dream_n according_a to_o divinity_n i_o will_v now_o declare_v what_o he_o have_v of_o this_o matter_n 2_o dream_n say_v he_o be_v either_o sign_n or_o cause_n or_o else_o they_o be_v chanceablie_o and_o by_o fortune_n apply_v to_o those_o thing_n whereunto_o they_o be_v refer_v and_o every_o one_o of_o these_o three_o kind_n be_v thus_o expound_v dream_n a_o peripatetical_a explication_n of_o dream_n he_o say_v that_o dream_n be_v sometime_o sign_n of_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o body_n or_o mind_n for_o by_o they_o be_v declare_v very_o many_o time_n what_o humour_n do_v abound_v bear_v rule_n &_o do_v most_o of_o all_o offend_v in_o man_n body_n move_v according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o humour_n so_o be_v likeness_n move_v for_o show_v &_o likeness_n of_o thing_n be_v raise_v according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o nature_n &_o temperature_n of_o humour_n prevail_a in_o the_o body_n where_o choler_n abound_v there_o flame_n fire_n coal_n lighten_v bralling_n and_o such_o like_a be_v see_v if_o that_o melancholy_n have_v the_o upper_a hand_n than_o smoke_n great_a darkness_n all_o black_a and_o ill_a favour_a thing_n dead_a corpse_n and_o such_o like_a present_v themselves_o but_o phlegm_n raise_v up_o the_o likeness_n of_o shower_n reins_n flood_n water_n hail_n i_o shall_z &_o whatsoever_o else_o have_v plenty_n of_o moisture_n join_v with_o coldness_n by_o blood_n be_v stir_v up_o goodly_a sight_n clear_a white_a and_o
be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o naughty_a practice_n of_o the_o papist_n yet_o shall_v those_o also_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n be_v one_o day_n take_v quite_o away_o but_o if_o they_o be_v god_n indeed_o they_o will_v sure_o defend_v themselves_o aphrodisaeus_n aphrodisaeus_n aphrodisaeus_n say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a general_a power_n which_o by_o the_o property_n of_o thing_n such_o as_o be_v herb_n stone_n and_o metal_n must_v be_v draw_v unto_o every_o particular_a thing_n i_o admit_v it_o be_v so_o yet_o no_o such_o thing_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o pass_v upon_o the_o sudden_a for_o the_o work_n of_o nature_n have_v their_o time_n &_o course_n but_o christ_n upon_o the_o sudden_a turn_v water_n into_o wine_n 8._o john_n 2_o 8._o &_o upon_o the_o sudden_a restore_v the_o blind_a and_o lame_a 5._o matth._n 11_o 5._o platonist_n of_o the_o platonist_n 13_o indeed_o the_o platonist_n grant_v that_o there_o be_v spirit_n but_o they_o say_v that_o they_o have_v body_n either_o watery_a or_o airy_n or_o fiery_a these_o thing_n doubtless_o they_o speak_v howbeit_o they_o speak_v such_o thing_n as_o will_v not_o agree_v one_o with_o another_o for_o if_o the_o body_n of_o spirit_n be_v elementary_a elementary_a whether_o the_o body_n of_o spirit_n be_v elementary_a how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o they_o be_v eternal_a for_o the_o element_n have_v both_o cold_a and_o heat_n quality_n both_o active_a and_o passive_a and_o sometime_o they_o strive_v one_o with_o another_o and_o sometime_o they_o perish_v other_o reason_n after_o this_o sort_n forsomuch_o as_o there_o be_v extremity_n we_o must_v also_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o mean_a but_o heaven_n be_v eternal_a and_o man_n body_n be_v frail_a and_o mortal_a wherefore_o of_o necessity_n something_o must_v be_v put_v between_o these_o two_o that_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o both_o this_o be_v no_o necessary_a argument_n for_o first_o we_o grant_v that_o certain_a mind_n there_o be_v void_a of_o body_n such_o as_o be_v the_o angel_n and_o those_o intelligency_n which_o drive_v the_o celestial_a sphere_n &_o further_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o body_n be_v the_o other_o extreme_a of_o other_o mean_a thing_n there_o be_v no_o need_n but_o they_o say_v that_o as_o fish_n be_v in_o the_o sea_n and_o fowl_n in_o the_o air_n so_o there_o must_v be_v spirit_n conversant_a in_o the_o fire_n this_o be_v of_o no_o necessity_n for_o live_a creature_n be_v not_o make_v for_o the_o element_n but_o the_o element_n for_o live_a creature_n and_o live_v creature_n be_v make_v for_o man_n sake_n now_o what_o use_n can_v there_o come_v unto_o man_n by_o those_o live_a creature_n which_o abide_v in_o the_o fire_n howbeit_o if_o these_o man_n will_v urge_v further_o concern_v the_o upper_a region_n of_o the_o air_n we_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v spirit_n there_o for_o so_o paul_n to_o the_o ephesian_n say_v 12._o ephe._n 2_o 2._o &_o 6_o 12._o after_o the_o prince_n that_o rule_v in_o the_o air_n and_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n we_o wrestle_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o against_o principality_n &_o power_n of_o this_o air_n chrysost_n chrysost_n also_o chrysostom_n in_o his_o 11._o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o say_v that_o the_o whole_a air_n be_v full_a of_o spirit_n but_o let_v we_o consider_v of_o the_o body_n of_o these_o spirit_n for_o they_o can_v be_v no_o airy_n body_n see_v the_o air_n be_v a_o body_n of_o one_o kind_n for_o every_o part_n of_o the_o air_n be_v air_n and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n give_v why_o one_o part_n thereof_o shall_v be_v a_o spirit_n more_o than_o another_o and_o by_o that_o mean_v the_o whole_a universal_a air_n shall_v be_v one_o continue_a body_n of_o spirit_n moreover_o the_o body_n of_o a_o live_a creature_n must_v be_v instrumental_a and_o have_v bone_n sinew_n part_n and_o several_a member_n but_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v make_v of_o the_o air_n furthermore_o a_o body_n must_v have_v fashion_n &_o form_n which_o thing_n can_v so_o much_o as_o be_v imagine_v in_o the_o air_n but_o there_o be_v you_o will_v say_v fashion_n and_o distinct_a form_n in_o the_o cloud_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o they_o consist_v not_o of_o air_n only_o or_o alone_o and_o yet_o this_o argument_n be_v not_o firm_a for_o spirit_n may_v take_v unto_o they_o the_o body_n of_o other_o thing_n wherefore_o some_o do_v rather_o argue_v on_o this_o sort_n spirit_n have_v body_n either_o celestial_a or_o elementary_a if_o celestial_a than_o their_o move_n must_v be_v round_o or_o circlewise_a as_o the_o move_n of_o the_o heaven_n be_v if_o elementary_a they_o must_v of_o necessity_n follow_v the_o motion_n of_o that_o element_n whereof_o they_o have_v their_o body_n spirit_n demon_n be_v spirit_n 14_o but_o to_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v the_o scripture_n do_v not_o make_v daemon_n to_o have_v body_n but_o to_o be_v spirit_n only_o now_o spirit_n &_o body_n by_o a_o antithesis_fw-la be_v put_v as_o contrary_n for_o even_o as_o a_o spirit_n be_v no_o body_n so_o likewise_o a_o body_n be_v no_o spirit_n 39_o luk._n 24_o 39_o and_o christ_n say_v a_o spirit_n have_v no_o flesh_n nor_o bone_n and_o that_o daemon_n be_v spirit_n be_v prove_v by_o infinite_a testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o history_n of_o achab_n thus_o the_o devil_n speak_v i_o will_v be_v a_o lie_v spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n of_o achab._n 22_o 1._o kin._n 22_o 22_o and_o christ_n cast_v out_o a_o unclean_a spirit_n 43._o matt._n 12_o 43._o &_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n wander_v through_o dry_a and_o desert_a place_n afterward_o he_o take_v to_o himself_o seven_o other_o spirit_n worse_a than_o himself_o nay_o very_o will_n you_o say_v these_o spirit_n be_v but_o only_o certain_a impulsion_n of_o the_o mind_n such_o as_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o knowledge_n yes_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o be_v substance_n 10._o matt._n 18_o 10._o for_o christ_n say_v that_o they_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o his_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v pronounce_v at_o the_o latter_a day_n 41._o matt._n 25_o 41._o go_v you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n wherefore_o see_v the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v call_v daemon_n by_o the_o name_n of_o spirit_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o any_o shall_v attribute_v body_n unto_o they_o but_o i_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o body_n which_o be_v assume_v and_o be_v come_v unto_o they_o but_o of_o such_o as_o be_v proper_a to_o they_o and_o of_o their_o own_o i_o know_v there_o be_v other_o man_n somewhat_o sharp_a witted_a indeed_o which_o say_v that_o daemon_n be_v spirit_n in_o comparison_n of_o we_o even_o as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n angel_n in_o comparison_n of_o god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v body_n and_o after_o this_o manner_n they_o say_v that_o augustine_n affirm_v daemon_n to_o have_v body_n and_o they_o say_v also_o that_o barnard_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n both_o in_o his_o treatise_n to_o eugenius_n and_o also_o upon_o the_o canticle_n howbeit_o there_o be_v some_o which_o interpret_v barnard_n to_o speak_v of_o body_n assume_v but_o see_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o i_o say_v do_v call_v daemon_n spirit_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v imagine_v they_o to_o have_v body_n spirit_n four_o kind_n of_o spirit_n for_o in_o the_o scripture_n we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v four_o kind_n of_o spirit_n first_o in_o very_a deed_n god_n himself_o be_v a_o spirit_n for_o he_o have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o body_n either_o for_o his_o be_v or_o for_o his_o do_v of_o any_o manner_n of_o thing_n the_o next_o be_v angel_n as_o well_o good_a as_o bad_a neither_o doubtless_o have_v they_o need_v of_o body_n as_o touch_v their_o own_o proper_a action_n but_o to_o communicate_v in_o action_n with_o we_o they_o have_v need_n of_o body_n for_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n 14._o heb._n 1_o 14._o they_o be_v administer_a spirit_n the_o three_o sort_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n which_o doubtless_o that_o they_o may_v have_v their_o be_v have_v no_o need_n of_o body_n for_o they_o have_v their_o be_v and_o do_v live_v even_o when_o they_o be_v separate_v from_o their_o body_n yet_o about_o their_o own_o proper_a action_n as_o to_o have_v sense_n or_o to_o grow_v they_o can_v be_v without_o body_n the_o last_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o brute_n beast_n which_o neither_o can_v have_v their_o be_v nor_o do_v any_o thing_n without_o body_n by_o this_o division_n we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n at_o all_o for_o daemon_n to_o have_v body_n for_o
even_o without_o they_o both_o they_o may_v have_v their_o be_v and_o also_o may_v exercise_v their_o own_o action_n for_o they_o love_v they_o desire_v they_o understand_v even_o without_o body_n 15_o now_o we_o must_v see_v what_o they_o can_v do_v spirit_n two_o sort_n of_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n their_o power_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n one_o in_o understanding_n another_o in_o work_v but_o we_o will_v see_v what_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o they_o in_o both_o kind_n have_v of_o the_o knowledge_n which_o they_o have_v that_o spirit_n do_v know_v many_o thing_n we_o have_v no_o doubt_n for_o after_o the_o opinion_n of_o lactantius_n tertullian_n capella_n 2._o look_v in_o 1._o cor._n 12_o 2._o and_o plato_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v cratylus_n they_o be_v call_v daemon_n quasi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d à_fw-la sciéndo_fw-la that_o be_v of_o know_v come_v whether_o they_o know_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o peradventure_o you_o will_v demand_v whether_o they_o also_o know_v thing_n to_o come_v for_o the_o which_o thing_n chéeflie_o their_o counsel_n be_v demand_v i_o answer_v that_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v not_o always_o know_v after_o one_o manner_n first_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v not_o know_v as_o thing_n present_a but_o of_o god_n only_o for_o he_o within_o his_o compass_n comprehend_v all_o the_o difference_n of_o time_n for_o as_o paul_n say_v all_o thing_n be_v naked_a &_o lay_v before_o his_o eye_n 14._o heb._n 4_o 14._o other_o do_v not_o present_o see_v the_o effect_n of_o thing_n but_o by_o reason_n they_o gather_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o that_o many_o way_n for_o first_o they_o see_v the_o cause_n of_o thing_n and_o by_o they_o gather_v of_o the_o effect_n which_o shall_v afterward_o follow_v but_o of_o cause_n some_o be_v necessary_a and_o some_o not_o necessary_a of_o necessary_a be_v such_o as_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o mathematics_n and_o in_o the_o opposition_n or_o conjunction_n of_o the_o heavenly_a sphere_n so_o do_v man_n which_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o star_n foretell_v many_o year_n before_o hand_n what_o time_n eclipse_n shall_v happen_v afterward_o other_o cause_n sometime_o be_v not_o necessary_a or_o certain_a for_o their_o effect_n may_v be_v hinder_v and_o such_o be_v those_o which_o be_v call_v thing_n seldom_o happen_v or_o thing_n that_o may_v happen_v this_o way_n or_o that_o way_n so_o the_o mariner_n pronounce_v of_o the_o tempest_n and_o the_o physician_n of_o the_o pulse_n 16_o then_o if_o there_o be_v such_o knowledge_n grant_v unto_o man_n come_v how_o the_o spirit_n know_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v much_o rather_o must_v the_o same_o be_v grant_v unto_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v not_o let_v by_o the_o heaviness_n and_o lump_n of_o the_o flesh_n as_o man_n be_v beside_o this_o continuance_n and_o experience_n be_v a_o furtherance_n unto_o they_o for_o if_o that_o old_a man_n do_v see_v many_o more_o thing_n than_o young_a man_n do_v spirit_n the_o old_a age_n of_o spirit_n then_o be_v it_o credible_a that_o spirit_n which_o live_v for_o ever_o do_v know_v very_o many_o thing_n and_o if_o they_o have_v body_n proper_a and_o of_o their_o own_o as_o some_o think_v they_o have_v such_o as_o be_v nimble_a and_o ready_a they_o the_o nimbleness_n of_o they_o so_o that_o in_o a_o very_a short_a space_n they_o can_v fly_v to_o and_o fro_o over_o all_o place_n of_o the_o world_n and_o make_v relation_n what_o be_v do_v everywhere_a and_o for_o that_o cause_n tertullian_n call_v they_o tertullian_n tertullian_n fly_v spirit_n when_o they_o do_v these_o thing_n they_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v prophet_n because_o they_o foreshow_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v afterward_o declare_v unto_o we_o in_o writing_n and_o augustine_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v augustine_n augustine_n that_o they_o foreshow_v these_o thing_n that_o they_o may_v be_v account_v for_o prophet_n and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr genesi_fw-la ad_fw-la litteram_fw-la he_o recite_v a_o history_n of_o a_o certain_a man_n who_o as_o he_o say_v will_v take_v meat_n at_o no_o man_n hand_n but_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o certain_a priest_n and_o that_o whereas_o the_o priest_n dwell_v far_o off_o about_o the_o space_n of_o five_o mile_n from_o he_o he_o be_v wont_v to_o tell_v before_o hand_n now_o be_v he_o come_v out_o of_o his_o house_n now_o be_v he_o onward_o in_o the_o way_n now_o be_v he_o in_o the_o tavern_n now_o be_v he_o come_v to_o the_o field_n now_o be_v he_o at_o the_o door_n but_o augustine_n deni_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o foretell_v be_v prophesy_v for_o if_o a_o troop_n of_o soldier_n shall_v come_v from_o some_o place_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n &_o the_o watchman_n from_o the_o top_n of_o a_o tower_n spy_v they_o come_v shall_v declare_v that_o within_o short_a space_n they_o will_v be_v there_o he_o say_v that_o he_o nevertheless_o can_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o prophet_n moreover_o spirit_n may_v foretell_v those_o thing_n which_o god_n command_v they_o to_o do_v god_n spirit_n may_v foretell_v thing_n command_v they_o by_o god_n as_o oftentimes_o it_o happen_v for_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o command_v they_o to_o waste_v and_o destroy_v country_n and_o as_o david_n say_v he_o destroy_v egypt_n by_o evil_a angel_n so_o in_o samuel_n 19_o psal_n 78_o 49._o 1._o sam._n 28_o verse_n 19_o the_o devil_n foretell_v that_o saul_n the_o next_o day_n after_o shall_v die_v for_o he_o be_v then_o in_o the_o bondage_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o devil_n further_o when_o they_o see_v that_o they_o have_v a_o bind_v prescribe_v they_o they_o promise_v so_o they_o may_v have_v some_o little_a gift_n give_v they_o that_o they_o will_v rage_v no_o long_o air_n spirit_n of_o the_o air_n an_o other_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o they_o be_v place_v in_o the_o air_n and_o from_o that_o region_n as_o out_o of_o a_o watch_n tower_n they_o perceive_v the_o influence_n and_o event_n of_o thing_n much_o more_o easy_o than_o we_o can_v prophet_n they_o see_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o prophet_n beside_o this_o also_o they_o see_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n and_o although_o otherwise_o they_o know_v many_o thing_n yet_o be_v they_o much_o better_o learn_v both_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o also_o for_o because_o they_o see_v what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n wherefore_o paul_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n say_v 10._o ephe._n 3_o 10._o that_o the_o hide_a mystery_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v manifest_a unto_o principality_n and_o power_n in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n and_o whereas_o hermes_n trismegistus_n foreshow_v unto_o asclepius_n that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o fall_n and_o desolation_n of_o idol_n and_o lament_v the_o same_o augustine_n say_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la that_o he_o may_v understand_v that_o by_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n many_o time_n also_o do_v they_o know_v for_o that_o they_o be_v present_a at_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n and_o be_v call_v to_o execute_v his_o commandment_n for_o so_o when_o god_n be_v take_v counsel_n to_o deceive_v achab_n the_o devil_n stand_v forth_o and_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o lie_v spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n of_o achab_n 22_o 1._o kin._n 22_o 22_o and_o a_o certain_a other_o spirit_n obtain_v of_o god_n to_o forment_fw-la &_o trouble_v job._n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n 6._o job._n 2_o 6._o for_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o do_v execution_n howbeit_o when_o they_o be_v thus_o call_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n they_o see_v what_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o do_v effect_n they_o gather_v the_o cause_n by_o the_o effect_n oftentimes_o also_o by_o effect_n they_o gather_v the_o cause_n of_o thing_n as_o if_o they_o see_v a_o man_n live_v well_o and_o godly_a they_o suspect_v that_o he_o be_v a_o choose_v of_o god_n for_o good_a deed_n be_v the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o election_n in_o like_a manner_n if_o they_o see_v a_o man_n to_o frame_v himself_o well_o unto_o religion_n and_o to_o kneel_v devout_o they_o think_v he_o pray_v although_o they_o can_v descend_v into_o his_o mind_n 17_o but_o although_o they_o can_v by_o so_o many_o way_n and_o mean_n know_v thing_n to_o come_v deceive_v why_o the_o spirit_n be_v oftentimes_o deceive_v yet_o be_v they_o oftentimes_o deceive_v and_o that_o for_o many_o cause_n first_o because_o god_n can_v let_v the_o cause_n of_o thing_n be_v god_n can_v let_v the_o cause_n how_o certain_a soever_o they_o be_v though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o certain_a or_o necessary_a when_o the_o child_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o burn_a furnace_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v burn_v but_o god_n do_v
condition_n be_v look_v for_o in_o we_o wherefore_o the_o change_n must_v not_o be_v attribute_v unto_o he_o but_o unto_o us._n but_o if_o thou_o will_v ask_v i_o whether_o god_n have_v know_v and_o decree_v before_o what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v as_o touch_v these_o condition_n i_o will_v grant_v he_o have_v for_o even_o at_o the_o first_o beginning_n he_o not_o only_o know_v what_o the_o event_n of_o thing_n will_v be_v but_o also_o decree_v what_o shall_v be_v but_o see_v the_o secretness_n of_o his_o will_n touch_v these_o thing_n be_v not_o open_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o we_o must_v follow_v that_o rule_n which_o be_v give_v by_o jeremie_n 4._o jonas_n 3_o 4._o even_o as_o we_o have_v rehearse_v before_o 1._o esaie_n 38_o 1._o this_o rule_n the_o ninivit_n and_o also_o ezechias_n the_o king_n have_v respect_n unto_o even_o before_o the_o same_o be_v publish_v for_o although_o that_o destruction_n be_v denounce_v to_o they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n yet_o they_o escape_v from_o it_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o repentance_n and_o prayer_n which_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n use_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v suspect_v that_o god_n do_v lie_v in_o any_o thing_n pass_v god_n lie_v not_o when_o he_o threaten_v thing_n which_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v when_o he_o threaten_v or_o promise_v those_o thing_n which_o do_v not_o afterward_o come_v to_o pass_v for_o as_o touch_v ezechias_n death_n be_v undoubted_o to_o have_v take_v hold_n of_o he_o by_o reason_n of_o natural_a cause_n common_o call_v the_o second_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o sentence_n be_v pronounce_v according_a to_o those_o cause_n he_o may_v not_o be_v accuse_v of_o a_o lie_n also_o the_o ninivit_n if_o god_n have_v do_v by_o they_o as_o their_o sin_n deserve_v there_o have_v be_v no_o other_o way_n with_o they_o but_o destruction_n and_o god_n command_v jonas_n to_o preach_v unto_o they_o according_a to_o their_o desert_n furthermore_o a_o lie_n which_o in_o talk_n have_v a_o supposition_n or_o condition_n join_v therewith_o can_v be_v blame_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o may_v be_v in_o argument_n which_o he_o absolute_a and_o without_o exception_n see_v the_o event_n depend_v of_o the_o perform_n or_o violate_v of_o the_o condition_n the_o xiij_o chapter_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n wherein_o be_v entreat_v of_o angel_n of_o man_n of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o of_o diverse_a other_o thing_n i_o will_v think_v that_o under_o the_o name_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n earth_n in_o gen._n 1_o 1._o what_o be_v signify_v under_o the_o name_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n moses_n show_v that_o the_o foundation_n or_o ground_n of_o all_o thing_n aswell_o of_o the_o heaven_n as_o of_o the_o element_n be_v make_v and_o that_o this_o matter_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o name_n of_o thing_n already_o finish_v for_o see_v it_o can_v be_v know_v otherwise_o but_o by_o the_o form_n and_o perfection_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o that_o also_o shall_v be_v name_v and_o specify_v wherefore_o this_o whole_a heap_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o name_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n wherein_o also_o come_v the_o other_o three_o element_n fire_n air_n &_o water_n he_o show_v we_o of_o the_o uttermost_a thing_n by_o which_o he_o will_v also_o have_v we_o to_o know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v between_o both_o but_o how_o far_o these_o thing_n at_o the_o first_o be_v out_o of_o square_a and_o order_v it_o be_v show_v when_o of_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v without_o form_n 2._o gen._n 1_o 2._o &_o waste_v wherefore_o this_o rude_a heap_n be_v bring_v forth_o be_v as_o yet_o stuff_n or_o matter_n void_a of_o order_n the_o which_o belong_v aswell_o to_o the_o upper_a thing_n as_o to_o the_o low_a and_o so_o perhaps_o as_o the_o more_o noble_a have_v the_o uppermost_a place_n so_o to_o the_o less_o noble_a be_v assign_v the_o nethermost_a for_o this_o cause_n the_o name_n of_o creation_n be_v very_o fit_a for_o the_o first_o and_o unorderlie_a heap_n create_v the_o difference_n between_o make_v and_o create_v for_o those_o thing_n seem_v only_o to_o be_v make_v of_o nothing_o and_o other_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v and_o fashion_v and_o yet_o this_o difference_n be_v not_o observe_v in_o all_o thing_n for_o some_o thing_n be_v call_v create_v which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o some_o former_a matter_n two_o thing_n doubtless_o man_n have_v be_v accustom_v to_o attribute_v unto_o creation_n both_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v of_o a_o sudden_a and_o that_o it_o require_v no_o matter_n to_o be_v before_o hand_n world_n the_o philosopher_n error_n touch_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n 2_o thus_o the_o world_n be_v not_o rash_o make_v neither_o be_v it_o coeternall_a with_o the_o maker_n or_o creator_n many_o of_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n assign_v the_o workmanship_n of_o thing_n unto_o rashness_n and_o chance_n see_v diverse_a of_o they_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o beginning_n name_v discord_n and_o debate_n or_o else_o such_o little_a small_a body_n as_o small_a can_v be_v aristotle_n attribute_v eternity_n unto_o that_o whereby_o he_o make_v god_n not_o to_o be_v the_o work_a cause_n of_o the_o world_n but_o only_o attribute_v unto_o he_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o end_n or_o if_o he_o do_v he_o take_v from_o he_o the_o power_n of_o work_v according_a to_o his_o will_n and_o think_v that_o the_o world_n follow_v he_o as_o a_o shadow_n do_v the_o body_n or_o as_o the_o light_n do_v the_o sun_n which_o the_o peripatetike_n will_v seem_v to_o do_v for_o divine_a honour_n sake_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v drive_v to_o ascribe_v any_o lack_n of_o power_n or_o alteration_n in_o god_n but_o these_o thing_n hurt_v not_o we_o at_o all_o for_o we_o affirm_v not_o that_o god_n be_v bear_v or_o apt_a to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n but_o we_o attribute_v unto_o he_o the_o chief_a power_n to_o do_v and_o although_o god_n in_o his_o eternity_n mind_v to_o make_v the_o world_n it_o follow_v not_o therefore_o that_o when_o he_o do_v make_v it_o there_o be_v in_o he_o any_o alteration_n of_o his_o purpose_n or_o will_n again_o let_v we_o beware_v of_o the_o error_n of_o they_o in_o old_a time_n error_n a_o curious_a imagine_a error_n which_o think_v that_o there_o be_v a_o eternal_a and_o uncreat_a chaos_n or_o confuse_a heap_n extant_a before_o and_o that_o god_n do_v only_o pick_v out_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v there_o mingle_v together_o but_o we_o say_v that_o the_o same_o heap_n also_o be_v make_v the_o first_o day_n some_o there_o be_v which_o demand_n that_o see_v god_n can_v have_v bring_v forth_o the_o world_n long_o before_o why_o he_o do_v it_o so_o late_o this_o be_v a_o arrogant_a and_o malepert_a question_n wherein_o man_n curiosity_n can_v be_v satisfy_v but_o by_o beat_v down_o the_o folly_n thereof_o for_o if_o i_o shall_v grant_v thou_o that_o the_o world_n be_v make_v before_o at_o any_o certain_a instant_n of_o time_n that_o thou_o can_v imagine_v yet_o thou_o may_v still_o complain_v that_o the_o same_o be_v but_o late_o make_v if_o thou_o refer_v thy_o cogitation_n to_o the_o eternity_n of_o god_n so_o as_o we_o must_v herein_o deal_v after_o a_o godly_a manner_n and_o not_o with_o this_o malepert_a and_o rash_a curiosity_n of_o angel_n and_o their_o creation_n 3_o but_o very_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o marvel_n why_o the_o creation_n of_o angel_n be_v so_o keep_v in_o silence_n as_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n thereof_o in_o all_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n i_o say_v because_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o colossian_n there_o be_v plain_a mention_n of_o their_o creation_n 16._o colos_n 1_o 16._o there_o be_v some_o which_o bring_v two_o place_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n namely_o who_o make_v his_o angel_n spirit_n 4._o psal_n 104_o 4._o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 9_o psal_n 33_o 9_o when_o he_o say_v and_o they_o be_v make_v howbeit_o these_o place_n do_v not_o firm_o persuade_v it_o angel_n the_o heaven_n be_v turn_v about_o by_o angel_n it_o shall_v be_v rather_o say_v that_o they_o be_v comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o heaven_n see_v it_o be_v general_o receive_v that_o the_o heaven_n be_v turn_v about_o by_o they_o the_o first_o reason_n be_v because_o if_o their_o creation_n have_v be_v first_o describe_v it_o may_v have_v seem_v that_o god_n use_v their_o labour_n in_o the_o bring_n forth_o of_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o the_o intent_n we_o shall_v attribute_v unto_o god_n the_o whole_a power_n of_o creation_n therefore_o do_v moses_n keep_v
say_v that_o those_o spiritual_a mind_n so_o often_o as_o they_o offend_v do_v fall_n and_o be_v thrust_v into_o body_n but_o yet_o not_o immediate_o into_o the_o vile_a body_n but_o first_o into_o starry_a body_n then_o into_o fiery_a and_o airy_a afterward_o into_o watery_a and_o last_o of_o all_o into_o humane_a and_o earthy_a body_n and_o if_o then_o also_o they_o behave_v not_o themselves_o well_o they_o become_v devil_n and_o further_o that_o if_o they_o will_v yet_o then_o repent_v they_o may_v come_v again_o by_o the_o selfsame_o degree_n unto_o their_o former_a state_n and_o this_o he_o say_v we_o shall_v understand_v by_o that_o ladder_n 12._o gen._n 28_o 12._o upon_o which_o jacob_n see_v the_o angel_n ascend_v and_o descend_v but_o jerom_n to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o plain_a jerom._n jerom._n give_v a_o similitude_n if_o a_o tribune_n say_v he_o do_v not_o right_o execute_v his_o office_n he_o be_v put_v from_o that_o degree_n and_o be_v make_v a_o principal_a secretary_n afterward_o a_o senator_n a_o captain_n over_o two_o hundred_o a_o ruler_n over_o few_o a_o constable_n of_o a_o watch_n afterward_o a_o man_n at_o arm_n and_o after_o that_o a_o soldier_n of_o the_o mean_a degree_n and_o although_o a_o tribune_n be_v once_o a_o common_a soldier_n yet_o of_o a_o tribune_n he_o be_v not_o make_v a_o young_a soldier_n but_o a_o principal_a secretary_n howbeit_o these_o thing_n be_v absurd_a and_o worthy_a to_o be_v laugh_v at_o and_o certeinlie_o herein_o origin_n speak_v more_o like_o a_o platonist_n than_o a_o christian_n that_o which_o he_o first_o affirm_v punishment_n against_o origin_n opinion_n of_o thrust_v soul_n into_o body_n as_o unto_o punishment_n namely_o that_o soul_n be_v thrust_v into_o body_n as_o unto_o punishment_n be_v manifest_o false_a forsomuch_o as_o god_n have_v join_v the_o body_n to_o the_o soul_n for_o a_o help_n not_o for_o a_o punishment_n neither_o do_v he_o well_o to_o put_v the_o devil_n into_o any_o hope_n of_o salvation_n in_o time_n to_o come_v see_v christ_n have_v teach_v the_o contrary_a say_v 41._o matt._n 25_o 41._o go_v you_o curse_v into_o eternal_a fire_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n neither_o can_v we_o in_o that_o place_n understand_v eternal_a to_o be_v only_o a_o long_a space_n of_o time_n for_o christ_n most_o plain_o expound_v his_o meaning_n when_o he_o say_v their_o worm_n shall_v not_o die_v and_o their_o fire_n shall_v not_o be_v quench_v 24._o mark_n 9_o 44._o esaie_n 66_o 24._o neither_o do_v he_o true_o affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n first_o sin_v before_o they_o come_v into_o body_n 11._o rom._n 9_o 11._o see_v paul_n write_v of_o jacob_n and_o esau_n that_o before_o they_o be_v bear_v and_o have_v do_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a it_o be_v say_v jacob_n have_v i_o loove_v and_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v the_o great_a shall_v serve_v the_o lesser_a upon_o just_a cause_n therefore_o be_v this_o opinion_n of_o origin_n reject_v by_o all_o man_n augustine_n augustine_n 7_o augustine_n in_o many_o place_n seem_v to_o attribute_v body_n unto_o angel_n and_o namely_o in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la the_o seven_o chapter_n &_o in_o the_o three_o book_n the_o first_o chapter_n which_o the_o school_n man_n perceive_v excuse_v he_o say_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o there_o after_o his_o own_o judgement_n but_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o which_o thing_n i_o also_o may_v allow_v for_o so_o much_o as_o i_o see_v that_o that_o father_n in_o his_o eight_o book_n and_o 16._o chapter_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la after_o the_o opinion_n of_o apuleius_n madaurensis_fw-la and_o porphyrius_n define_v that_o angel_n be_v in_o kind_n sensible_a creature_n in_o soul_n passive_a in_o mind_n reasonable_a in_o body_n airy_a in_o time_n eternal_a doubtless_o herein_o he_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o platonist_n but_o in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v he_o seem_v to_o speak_v altogether_o of_o himself_o barnard_n barnard_n yea_o and_o barnard_n also_o upon_o the_o song_n of_o the_o three_o child_n as_o it_o appear_v be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n wherefore_o the_o schoolman_n be_v compel_v to_o devise_v a_o other_o shift_n and_o they_o say_v that_o angel_n if_o they_o be_v compare_v with_o man_n be_v spirit_n but_o if_o with_o god_n they_o have_v body_n because_o they_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o single_a and_o pure_a nature_n of_o god_n tertullian_n tertullian_n tertullian_n de_fw-fr carne_fw-la christi_fw-la affirm_v that_o angel_n have_v body_n but_o that_o be_v the_o less_o marvel_n in_o he_o for_o he_o attribute_v a_o body_n even_o to_o god_n himself_o but_o he_o call_v a_o body_n whatsoever_o be_v for_o he_o deal_v with_o unlearned_a and_o rude_a man_n which_o think_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o a_o body_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o schoolman_n say_v that_o angel_n in_o very_a deed_n be_v spirit_n but_o that_o when_o they_o come_v unto_o man_n they_o take_v upon_o they_o airy_a body_n which_o they_o thicken_v and_o make_v very_o gross_a whereby_o they_o can_v both_o be_v see_v touch_v and_o perceive_v beyond_o the_o nature_n of_o air_n there_o be_v some_o also_o which_o say_v that_o some_o earthy_a or_o waterish_a thing_n be_v mix_v with_o they_o but_o in_o no_o wise_a will_v grant_v the_o same_o to_o be_v any_o perfect_a mixture_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v compel_v there_o to_o appoint_v a_o generation_n there_o have_v be_v also_o which_o thought_n that_o angel_n take_v upon_o they_o dead_a carcase_n but_o this_o to_o the_o more_o part_n seem_v a_o unworthy_a thing_n to_o be_v think_v of_o the_o holy_a angel_n man_n whether_o it_o be_v convenient_a for_o angel_n to_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o similitude_n of_o man_n 8_o here_o will_v some_o man_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o charge_v the_o celestial_a angel_n with_o feign_v and_o lie_v as_o they_o to_o feign_v themselves_o to_o be_v man_n and_o yet_o be_v none_o indeed_o yea_o and_o this_o seem_v to_o weaken_v the_o argument_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o use_v after_o his_o resurrection_n to_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v a_o very_a body_n indeed_o feel_v say_v he_o and_o see_v 38._o luk._n 24_o 38._o for_o a_o spirit_n have_v no_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v for_o the_o apostle_n be_v dismay_v think_v that_o they_o have_v see_v a_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o to_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o doubt_n christ_n bid_v they_o to_o handle_v and_o feel_v his_o body_n but_o the_o apostle_n may_v have_v say_v that_o which_o we_o feel_v be_v a_o fantasy_n it_o seem_v indeed_o to_o be_v christ_n but_o perhaps_o it_o be_v not_o for_o angel_n also_o seem_v to_o have_v body_n and_o to_o be_v touch_v &_o feel_v whereas_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o body_n indeed_o also_o this_o opinion_n may_v weaken_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o father_n against_o martion_n as_o touch_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o do_v eat_v say_v they_o he_o drink_v he_o be_v hungry_a he_o sleep_v he_o do_v sweat_v and_o such_o like_a and_o therefore_o have_v a_o true_a and_o humane_a body_n unto_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v answer_v that_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n have_v happen_v unto_o angel_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v no_o body_n i_o answer_v that_o which_o they_o first_o say_v that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o charge_v the_o angel_n with_o lie_n they_o shall_v understand_v that_o every_o thing_n howsoever_o it_o be_v feign_v be_v not_o straightwaie_o a_o lie_n 15._o every_o thing_n that_o be_v feign_v be_v not_o a_o lie_n luk._n 24_o 15._o christ_n appear_v unto_o his_o disciple_n as_o a_o stranger_n and_o yet_o he_o lie_v not_o even_o he_o be_v see_v unto_o marie_n in_o likeness_n of_o a_o gardener_n yet_o he_o lie_v not_o so_o the_o angel_n although_o they_o appéer_v to_o be_v man_n when_o they_o be_v no_o man_n not_o john_n 15_o 20._o the_o angel_n while_o they_o seeme●_n to_o be_v man_n lie_v not_o yet_o be_v they_o no_o liar_n for_o they_o come_v not_o of_o purpose_n to_o prove_v themselves_o man_n but_o only_o that_o they_o may_v converse_v and_o have_v communication_n with_o man_n to_o the_o argument_n of_o christ_n as_o touch_v his_o own_o body_n thus_o i_o answer_v first_o the_o apostle_n think_v that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o ghost_n which_o appear_v and_o therefore_o christ_n to_o refel_v that_o say_v handle_v and_o see_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v neither_o flesh_n nor_o bone_n by_o the_o handle_n itself_o it_o may_v be_v perceive_v that_o the_o same_o which_o be_v present_a be_v a_o very_a true_a and_o perfect_a body_n not_o a_o vain_a fantasy_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v it_o be_v a_o true_a body_n indeed_o but_o yet_o take_v for_o a_o time_n and_o such_o a_o body_n as_o
john_n 1_o 32._o matth._n 3_o 16._o light_v upon_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n be_v as_o true_o a_o dove_n as_o he_o be_v the_o spirit_n neither_o do_v the_o contrary_a substance_n take_v destroy_v his_o own_o proper_a substance_n appear_v of_o the_o dove_n wherein_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v 11_o i_o know_v there_o have_v be_v some_o schoolman_n which_o think_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o very_a dove_n which_o descend_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o airy_a and_o thicken_a body_n appéer_v to_o be_v a_o dove_n but_o augustine_n de_fw-fr ago_o christiano_n write_v otherwise_o augustine_n augustine_n namely_o that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o very_a dove_n for_o a_o thing_n say_v he_o be_v more_o effectual_a to_o express_v the_o property_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n than_o be_v a_o sign_n even_o as_o christian_n also_o be_v better_o express_v in_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n than_o in_o the_o likeness_n of_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n again_o if_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n and_o deceive_v not_o then_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v the_o very_a true_a body_n of_o a_o dove_n tertullian_n add_v thou_o will_v demand_v where_o the_o body_n of_o the_o dove_n become_v appear_v what_o become_v of_o the_o dove_n wherein_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v when_o the_o spirit_n be_v take_v again_o into_o heaven_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n of_o the_o angel_n body_n it_o be_v take_v away_o even_o after_o the_o selfsame_o manner_n that_o it_o come_v if_o thou_o have_v see_v when_o it_o be_v bring_v forth_o of_o nothing_o thou_o may_v also_o have_v know_v when_o it_o be_v take_v away_o to_o nothing_o if_o the_o beginning_n of_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a no_o more_o be_v the_o end_n then_o he_o remit_v the_o reader_n unto_o john_n be_v he_o also_o say_v he_o a_o fantasy_n after_o his_o resurrection_n when_o he_o offer_v his_o hand_n and_o foot_n to_o be_v see_v of_o his_o disciple_n say_v behold_v it_o be_v i_o for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v 39_o luke_n 24_o 39_o therefore_o christ_n be_v bring_v in_o as_o a_o juggler_n or_o conjurer_n and_o in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o martion_n therefore_o his_o christ_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o lie_v nor_o deceive_v and_o by_o that_o mean_n perhaps_o may_v be_v esteem_v for_o the_o creator_n be_v not_o indeed_o that_o which_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v and_o that_o which_o he_o be_v he_o be_v feign_v to_o be_v flesh_n and_o yet_o no_o flesh_n man_n and_o yet_o no_o man_n and_o therefore_o christ_n god_n and_o not_o god_n for_o why_o do_v he_o not_o also_o bear_v the_o shape_n of_o god_n shall_v i_o believe_v he_o as_o touch_v this_o inward_a substance_n that_o be_v overthrow_v about_o the_o outward_a substance_n how_o may_v he_o be_v think_v to_o work_v sound_o in_o secret_a that_o be_v perceive_v to_o be_v false_a open_o and_o afterward_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o to_o affirm_v that_o sense_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o sense_n which_o be_v agreeable_a unto_o god_n namely_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o thing_n which_o he_o object_v to_o three_o sense_n to_o sight_n to_o touch_v and_o to_o hear_v again_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr carne_fw-la christi_fw-la his_o virtue_n say_v he_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o his_o passion_n christ_n a_o proof_n of_o the_o godhead_n &_o manhood_n in_o christ_n that_o he_o have_v the_o flesh_n of_o man_n if_o virtue_n be_v not_o without_o spirit_n neither_o shall_v passion_n be_v without_o flesh_n if_o flesh_n together_o with_o the_o passion_n be_v feign_v the_o spirit_n also_o with_o his_o virtue_n be_v false_a why_o do_v thou_o make_v division_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o untruth_n he_o be_v all_o whole_o truth_n 12_o apelles_n the_o heretic_n heretic_n the_o opinion_n of_o apelles_n the_o heretic_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n vanquish_v with_o these_o reason_n agree_v indeed_o that_o christ_n be_v endue_v with_o very_a flesh_n but_o yet_o deny_v the_o same_o to_o be_v bear_v but_o say_v that_o it_o be_v bring_v forth_o from_o heaven_n and_o he_o object_v that_o the_o body_n which_o be_v take_v by_o angel_n be_v true_a body_n but_o be_v not_o bear_v such_o a_o body_n say_v he_o christ_n have_v whereunto_o tertullian_n answer_v they_o say_v he_o which_o publish_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o angel_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o bear_v namely_o a_o fleshy_a substance_n i_o will_v have_v they_o also_o to_o compare_v the_o cause_n as_o well_o why_o christ_n another_o christ_n take_v flesh_n upon_o he_o in_o one_o respect_n angel_n in_o another_o as_o why_o the_o angel_n do_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o there_o be_v never_o any_o angel_n that_o come_v down_o to_o be_v crucify_v to_o suffer_v death_n and_o to_o rise_v again_o if_o then_o there_o be_v never_o any_o such_o cause_n for_o angel_n ●o_o incorporate_v themselves_o than_o have_v thou_o a_o cause_n why_o they_o take_v flesh_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o bear_v they_o come_v not_o to_o die_v therefore_o they_o come_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v but_o christ_n be_v send_v to_o die_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v bear_v for_o no_o man_n be_v wont_v to_o die_v but_o he_o which_o be_v bear_v he_o add_v moreover_o and_o even_o then_o also_o the_o lord_n himself_o among_o those_o angel_n appéer_v unto_o abraham_n with_o flesh_n indeed_o without_o nativity_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o diversity_n of_o cause_n after_o this_o he_o add_v that_o angel_n have_v their_o body_n rather_o from_o the_o earth_n than_o from_o heaven_n for_o let_v they_o prove_v say_v he_o that_o those_o angel_n receive_v of_o the_o star_n substance_n of_o flesh_n if_o they_o prove_v it_o not_o because_o it_o be_v not_o write_v then_o be_v not_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n from_o thence_o whereunto_o they_o apply_v their_o example_n and_o in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o martion_n my_o god_n say_v he_o which_o have_v take_v it_o out_o of_o the_o slime_n of_o the_o earth_n form_v it_o a_o new_a unto_o this_o quality_n not_o as_o yet_o by_o the_o seed_n of_o matrimony_n and_o yet_o flesh_n notwithstanding_o may_v as_o well_o of_o any_o matter_n have_v frame_v flesh_n unto_o angel_n which_o also_o of_o nothing_o frame_v the_o world_n and_o that_o with_o a_o word_n into_o so_o many_a and_o such_o body_n again_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr carne_fw-la christi_fw-la it_o be_v manifest_a that_o angel_n bear_v not_o flesh_n proper_a of_o their_o own_o as_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o spiritual_a substance_n and_o if_o they_o be_v of_o any_o body_n yet_o be_v it_o of_o their_o own_o kind_n and_o for_o a_o time_n they_o be_v changeable_a into_o humane_a flesh_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v be_v see_v and_o converse_v with_o man_n further_o in_o the_o three_o book_n against_o martion_n understand_v thou_o say_v he_o that_o neither_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v thou_o that_o the_o flesh_n in_o angel_n be_v a_o imagine_a thing_n but_o of_o a_o true_a and_o perfect_a humane_a substance_n for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o hard_o for_o he_o to_o give_v both_o true_a sense_n and_o act_n unto_o that_o imagine_a flesh_n much_o easy_a be_v it_o for_o he_o that_o he_o give_v a_o true_a substance_n of_o flesh_n to_o true_a sense_n and_o action_n insomuch_o as_o he_o be_v the_o very_a proper_a author_n and_o worker_n thereof_o for_o it_o be_v hard_a for_o god_n to_o make_v a_o lie_n than_o to_o frame_v a_o body_n last_o of_o all_o he_o thus_o conclude_v therefore_o be_v they_o very_o humane_a body_n because_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n who_o be_v far_o from_o lie_v and_o deceit_n and_o because_o they_o can_v be_v deal_v withal_o by_o man_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n otherwise_o than_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o man_n i_o may_v allege_v many_o other_o thing_n out_o of_o tertullian_n but_o these_o may_v seem_v to_o suffice_v for_o this_o present_a purpose_n opinion_n the_o sum_n of_o tertullians_n opinion_n brief_o he_o think_v that_o angel_n have_v body_n for_o a_o time_n but_o yet_o strange_a and_o not_o their_o own_o for_o their_o own_o body_n as_o he_o think_v belong_v unto_o the_o spiritual_a kind_n secondlie_o he_o say_v that_o those_o strange_a body_n which_o they_o take_v unto_o they_o be_v either_o create_v of_o nothing_o or_o else_o of_o some_o such_o matter_n as_o seem_v best_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n thirdlie_o he_o teach_v that_o those_o body_n be_v true_a and_o substantial_a and_o humane_a body_n not_o vain_a or_o feign_a but_o of_o very_a flesh_n and_o not_o of_o that_o which_o only_o appéer_v to_o be_v flesh_n in_o such_o wise_a as_o of_o man_n they_o may_v
that_o blast_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o a_o sign_n thereof_o that_o he_o will_v from_o without_o come_v into_o their_o soul_n and_o that_o by_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n again_o in_o take_v of_o that_o word_n for_o a_o blast_n we_o may_v say_v that_o god_n breathe_v that_o be_v he_o make_v man_n himself_o to_o breath_n that_o be_v after_o the_o body_n be_v make_v he_o give_v he_o the_o power_n of_o breathe_v so_o as_o he_o be_v alive_a and_o endue_v with_o a_o soul_n may_v be_v see_v and_o behold_v the_o second_o interpretation_n be_v that_o that_o blast_n be_v take_v for_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n and_o they_o say_v that_o nischmath_n do_v chéefelie_o signify_v that_o which_o be_v divine_a and_o reasonable_a that_o do_v god_n give_v unto_o us._n and_o where_o it_o be_v add_v man_n be_v make_v a_o live_a soul_n nephesch_n signify_v a_o sensible_a life_n whereof_o other_o live_a creature_n be_v partaker_n which_o thing_n plain_o declare_v unto_o we_o that_o a_o soul_n reasonable_a be_v give_v unto_o we_o from_o above_o by_o god_n soul_n fron_n whence_o come_v a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o have_v with_o it_o all_o power_n that_o other_o inferior_a creature_n have_v hence_o be_v exclude_v a_o double_a error_n for_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n soul_n concern_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o that_o be_v unuariable_a and_o immutable_a but_o the_o soul_n may_v become_v miserable_a and_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v most_o inconstant_a furthermore_o it_o be_v no_o blast_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o die_a man_n neither_o must_v it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v account_v of_o the_o same_o quality_n and_o nature_n that_o the_o life_n be_v of_o other_o live_a creature_n because_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o in_o they_o be_v no_o understanding_n see_v in_o the_o 32._o psalm_n it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o horse_n and_o of_o the_o mule_n that_o in_o they_o there_o be_v no_o understanding_n and_o other_o beast_n may_v think_v themselves_o wrongful_o subdue_v unto_o man_n if_o they_o have_v be_v endue_v with_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o soul_n but_o this_o opinion_n need_v not_o to_o be_v confute_v by_o many_o reason_n see_v the_o best_a philosopher_n be_v displease_v therewith_o ¶_o look_v the_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n once_o whether_o all_o soul_n be_v create_v at_o once_o 23_o but_o here_o they_o doubt_v whether_o all_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v create_v by_o god_n at_o the_o beginning_n or_o else_o be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o plant_v in_o body_n according_a as_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n seem_v to_o require_v there_o be_v some_o have_v think_v that_o they_o be_v all_o create_v at_o the_o beginning_n among_o who_o also_o there_o be_v many_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o among_o we_o origin_n have_v be_v reckon_v of_o that_o opinion_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o they_o be_v upon_o this_o cause_n move_v héereunto_o for_o that_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n be_v incorruptible_a be_v not_o procreate_v of_o any_o matter_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v by_o god_n make_v of_o nothing_o it_o may_v not_o be_v true_o say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o rest_v the_o seven_o day_n from_o all_o his_o work_n as_o touch_v creation_n but_o this_o opinion_n have_v no_o likelihood_n of_o truth_n for_o see_v the_o soul_n be_v the_o livelie_a part_n and_o form_n of_o the_o body_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o bring_v forth_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v both_o join_v together_o moreover_o i_o will_v demand_v whether_o they_o be_v idle_a or_o do_v something_o all_o the_o while_n that_o they_o have_v their_o be_v before_o the_o body_n if_o thou_o say_v that_o they_o be_v idle_a it_o seem_v absurd_a that_o thing_n shall_v be_v so_o long_a time_n destitute_a of_o their_o work_n but_o if_o so_o be_v they_o do_v something_o that_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n but_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o nine_o to_o the_o roman_n 11._o rom._n 9_o 11._o pronounce_v plain_o of_o jacob_n and_o esau_n that_o before_o they_o have_v do_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n but_o that_o which_o move_v more_o be_v the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n which_o show_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o soul_n be_v make_v even_o when_o the_o body_n be_v wrought_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n for_o see_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v thereof_o before_o and_o that_o the_o production_n of_o so_o notable_a a_o thing_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v keep_v in_o silence_n it_o remain_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o it_o be_v make_v by_o god_n even_o then_o when_o we_o read_v that_o it_o be_v inspire_v or_o blow_v in_o by_o he_o but_o that_o reason_n which_o concern_v the_o cease_n from_o all_o his_o labour_n we_o may_v easy_o answer_v if_o we_o say_v that_o now_o also_o god_n do_v work_v either_o through_o the_o continual_a government_n of_o thing_n or_o else_o because_o whatsoever_o thing_n he_o make_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o former_a and_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n that_o those_o be_v which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o first_o six_o day_n but_o why_o the_o body_n be_v first_o make_v before_o the_o soul_n this_o reason_n be_v show_v by_o the_o father_n because_o if_o the_o soul_n shall_v have_v be_v bring_v in_o before_o the_o body_n it_o may_v have_v be_v idle_a be_v without_o the_o organ_n and_o instrument_n of_o his_o action_n but_o this_o order_n have_v god_n observe_v creation_n the_o order_n of_o god_n creation_n that_o always_o shall_v be_v first_o prepare_v those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o more_o excellent_a thing_n shall_v abide_v and_o then_o to_o bring_v in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o that_o they_o may_v work_v so_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o be_v make_v first_o the_o earth_n be_v discover_v from_o the_o water_n than_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n be_v make_v which_o shall_v exercise_v their_o power_n and_o strength_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o plant_n thereof_o all_o beast_n be_v first_o make_v and_o all_o the_o spring_n and_o plant_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o last_o of_o all_o man_n which_o shall_v be_v set_v over_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o immediate_o after_o he_o be_v create_v he_o may_v have_v somewhat_o to_o do_v in_o like_a manner_n now_o the_o body_n be_v first_o and_o then_o follow_v the_o soul_n lest_o it_o shall_v be_v idle_a by_o which_o purpose_n of_o god_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o among_o we_o this_o also_o may_v be_v do_v that_o the_o more_o any_o man_n do_v excel_v the_o more_o ready_a matter_n of_o work_v be_v minister_v unto_o they_o lest_o they_o shall_v live_v idle_o 24_o moreover_o man_n say_v abenezra_a be_v make_v a_o live_a soul_n he_o straitwaie_o move_v himself_o the_o first_o man_n be_v not_o create_v to_o be_v weak_a as_o young_a child_n be_v which_o can_v guide_v themselves_o and_o walk_v but_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o live_a creature_n which_o walk_v immediate_o after_o they_o be_v bring_v forth_o or_o else_o he_o show_v the_o token_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o soul_n move_v i_o mean_v and_o sense_n sense_n of_o move_v and_o sense_n for_o these_o two_o as_o aristotle_n affirm_v seem_v to_o all_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a effect_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o this_o blast_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o dust_n or_o clay_n whereof_o the_o body_n of_o man_n be_v compact_v we_o perceive_v the_o same_o to_o be_v so_o mighty_a as_o it_o quicken_v forthwith_o &_o give_v strength_n to_o all_o member_n there_o be_v gather_v a_o good_a argument_n for_o the_o easiness_n of_o our_o resurrection_n 5._o a_o argument_n of_o the_o easiness_n of_o the_o resurrection_n ezec._n 37_o 5._o for_o if_o his_o spirit_n shall_v blow_v again_o upon_o the_o ash_n of_o the_o dead_a they_o shall_v most_o easy_o put_v on_o again_o their_o soul_n as_o it_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o 37._o chapter_n of_o ezechiel_n where_o he_o show_v that_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n those_o bone_n be_v quicken_v which_o last_o renew_v of_o body_n shall_v so_o far_o excel_v this_o as_o paul_n call_v this_o first_o man_n of_o the_o earth_n earthy_a and_o the_o latter_a he_o call_v both_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a soul_n in_o gen._n 9_o verse_n 4._o how_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n 25_o but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o it_o be_v true_a that_o be_v avouch_v in_o the_o nine_o of_o genesis_n that_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n this_o the_o manicheis_n can_v abide_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o reproove_v it_o as_o a_o lie_n for_o they_o utterlie_o renounce_v the_o old_a book_n
call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o come_v of_o the_o generation_n of_o seth_n the_o three_o son_n of_o adam_n for_o see_v they_o retain_v the_o true_a and_o sincere_a religion_n of_o god_n and_o the_o pure_a invocation_n of_o his_o name_n and_o be_v adorn_v with_o the_o favour_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o scripture_n the_o child_n of_o god_n god_n in_o what_o sort_n the_o child_n of_o god_n fall_v from_o god_n nevertheless_o when_o they_o afterward_o burn_v in_o the_o lust_a after_o those_o woman_n which_o descend_v of_o the_o stock_n of_o cain_n and_o therefore_o belong_v to_o the_o society_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o have_v take_v to_o themselves_o wife_n of_o they_o they_o themselves_o also_o incline_v to_o superstition_n and_o ungodlie_a worshipping_n and_o they_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o only_o become_v man_n but_o also_o flesh_n and_o to_o show_v this_o by_o the_o way_n aquila_n translate_n those_o word_n out_o of_o the_o hebrew_n aquila_n aquila_n not_o say_v he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o this_o respect_n as_o i_o think_v because_o they_o have_v godly_a progenitour_n which_o so_o miserable_o fall_v from_o god_n through_o the_o mad_a love_n of_o woman_n symmachus_n symmachus_n but_o symmachus_n translate_v it_o the_o son_n of_o the_o mighty_a but_o to_o return_v to_o augustine_n he_o constant_o affirm_v that_o out_o of_o that_o place_n of_o genesis_n there_o can_v be_v nothing_o gather_v as_o touch_v the_o copulation_n of_o angel_n with_o woman_n but_o rather_o think_v that_o far_o otherwise_o may_v be_v gather_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n there_o write_v for_o when_o the_o scripture_n have_v there_o say_v that_o giant_n be_v upon_o the_o earth_n &_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v say_v have_v transgress_v and_o bring_v forth_o giant_n it_o be_v add_v and_o god_n say_v 3._o gen._n 6_o 3._o my_o spirit_n shall_v not_o always_o strive_v with_o man_n because_o he_o be_v flesh_n by_o this_o say_n augustine_n will_v have_v it_o manifest_v that_o they_o which_o so_o offend_v be_v call_v man_n not_o only_o as_o they_o be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o also_o as_o they_o be_v call_v flesh_n unto_o the_o which_o they_o incline_v with_o their_o shameful_a lust_n but_o they_o which_o understand_v it_o otherwise_o think_v that_o they_o bring_v a_o great_a testimony_n of_o enoch_n the_o seven_o from_o adam_n enoch_n jude._n 14._o the_o book_n of_o enoch_n of_o who_o jude_n speak_v in_o his_o canonical_a epistle_n for_o in_o the_o book_n which_o be_v entitle_v to_o he_o the_o giant_n be_v say_v to_o have_v have_v not_o man_n but_o angel_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o their_o generation_n but_o unto_o this_o answer_v augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n that_o the_o book_n be_v altogether_o apocryphus_n not_o canonical_a and_o therefore_o that_o credit_n must_v not_o be_v give_v to_o the_o fable_n which_o be_v recite_v therein_o he_o say_v that_o it_o must_v not_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o enoch_n write_v many_o divine_a thing_n see_v jude_n the_o apostle_n do_v plain_o testify_v the_o same_o but_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o believe_v all_o the_o writing_n in_o the_o book_n of_o apocryphus_n which_o be_v show_v to_o have_v come_v from_o he_o forsomuch_o as_o they_o lack_v sufficient_a authority_n neither_o shall_v it_o be_v think_v that_o if_o jude_n utter_v some_o certain_a sentence_n out_o of_o it_o that_o therefore_o by_o his_o testimony_n he_o approve_v the_o whole_a book_n unless_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o paul_n also_o allow_v of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v by_o epimenides_n aratus_n and_o menander_n because_o he_o allege_v one_o or_o two_o verse_n out_o of_o they_o jerom_n jerom_n which_o thing_n jerom_n in_o expound_v of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n testify_v to_o be_v a_o very_a absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a thing_n and_o as_o concern_v enoch_n it_o will_v seem_v a_o very_a great_a marvel_n if_o he_o be_v the_o seven_o from_o adam_n how_o he_o can_v write_v that_o michael_n wrestle_v with_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o body_n of_o moses_n see_v if_o these_o thing_n be_v as_o in_o very_a deed_n we_o must_v believe_v they_o be_v they_o of_o necessity_n happen_v well-néere_a a_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o unless_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o this_o be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o at_o that_o time_n by_o a_o certain_a excellent_a power_n of_o pprophecy_n 34_o neither_o must_v it_o be_v forget_v that_o those_o man_n the_o reason_n that_o move_v some_o to_o think_v that_o giant_n come_v not_o of_o man_n which_o think_v that_o giant_n have_v not_o man_n but_o angel_n for_o their_o parent_n be_v therefore_o bring_v thus_o to_o think_v because_o they_o think_v it_o may_v not_o possible_o be_v that_o huge_a giant_n can_v be_v bear_v of_o man_n which_o be_v of_o a_o ordinary_a stature_n and_o bigness_n wherefore_o there_o be_v some_o which_o proceed_v so_o far_o in_o the_o matter_n as_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o first_o man_n be_v a_o giant_n and_o also_o noah_n and_o his_o child_n for_o they_o beléeve_v not_o that_o that_o kind_a of_o man_n either_o before_o or_o after_o the_o flood_n if_o so_o be_v they_o may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v spring_v of_o man_n can_v be_v unless_o they_o have_v such_o progenitour_n but_o augustine_n proove_v that_o opinion_n to_o be_v false_a augustine_n augustine_n and_o say_v that_o a_o little_a before_o the_o destruction_n which_o the_o goth_n make_v rome_n a_o woman_n giant_n in_o rome_n there_o be_v in_o rome_n a_o woman_n of_o a_o giant_n stature_n who_o to_o behold_v they_o come_v by_o heap_n out_o of_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o world_n which_o woman_n nevertheless_o have_v parent_n that_o exceed_v not_o the_o common_a and_o usual_a stature_n of_o man_n if_o we_o shall_v search_v what_o the_o cause_n be_v that_o nature_n have_v bring_v forth_o giant_n of_o such_o huge_a body_n we_o can_v allege_v no_o other_o giant_n a_o natural_a cause_n of_o the_o tall_a stature_n of_o giant_n but_o a_o abundance_n of_o natural_a heat_n and_o a_o moisture_n which_o abundantlie_o and_o large_o minister_v matter_n for_o the_o heat_n not_o only_o extend_v a_o man_n to_o tallenes_n and_o height_n but_o also_o spread_v and_o enlarge_v he_o to_o breadth_n and_o thickness_n wherefore_o giant_n begin_v to_o be_v before_o the_o flood_n and_o they_o be_v also_o before_o the_o resort_n which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v with_o the_o daughter_n of_o man_n and_o be_v breed_v after_o that_o also_o further_o man_n do_v beget_v they_o and_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a cause_n as_o i_o have_v show_v also_o for_o a_o truth_n there_o be_v of_o they_o bear_v after_o the_o flood_n for_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o they_o in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n deuteronomie_n joshua_n judge_n samuel_n and_o paralipomenon_n and_o in_o other_o of_o the_o holy_a book_n be_v of_o what_o stature_n giant_n have_v be_v 35_o of_o the_o greatness_n and_o stature_n of_o they_o we_o may_v partly_o conjecture_v and_o partly_o we_o have_v the_o same_o expresselie_o describe_v the_o conjecture_n be_v that_o goliath_n have_v a_o coat_n of_o male_a which_o weigh_v fifty_o thousand_o sickle_n of_o brass_n 5._o 1._o sam._n 17_o 5._o the_o haft_n of_o his_o spear_n be_v like_o a_o weaver_n beam_n and_o the_o iron_n spear_n have_v weigh_v six_o hundred_o sickle_n of_o iron_n we_o also_o conjecture_v of_o the_o exceed_a great_a stature_n of_o og_n the_o king_n of_o basan_n 11._o deut._n 3_o 11._o by_o his_o bed_n which_o be_v of_o iron_n be_v of_o ten_o cubit_n long_o also_o the_o israelit_n be_v compare_v with_o anachis_n 34_o num._n 13_o 34_o seem_v to_o be_v but_o grasshopper_n these_o thing_n may_v be_v a_o token_n unto_o we_o of_o what_o greatness_n these_o man_n be_v 4_o the_o greatness_n of_o goliath_n 1._o sam._n 17_o 4_o but_o the_o greatness_n of_o goliath_n be_v proper_o and_o distinctlie_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o book_n of_o samuel_n for_o it_o be_v say_v there_o that_o he_o be_v of_o six_o cubit_n and_o a_o hand-breadth_n high_a and_o a_o cubit_n if_o we_o follow_v the_o measure_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v two_o foot_n but_o according_a to_o the_o account_n of_o the_o latin_n latin_n the_o cubit_n of_o the_o greek_o and_o latin_n one_o foot_n and_o a_o half_a some_o allege_v this_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o difference_n that_o the_o measure_n may_v be_v sometime_o extend_v from_o the_o elbow_n to_o the_o hand_n sometime_o close_v together_o and_o sometime_o open_a &_o stretch_v forth_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o i_o can_v gather_v of_o the_o stature_n of_o giant_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n philostratus_n the_o ethnic_n testimony_n
concern_v giant_n these_o testimony_n of_o pliny_n and_o berosus_n be_v in_o the_o latin_a copy_n put_v a_o little_a after_o be_v more_o convenientlie_o set_v in_o this_o place_n pliny_n berosus_n philostratus_n but_o among_o the_o ethnic_n we_o read_v of_o much_o more_o wonder_a thing_n such_o as_o man_n can_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v to_o give_v credit_n unto_o for_o pliny_n write_v in_o his_o seven_o book_n that_o in_o candie_n there_o fall_v down_o a_o hill_n and_o that_o there_o be_v find_v a_o man_n body_n of_o six_o and_o forty_o cubit_n long_o which_o some_o thought_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o orion_n some_o of_o otho_n also_o it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o body_n of_o orestis_n be_v dig_v up_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o a_o oracle_n be_v of_o 7._o cubit_n that_o which_o berosus_n affirm_v of_o adam_n and_o of_o seth_n his_o son_n &_o of_o noah_n &_o his_o son_n that_o they_o be_v all_o giant_n see_v it_o be_v without_o scripture_n it_o may_v be_v reject_v philostratus_n say_v in_o his_o heroike_n that_o he_o see_v a_o certain_a dead_a carcase_n of_o a_o giant_n of_o thirty_o cubit_n long_o another_o of_o two_o and_o twenty_o and_o another_o of_o twelve_o foot_n the_o common_a stature_n of_o man_n of_o our_o time_n the_o measure_n of_o a_o foot_n but_o the_o common_a stature_n of_o man_n in_o these_o day_n be_v little_a above_o five_o foot_n and_o herein_o the_o measure_n of_o a_o foot_n agree_v as_o well_o among_o the_o greek_n as_o latin_n that_o unto_o every_o foot_n be_v appoint_v four_o hand-breadth_n and_o every_o hand-breadth_n contain_v the_o breadth_n of_o four_o finger_n that_o be_v the_o length_n of_o the_o little_a finger_n but_o if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o two_o outwardmost_a finger_n i_o mean_v the_o thumb_n and_o the_o little_a finger_n be_v stretch_v out_o every_o foot_n contain_v only_o two_o span_n or_o hand-breadth_n unto_o this_o place_n i_o think_v good_a to_o transfer_v those_o thing_n augustine_n augustine_n which_o augustine_n have_v in_o his_o 15._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o nine_o chapter_n where_o he_o reprove_v those_o which_o affirm_v stout_o that_o man_n be_v never_o of_o such_o tall_a stature_n and_o show_v that_o he_o himself_o see_v upon_o the_o coast_n of_o utica_n a_o chéeke-tooth_n of_o a_o man_n so_o exceed_a great_a as_o the_o same_o be_v divide_v into_o the_o form_n and_o quantity_n of_o usual_a tooth_n in_o our_o age_n it_o may_v easy_o be_v judge_v a_o hundred_o time_n great_a and_o that_o there_o be_v many_o such_o personage_n in_o old_a time_n he_o declare_v out_o of_o the_o verse_n of_o virgil_n in_o the_o 12._o book_n of_o aeneidos_n where_o he_o bring_v in_o turnus_n to_o have_v lift_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o have_v shake_v at_o aeneas_n so_o great_a a_o stone_n as_o twelve_o choice_n man_n can_v scarce_o rule_v virgil._n virgil._n he_o say_v no_o more_o but_o straight_o a_o mighty_a stone_n be_v there_o behold_v a_o mighty_a ancient_a stone_n that_o then_o by_o chance_n within_o the_o field_n there_o for_o a_o bind_v do_v lie_v all_o strife_n betwixt_o land_n for_o to_o appease_v scarce_o can_v twelve_o choose_v man_n that_o on_o their_o shoulder_n lift_v with_o ease_n such_o man_n i_o mean_v as_o now_o adays_o the_o earth_n to_o light_n do_v bring_v this_o up_o in_o hand_n he_o catch_v and_o tumble_v at_o his_o foe_n do_v fling_v which_o thing_n he_o declare_v out_o of_o the_o sixth_o iliad_n of_o homer_n also_o virgil_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o georgic_n say_v that_o man_n will_v wonder_v in_o time_n to_o come_v when_o they_o shall_v happen_v to_o till_o up_o the_o féeld_v of_o aematia_n to_o see_v the_o greatness_n of_o bone_n which_o shall_v be_v dig_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n further_o he_o allege_v pliny_n the_o second_o secundus_fw-la plinius_n secundus_fw-la who_o in_o the_o seven_o book_n affirm_v that_o nature_n the_o further_a forward_o that_o it_o go_v the_o lesser_a body_n it_o daily_o bring_v forth_o he_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o homer_n once_o in_o his_o verse_n bewail_v the_o selfsame_o thing_n whereunto_o i_o may_v add_v the_o testimony_n of_o cyprian_a against_o demetrianus_n cyprian_a cyprian_a but_o if_o i_o shall_v be_v demand_v whether_o i_o think_v that_o man_n body_n which_o come_v after_o the_o flood_n gellius_n whether_o humane_a body_n have_v decrease_v ever_o since_o noes_n flood_n hitherward_o aulus_n gellius_n be_v less_o than_o those_o which_o be_v bring_v forth_o before_o the_o flood_n perhaps_o i_o will_v grant_v they_o be_v but_o that_o they_o have_v continual_o decrese_v even_o from_o the_o flood_n to_o this_o day_n that_o i_o will_v not_o easy_o grant_v especial_o consider_v the_o word_n which_o aulus_n gellius_n write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o stature_n whereunto_o man_n body_n grow_v be_v of_o seven_o foot_n which_o seem_v also_o at_o this_o day_n to_o be_v the_o measure_n of_o the_o tall_a stature_n but_o yet_o we_o read_v in_o the_o apocryphus_n of_o esdras_n in_o the_o four_o book_n 54._o 4._o esdr_n 5_o 54._o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o five_o chapter_n that_o now_o also_o our_o body_n be_v less_o and_o daily_o shall_v be_v lessen_v because_o nature_n always_o become_v more_o barren_a the_o self-same_a thing_n also_o as_o i_o say_v a_o little_a before_o cyprian_n seem_v to_o affirm_v but_o i_o allege_v the_o cause_n why_o i_o can_v easy_o grant_v thereunto_o namely_o for_o that_o i_o see_v little_o diminish_v at_o this_o day_n of_o the_o measure_n which_o aulus_n gellius_n describe_v 36_o now_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o show_v the_o cause_n why_o god_n will_v that_o some_o man_n otherwhile_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o such_o huge_a stature_n salvation_n the_o cause_n why_o god_n will_v sometime_o raise_v up_o such_o huge_a giant_n form_n and_o stature_n do_v nothing_o further_a unto_o salvation_n augustine_n in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n before_o allege_v think_v this_o be_v do_v to_o the_o intent_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v leave_v for_o a_o testimony_n unto_o we_o that_o neither_o the_o beautifulnes_n of_o the_o body_n nor_o the_o largeness_n of_o stature_n nor_o yet_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o flesh_n shall_v be_v account_v among_o the_o principal_a good_a thing_n see_v those_o be_v sometime_o common_a as_o well_o to_o the_o wicked_a as_o to_o the_o godly_a certeinelie_o they_o which_o bend_v their_o mind_n unto_o godliness_n will_v judge_v that_o spiritual_a good_a thing_n must_v be_v prefer_v far_o above_o partly_o because_o they_o further_o we_o unto_o salvation_n and_o partly_o because_o they_o in_o very_a deed_n make_v we_o better_o than_o other_o man_n but_o that_o giant_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o further_v unto_o salvation_n through_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o stature_n he_o proove_v by_o that_o which_o the_o prophet_n baruch_n write_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n 16._o baru_n 3_o 16._o what_o be_v become_v of_o those_o famous_a giant_n that_o be_v so_o great_a of_o body_n and_o so_o worthy_a man_n of_o war_n those_o have_v not_o the_o lord_n choose_v neither_o have_v he_o give_v they_o the_o way_n of_o knowledge_n therefore_o be_v they_o destroy_v because_o they_o have_v no_o wisdom_n but_o if_o a_o man_n will_v peruse_v the_o history_n of_o the_o bible_n he_o shall_v scarce_o find_v 1._o giant_n take_v not_o the_o defence_n of_o good_a cause_n deut._n 3_o 4._o 1._o sam._n 17_o verse_n 1._o that_o they_o at_o any_o time_n take_v a_o good_a or_o godly_a cause_n in_o hand_n nay_o rather_o he_o shall_v perceive_v that_o through_o their_o pride_n and_o forwardness_n they_o be_v perpetual_a enemy_n unto_o god_n for_o so_o be_v og_n the_o king_n of_o basan_n so_o be_v goliath_n and_o his_o brethren_n they_o be_v most_o injurious_a to_o the_o people_n who_o god_n have_v embrace_v &_o choose_v from_o other_o to_o be_v peculiar_a unto_o himself_o also_o there_o be_v another_o matter_n which_o may_v very_o much_o confirm_v our_o faith_n man_n giant_n overcome_v by_o weak_a man_n for_o the_o holy_a history_n always_o make_v mention_n that_o such_o huge_a giant_n be_v foulie_o vanquish_v in_o battle_n and_o that_o especial_o by_o weak_a man_n and_o by_o man_n very_o unexpert_a in_o warfare_n namely_o by_o david_n be_v as_o yet_o a_o shepherd_n &_o by_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n when_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v young_a soldier_n and_o ignorant_a in_o war_n wherefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n warn_v we_o to_o be_v of_o a_o constant_a and_o steadfast_a mind_n when_o for_o godliness_n sake_n we_o be_v to_o fight_v with_o such_o monstrous_a man_n we_o must_v not_o then_o be_v dismay_v for_o lack_v of_o strength_n see_v the_o holy_a oracle_n in_o every_o place_n pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v god_n which_o deliver_v such_o huge_a
yet_o be_v sweet_a in_o respect_n they_o fill_v and_o restore_v nature_n be_v waste_v and_o consume_v neither_o be_v they_o at_o one_o time_n pleasant_a and_o at_o another_o time_n unpleasant_a but_o be_v ever_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n to_o be_v wish_v and_o desire_v and_o these_o pleasure_n be_v chéefelie_o those_o which_o be_v perceive_v in_o the_o mind_n but_o other_o be_v mix_v namely_o with_o sorrow_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n be_v pleasant_a because_o they_o refresh_v and_o renew_v nature_n decaieng_v and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v desire_v always_o and_o at_o all_o time_n 8_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o determine_v why_o what_o pleasure_n must_v be_v avoid_v and_o why_o let_v we_o go_v in_o hand_n with_o the_o pleasure_n which_o be_v unpure_a bodily_a and_o which_o have_v excess_n and_o which_o be_v mix_v and_o let_v this_o be_v the_o first_o proposition_n of_o they_o if_o they_o excee_v measure_n they_o must_v be_v altogether_o avoid_v for_o such_o do_v either_o arise_v of_o a_o corrupt_a nature_n for_o some_o man_n be_v even_o by_o a_o propriety_n of_o nature_n fierce_a wild_a and_o cruel_a and_o other_o be_v beastly_a and_o altogether_o intemperate_a or_o else_o these_o evil_a action_n and_o pleasure_n do_v come_v from_o a_o vicious_a habit_n bring_v in_o by_o a_o naughty_a custom_n as_o we_o see_v it_o in_o drunkard_n glutton_n and_o lascivious_a man_n wherefore_o from_o such_o shameful_a and_o wicked_a cause_n nothing_o can_v happen_v which_o as_o we_o have_v say_v must_v not_o be_v avoid_v furthermore_o since_o that_o pleasure_n of_o this_o kind_n as_o it_o have_v be_v already_o say_v have_v be_v invent_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v medicine_n unto_o we_o when_o we_o suffer_v they_o to_o excee_v measure_n us._n how_o great_o the_o grosser_n pleasure_n hurt_v us._n so_o far_o be_v it_o off_o that_o they_o be_v medicine_n as_o they_o be_v even_o hurtful_a unto_o we_o and_o that_o in_o all_o kind_n of_o good_a thing_n and_o especial_o those_o thing_n which_o come_v of_o fortune_n for_o how_o many_o riotous_a man_n be_v there_o which_o have_v spend_v their_o great_a and_o ample_a patrimony_n be_v constrain_v miserable_o to_o live_v in_o want_n i_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o good_n of_o the_o body_n see_v gluttony_n and_o fleshlie_o pleasure_n kill_v far_o more_o than_o the_o sword_n or_o any_o ordinary_a sickness_n or_o defect_n of_o nature_n yea_o and_o galen_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr semine_fw-la write_v that_o pleasure_n be_v sometime_o by_o itself_o the_o cause_n of_o dissolve_v the_o force_n and_o strength_n which_o give_v life_n and_o there_o have_v be_v many_o which_o have_v yield_v up_o the_o ghost_n through_o too_o much_o pleasure_n but_o &_o if_o that_o all_o abuse_n of_o thing_n must_v be_v avoid_v such_o kind_n of_o immoderate_a pleasure_n as_o these_o must_v be_v utterlie_o shun_v see_v by_o this_o mean_v they_o cure_v not_o the_o body_n but_o do_v excéedinglie_o destroy_v it_o i_o let_v pass_v the_o good_n of_o the_o mind_n since_o nothing_o do_v more_o harm_n unto_o wisdom_n nor_o any_o thing_n more_o weaken_v the_o right_a judgement_n of_o do_v thing_n than_o these_o immoderate_a pleasure_n the_o reason_n which_o i_o have_v bring_v that_o by_o these_o gross_a and_o immoderate_a pleasure_n all_o the_o kind_n of_o good_a thing_n belong_v to_o man_n be_v destroy_v be_v write_v by_o cicero_n in_o his_o book_n call_v hortensius_n which_o book_n be_v lose_v yet_o will_v i_o rehearse_v his_o word_n as_o they_o be_v recite_v of_o augustine_n in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o julian_n the_o 14._o chapter_n pleasure_n cicero_n his_o word_n as_o touch_v the_o evil_n which_o rise_v of_o pleasure_n but_o be_v those_o pleasure_n of_o the_o body_n to_o be_v desire_v which_o true_o and_o gravelie_o be_v of_o plato_n call_v the_o allurement_n and_o bait_n of_o evil_n for_o what_o destroy_v say_v he_o of_o health_n what_o deform_v of_o the_o colour_n and_o the_o body_n what_o foul_a loss_n what_o dishonour_n be_v there_o that_o be_v not_o call_v and_o bring_v forth_o by_o pleasure_n every_o motion_n whereof_o the_o great_a it_o be_v the_o more_o be_v it_o enemy_n unto_o philosophy_n for_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o body_n can_v agree_v with_o any_o great_a cogitation_n of_o the_o mind_n for_o who_o be_v he_o that_o when_o he_o use_v the_o great_a pleasure_n he_o can_v be_v able_a to_o apply_v his_o mind_n to_o make_v a_o account_n or_o to_o think_v of_o any_o manner_n of_o thing_n but_o who_o be_v so_o unsatiable_a a_o person_n that_o day_n and_o night_n without_o any_o intermission_n of_o time_n will_v have_v his_o sense_n so_o to_o be_v move_v as_o they_o be_v move_v in_o the_o chief_a pleasure_n what_o man_n endue_v with_o a_o good_a mind_n have_v not_o rather_o that_o no_o pleasure_n at_o all_o shall_v be_v give_v we_o of_o nature_n thus_o much_o say_v he_o under_o which_o sentence_n of_o his_o be_v comprehend_v the_o hurt_n which_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v bring_v in_o through_o these_o pleasure_n of_o the_o body_n which_o excee_v measure_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o if_o this_o reason_n be_v of_o force_n hurt_v whether_o the_o pleasure_n that_o arise_v of_o contemplation_n or_o just_a action_n do_v hurt_v it_o will_v condemn_v pleasure_n which_o spring_v of_o contemplation_n and_o also_o that_o which_o arise_v of_o just_a action_n because_o both_o the_o body_n be_v hurt_v by_o too_o much_o study_v and_o contemplation_n and_o that_o socrates_n and_o also_o aristides_n perish_v for_o their_o honesty_n sake_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v accidental_o because_o socrates_n light_v among_o evil_a man_n again_o that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o head_n which_o do_v serve_v unto_o cogitation_n be_v sometime_o overmuch_o consume_v but_o some_o witty_a fellow_n will_v reply_v that_o this_o also_o be_v accidental_a as_o touch_v the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o body_n which_o in_o very_a deed_n do_v arise_v of_o those_o action_n which_o destroy_v the_o body_n and_o our_o good_a thing_n which_o the_o very_a pleasure_n by_o themselves_o will_v not_o do_v howbeit_o to_o this_o we_o answer_v that_o it_o come_v not_o always_o to_o pass_v that_o a_o man_n perish_v for_o righteousness_n nor_o yet_o that_o contemplation_n do_v always_o harm_n but_o these_o grosser_n and_o mix_v pleasure_n so_o oft_o as_o they_o excee_v the_o mean_a it_o can_v be_v but_o they_o do_v hurt_v and_o so_o the_o hurt_n be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v of_o both_o alike_o 9_o but_o this_o of_o some_o be_v count_v a_o hard_a matter_n pleasure_n whether_o the_o pleasure_n which_o must_v be_v shun_v be_v very_a pleasure_n that_o these_o pleasure_n must_v be_v shun_v see_v pleasure_n by_o itself_o be_v good_a &_o to_o be_v desire_v wherefore_o to_o avoid_v this_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o pleasure_n indeed_o but_o only_o seem_v so_o to_o be_v and_o although_o they_o seem_v so_o yet_o that_o of_o wise_a man_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v account_v pleasure_n even_o as_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v white_a which_o so_o appear_v unto_o blear_a eye_n neither_o sweet_a or_o bitter_a which_o those_o that_o be_v sick_a do_v so_o affirm_v but_o i_o think_v it_o shall_v not_o so_o be_v answer_v because_o both_o plato_n and_o aristotle_n do_v call_v they_o pleasure_n whereupon_o the_o definition_n before_o allege_a do_v true_o agree_v unto_o they_o therefore_o will_v i_o rather_o say_v to_o the_o argument_n that_o pleasure_n indeed_o be_v of_o his_o own_o nature_n good_a and_o to_o be_v desire_v but_o not_o to_o be_v take_v of_o all_o thing_n even_o as_o we_o desire_v to_o satisfy_v hunger_n yet_o not_o by_o every_o kind_n of_o meat_n just_a man_n also_o will_v become_v rich_a but_o yet_o not_o by_o every_o kind_n of_o gain_n we_o also_o desire_v health_n but_o yet_o not_o by_o every_o kind_n of_o medicine_n and_o so_o we_o will_v have_v pleasure_n but_o yet_o not_o those_o which_o arise_v of_o action_n that_o be_v dishonest_a and_o filthy_a and_o which_o do_v hurt_v the_o body_n and_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o we_o have_v many_o why_o these_o kind_a of-pleasure_n which_o hurt_n and_o be_v to_o be_v shun_v be_v desire_v of_o many_o but_o see_v this_o kind_n of_o pleasure_n be_v both_o hurtful_a and_o to_o be_v shun_v how_o happen_v it_o that_o it_o be_v desire_v of_o so_o many_o because_o pleasure_v in_o his_o own_o nature_n have_v some_o certain_a divine_a thing_n in_o it_o and_o be_v desire_v of_o all_o man_n howbeit_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o see_v nature_n in_o many_o be_v not_o yet_o full_a perfect_a and_o confirm_v as_o in_o child_n or_o else_o when_o man_n be_v endue_v with_o naughty_a and_o lewd_a habit_n of_o mind_n as_o be_v drunkard_n and_o
man_n that_o be_v noble_a rich_a strong_a and_o in_o honour_n who_o nevertheless_o be_v wicked_a thou_o will_v not_o call_v happy_a which_o assure_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v if_o these_o thing_n be_v by_o themselves_o cause_v of_o happiness_n but_o if_o these_o kind_n of_o good_a thing_n be_v take_v away_o from_o honest_a and_o wise_a man_n they_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o be_v happy_a although_o as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v those_o thing_n themselves_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o blessedness_n but_o if_o thou_o demand_v whether_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o the_o body_n do_v also_o come_v from_o fortune_n i_o may_v easy_o deny_v it_o because_o fortune_n be_v affirm_v to_o be_v one_o of_o those_o cause_n which_o rare_o and_o seldom_o come_v in_o action_n for_o scarce_o within_o a_o hundred_o year_n it_o happen_v that_o a_o dig_a of_o vine_n tree_n or_o a_o ploughman_n chance_v upon_o a_o treasure_n but_o it_o be_v very_o often_o give_v unto_o man_n even_o from_o their_o birth_n to_o have_v a_o good_a constitution_n of_o their_o body_n &_o have_v give_v they_o sound_a member_n and_o sufficient_a strength_n to_o accomplish_v their_o action_n 30_o another_o argument_n be_v allege_v which_o be_v much_o strong_a and_o that_o be_v take_v from_o the_o definition_n of_o blessedness_n and_o the_o sense_n be_v because_o felicity_n be_v a_o action_n and_o that_o no_o small_a action_n of_o the_o mind_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v of_o fortune_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o mind_n and_o of_o virtue_n be_v otherwise_o than_o it_o be_v of_o fortune_n but_o he_o say_v not_o absolute_o that_o blessedness_n be_v a_o action_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o action_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n a_o most_o absolute_a and_o most_o perfect_a action_n because_o it_o proceed_v from_o a_o most_o excellent_a virtue_n hereof_o depend_v the_o force_n of_o the_o argument_n that_o neither_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n nor_o virtue_n do_v any_o action_n by_o fortune_n he_o again_o confirm_v felicity_n not_o to_o be_v of_o fortune_n because_o he_o say_v at_o the_o beginning_n that_o the_o end_n of_o civil_a faculty_n be_v the_o chief_a good_a but_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o the_o same_o faculty_n work_v not_o by_o chance_n or_o by_o fortune_n and_o he_o proove_v that_o therefore_o the_o chief_a end_n of_o man_n belong_v unto_o that_o faculty_n because_o therein_o civil_a virtue_n do_v very_o much_o labour_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v make_v good_a citizen_n wherefore_o if_o it_o use_v diligence_n it_o can_v be_v say_v to_o deal_v by_o fortune_n for_o counsel_v industry_n and_o diligence_n be_v altogether_o repugnant_a unto_o fortune_n for_o the_o civil_a art_n endevour_v to_o make_v good_a citizen_n and_o to_o be_v of_o excellent_a condition_n &_o singular_a quality_n first_o by_o make_v of_o good_a law_n afterward_o by_o give_v of_o honour_n and_o reward_n to_o the_o keeper_n and_o faithful_a observer_n of_o they_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n by_o punish_v and_o keep_v under_o those_o which_o do_v transgress_v they_o let_v we_o now_o bréefelie_o examine_v these_o thing_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n scripture_n how_o these_o thing_n agree_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n how_o much_o they_o agree_v with_o they_o or_o how_o much_o they_o dissent_v from_o they_o aristotle_n speak_v doubtful_o of_o god_n whether_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o felicity_n or_o no._n but_o we_o constant_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v i_o will_v say_v god_n unto_o abraham_n be_v thy_o exceed_a great_a reward_n 1._o gen._n 15_o 1._o and_o lest_o we_o shall_v suspect_v that_o this_o be_v natural_o true_a but_o not_o at_o the_o will_n and_o election_n of_o god_n himself_o there_o follow_v there_o the_o make_n of_o a_o covenant_n whereby_o he_o choose_v to_o himself_o a_o certain_a people_n and_o he_o covenant_v that_o he_o will_v be_v the_o god_n of_o those_o that_o believe_v and_o moses_n who_o very_o well_o understand_v that_o felicity_n consist_v herein_o that_o god_n may_v be_v understand_v and_o see_v desire_v this_o of_o god_n when_o he_o say_v show_v i_o thy_o face_n 13._o exo._n 33_o 13._o which_o also_o he_o obtain_v and_o david_n sing_v 12._o psal_n 15_o 12._o pleasure_n be_v at_o thy_o right_a hand_n for_o evermore_o and_o christ_n our_o saviour_n who_o be_v our_o god_n 28._o mat._n 11_o 28._o come_v say_v he_o unto_o i_o all_o that_o labour_n and_o be_v heavy_a load_v and_o i_o will_v refresh_v you_o and_o he_o say_v speak_v of_o his_o sheep_n they_o hear_v my_o voice_n 28._o joh._n 10_o 28._o &_o i_o give_v they_o eternal_a life_n let_v this_o be_v a_o full_a persuasion_n to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o that_o our_o felicity_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v and_o desire_v of_o god_n himself_o as_o for_o the_o exercise_n custom_n and_o doctrine_n which_o aristotle_n mention_v in_o our_o opinion_n also_o must_v not_o be_v contemn_v nay_o rather_o they_o be_v command_v we_o in_o every_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o not_o so_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o felicity_n 24._o rom._n 3_o 24._o for_o we_o be_v free_o justify_v not_o of_o work_n and_o eternal_a life_n be_v grant_v free_o unto_o us._n but_o there_o be_v certain_a mean_n whereby_o god_n do_v lead_v we_o unto_o he_o and_o to_o the_o felicity_n which_o we_o desire_v and_o these_o mean_n we_o have_v from_o god_n himself_o wherefore_o it_o be_v upon_o good_a cause_n say_v by_o paul_n 13._o phil._n 2._o 13._o it_o be_v god_n which_o give_v unto_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v but_o as_o for_o fortune_n much_o less_o than_o aristotle_n do_v do_v we_o commit_v blessedness_n thereunto_o as_o we_o that_o think_v that_o all_o our_o do_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o counsel_n and_o will_n of_o god_n so_o as_o without_o his_o will_n not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o here_o can_v fall_v from_o our_o head_n 18._o luke_n 21_o 18._o and_o we_o think_v this_o of_o all_o other_o to_o be_v most_o false_a which_o be_v common_o say_v of_o the_o ethnik_n that_o every_o wise_a man_n frame_v to_o himself_o his_o own_o fortune_n aristotle_n deni_v that_o child_n can_v be_v happy_a but_o we_o on_o the_o other_o side_n affirm_v they_o to_o be_v happy_a see_v christ_n say_v suffer_v they_o to_o come_v unto_o i_o 14._o mar._n 10_o 14._o &_o he_o embrace_v they_o with_o great_a favour_n &_o with_o singular_a clemency_n we_o know_v indeed_o that_o they_o as_o yet_o can_v be_v worker_n of_o excellent_a action_n but_o yet_o by_o christ_n both_o original_a sin_n be_v forgive_v they_o and_o a_o way_n unto_o eternal_a life_n be_v open_v to_o they_o neither_o do_v we_o grant_v unto_o he_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v call_v happy_a which_o be_v afflict_v with_o great_a mischance_n since_o it_o may_v be_v that_o they_o which_o be_v true_o bless_v do_v suffer_v gréevous_a thing_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n neither_o do_v those_o hard_a and_o horrible_a thing_n which_o they_o endure_v overthrow_v that_o blessedness_n which_o we_o man_n may_v have_v while_o we_o live_v here_o ¶_o of_o felicity_n and_o blessedness_n look_v more_o part._n 2._o cap._n 16._o art_n 26._o the_o xv_o chapter_n whether_o any_o man_n can_v be_v count_v happy_a while_o he_o live_v in_o this_o world_n ethic_n out_o of_o the_o come_v upon_o aristotle_n ethic_n aristotle_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o ethic_n dispute_v whither_o a_o man_n may_v be_v account_v happy_a in_o this_o life_n say_v that_o since_o unto_o all_o man_n though_o they_o live_v justly_o and_o well_o may_v happen_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o happen_v unto_o priamus_n life_n whether_o any_o man_n can_v be_v call_v happy_a in_o this_o life_n there_o be_v leave_v a_o doubt_n whether_o any_o man_n while_o he_o live_v be_v subject_a to_o so_o many_o alteration_n can_v right_o be_v call_v happy_a and_o have_v seclude_v brute_n beast_n and_o child_n it_o seem_v for_o good_a cause_n to_o be_v doubt_v whether_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v account_v partaker_n of_o that_o blessedness_n which_o as_o it_o may_v seem_v be_v not_o rash_o to_o be_v affirm_v because_o of_o the_o manifold_a alteration_n for_o what_o sea_n or_o river_n be_v there_o that_o can_v be_v toss_v with_o so_o many_o storm_n that_o can_v be_v disquiet_v with_o so_o many_o troublesome_a toss_n as_o be_v the_o life_n of_o man_n which_o though_o it_o be_v whole_o well_o settle_v one_o day_n or_o one_o unfortunate_a night_n do_v not_o alittle_o cast_v it_o under_o foot_n yea_o ofttimes_o utterlie_o bring_v it_o to_o naught_o and_o not_o only_o the_o body_n be_v change_v which_o after_o a_o sort_n will_v be_v tolerable_a but_o also_o the_o mind_n whereby_o we_o now_o learn_v precept_n and_o now_o
where_o we_o know_v that_o those_o thing_n happen_v unto_o we_o not_o by_o casualty_n but_o by_o the_o will_n and_o procurement_n of_o god_n our_o father_n also_o we_o be_v daily_o stir_v up_o the_o more_o unto_o good_a thing_n when_o we_o understand_v that_o god_n be_v both_o the_o knower_n and_o witness_n of_o our_o action_n who_o afterward_o will_v give_v a_o true_a judgement_n of_o they_o beside_o this_o the_o gift_n which_o we_o enjoy_v be_v much_o more_o acceptable_a unto_o we_o in_o this_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v offer_v we_o by_o god_n which_o provide_v they_o further_o in_o the_o same_o we_o behold_v predestination_n which_o bring_v so_o great_a a_o comfort_n unto_o godly_a man_n as_o thereby_o they_o be_v woonderfullie_o confirm_v god_n whether_o providence_n do_v bring_v any_o change_n in_o god_n 3_o neither_o must_v we_o stand_v in_o any_o fear_n that_o there_o be_v any_o newness_n in_o god_n because_o of_o his_o providence_n man_n which_o by_o their_o parent_n be_v bring_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n without_o knowledge_n can_v not_o attain_v thereunto_o without_o alteration_n which_o thing_n we_o must_v not_o surmise_v as_o touch_v god_n see_v he_o have_v have_v his_o knowledge_n from_o all_o eternity_n further_o we_o draw_v the_o same_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n but_o he_o have_v it_o of_o himself_o wherefore_o james_n do_v true_o write_v with_o he_o there_o be_v no_o variableness_n nor_o shadow_v by_o turn_v 17._o jam._n 1_o 17._o neither_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v at_o any_o time_n that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v change_v by_o the_o alteration_n of_o thing_n moreover_o this_o excellent_a knowledge_n be_v safe_o place_v in_o god_n for_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n lest_o he_o shall_v abuse_v the_o same_o as_o man_n do_v 12._o jerem._n 4_o 12._o of_o who_o jeremie_n in_o his_o four_o chapter_n write_v they_o be_v wise_a only_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v do_v evil_a but_o god_n be_v most_o excellent_a and_o he_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o thing_n that_o be_v most_o excellent_a which_o knowledge_n who_o so_o ever_o have_v can_v not_o use_v other_o thing_n amiss_o as_o plato_n teach_v in_o his_o second_o dialogue_n call_v alcibiades_n where_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o without_o that_o knowledge_n it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o thing_n for_o it_o have_v be_v much_o better_a for_o orestes_n if_o he_o have_v not_o know_v his_o mother_n when_o he_o meet_v she_o be_v determine_v for_o to_o kill_v she_o neither_o be_v god_n god_n it_o be_v no_o let_v to_o the_o felicity_n of_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o government_n of_o thing_n remoove_v from_o his_o peaceable_a felicity_n or_o from_o the_o contemplation_n of_o better_a thing_n this_o thing_n happen_v unto_o man_n that_o sometime_o by_o deal_v in_o matter_n not_o necessary_a be_v draw_v away_o from_o weighty_a and_o better_a occupation_n wherefore_o paul_n 9_o 1._o tim._n 1_o 4._o and_o 4_o 7._o 2._o tim._n 2_o 22._o titus_n 3_o 9_o not_o without_o cause_n condemn_v vain_a and_o curious_a question_n and_o this_o come_v through_o the_o slendernes_n of_o our_o understanding_n which_o be_v not_o able_a to_o apply_v itself_o to_o more_o thing_n at_o once_o but_o god_n be_v infinite_a as_o touch_v all_o his_o do_n can_v easy_o perceive_v all_o thing_n that_o now_o be_v that_o shall_v be_v and_o that_o at_o any_o time_n have_v be_v evil_a it_o stir_v not_o up_o unto_o evil_a neither_o be_v god_n by_o this_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n provoke_v to_o evil_a for_o that_o happen_v unto_o man_n because_o they_o have_v a_o corrupt_a desire_n wherefore_o solomon_n say_v behold_v not_o the_o wine_n when_o it_o show_v fair_a in_o the_o glass_n 31._o pro._n 23_o 31._o etc._n etc._n psalm_n 119._o turn_v away_o my_o eye_n lest_o they_o behold_v vanity_n and_o job_n in_o the_o 31._o chapter_n say_v 37._o psa_fw-la 119_o 37._o that_o he_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o his_o eye_n 1._o job._n 31_o 1._o lest_o he_o shall_v think_v upon_o a_o virgin_n but_o god_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a rule_n of_o justice_n and_o goodness_n can_v not_o be_v move_v to_o evil_a but_o auerroës_n say_v auerroës_n auerroës_n that_o at_o the_o leastwise_o his_o understanding_n shall_v be_v embace_v understanding_n it_o embace_v not_o his_o understanding_n if_o he_o will_v look_v upon_o and_o acknowledge_v all_o these_o simple_a thing_n but_o because_o he_o attein_v this_o knowledge_n not_o from_o the_o thing_n but_o from_o himself_o therefore_o that_o be_v not_o grant_v neither_o do_v it_o in_o very_a deed_n follow_v even_o as_o we_o see_v that_o a_o glass_n be_v not_o therefore_o stain_v because_o it_o show_v the_o image_n of_o vile_a thing_n neither_o yet_o be_v this_o sun_n that_o we_o see_v defile_v when_o it_o shine_v upon_o place_n that_o be_v foul_a and_o loathsome_a labour_v also_o in_o understanding_n do_v not_o disquiet_a god_n see_v in_o this_o action_n he_o use_v no_o instrument_n of_o a_o body_n god_n it_o bring_v no_o labour_n unto_o god_n as_o man_n do_v unto_o who_o by_o mean_n of_o their_o body_n there_o arise_v labour_n in_o understanding_n for_o therein_o the_o body_n be_v very_o much_o afflict_v and_o weary_v wherefore_o solomon_n upon_o just_a cause_n call_v this_o endeavour_n of_o knowledge_n 17._o eccles_n 2_o 17._o a_o consume_a and_o affliction_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o knowledge_n sometime_o breed_v unto_o we_o disquietness_n for_o the_o more_o man_n do_v understand_v the_o more_o thing_n they_o see_v that_o do_v displease_v they_o wherewith_o they_o be_v agréeve_v wherefore_o not_o without_o cause_n it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o add_v knowledge_n 18._o eccles_n 1_o 18._o increase_v labour_n also_o for_o we_o do_v not_o easy_o bear_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v unwoorthilie_o commit_v but_o god_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o these_o humane_a affection_n who_o have_v it_o in_o he_o to_o foresee_a the_o end_n of_o thing_n and_o although_o the_o thing_n be_v unworthy_a yet_o he_o direct_v they_o and_o know_v that_o they_o shall_v tend_v to_o his_o own_o glory_n 4_o but_o it_o have_v be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o take_v away_o from_o divine_a providence_n those_o objection_n which_o we_o have_v hitherto_o remoove_v for_o a_o plain_a and_o ready_a way_n be_v offer_v for_o the_o confute_v of_o they_o fortune_n whether_o providence_n take_v away_o chance_n and_o fortune_n but_o there_o remain_v certain_a other_o thing_n more_o hard_a to_o be_v expound_v the_o first_o be_v because_o of_o chance_n and_o fortune_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n if_o we_o attribute_v unto_o god_n the_o providence_n of_o all_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o against_o fortune_n &_o chance_n than_o be_v reason_n for_o fortune_n be_v a_o cause_n that_o work_v beside_o the_o purpose_n when_o any_o thing_n not_o intend_v or_o appoint_v or_o decree_v happen_v to_o we_o unaware_o and_o beside_o our_o expectation_n but_o this_o argument_n we_o resist_v on_o this_o wise_a as_o touch_v we_o fortune_n and_o chance_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n for_o what_o do_v let_v as_o touch_v god_n that_o nothing_o be_v do_v by_o chance_n but_o as_o touch_v we_o that_o many_o thing_n be_v do_v rash_o &_o by_o fortune_n there_o be_v bring_v a_o méetlie_o fit_a similitude_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n admit_v that_o a_o master_n send_v his_o servant_n to_o the_o market_n there_o to_o remain_v till_o nine_o of_o the_o clock_n which_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o past_a if_o he_o send_v thither_o some_o other_o servant_n of_o he_o as_o touch_v the_o master_n it_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v rash_o or_o by_o chance_n that_o those_o two_o servant_n meet_v together_o see_v he_o foreséeth_a the_o send_n unto_o that_o place_n but_o unto_o they_o it_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v of_o purpose_n see_v the_o one_o know_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o other_o come_v wherefore_o many_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o foresight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n if_o thou_o respect_v the_o dull_a and_o weak_a cogitation_n of_o man_n happen_v by_o chance_n and_o fortune_n but_o if_o all_o thing_n say_v they_o be_v direct_v by_o god_n and_o do_v by_o his_o counsel_n as_o we_o believe_v they_o be_v where_o shall_v now_o be_v the_o chance_n of_o thing_n thing_n whether_o providence_n take_v away_o the_o contingence_n of_o thing_n for_o all_o thing_n will_v come_v to_o pass_v of_o necessity_n and_o some_o think_v this_o argument_n to_o be_v so_o strong_a against_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n as_o scarce_o the_o freedom_n of_o our_o will_n can_v be_v defend_v but_o to_o this_o reason_n be_v apply_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o same_o form_n of_o answer_n which_o a_o little_a before_o we_o use_v as_o touch_v thing_n that_o
this_o i_o say_v belong_v unto_o punishment_n but_o sin_n take_v place_n in_o the_o mind_n only_o punishment_n doubtless_o may_v both_o be_v in_o the_o mind_n and_o in_o the_o body_n there_o be_v add_v a_o three_o member_n which_o be_v so_o a_o punishment_n as_o it_o be_v also_o sin_n as_o original_a sin_n be_v so_o be_v the_o natural_a corruption_n leave_v after_o baptism_n these_o thing_n thus_o conclude_v i_o put_v forth_o a_o certain_a sentence_n or_o proposition_n to_o be_v confirm_v the_o which_o have_v two_o part_n the_o first_o be_v define_v a_o proposition_n whereby_o the_o question_n be_v define_v that_o god_n be_v not_o by_o himself_o and_o proper_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n the_o second_o be_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o the_o world_n no_o not_o sin_n themselves_o without_o his_o will_n determination_n and_o providence_n sin_n that_o god_n by_o himself_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n 7_o to_o prove_v the_o question_n it_o behove_v to_o confirm_v it_o as_o touch_v both_o part_n let_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o first_o that_o god_n by_o himself_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n unto_o this_o purpose_n serve_v the_o argument_n in_o the_o first_o place_n but_o i_o add_v that_o when_o good_a or_o evil_n be_v oppose_v as_o habit_n and_o privation_n the_o habit_n by_o itself_o do_v never_o bring_v in_o privation_n light_v itself_o do_v always_o illuminate_v it_o never_o bring_v in_o darkness_n wherefore_o if_o we_o put_v good_a and_o evil_a as_o contrary_a privative_n evil_a shall_v not_o be_v of_o good_a god_n be_v the_o chief_a good_a let_v we_o then_o put_v he_o to_o be_v the_o habit_n wherefore_o by_o himself_o and_o proper_o he_o make_v no_o privation_n but_o i_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n by_o himself_o and_o proper_o these_o word_n i_o have_v add_v because_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v less_o proper_o he_o may_v be_v say_v after_o some_o sort_n to_o be_v either_o the_o beginning_n or_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n not_o indeed_o the_o proper_a cause_n similitude_n god_n be_v of_o sin_n the_o remove_n or_o prohibit_v cause_n two_o similitude_n but_o that_o cause_n which_o of_o the_o philosopher_n be_v call_v remove_v or_o prohibit_v i_o will_v make_v the_o matter_n plain_a by_o similitude_n the_o sun_n be_v altogether_o bright_a the_o proper_a effect_n thereof_o be_v to_o make_v light_a yet_o after_o some_o manner_n it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o make_v darkness_n not_o in_o that_o it_o shine_v but_o in_o that_o it_o be_v move_v and_o depart_v from_o one_o place_n to_o a_o other_o for_o body_n be_v round_o therefore_o when_o it_o depart_v it_o can_v not_o always_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o motion_n give_v light_n to_o that_o place_n from_o whence_o it_o go_v but_o shadow_n do_v come_v between_o so_o then_o after_o some_o sort_n it_o be_v say_v to_o make_v darkness_n by_o the_o departure_n thereof_o because_o body_n be_v so_o order_v and_o itself_o be_v move_v so_o likewise_o it_o happen_v as_o touch_v some_o ruinous_a house_n it_o be_v hold_v up_o by_o a_o prop_n some_o man_n approach_v remoove_v the_o prop_n the_o stone_n and_o building_n through_o their_o own_o weight_n fall_v down_o from_o the_o top_n which_o thing_n have_v in_o themselves_o the_o cause_n of_o their_o come_n down_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o which_o take_v away_o the_o prop_n be_v say_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o cause_v the_o fall_n for_o he_o remoove_v the_o stay_n which_o let_v the_o ruin_n in_o like_a manner_n god_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v good_a yet_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v just_a he_o will_v punish_v sinner_n he_o take_v away_o his_o grace_n and_o after_o some_o sort_n may_v be_v call_v the_o cause_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o afterward_o be_v naughtilie_o do_v yet_o not_o the_o true_a cause_n for_o that_o proper_a cause_n be_v inward_a that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o naughty_a will_n of_o they_o but_o why_o he_o sometime_o take_v away_o his_o spirit_n from_o man_n a_o reason_n may_v be_v yield_v when_o they_o sin_n he_o remoove_v his_o grace_n from_o they_o not_o only_o to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v punish_v but_o that_o the_o excellency_n of_o his_o favour_n may_v be_v know_v and_o to_o let_v we_o understand_v that_o that_o which_o god_n give_v he_o give_v it_o free_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o nature_n for_o if_o we_o shall_v always_o have_v his_o grace_n and_o after_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o manner_n as_o if_o god_n will_v not_o at_o sometime_o stack_n his_o strength_n we_o will_v attribute_v unto_o our_o own_o power_n the_o good_a thing_n that_o we_o do_v but_o thus_o it_o be_v to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v acknowledge_v our_o own_o infirmity_n and_o pray_v the_o more_o fervent_o for_o preservation_n and_o increase_n of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n but_o when_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n be_v justly_o take_v away_o from_o we_o sin_n do_v natural_o follow_v neither_o be_v there_o need_v of_o any_o other_o efficient_a cause_n i_o mean_v there_o need_v no_o other_o cause_n to_o come_v from_o our_o infect_a and_o corrupt_a affection_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o similitude_n allege_v if_o the_o sun_n be_v remoove_v darkness_n do_v follow_v not_o through_o any_o efficient_a cause_n but_o by_o itself_o if_o the_o habit_n be_v remoove_v similitude_n similitude_n privation_n be_v straightwaie_o present_a of_o his_o own_o accord_n if_o one_o so_o hurt_v his_o eye_n as_o the_o sight_n be_v lose_v blindness_n do_v immediate_o follow_v neither_o be_v it_o needful_a to_o seek_v any_o other_o thing_n that_o work_v which_o see_v the_o manicheis_n perceive_v not_o they_o err_v most_o shameful_o they_o will_v not_o attribute_v the_o cause_n of_o evil_a unto_o the_o good_a god_n but_o they_o see_v that_o there_o be_v many_o evil_n and_o they_o judge_v that_o evil_n can_v not_o be_v without_o a_o true_a cause_n whereupon_o they_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v two_o beginning_n and_o because_o they_o see_v a_o great_a power_n to_o be_v both_o in_o evil_n &_o in_o good_a they_o bring_v in_o two_o god_n one_o good_a and_o a_o other_o bad_a of_o these_o we_o read_v much_o in_o augustine_n but_o that_o evil_a which_o be_v sin_n come_v if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v take_v away_o for_o then_o man_n be_v leave_v unto_o himself_o but_o whether_o be_v he_o so_o leave_v as_o god_n do_v no_o more_o any_o thing_n concern_v he_o or_o his_o sin_n that_o this_o may_v be_v understand_v creature_n three_o sort_n of_o god_n work_v about_o his_o creature_n i_o will_v declare_v three_o sort_n of_o work_v which_o we_o may_v perceive_v in_o god_n towards_o his_o creature_n not_o that_o other_o work_n of_o he_o can_v not_o be_v show_v but_o because_o these_o three_o do_v most_o of_o all_o serve_v unto_o the_o matter_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n 8_o some_o action_n of_o god_n be_v general_a general_a the_o first_o action_n of_o god_n be_v general_a see_v by_o his_o providence_n he_o cherish_v sustein_v and_o govern_v all_o thing_n in_o their_o condition_n quality_n and_o inclination_n as_o they_o stand_v at_o the_o beginning_n when_o they_o be_v create_v and_o thus_o be_v the_o order_n of_o nature_n preserve_v which_o thing_n be_v excellent_a to_o be_v know_v we_o see_v that_o heaven_n retain_v his_o own_o nature_n sure_o it_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o be_v marvel_v at_o we_o see_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o fire_n be_v vehement_a of_o air_n be_v pleasant_a of_o water_n be_v flow_v we_o see_v also_o the_o metal_n the_o tree_n the_o work_n of_o artificer_n which_o thing_n assure_o be_v wonder_a all_o these_o be_v govern_v by_o god_n yea_o and_o if_o he_o shall_v withdraw_v his_o hand_n from_o they_o they_o will_v fall_v to_o nothing_o profitable_a doubtless_o be_v the_o consideration_n of_o his_o divine_a government_n oftentimes_o do_v god_n exhort_v we_o in_o the_o psalm_n to_o magnify_v he_o for_o these_o work_n 20._o rom._n 1_o 20._o in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o gentile_n by_o these_o creature_n do_v know_v god_n and_o a_o kind_n of_o his_o everlasting_a force_n work_v government_n and_o godhead_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o aratus_n say_v we_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n the_o lineage_n of_o god_n we_o have_v a_o excellent_a example_n of_o this_o work_n in_o ourselves_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v not_o see_v be_v indivisible_a yet_o it_o move_v and_o quicken_v the_o whole_a body_n even_o so_o all_o creature_n do_v retain_v their_o property_n and_o inclination_n work_v the_o second_o kind_n of_o god_n work_v 9_o secondlie_o another_o work_n of_o god_n be_v whereby_o the_o creature_n be_v not_o only_o preserve_v and_o rule_v but_o do_v also_o obey_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n for_o god_n
5_o 3._o 1._o pet._n 1_o 6._o for_o tribulation_n work_v patience_n patience_n experience_n and_o peter_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o epistle_n say_v that_o there_o be_v joy_n to_o the_o saint_n in_o temptation_n yea_o and_o paul_n do_v glory_n in_o his_o adversity_n 9_o 2._o cor._n 21_o 9_o the_o which_o he_o mean_v not_o as_o they_o procee_v from_o the_o devil_n or_o from_o wicked_a man_n distinguish_v temptation_n distinguish_v but_o as_o they_o come_v from_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o his_o reward_n and_o salvation_n but_o if_o they_o tend_v unto_o evil_n that_o be_v that_o they_o be_v provocation_n unto_o sin_n then_o must_v they_o be_v distinguish_v because_o therein_o be_v either_o fall_n or_o victory_n if_o victory_n be_v join_v with_o they_o this_o kind_n be_v desire_v of_o saint_n to_o the_o intent_n the_o devil_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o world_n may_v every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o be_v vanquish_v in_o they_o but_o if_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o fall_v it_o be_v either_o temporal_a or_o eternal_a if_o it_o be_v temporal_a we_o must_v pray_v for_o the_o avoid_v of_o temptation_n as_o we_o do_v in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n 13._o matt._n 6_o 13._o this_o do_v christ_n teach_v his_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v the_o spirit_n indeed_o be_v ready_a but_o the_o flesh_n be_v frail_a 41._o matt._n 26_o 41._o watch_n and_o pray_v that_o you_o enter_v not_o into_o temptation_n and_o reason_n lead_v we_o thereunto_o for_o we_o ought_v to_o detest_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o will_n of_o god_n such_o be_v a_o fall_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n yea_o nothing_o aught_o to_o be_v more_o displease_v unto_o we_o even_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n 5._o deut._n 6_o 5._o with_o all_o thy_o hart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n to_o these_o thing_n add_v that_o none_o ought_v to_o have_v such_o confidence_n in_o his_o own_o strength_n as_o he_o shall_v not_o fear_v in_o temptation_n wherefore_o in_o temptation_n we_o must_v always_o pray_v but_o not_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v tempt_v at_o all_o see_v god_n have_v appoint_v our_o life_n to_o be_v a_o warfare_n but_o godly_a man_n be_v not_o afraid_a of_o temptation_n which_o have_v a_o perpetual_a and_o deadly_a end_n for_o they_o know_v that_o god_n be_v a_o father_n unto_o they_o which_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v if_o they_o misdoubt_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v forsake_v of_o he_o further_o they_o acknowledge_v 25._o rom._n 11_o 25._o that_o the_o call_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n ¶_o look_v the_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o genesis_n at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part_n e_o r_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o common_a place_n of_o peter_n martyr_n wherein_o be_v entreat_v of_o the_o wonder_a knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o redeemer_n the_o first_o chapter_n of_o sin_n especial_o original_a sin_n and_o of_o the_o universal_a corrupt_v of_o man_n nature_n ¶_o look_v the_o like_a place_n in_o gen._n 8._o at_o the_o end_n of_o in_o rom._n 5._o the_o chief_a point_n to_o be_v intrete_v of_o first_o we_o will_v see_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o original_a sin_n or_o no_o for_o there_o be_v some_o which_o utterlie_o deny_v the_o same_o to_o be_v then_o we_o will_v declare_v what_o it_o be_v last_o what_o property_n it_o have_v and_o how_o by_o succession_n it_o be_v convey_v to_o the_o posterity_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o be_v release_v as_o touch_v the_o first_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o both_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o also_o among_o the_o father_n it_o have_v diverse_a name_n for_o in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n call_v verse_n 8_o 23._o the_o name_n by_o which_o original_a sin_n be_v call_v it_o be_v call_v sin_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o member_n and_o concupiscence_n elsewhere_o it_o be_v call_v the_o want_n of_o original_a righteousness_n a_o corruption_n of_o nature_n a_o lump_n of_o wickedness_n a_o froth_n a_o weakness_n natural_a 9_o the_o pelagian_n and_o anabaptist_n deny_v original_a sin_n the_o argument_n of_o they_o that_o deny_v original_a sin_n nahum_n 1_o 9_o the_o law_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o such_o other_o like_a the_o pelagian_o in_o old_a time_n deny_v this_o sin_n at_o this_o day_n the_o anabaptist_n deny_v it_o these_o in_o a_o manner_n may_v be_v account_v their_o argument_n first_o they_o say_v that_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n be_v sufficient_o punish_v in_o himself_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o god_n will_v revenge_v it_o in_o his_o posterity_n especial_o see_v it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o prophet_n nahum_n that_o god_n do_v not_o twice_o punish_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n for_o it_o suffice_v he_o that_o he_o have_v once_o punish_v moreover_o it_o be_v also_o write_v 20_o ezec._n 18_o 20_o that_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o bear_v the_o father_n iniquity_n but_o the_o soul_n that_o sin_v the_o same_o shall_v die_v further_o that_o the_o body_n when_o it_o be_v form_v in_o the_o womb_n be_v the_o workmanship_n of_o god_n and_o have_v nothing_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v blame_v nay_o rather_o which_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o great_a admiration_n that_o the_o soul_n also_o be_v either_o create_v or_o infuse_v by_o god_n and_o that_o the_o mean_n of_o propagation_n can_v be_v account_v evil_a because_o marriage_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v commend_v and_o that_o from_o the_o beginning_n god_n command_v man_n to_o beget_v child_n wherefore_o among_o so_o many_o defence_n of_o innocence_n they_o demand_v by_o what_o entrance_n sin_n can_v insinuate_v itself_o they_o add_v also_o that_o paul_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 14._o 1._o cor._n 7_o 14._o when_o he_o exhort_v the_o beléeve_a wife_n to_o abide_v with_o her_o unbeléeving_a husband_n if_o he_o will_v abide_v with_o she_o among_o other_o thing_n say_v your_o child_n be_v holy_a but_o they_o say_v that_o they_o can_v be_v holy_a if_o they_o be_v bear_v in_o sin_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o faithful_a parent_n can_v draw_v with_o they_o original_a sin_n they_o affirm_v withal_o that_o it_o be_v common_o say_v that_o sin_n be_v a_o thing_n speak_v do_v or_o lust_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o sin_n unless_o it_o be_v voluntary_a and_o as_o john_n say_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n the_o four_o chapter_n sin_n be_v iniquity_n 4_o 1_o john_n 3_o 4_o contrary_a whereunto_o be_v equity_n or_o right_n and_o that_o this_o can_v be_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o law_n and_o so_o that_o sin_n be_v a_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n all_o which_o thing_n can_v fall_v into_o infant_n when_o they_o be_v bear_v and_o they_o say_v further_o that_o it_o seem_v not_o convenient_a which_o be_v speak_v of_o some_o namely_o that_o this_o sin_n be_v by_o the_o flesh_n or_o body_n pour_v out_o from_o one_o to_o another_o for_o that_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o body_n be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n senseless_a thing_n neither_o can_v they_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o meet_a subject_n for_o sin_n and_o to_o establish_v their_o feign_a devise_n they_o say_v beside_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o paul_n 12._o verse_n 12._o in_o the_o five_o to_o the_o roman_n must_v be_v extend_v unto_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v call_v actual_a but_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v therefore_o say_v that_o sin_n enter_v by_o one_o man_n into_o the_o world_n because_o of_o the_o imitation_n and_o example_n which_o the_o posterity_n follow_v 2_o by_o these_o and_o such_o other_o like_o argument_n they_o be_v lead_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o original_a sin_n but_o as_o for_o death_n and_o the_o affliction_n of_o this_o life_n which_o be_v common_o bring_v as_o token_n whereby_o original_a sin_n be_v confirm_v they_o say_v that_o those_o consist_v of_o natural_a cause_n such_o as_o in_o the_o temperature_n of_o the_o element_n and_o of_o the_o humour_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o vain_a fable_n that_o we_o refer_v they_o to_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n and_o they_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n most_o absurd_a to_o affirm_v that_o to_o be_v sin_n which_o by_o no_o manner_n of_o mean_n can_v be_v avoid_v last_o they_o say_v that_o if_o by_o that_o mean_v we_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o sin_n in_o adam_n because_o we_o be_v in_o his_o loin_n according_a as_o it_o be_v
say_v that_o they_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v corrupt_v because_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o it_o be_v no_o firm_a reason_n for_o even_o they_o which_o be_v of_o ripe_a year_n have_v both_o a_o body_n and_o a_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o be_v continual_o preserve_v by_o his_o power_n and_o yet_o may_v they_o be_v defile_v and_o corrupt_v but_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o this_o come_v of_o man_n will_n and_o free_a choice_n so_o will_v we_o answer_v that_o the_o same_o may_v come_v of_o other_o cause_n to_o wit_n through_o propagation_n and_o seed_n pighius_fw-la a_o false_a syllogism_n of_o pighius_fw-la and_o so_o pighius_fw-la reason_v from_o that_o which_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n as_o though_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o if_o man_n be_v corrupt_v choice_n it_o be_v false_a that_o man_n can_v be_v contaminate_v but_o by_o the_o will_n and_o free_a choice_n it_o can_v otherwise_o be_v than_o by_o the_o will_n and_o free_a choice_n which_o be_v not_o true_a all_o the_o argument_n which_o he_o object_v against_o we_o arise_v hereof_o that_o he_o say_v he_o understand_v not_o how_o this_o corruption_n can_v be_v derive_v to_o the_o posterity_n and_o how_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o infant_n shall_v be_v bind_v by_o any_o law_n and_o how_o a_o law_n can_v be_v make_v of_o that_o which_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o avoid_v but_o see_v the_o holy_a scripture_n declare_v teach_v and_o testify_v these_o thing_n it_o make_v no_o matter_n how_o much_o pighius_fw-la either_o understand_v or_o not_o understand_v for_o we_o believe_v many_o thing_n which_o we_o perceive_v not_o nor_o know_v not_o by_o any_o certain_a reason_n which_o nevertheless_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v of_o any_o such_o force_n as_o every_o man_n shall_v obtrude_v unto_o we_o to_o believe_v what_o thing_n soever_o they_o shall_v think_v good_a under_o this_o pretence_n that_o although_o they_o can_v be_v perceive_v by_o reason_n yet_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v comprehend_v by_o faith_n see_v god_n be_v also_o able_a to_o make_v thing_n which_o be_v far_o great_a for_o first_o that_o which_o we_o will_v have_v to_o be_v beléeve_v aught_o to_o be_v show_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n then_o afterward_o if_o we_o can_v attain_v unto_o it_o let_v we_o clean_o unto_o faith_n and_o set_v reason_n aside_o but_o it_o follow_v not_o by_o our_o definition_n leave_v in_o humane_a nature_n and_o in_o ethnic_a man_n some_o good_a thing_n be_v leave_v that_o there_o be_v no_o good_a thing_n lest_o either_o in_o nature_n or_o in_o ethnic_a man_n only_o this_o we_o affirm_v that_o this_o sin_n will_v destroy_v all_o if_o god_n through_o christ_n bring_v not_o a_o remedy_n unto_o the_o regenerate_a also_o god_n be_v present_a sometime_o in_o they_o which_o be_v not_o regenerate_v and_o adorn_v they_o with_o excellent_a &_o noble_a virtue_n whereby_o original_a sin_n be_v restrain_v and_o commonweal_n and_o empire_n be_v keep_v at_o the_o leastwise_o in_o some_o civil_a order_n socrates_n will_v not_o go_v forth_o of_o prison_n when_o he_o may_v aristides_n be_v drive_v into_o banishment_n wish_v unto_o his_o citizen_n that_o they_o may_v never_o be_v in_o so_o ill_a case_n as_o they_o shall_v call_v he_o to_o their_o remembrance_n photion_n be_v demand_v a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n whether_o he_o will_v have_v any_o message_n to_o be_v do_v unto_o his_o son_n let_v he_o never_o say_v he_o remember_v the_o injury_n do_v unto_o i_o the_o commonweal_n of_o rome_n have_v his_o curtio_n scipio_n and_o cato_n desire_v god_n suffer_v not_o original_a sin_n to_o rage_n as_o much_o as_o it_o may_v nor_o the_o devil_n so_o much_o as_o he_o desire_v man_n of_o civil_a honesty_n and_o very_o great_a lover_n of_o upright_o deal_n which_o duty_n albeit_o as_o they_o be_v in_o man_n which_o know_v not_o god_n be_v sin_n yet_o be_v they_o bridle_v of_o original_a sin_n and_o of_o nature_n corrupt_v lest_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v confound_v and_o good_a law_n fall_v to_o ruin_v and_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n extinguish_v 26_o now_o see_v we_o have_v confirm_v original_a sin_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o have_v confute_v the_o opinion_n of_o pighius_fw-la and_o have_v reject_v the_o opinion_n of_o they_o which_o think_v original_a sin_n to_o be_v a_o guiltiness_n and_o bond_n procure_v through_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n and_o have_v allege_v the_o definition_n of_o augustine_n that_o original_a sin_n be_v concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o anshelme_v that_o it_o be_v a_o want_n of_o original_a righteousness_n and_o last_o of_o all_o see_v we_o have_v large_o and_o by_o many_o testimony_n prove_v our_o own_o definition_n now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o prosecute_v those_o thing_n sin_n what_o be_v the_o condition_n and_o property_n of_o original_a sin_n which_o we_o purpose_v to_o entreat_v of_o in_o the_o three_o place_n namely_o of_o the_o condition_n and_o property_n of_o original_a sin_n how_o it_o be_v spread_v abroad_o how_o it_o be_v abolish_v how_o the_o remnant_n thereof_o be_v in_o man_n renew_v and_o also_o what_o punishment_n be_v due_a thereunto_o indeed_o as_o touch_v the_o manner_n how_o it_o be_v pour_v through_o into_o the_o posterity_n many_o opinion_n be_v recite_v the_o first_o of_o they_o be_v of_o the_o propagation_n of_o soul_n which_o we_o will_v show_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o augustine_n to_o be_v a_o more_o ready_a way_n than_o the_o rest_n although_o it_o be_v not_o receive_v of_o all_o man_n another_o opinion_n be_v which_o augustine_n follow_v to_o wit_n that_o original_a sin_n be_v convey_v from_o one_o to_o another_o by_o the_o lust_n and_o inordinate_a delight_n of_o the_o parent_n this_o reason_n have_v two_o error_n first_o because_o it_o say_v that_o this_o evil_n be_v in_o procreation_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o necessity_n which_o nevertheless_o may_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o same_o and_o the_o schoolman_n themselves_o confess_v that_o he_o which_o shall_v be_v beget_v without_o a_o vicious_a desire_n of_o the_o parent_n yet_o shall_v he_o draw_v original_a sin_n for_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a thereunto_o that_o it_o be_v in_o adam_n as_o in_o the_o first_o principal_a seed_n another_o absurdity_n be_v that_o then_o original_a sin_n shall_v only_o consist_v in_o the_o foul_a affection_n of_o the_o lust_n where_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o comprehend_v as_o have_v be_v say_v the_o whole_a corrupt_v of_o nature_n other_o have_v think_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v create_v evil_a by_o god_n because_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o part_n of_o man_n execrate_v and_o put_v under_o the_o curse_n but_o because_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o creation_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o depravation_n therefore_o that_o opinion_n be_v also_o reject_v the_o last_o opinion_n be_v common_o receive_v namely_o that_o the_o soul_n gather_v original_a sin_n through_o conjunction_n with_o the_o body_n that_o be_v already_o infect_v and_o corrupt_v by_o the_o parent_n sin_n what_o the_o seat_n be_v of_o original_a sin_n whereupon_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v what_o be_v the_o seat_n thereof_o or_o as_o they_o common_o speak_v what_o be_v the_o subject_n we_o answer_v that_o it_o have_v place_n in_o the_o flesh_n as_o in_o the_o root_n and_o beginning_n then_o out_o of_o that_o fountain_n it_o also_o possess_v the_o soul_n &_o so_o be_v extend_v throughout_o the_o whole_a man_n sin_n seed_n be_v the_o instrument_n to_o conveie_v this_o sin_n so_o as_o the_o seed_n be_v the_o instrument_n whereby_o this_o sin_n be_v convey_v from_o the_o parent_n unto_o their_o child_n pighius_fw-la object_v that_o vice_n can_v be_v derive_v by_o seed_n unto_o the_o posterity_n unless_o perhaps_o those_o vice_n which_o cleave_v and_o stick_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o parent_n as_o we_o see_v happen_v in_o the_o leprosy_n in_o the_o fall_a sickness_n sin_n in_o the_o say_v be_v not_o the_o sin_n and_o other_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n neither_o do_v nature_n suffer_v that_o sin_n shall_v take_v place_n in_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o seed_n so_o as_o it_o can_v be_v convey_v by_o it_o unto_o the_o child_n here_o we_o answer_v child_n not_o only_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n but_o of_o the_o mind_n also_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o parent_n to_o the_o child_n first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o only_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o parent_n be_v derive_v unto_o the_o child_n for_o we_o also_o see_v that_o many_o condition_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o parent_n unto_o their_o child_n as_o wit_n fury_n ambition_n gentleness_n pride_n and_o
otherwise_o present_a than_o they_o which_o do_v play_v be_v conversant_a in_o the_o fight_n of_o they_o which_o behold_v god_n let_v no_o man_n lay_v his_o own_o fault_n upon_o god_n let_v every_o one_o therefore_o take_v heed_n to_o himself_o that_o he_o cast_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o sin_n upon_o god_n and_o when_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o cogitation_n enter_v into_o his_o mind_n let_v he_o have_v respect_n unto_o lust_n voluptuousness_n wrath_n hatred_n and_o other_o perturbation_n of_o the_o mind_n wherewith_o he_o be_v sore_o disease_v and_o out_o of_o these_o fountain_n let_v he_o seek_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o sin_n reproove_v the_o peripatetike_n be_v reproove_v neither_o must_v there_o be_v much_o credit_n give_v unto_o the_o peripatetik_n in_o this_o matter_n which_o deny_v that_o god_n have_v understand_v of_o particular_a affair_n lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o think_v that_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n be_v abject_a &_o vile_a if_o he_o shall_v draw_v his_o knowledge_n from_o frail_a and_o transitory_a thing_n this_o thing_n be_v not_o agreeable_a unto_o our_o document_n for_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o god_n of_o himself_o have_v a_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o all_o thing_n neither_o that_o he_o have_v any_o need_n to_o challenge_v knowledge_n elsewhere_o to_o himself_o reason_n to_o the_o 3._o reason_n 38_o and_o whereas_o touch_v the_o three_o point_n it_o be_v judge_v that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o our_o will_n the_o argument_n be_v neither_o perfect_a nor_o strong_a for_o although_o that_o god_n by_o his_o infinite_a power_n wherewith_o he_o be_v endue_v 1._o the_o power_n of_o god_n do_v what_o it_o will_v but_o it_o mar_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n wisd_v ●_o 1._o do_v what_o his_o pleasure_n be_v yet_o do_v he_o suffer_v the_o state_n and_o nature_n of_o thing_n to_o stand_v whole_a neither_o do_v he_o violate_v they_o or_o wrest_v they_o any_o other_o way_n than_o the_o condition_n of_o they_o do_v bear_v wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n that_o god_n do_v mighty_o reach_v even_o from_o one_o end_n to_o another_o and_o do_v pleasant_o dispose_v all_o thing_n or_o as_o the_o greek_a text_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v profitable_o which_o may_v not_o be_v say_v if_o by_o the_o high_a power_n of_o god_n the_o nature_n of_o thing_n be_v disturb_v the_o sum_n be_v that_o god_n do_v here_o moderate_a his_o power_n in_o rule_v of_o the_o world_n that_o he_o may_v fit_o apply_v his_o action_n unto_o all_o manner_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o four_o place_n sin_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o will_n reason_n to_o the_o 4._o reason_n as_o if_o it_o so_o weaken_a the_o power_n of_o man_n that_o after_o a_o sort_n they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o any_o more_o but_o there_o need_v not_o now_o many_o word_n about_o this_o matter_n because_o there_o have_v be_v plenty_n enough_o speak_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v declare_v how_o much_o our_o liberty_n have_v be_v diminish_v by_o reason_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o special_o as_o touch_v very_o perfect_a and_o good_a action_n which_o may_v be_v acceptable_a and_o well_o please_v unto_o god_n beside_o it_o have_v be_v declare_v that_o our_o liberty_n be_v not_o by_o this_o mean_n utterlie_o take_v away_o but_o rather_o that_o there_o be_v as_o yet_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o it_o remain_v 39_o moreover_o concern_v the_o power_n celestial_a there_o shall_v be_v no_o great_a need_n to_o entreat_v star_n to_o the_o 5._o reason_n wisdom_n shall_v rule_v in_o the_o star_n see_v the_o astronomer_n do_v glory_n in_o their_o own_o book_n that_o the_o wise_a shall_v bear_v rule_n among_o the_o star_n but_o and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o these_o thing_n which_o they_o pronounce_v may_v not_o be_v escape_v all_o their_o gain_n will_v fall_v away_o for_o no_o man_n will_v bestow_v cost_v upon_o the_o skill_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o think_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a neither_o to_o avoid_v nor_o change_n either_o by_o endeavour_n or_o study_v which_o thing_n without_o controversy_n will_v ensue_v if_o so_o be_v they_o shall_v ascribe_v a_o mere_a necessity_n unto_o their_o foreshewing_n by_o this_o mean_v all_o prayer_n piety_n and_o worship_v of_o god_n will_v be_v take_v away_o for_o who_o will_v pray_v to_o god_n for_o obtain_v of_o any_o thing_n if_o he_o be_v already_o persuade_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v not_o be_v grant_v unto_o he_o wherefore_o augustine_n say_v augustine_n augustine_n they_o which_o thus_o think_v do_v great_a wrong_n unto_o heaven_n for_o there_o they_o believe_v be_v a_o court_n appoint_v heaven_n the_o injury_n against_o heaven_n wherein_o be_v notable_a act_n decree_v which_o can_v be_v avoid_v the_o which_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n it_o shall_v needs_o be_v take_v away_o how_o much_o less_o must_v we_o think_v that_o the_o same_o be_v do_v by_o god_n in_o the_o celestial_a part_n i_o beseech_v you_o what_o judgement_n will_v be_v leave_v if_o so_o be_v we_o do_v all_o thing_n upon_o constraint_n this_o matter_n some_o excuse_n say_v that_o from_o heaven_n be_v only_o signify_v what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v yet_o that_o we_o be_v not_o thereby_o drive_v by_o any_o necessity_n and_o they_o bring_v forth_o a_o place_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n 14._o gen._n 1_o 14._o wherein_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v speak_v that_o the_o star_n be_v put_v as_o sign_n but_o that_o place_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v concern_v season_n wind_n understand_v how_o a_o place_n in_o gen._n be_v to_o be_v understand_v reins_n tempest_n and_o such_o like_a sort_n but_o how_o can_v they_o affirm_v that_o in_o heaven_n they_o see_v certain_a sign_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v they_o shall_v hardly_o prove_v it_o especial_o touch_v man_n affair_n instant_a twin_n conceive_v at_o one_o instant_a for_o what_o answer_n can_v they_o make_v of_o twin_n which_o be_v conceive_v at_o one_o time_n and_o have_v all_o one_o aspect_n of_o the_o heaven_n yet_o as_o experience_n teach_v the_o chance_n and_o success_n of_o they_o be_v altogether_o differ_v augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n in_o his_o five_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o second_o chapter_n be_v worth_a the_o read_n where_o he_o write_v affection_n two_o brother_n of_o like_a affection_n that_o sometime_o there_o happen_v two_o brother_n to_o be_v like_o affection_a that_o when_o one_o sicken_v the_o other_o also_o be_v disease_v and_o when_o the_o one_o recover_v the_o other_o be_v also_o ease_v concern_v which_o thing_n hypocrates_n be_v demand_v of_o his_o opinion_n hypocrates_n hypocrates_n make_v answer_v that_o he_o think_v they_o to_o be_v twin_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o have_v the_o temperature_n or_o complexion_n of_o their_o body_n all_o of_o one_o nature_n possidonius_fw-la possidonius_fw-la but_o possidonius_fw-la the_o mathematician_n do_v ascribe_v the_o whole_a cause_n unto_o the_o star_n because_o in_o their_o nativity_n they_o occupy_v all_o one_o aspect_n of_o the_o heaven_n but_o what_o say_v augustine_n will_v these_o man_n say_v of_o twin_n and_o innumerable_a live_a creature_n which_o be_v bear_v in_o hour_n and_o moment_n alike_o and_o yet_o attain_v to_o such_o diversity_n of_o fortune_n fato_fw-la cicero_n book_n de_n fato_fw-la and_o augustine_n witness_v that_o this_o example_n be_v take_v out_o of_o cicero_n the_o which_o nevertheless_o we_o read_v not_o in_o his_o book_n at_o this_o day_n extant_a unless_o perhaps_o he_o find_v the_o same_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fato_fw-la which_o remain_v among_o we_o all_o tear_v mangle_a and_o diminish_v sixth_o to_o the_o sixth_o 40_o moreover_o destiny_n which_o the_o stoic_n appoint_v to_o have_v mere_a necessity_n hinder_v not_o our_o matter_n forsomuch_o as_o we_o admit_v not_o the_o same_o to_o be_v they_o sever_v it_o from_o the_o will_n of_o man_n because_o they_o think_v that_o all_o thing_n will_v go_v to_o naught_o if_o together_o with_o other_o cause_n they_o comprehend_v will_n under_o destiny_n howbeit_o it_o seem_v not_o good_a to_o they_o destiny_n the_o stoic_n do_v not_o utterlie_o sever_v man_n will_n from_o destiny_n utterlie_o to_o sever_v man_n will_n from_o destiny_n save_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o first_o choice_n which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v whole_o in_o our_o will_n but_o while_o we_o shall_v choose_v any_o cause_n that_o may_v be_v under_o destiny_n they_o will_v have_v it_o follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o what_o thing_n soever_o they_o be_v they_o shall_v be_v join_v unto_o it_o even_o as_o euripides_n say_v unto_o laius_n that_o it_o be_v free_a for_o he_o not_o to_o procreate_v but_o when_o he_o have_v procreate_v then_o of_o necessity_n he_o shall_v
draw_v together_o and_o limit_v yea_o rather_o they_o be_v circumscribe_v by_o the_o workmanship_n itself_o beside_o this_o image_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v make_v by_o man_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o which_o be_v absent_a may_v after_o a_o sort_n be_v present_a with_o us._n but_o god_n be_v every_o where_o nether_a be_v he_o absent_a from_o any_o thing_n wherefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o psalm_n 8._o psal_n 139_o 8._o if_o i_o go_v up_o into_o heaven_n thou_o be_v there_o if_o i_o go_v down_o into_o hell_n thou_o be_v there_o also_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o make_v he_o present_v by_o image_n see_v he_o be_v present_a always_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n cause_n the_o three_o cause_n hereunto_o add_v that_o we_o must_v in_o a_o image_n express_v with_o apt_a likeness_n the_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v represent_v but_o when_o god_n by_o any_o image_n be_v represent_v thing_n which_o rather_o be_v unlike_a and_o contrary_a than_o like_a and_o agreeable_a be_v liken_v unto_o he_o moreover_o god_n as_o all_o man_n must_v of_o necessity_n grant_v have_v no_o beginning_n but_o all_o image_n be_v invent_v by_o craftesman_n whereunto_o may_v be_v add_v that_o god_n what_o and_o how_o great_a a_o one_o soever_o he_o be_v be_v continual_o move_v or_o do_v and_o be_v never_o idle_a whereas_o image_n be_v senseless_a and_o do_v no_o manner_n of_o thing_n at_o all_o over_o this_o cause_n the_o four_o cause_n god_n himself_o be_v all_o whole_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n but_o image_n perceive_v nothing_o and_o do_v understand_v nothing_o at_o all_o beside_o cause_n the_o five_o cause_n god_n not_o only_o consist_v of_o himself_o but_o also_o make_v all_o thing_n to_o consist_v and_o stand_v by_o his_o word_n but_o image_n be_v not_o able_a to_o consist_v of_o themselves_o for_o they_o be_v stay_v up_o of_o artificer_n by_o prop_n and_o great_a post_n cause_n the_o sixth_o cause_n yea_o and_o further_o god_n himself_o have_v no_o end_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o life_n whereas_o image_n wax_v old_a and_o in_o the_o end_n come_v to_o naught_o and_o see_v god_n be_v of_o nature_n invisible_a as_o have_v be_v confirm_v before_o craftesman_n in_o picture_v and_o paint_v he_o out_o do_v follow_v their_o own_o imagination_n and_o not_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o they_o can_v see_v and_o they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o ascribe_v those_o imagination_n and_o conceit_n of_o their_o mind_n unto_o the_o name_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v altogether_o wicked_a and_o ungodlie_a so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o the_o israelite_n say_v unto_o aaron_n make_v we_o god_n 1._o exod._n 32_o 1._o which_o may_v go_v before_o us._n and_o he_o make_v they_o a_o melt_a calf_n and_o call_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o jehova_n 28_o look_v in_o 1._o king_n 12._o verse_n 28_o 1._o kin._n 12_o 28_o for_o to_o morrow_n say_v he_o it_o be_v the_o feast_n of_o jehova_n jeroboam_fw-la also_o when_o he_o make_v the_o golden_a calf_n command_v they_o to_o be_v worship_v by_o the_o name_n of_o jehova_n wherefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n 21._o verse_n 21._o that_o they_o apply_v the_o holy_a and_o immutable_a name_n of_o god_n unto_o idol_n and_o in_o the_o 17._o of_o the_o act_n paul_n say_v 29._o the_o seven_o cause_n verse_n 29._o we_o ought_v not_o to_o think_v that_o the_o godhead_n be_v like_a to_o gold_n or_o silver_n grave_v by_o art_n and_o invention_n of_o craftesman_n if_o so_o be_v then_o that_o the_o similitude_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o image_n those_o which_o be_v of_o this_o kind_n must_v be_v utterlie_o reject_v the_o complaint_n of_o seneca_n be_v common_o know_v whereof_o augustine_n make_v mention_n in_o the_o sixth_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o forty_o chapter_n out_o of_o the_o book_n name_v d●_n superstitione_n which_o be_v lose_v and_o be_v not_o any_o where_n to_o be_v find_v at_o this_o day_n augustine_n word_n be_v these_o for_o when_o he_o entreat_v concern_v image_n they_o dedicate_v say_v he_o the_o holy_a immortal_a and_o inviolable_a god_n in_o a_o matter_n most_o vile_a and_o unmooveable_a give_v unto_o they_o the_o habit_n of_o man_n wild_a beast_n and_o fish_n and_o some_o endue_v they_o with_o diverse_a body_n of_o a_o mingle_a kind_n they_o call_v they_o god_n which_o if_o they_o shall_v receive_v life_n and_o sudden_o meet_v one_o they_o will_v be_v take_v for_o monster_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v laugh_v to_o scorn_v this_o presumption_n and_o foolishness_n of_o man_n especial_o esaie_n in_o the_o 44._o chapter_n as_o we_o have_v already_o hear_v before_o cause_n the_o eight_o cause_n to_o these_o thing_n let_v we_o add_v that_o aristotle_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr physico_fw-la auditu_fw-la allege_v the_o say_n of_o the_o philosopher_n protarchus_n which_o say_v that_o those_o stone_n be_v fortunate_a whereof_o image_n be_v make_v for_o they_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n and_o have_v honour_n and_o reverence_v do_v unto_o they_o by_o man_n whereas_o other_o not_o unlike_a to_o they_o lie_v upon_o the_o pavement_n be_v tread_v upon_o with_o their_o foot_n and_o spit_v upon_o cause_n the_o nine_o cause_n beside_o this_o let_v it_o come_v to_o mind_n that_o the_o very_a work_n of_o god_n which_o be_v extant_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n can_v perfect_o show_v he_o wherefore_o see_v the_o workmanship_n of_o man_n be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o unperfect_a because_o art_n always_o fail_v in_o comparison_n of_o nature_n how_o shall_v we_o hope_v that_o god_n himself_o can_v be_v express_v by_o the_o industry_n of_o craftesman_n cause_n the_o ten_o cause_n neither_o must_v it_o be_v omit_v that_o the_o scripture_n when_o it_o speak_v of_o image_n to_o the_o intent_n it_o may_v drive_v man_n from_o they_o it_o call_v they_o filthiness_n 18._o deut._n 7_o 26._o jerem._n 10_o 8_o habac._n 2_o 18._o lie_v thing_n of_o nothing_o abomination_n and_o affliction_n howbeit_o we_o must_v grant_v that_o god_n will_v have_v some_o sign_n whereby_o he_o will_v open_v himself_o unto_o man_n such_o be_v the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n the_o tabernacle_n of_o moses_n the_o temple_n of_o solomon_n and_o also_o the_o pillar_n of_o fire_n and_o of_o the_o cloud_n but_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o he_o devise_v and_o ordain_v these_o sign_n for_o himself_o neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o man_n to_o do_v so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v for_o god_n cause_n augustine_n the_o 11._o cause_n augustine_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la when_o he_o expound_v the_o article_n wherein_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n he_o say_v we_o must_v not_o imagine_v that_o god_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n that_o christ_n do_v bow_v his_o knee_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a side_n of_o he_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a thing_n to_o have_v such_o manner_n of_o image_n but_o in_o the_o four_o book_n cause_n the_o 12._o cause_n the_o nine_o and_o 31._o chapter_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la he_o have_v more_o manifest_o express_v the_o same_o where_o he_o commend_v varro_n which_o write_v in_o his_o theology_n that_o they_o which_o first_o of_o all_o other_o make_v image_n unto_o god_n first_o take_v away_o the_o fear_n of_o they_o from_o man_n namely_o because_o of_o the_o vile_a matter_n whereof_o they_o be_v form_v and_o because_o they_o move_v not_o of_o themselves_o and_o they_o do_v err_v more_o for_o so_o much_o as_o in_o make_v of_o image_n they_o do_v not_o reform_v their_o error_n but_o rather_o increase_v the_o same_o also_o he_o praise_v varro_n who_o allow_v of_o the_o ancient_a people_n of_o rome_n because_o they_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 70._o year_n worship_v god_n without_o image_n neither_o do_v varro_n fear_v to_o bring_v the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o that_o thing_n and_o he_o add_v also_o that_o while_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n worship_v god_n without_o image_n they_o honour_v he_o more_o pure_o than_o afterward_o they_o do_v and_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o only_o recite_v by_o augustine_n &_o varro_n cause_n the_o 13._o cause_n but_o they_o be_v also_o write_v by_o plutarch_n in_o the_o life_n of_o numa_n pompilius_n by_o dionysius_n halicarnassus_n by_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n and_o also_o tertullian_n as_o it_o be_v recite_v by_o eusebius_n beside_o this_o herodotus_n in_o his_o first_o book_n cause_n the_o 14._o cause_n and_o strabo_n in_o his_o 15._o book_n do_v show_v that_o the_o persian_n in_o old_a time_n make_v no_o image_n when_o tarqvinius_n priscus_n who_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o learning_n of_o the_o greek_n &_o hetruscan_o reign_v at_o rome_n there_o be_v image_n
the_o end_n of_o good_a man_n be_v life_n eternal_a and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o end_n of_o virtue_n be_v to_o prepare_v and_o renew_v we_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o honour_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o virtue_n in_o respect_n of_o other_o which_o do_v behold_v and_o wonder_v at_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o good_a and_o godly_a man_n and_o when_o they_o desire_v to_o present_v or_o recompense_v they_o with_o some_o good_a thing_n &_o have_v nothing_o more_o excellent_a than_o honour_n they_o give_v that_o unto_o they_o after_o this_o manner_n therefore_o honour_n be_v account_v the_o reward_n of_o virtue_n caution_n 2_o a_o other_o caution_n be_v that_o none_o be_v so_o inflame_v with_o the_o desire_n of_o honour_n as_o he_o seek_v to_o attain_v to_o the_o same_o after_o what_o sort_n he_o will_v be_v it_o by_o right_n or_o by_o wrong_n sallust_n sallust_n sallust_n speak_v a_o excellent_a sentence_n as_o concern_v this_o matter_n the_o good_a man_n and_o the_o evil_n do_v both_o alike_a desire_n unto_o themselves_o glory_n honour_n and_o rule_v the_o one_o by_o true_a mean_n but_o the_o other_o want_v good_a art_n strive_v to_o compass_v the_o same_o by_o fraud_n &_o guile_n caution_n 3_o thirdlie_o we_o must_v beware_v that_o a_o man_n seek_v not_o more_o honour_n than_o his_o desert_n and_o virtue_n require_v nor_o that_o he_o seek_v to_o wrest_v unto_o he_o honour_n and_o dignity_n when_o he_o rather_o deserve_v blame_v for_o this_o will_v be_v both_o absurd_a and_o without_o all_o order_n of_o justice_n abimelech_n take_v no_o heed_n of_o those_o thing_n ambitious_a abimelech_n be_v ambitious_a which_o i_o have_v recite_v but_o run_v into_o they_o all_o for_o he_o propose_v to_o himself_o a_o kingly_a power_n or_o rather_o tyranny_n as_o the_o chief_a end_n for_o he_o direct_v thereunto_o all_o his_o act_n and_o devise_n and_o moreover_o he_o indevor_v to_o attain_v thereto_o by_o deceit_n and_o guile_n and_o not_o by_o a_o good_a way_n and_o just_a mean_n or_o rather_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o euripedes_n judgement_n euripedes_n a_o sentence_n of_o euripedes_n that_o even_o right_a itself_o be_v to_o be_v violate_v for_o dominion_n sake_n and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o want_v desert_n he_o rather_o extort_a honour_n which_o be_v give_v as_o a_o testimony_n of_o virtue_n than_o get_v it_o unto_o himself_o by_o honest_a mean_n he_o circumvent_v his_o citizen_n by_o no_o obscure_a kind_n of_o largess_n for_o he_o with_o fair_a word_n desire_v the_o kingdom_n because_o he_o will_v bestow_v upon_o they_o most_o large_a and_o ample_a benefit_n for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v their_o kinsman_n ambition_n the_o ethnik_n law_n condemn_v ambition_n the_o law_n even_o of_o ethnik_n condemn_v such_o ambition_n for_o it_o be_v decree_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la ambitu_fw-la that_o he_o which_o attain_v to_o honour_n by_o bribery_n shall_v be_v condemn_v both_o in_o a_o fine_a of_o money_n namely_o in_o a_o hundred_o piece_n of_o gold_n and_o withal_o shall_v be_v make_v infamous_a and_o that_o ambition_n be_v wont_v to_o drive_v man_n to_o commit_v murder_n 11_o in_o 2._o kin_n 11_o without_o all_o respect_n of_o any_o kindred_n the_o history_n as_o well_o holy_a as_o profane_v do_v sufficient_o teach_v us._n 3._o gen._n 4_o 3._o cain_n be_v afraid_a lest_o his_o brother_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o he_o do_v slay_v he_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n do_v romulus_n kill_v remus_n domitian_n lie_v in_o wait_n for_o titus_n and_o antonius_n caracalla_n slay_v his_o brother_n geta._n also_o there_o have_v be_v child_n so_o desirous_a to_o reign_v as_o they_o can_v not_o stay_v until_o their_o parent_n come_v to_o their_o fatal_a death_n and_o again_o father_n fear_v lest_o their_o child_n shall_v attempt_v innovation_n have_v put_v they_o to_o death_n as_o herod_n do_v of_o who_o augustus_n say_v he_o have_v rather_o be_v his_o hog_n than_o his_o son_n because_o he_o abstein_v from_o hog_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o jewish_a religion_n but_o he_o forbear_v not_o from_o murder_v his_o child_n i_o pass_v over_o the_o most_o cruel_a proscription_n of_o the_o roman_n wherein_o all_o regard_n of_o friendship_n be_v set_v aside_o also_o how_o the_o earnest_a endeavour_n of_o perverse_a religion_n or_o idolatry_n violent_o break_v out_o and_o rage_v there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o repeat_v old_a history_n see_v our_o age_n have_v over_o many_o example_n of_o the_o same_o of_o desire_n of_o praise_n 8_o the_o godly_a have_v wherewithal_o to_o comfort_v themselves_o very_o well_o 5._o in_o 1._o cor._n 4._o verse_n 5._o by_o this_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v 4._o 1._o cor._n 4._o then_o shall_v every_o one_o have_v praise_n of_o god_n when_o they_o be_v backbit_v when_o their_o good_a name_n be_v impeach_v and_o when_o the_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v well_o do_v be_v bring_v into_o slander_n by_o evil_a person_n for_o they_o be_v teach_v to_o expect_v praise_n from_o christ_n and_o with_o a_o noble_a courage_n to_o contemn_v the_o praise_n that_o come_v from_o man_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v vain_a indeed_o man_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v greedy_a enough_o of_o praise_n wherefore_o augustine_n in_o his_o 13._o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la augustine_n augustine_n do_v cite_v a_o verse_n of_o ennius_n namely_o ennius_n ennius_n that_o all_o mortal_a man_n do_v fervent_o desire_v that_o they_o may_v be_v praise_v and_o no_o marvel_n see_v man_n be_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o god_n will_v have_v his_o praise_n to_o be_v most_o high_o celebrate_v but_o this_o desire_n must_v be_v reform_v least_o by_o our_o abuse_n it_o hinder_v salvation_n this_o may_v be_v do_v if_o we_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o paul_n in_o expect_v praise_n to_o come_v from_o god_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v count_v perfect_a and_o sincere_a augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n in_o his_o 13._o book_n of_o confession_n write_v that_o concern_v this_o matter_n he_o have_v much_o cause_n to_o be_v great_o grieve_v for_o he_o be_v oftentimes_o commend_v neither_o be_v it_o a_o easy_a thing_n to_o overcome_v the_o flatter_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o he_o say_v that_o he_o use_v this_o comfort_n that_o he_o know_v it_o be_v most_o sure_o determine_v by_o god_n that_o praise_n be_v a_o perpetual_a companion_n of_o pure_a and_o chaste_a life_n and_o hereof_o be_v not_o the_o ethnik_v ignorant_a when_o as_o they_o make_v praise_n to_o be_v as_o a_o shadow_n follow_v the_o body_n to_o keep_v continual_a company_n with_o virtue_n i_o ought_v not_o say_v one_o for_o that_o cause_n to_o live_v naughtilie_o that_o all_o man_n may_v hate_v i_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o hear_v i_o speak_v of_o but_o when_o we_o hear_v ourselves_o praise_v praise_n remedy_n against_o humane_a praise_n there_o must_v be_v use_v a_o double_a remedy_n first_o let_v we_o rejoice_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o our_o neighbour_n because_o they_o be_v so_o appoint_v by_o god_n and_o inspire_v by_o his_o spirit_n as_o they_o will_v praise_v and_o allow_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o shall_v judge_v worthy_a to_o be_v praise_v which_o benefit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o common_a another_o remedy_n there_o be_v that_o whatsoever_o praise_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o let_v we_o turn_v all_o that_o upon_o god_n himself_o apostata_fw-la the_o love_n of_o glory_n sometime_o drive_v man_n into_o madness_n julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la who_o be_v author_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n take_v special_a heed_n that_o we_o be_v not_o desirous_a to_o be_v praise_v of_o man_n for_o this_o desire_n be_v so_o pernicious_a that_o sometime_o it_o drive_v man_n to_o madness_n julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o sixth_o book_n of_o the_o tripartite_a history_n although_o otherwise_o a_o man_n wicked_a yet_o in_o humane_a philosophy_n and_o science_n of_o the_o school_n very_o well_o learned_a what_o time_n as_o he_o move_v war_n against_o the_o persian_n be_v so_o desirous_a of_o glory_n that_o in_o pride_n of_o mind_n he_o begin_v now_o to_o dream_n and_o imagine_v unto_o himself_o a_o glory_n whereby_o he_o may_v be_v equal_a with_o alexander_n of_o macedonia_n yea_o and_o he_o fall_v into_o so_o great_a a_o folly_n as_o he_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o alexander_n be_v translate_v and_o dwell_v in_o himself_o we_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 29._o rom._n 2_o 29._o that_o true_a praise_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v from_o god_n where_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o circumcision_n which_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n not_o in_o the_o flesh_n nor_o in_o the_o letter_n straitwaie_o add_v who_o praise_n be_v not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n and_o in_o
they_o tender_v their_o own_o matter_n they_o may_v have_v seem_v to_o wrest_v the_o sword_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o magistrate_n as_o they_o do_v which_o revenge_n their_o own_o injury_n god_n what_o we_o must_v special_o take_v heed_n of_o in_o do_v the_o business_n of_o god_n 33_o this_o also_o be_v to_o be_v add_v that_o man_n appoint_v to_o take_v in_o hand_n and_o to_o defend_v god_n cause_n though_o they_o may_v then_o do_v thing_n sharpelie_o and_o severelie_o ought_v notwithstanding_o preciselie_o and_o diligent_o to_o beware_v least_o under_o that_o pretence_n they_o follow_v their_o own_o affection_n the_o apostle_n when_o they_o desire_v christ_n to_o send_v fire_n from_o heaven_n upon_o the_o samaritan_o as_o they_o know_v have_v be_v do_v in_o the_o old_a time_n 54._o luke_n 9_o 54._o at_o the_o petition_n of_o elias_n be_v rebuke_v of_o the_o lord_n because_o they_o know_v not_o of_o who_o spirit_n they_o be_v which_o without_o doubt_n be_v a_o most_o fit_a answer_n for_o they_o who_o god_n send_v to_o execute_v these_o office_n ought_v not_o now_o to_o be_v count_v private_a or_o mere_a man_n but_o such_o as_o be_v prepare_v and_o instruct_v by_o he_o to_o supply_v his_o room_n upon_o the_o earth_n augustine_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o curse_v tyrant_n and_o to_o pray_v against_o they_o augustine_n but_o whether_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o private_a man_n to_o pray_v against_o ungodlie_a and_o cruel_a tyrant_n by_o who_o the_o true_a worship_v of_o god_n be_v hinder_v and_o to_o curse_v they_o augustine_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v always_o lawful_a for_o godly_a man_n to_o pray_v against_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o may_v be_v take_v away_o when_o the_o ungodlie_a forsake_v their_o wickedness_n for_o who_o unfeigned_a repentance_n we_o must_v always_o pray_v unto_o god_n but_o if_o they_o seem_v pass_v all_o hope_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o pray_v that_o their_o sin_n may_v once_o at_o the_o length_n come_v to_o a_o end_n namely_o that_o they_o be_v take_v away_o may_v cease_v both_o to_o hinder_v the_o worship_v of_o god_n and_o also_o to_o trouble_v the_o saint_n for_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o their_o sin_n shall_v range_v abroad_o unpunished_a since_o when_o it_o be_v leave_v unpunished_a it_o be_v mere_a unjustice_n but_o when_o the_o punishment_n of_o god_n be_v join_v to_o it_o than_o it_o have_v in_o itself_o less_o deformity_n augustine_n augustine_n wherefore_o by_o the_o same_o augustine_n god_n be_v very_o well_o call_v not_o a_o cruel_a punisher_n but_o a_o just_a corrector_n moreover_o see_v that_o holy_a man_n be_v very_o familiar_a with_o god_n and_o therefore_o so_o soon_o as_o by_o any_o heavenly_a revelation_n they_o be_v certify_v of_o his_o will_n they_o have_v a_o earnest_a love_n unto_o he_o can_v but_o allow_v his_o judgement_n yea_o they_o faithful_o pray_v that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v accomplish_v howbeit_o insomuch_o as_o they_o be_v man_n they_o be_v both_o sorry_a and_o also_o take_v it_o gréevouslie_o to_o have_v their_o neighbour_n so_o vex_v for_o which_o cause_n samuel_n mourn_v for_o saul_n 11._o 1._o sa._n 15_o 11._o although_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o he_o be_v reject_v of_o god_n jeremie_n also_o weep_v for_o the_o captivity_n 1._o jerem._n 9_o 1._o which_o be_v at_o hand_n and_o christ_n weep_v for_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o shall_v be_v destroy_v for_o they_o 41_o luke_n 19_o 41_o which_o be_v man_n indeed_o can_v choose_v but_o be_v sorry_a for_o their_o neighbour_n and_o for_o their_o own_o flesh_n when_o it_o be_v afflict_v compassion_n god_n require_v not_o of_o we_o a_o stoical_a lack_n of_o compassion_n neither_o do_v god_n require_v of_o we_o a_o stoical_a lack_n of_o compassion_n but_o of_o this_o matter_n if_o the_o reader_n desire_v to_o see_v more_o let_v he_o peruse_v my_o commentary_n upon_o the_o corinth_n and_o as_o concern_v this_o present_a matter_n i_o say_v that_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n in_o destroy_v or_o curse_v of_o these_o nation_n follow_v not_o their_o own_o hatred_n but_o the_o instinction_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v his_o lientenant_n and_o may_v be_v call_v his_o workman_n see_v they_o destroy_v those_o who_o god_n himself_o have_v declare_v to_o be_v his_o enemy_n and_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v by_o they_o of_o affect_v or_o affection_n in_o general_a out_o of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o aristotle_n ethic_n 34_o a_o affect_n be_v a_o certain_a power_n or_o faculty_n be_v what_o affect_v be_v whereby_o we_o either_o seek_v or_o shun_v the_o object_n lay_v before_o us._n and_o in_o live_a creature_n in_o that_o they_o be_v live_v and_o have_v sense_n it_o do_v ensue_v knowledge_n and_o some_o affect_n do_v ensue_v touch_v but_o some_o do_v accompany_v the_o cogitation_n and_o opinion_n those_o which_o follow_v of_o touch_v forthwith_o touch_v what_o affect_n do_v follow_v touch_v as_o the_o sense_n light_v into_o a_o object_n either_o agreeable_a or_o unagréeable_a do_v either_o pursue_v it_o or_o fly_v from_o it_o for_o when_o the_o sense_n and_o the_o object_n do_v agree_v the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o than_o it_o be_v pleasure_n but_o when_o it_o happen_v otherwise_o it_o be_v count_v grief_n and_o while_o the_o sinew_n be_v hurt_v there_o arise_v a_o great_a grief_n which_o grief_n undoubted_o be_v not_o a_o opinion_n or_o a_o cogitation_n as_o many_o have_v fond_o conceive_v for_o beside_o the_o cogitation_n or_o opinion_n the_o body_n itself_o be_v ill_o affect_v and_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o our_o opinion_n or_o imagination_n to_o change_v such_o manner_n of_o object_n for_o those_o which_o do_v cause_n grief_n will_v always_o hurt_v the_o sinew_n which_o sinew_n do_v apperteine_a to_o the_o feel_v and_o will_v vex_v the_o body_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n those_o object_n which_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v pleasant_a will_v always_o delight_v so_o that_o the_o body_n be_v not_o ill_o affect_v with_o some_o ill_a quality_n cogitation_n what_o affect_v do_v spring_n from_o the_o cogitation_n but_o those_o affect_n which_o do_v not_o ensue_v in_o touch_v spring_n and_o arise_v from_o the_o cogitation_n or_o imagination_n although_o there_o be_v no_o outward_a object_n present_a and_o they_o be_v the_o motion_n of_o the_o hart_n whereby_o we_o pursue_v or_o shun_v object_n according_a as_o the_o cogitation_n either_o true_o or_o false_o show_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v either_o profitable_a or_o unprofitable_a those_o affect_n be_v call_v passion_n call_v passion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o cogitation_n but_o be_v derive_v of_o they_o of_o these_o affect_n there_o be_v diverse_a sort_n for_o some_o of_o they_o be_v simple_a and_o other_o compound_v of_o the_o simple_a we_o reckon_v four_o gladness_n gladness_n gladness_n sadness_n fear_n sadness_n hope_n fear_n hope_n and_o fear_v for_o the_o object_n which_o be_v present_v unto_o we_o be_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n and_o the_o same_o be_v show_v by_o the_o cogitation_n either_o as_o present_v or_o by_o and_o by_o to_o come_v if_o good_a be_v show_v to_o be_v present_a there_o arise_v gladness_n which_o be_v a_o motion_n of_o the_o hart_n whereby_o it_o open_v &_o spread_v forth_o itself_o sweet_o embrace_v the_o present_a good_a but_o if_o the_o good_a be_v not_o present_a but_o be_v look_v for_o hope_n arise_v be_v a_o motion_n of_o the_o hart_n whereby_o it_o enlarge_v and_o prepare_v itself_o to_o embrace_v that_o good_a when_o it_o shall_v come_v but_o the_o evil_a when_o it_o be_v present_o show_v the_o hart_n do_v shun_v it_o for_o sadness_n be_v a_o motion_n of_o the_o hart_n whereby_o it_o draw_v itself_o together_o that_o it_o may_v avoid_v the_o present_a evil_n but_o if_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v to_o come_v be_v show_v than_o we_o fear_v and_o that_o affect_v be_v a_o motion_n of_o the_o hart_n whereby_o it_o draw_v itself_o together_o lest_o it_o shall_v be_v oppress_v by_o the_o evil_a to_o come_v these_o be_v the_o simple_a affect_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o live_a creature_n that_o they_o may_v not_o only_o use_v a_o knowledge_n for_o their_o own_o safety_n but_o also_o that_o if_o that_o knowledge_n shall_v be_v but_o a_o weak_a help_n such_o kind_n of_o spur_n may_v be_v join_v withal_o as_o may_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o our_o safety_n and_o call_v we_o back_o from_o thing_n that_o be_v hurtful_a unto_o us._n they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v wind_n whereby_o the_o ship_n be_v drive_v and_o they_o be_v place_v in_o the_o three_o kind_n of_o quality_n and_o albeit_o that_o the_o first_o and_o second_o kind_n be_v of_o very_o great_a force_n to_o the_o govern_n and_o rule_v of_o
of_o the_o property_n of_o draw_v together_o or_o of_o spread_v abroad_o when_o the_o object_n which_o be_v offer_v shall_v be_v good_a the_o heart_n spread_v itself_o abroad_o to_o receive_v it_o but_o if_o the_o object_n shall_v be_v evil_a than_o the_o humour_n withdraw_v themselves_o to_o the_o inward_a part_n and_o hence_o proceed_v paleness_n of_o the_o face_n and_o from_o hence_o arise_v blush_n according_a as_o the_o blood_n either_o retire_v unto_o the_o inward_a part_n or_o else_o pour_v out_o itself_o into_o the_o outward_a part_n and_o thus_o much_o shall_v suffice_v as_o touch_v the_o cause_n 37_o now_o remain_v opinion_n whether_o affect_v be_v opinion_n that_o we_o consider_v of_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o these_o affect_n be_v not_o either_o cogitation_n or_o opinion_n as_o the_o stoic_n think_v they_o to_o be_v secondlie_o that_o they_o must_v not_o be_v all_o condemn_v as_o vicious_a and_o evil_a first_o it_o may_v evident_o be_v prove_v in_o those_o affect_n that_o be_v call_v natural_a as_o be_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n which_o affect_v invade_v we_o without_o any_o cogitation_n also_o who_o will_v call_v it_o a_o cogitation_n or_o opinion_n when_o we_o be_v afflict_v with_o a_o dissolution_n of_o the_o whole_a with_o a_o break_n of_o the_o sinew_n or_o burn_v by_o flame_n or_o fire_n they_o may_v as_o well_o persuade_v we_o as_o touch_v the_o natural_a affection_n of_o parent_n towards_o their_o child_n which_o be_v not_o only_o vehement_a in_o man_n but_o in_o brute_n beast_n also_o howbeit_o since_o the_o matter_n be_v plain_a i_o think_v it_o needle_n to_o stand_v much_o thereupon_o now_o as_o concern_v the_o second_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v evil_a whether_o all_o affect_n be_v evil_a but_o some_o affect_n have_v their_o fault_n join_v with_o they_o but_o i_o will_v show_v that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v good_a and_o that_o those_o which_o be_v evil_a be_v evil_a through_o man_n fault_n not_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o first_o may_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o error_n of_o judgement_n for_o we_o do_v not_o always_o judge_v aright_o of_o the_o object_n which_o be_v before_o us._n that_o which_o be_v evil_a be_v otherwhile_o take_v for_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o that_o which_o be_v good_a be_v esteem_v to_o be_v evil_a but_o the_o affect_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v do_v accompany_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o so_o the_o fault_n pass_v from_o the_o judgement_n unto_o the_o affect_n 51._o acts._n 5_o 51._o the_o apostle_n judge_v the_o contumely_n which_o they_o suffer_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v honourable_a unto_o they_o and_o therefore_o depart_v with_o joy_n and_o gladness_n from_o the_o council_n but_o contrariwise_o when_o david_n be_v drive_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n by_o his_o son_n he_o sorrow_v because_o he_o see_v that_o his_o cast_v forth_o will_v be_v a_o offence_n unto_o man_n which_o know_v what_o god_n promise_v unto_o david_n by_o the_o prophet_n he_o see_v moreover_o that_o these_o thing_n do_v happen_v through_o his_o own_o fault_n and_o since_o that_o these_o be_v evil_n he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o sorrow_n either_o of_o these_o both_o david_n as_o the_o apostle_n judge_v right_o of_o the_o thing_n object_v albeit_o in_o diverse_a manner_n they_o judge_v of_o the_o thing_n that_o happen_v vain_a man_n do_v esteem_v flattery_n to_o be_v good_a thing_n indeed_o and_o therefore_o be_v delight_v with_o they_o other_o judge_v more_o right_o of_o they_o for_o they_o perceive_v they_o to_o be_v but_o mockery_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n do_v dislike_n of_o they_o those_o that_o be_v good_a man_n do_v rejoice_v in_o mere_a virtue_n for_o they_o judge_v right_o of_o they_o again_o thou_o shall_v see_v other_o which_o do_v hate_v they_o because_o they_o be_v infect_v with_o a_o corrupt_a judgement_n so_o as_o the_o naughtiness_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o affect_n proceed_v of_o the_o true_a or_o false_a judgement_n concern_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v object_v howbeit_o it_o be_v not_o requisite_a to_o say_v that_o all_o the_o affect_n be_v evil_a because_o many_o man_n be_v seduce_v by_o error_n do_v light_n upon_o those_o ill_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n for_o they_o which_o err_v not_o be_v not_o hurt_v by_o the_o affect_v of_o error_n reason_n ill_a affect_n be_v repugnant_a to_o right_a reason_n 38_o a_o other_o evil_o there_o be_v in_o the_o affect_v which_o in_o very_a deed_n proceed_v not_o of_o error_n but_o for_o that_o there_o be_v some_o which_o be_v adversary_n unto_o right_a reason_n such_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o other_o man_n good_n of_o murder_n of_o adultery_n and_o such_o like_a these_o affect_n must_v of_o good_a right_n be_v condemn_v but_o yet_o for_o these_o sake_n must_v not_o sentence_n be_v give_v general_o since_o there_o be_v other_o affect_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o right_a reason_n and_o sound_a judgement_n namely_o love_n towards_o virtue_n and_o hatred_n and_o anger_n against_o sin_n affect_n good_a and_o laudable_a affect_n which_o affect_v be_v agreeable_a to_o reason_n be_v not_o only_o honest_a and_o laudable_a but_o also_o very_o profitable_a for_o they_o be_v give_v as_o certain_a spur_n to_o godly_a life_n for_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o know_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a but_o we_o must_v be_v earnest_o stir_v up_o unto_o they_o for_o the_o affect_v be_v as_o it_o be_v sinew_n by_o who_o stretch_v forth_o or_o shrink_v in_o we_o be_v the_o earnestly_o or_o the_o lightly_a stir_v up_o who_o see_v not_o that_o this_o be_v most_o true_a that_o anger_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o whetstone_n unto_o fortitude_n we_o shall_v be_v very_o dull_a even_o unto_o honest_a action_n if_o we_o have_v not_o these_o provocation_n we_o shall_v be_v even_o as_o a_o ship_n in_o the_o sea_n destitute_a of_o wind_n wherefore_o the_o nature_n itself_o of_o affect_n be_v not_o evil_a since_o many_o of_o they_o be_v very_o profitable_a and_o honest_a undoubted_o god_n give_v the_o organ_n of_o these_o affect_n and_o he_o appoint_v humour_n to_o attend_v on_o they_o and_o knowledge_n to_o accompany_v they_o so_o as_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o especial_o since_o he_o in_o his_o law_n require_v such_o affect_n for_o he_o will_v we_o to_o love_v and_o to_o fear_v god_n to_o love_v our_o neighbour_n and_o servant_n to_o fear_v their_o master_n and_o full_a of_o such_o precept_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n avoid_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o impassibilitie_n of_o the_o stoic_n must_v be_v avoid_v that_o same_o impassibilitie_n then_o of_o affect_n which_o the_o stoic_n will_v have_v albeit_o that_o basil_n nazianzen_n and_o certain_a other_o of_o the_o father_n otherwhile_o seem_v great_o to_o commend_v must_v utterlie_o be_v refuse_v christ_n weep_v be_v sad_a unto_o death_n be_v move_v with_o mercy_n so_o than_o he_o be_v not_o without_o affect_n and_o therefore_o affect_n be_v not_o repugnant_a even_o to_o the_o perfection_n of_o our_o humane_a nature_n true_a it_o be_v there_o happen_v evil_n many_o time_n through_o the_o fault_n of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n but_o we_o must_v indevor_n ourselves_o to_o correct_v our_o vicious_a affect_n and_o to_o confirm_v and_o restore_v those_o that_o be_v good_a and_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n and_o this_o we_o read_v that_o the_o holy_a and_o godly_a heroical_a man_n do_v both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n these_o father_n do_v not_o follow_v their_o affection_n as_o guide_v by_o they_o but_o use_v they_o unto_o those_o virtue_n and_o noble_a act_n which_o god_n command_v and_o it_o be_v apparent_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o those_o heroical_a man_n be_v stir_v up_o of_o god_n with_o certain_a more_o vehement_a affection_n than_o other_o man_n be_v but_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v of_o reason_n whence_o it_o come_v that_o there_o be_v a_o dissent_v of_o the_o affect_v from_o reason_n from_o whence_o the_o exceed_a corruption_n of_o affect_n or_o else_o so_o great_a a_o disagréement_n from_o reason_n in_o some_o of_o they_o such_o as_o be_v the_o greedy_a desire_n of_o other_o man_n good_n of_o murder_n rape_n &_o adultery_n which_o can_v not_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n be_v allow_v have_v their_o original_n unto_o which_o question_n a_o answer_n may_v easy_o be_v make_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o that_o by_o one_o man_n that_o be_v by_o adam_n fall_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n but_o the_o philosopher_n which_o understand_v not_o this_o do_v fly_v unto_o temperature_n of_o the_o body_n and_o unto_o aspect_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o star_n howbeit_o as_o the_o thing_n itself_o declare_v they_o can_v not_o by_o those_o cause_n yield_v a_o
indeed_o for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n but_o because_o the_o most_o part_n so_o beléeve_v and_o common_a persuasion_n conceive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o say_v many_o god_n but_o to_o we_o which_o judge_v aright_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v no_o unaccustomed_a or_o strange_a thing_n in_o the_o scripture_n so_o to_o call_v thing_n as_o man_n use_v common_o to_o speak_v yet_o elsewhere_o when_o they_o speak_v proper_o they_o call_v every_o thing_n by_o his_o own_o name_n howbeit_o thou_o will_v say_v we_o never_o read_v that_o the_o child_n of_o esau_n be_v not_o legitimate_a i_o answer_v that_o esau_n have_v indeed_o a_o great_a posterity_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a or_o no_o the_o scripture_n show_v not_o whereunto_o add_v that_o by_o those_o nation_n among_o who_o he_o live_v they_o be_v count_v legitimate_a for_o those_o have_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherein_o it_o be_v command_v that_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v and_o they_o have_v woonderfullie_o corrupt_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n 26_o other_o cry_v parent_n what_o we_o be_v to_o account_v of_o marriage_n make_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o parent_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o our_o forefather_n what_o also_o of_o many_o which_o live_v at_o this_o day_n &_o have_v contract_v matrimony_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o parent_n shall_v we_o call_v they_o matrimony_n or_o else_o adultery_n and_o shall_v we_o count_v their_o child_n so_o bear_v for_o legitimate_a or_o for_o bastard_n i_o answer_v that_o when_o as_o such_o marriage_n be_v have_v in_o that_o time_n of_o darkness_n before_o the_o new_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n those_o man_n in_o very_a deed_n be_v not_o excuse_v from_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o because_o they_o be_v do_v public_o and_o by_o the_o permission_n of_o the_o magistrate_n i_o be_o persuade_v that_o such_o matrimony_n be_v firm_a and_o ratify_v if_o they_o object_n that_o in_o such_o marriage_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o parent_n want_v i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v therein_o and_o it_o be_v not_o therein_o for_o the_o magistrate_n have_v make_v the_o civil_a law_n subject_a to_o the_o canon_n which_o undoubted_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v do_v now_o in_o this_o all_o man_n agree_v and_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o magistrate_n have_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o people_n if_o he_o consent_v unto_o any_o thing_n there_o after_o a_o sort_n be_v the_o public_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n as_o at_o this_o day_n in_o parleament_n when_o they_o assemble_v for_o the_o payment_n of_o some_o sum_n of_o money_n although_o some_o private_a man_n of_o the_o people_n be_v not_o content_v with_o it_o yet_o because_o it_o be_v agree_v upon_o by_o the_o magistrate_n they_o also_o shall_v seem_v to_o have_v give_v their_o consent_n so_o indeed_o the_o father_n will_v not_o that_o the_o matrimony_n of_o his_o son_n shall_v be_v firm_a without_o his_o consent_n howbeit_o see_v he_o submit_v his_o will_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o magistrate_n he_o shall_v seem_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o have_v give_v his_o consent_n but_o now_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v know_v the_o magistrate_n ought_v to_o revoke_v the_o error_n so_o as_o the_o matrimony_n which_o hitherto_o that_o be_v in_o darkness_n have_v be_v contract_v against_o the_o will_n of_o the_o parent_n aught_o to_o be_v firm_a and_o the_o child_n bear_v of_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v legitimate_a nevertheless_o if_o the_o law_n shall_v afterward_o be_v repeal_v then_o shall_v they_o be_v no_o matrimony_n but_o only_o presuppose_v and_o in_o very_a deed_n whooredom_n fornication_n and_o adultery_n even_o as_o euaristus_n right_o judge_v howbeit_o while_o the_o law_n which_o be_v now_o in_o force_n be_v not_o abrogate_a i_o dissolve_v not_o the_o matrimony_n which_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v so_o contract_v neither_o do_v i_o say_v that_o the_o child_n bear_v of_o these_o marriage_n be_v bastard_n but_o i_o declare_v what_o do_v seem_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o honesty_n but_o euaristus_n may_v justly_o write_v so_o because_o in_o his_o time_n the_o roman_a law_n be_v of_o force_n which_o account_v not_o such_o conjunction_n to_o be_v matrimony_n further_o i_o add_v that_o father_n be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v when_o they_o let_v the_o marriage_n of_o their_o child_n only_o for_o religion_n sake_n because_o in_o that_o cause_n god_n must_v be_v obey_v in_o all_o thing_n who_o be_v the_o head_n father_n of_o allthing_n look_v the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o seven_o chapter_n verse_n 37._o of_o ravine_n or_o violent_a take_n away_o end_n in_o judge_n 21._o about_o the_o end_n 27_o this_o word_n raptus_fw-la ravine_n in_o the_o hebrew_n come_v of_o chatath_n the_o greek_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o latin_n rapere_fw-la which_o be_v to_o take_v away_o by_o violence_n not_o after_o every_o manner_n of_o sort_n but_o as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o certain_a fury_n and_o great_a violence_n their_o wherein_o rape_n differ_v from_o their_o wherefore_o ravine_n differ_v from_o theft_n because_o theft_n may_v be_v commit_v secret_o &_o without_o violence_n for_o which_o cause_n in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr iureiurando_fw-la in_o the_o law_n duobu●_n eris_fw-la it_o be_v write_v if_o a_o man_n swear_v he_o have_v not_o take_v any_o thing_n away_o violent_o yet_o be_v he_o not_o straitwaie_o quit_v of_o theft_n for_o although_o that_o thing_n which_o a_o man_n do_v be_v not_o ravine_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v theft_n so_o the_o civil_a law_n put_v a_o difference_n between_o theft_n and_o ravine_n but_o to_o what_o thing_n ravine_n pertain_v it_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr conditione_n triticiaria_fw-la in_o the_o law_n the_o first_o thing_n immooveable_a as_o house_n land_n &_o farm_n be_v enter_v upon_o but_o those_o which_o be_v mooveable_a as_o thing_n not_o have_v life_n beast_n &_o man_n be_v violent_o take_v away_o howbeit_o of_o what_o kind_n of_o rapt_a be_v here_o entreat_v of_o we_o treat_v here_o of_o the_o violent_a take_v away_o of_o thing_n mooveable_a yet_o nevertheless_o not_o of_o all_o but_o of_o man_n body_n that_o be_v by_o violence_n take_v away_o for_o lust_n sake_n this_o be_v another_o kind_n of_o ravine_n but_o not_o proper_a which_o augustine_n touch_v in_o the_o 19_o sermon_n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apostoli_fw-la and_o it_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o decree_n augustine_n augustine_n 14_o cause_n question_v the_o five_o in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-mi quid_fw-la invenisti_fw-la where_o he_o say_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v find_v must_v be_v restore_v which_o if_o thou_o do_v not_o thou_o have_v take_v they_o away_o forceable_o forsomuch_o as_o thou_o have_v do_v what_o thou_o can_v so_o that_o if_o thou_o have_v find_v more_o thou_o will_v have_v take_v away_o more_o there_o the_o glosser_n very_o well_o declare_v find_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v concern_v thing_n find_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v with_o thing_n that_o be_v find_v either_o say_v he_o the_o same_o be_v count_v for_o thing_n cast_v away_o as_o if_o the_o owner_n have_v cast_v away_o any_o thing_n the_o same_o if_o a_o man_n retain_v when_o he_o have_v find_v it_o he_o commit_v not_o theft_n but_o if_o that_o thing_n which_o be_v find_v be_v not_o forsake_v neither_o thought_n to_o be_v cast_v away_o willing_o by_o the_o owner_n as_o when_o a_o ring_n be_v find_v or_o a_o purse_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o wont_v to_o be_v cast_v away_o if_o thou_o detain_v it_o it_o be_v theft_n unless_o thou_o keep_v it_o by_o thou_o with_o a_o mind_n &_o will_n to_o restore_v it_o again_o so_o then_o thou_o must_v open_o tell_v that_o thou_o have_v find_v these_o thing_n whereby_o the_o owner_n may_v come_v to_o his_o own_o again_o as_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr furtis_fw-la in_o the_o law_n falsus_fw-la in_o the_o paraph_n qui_fw-la alienum_fw-la but_o if_o thou_o keep_v it_o by_o thou_o with_o a_o mind_n not_o to_o restore_v it_o it_o be_v theft_n and_o this_o do_v augustine_n in_o the_o place_n now_o allege_v reproove_v the_o very_a same_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o code_n de_fw-fr thesauro_fw-la in_o the_o law_n nemo_n and_o in_o the_o institution_n de_fw-fr rerum_fw-la divisione_n where_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o if_o a_o man_n find_v treasure_n in_o his_o house_n or_o ground_n it_o shall_v be_v his_o that_o find_v it_o howbeit_o if_o he_o find_v it_o in_o another_o man_n soil_n either_o he_o have_v get_v it_o by_o chance_n or_o else_o he_o seek_v for_o it_o if_o
to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o dance_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o herodias_n and_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o say_v at_o this_o day_n the_o christian_n deliver_v to_o destruction_n not_o half_a their_o kingdom_n not_o a_o other_o man_n head_n but_o even_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o he_o add_v that_o where_o wanton_a dance_n be_v there_o the_o devil_n danse_v together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n it_o be_v write_v laodicea_n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o christian_a man_n to_o danse_v at_o their_o marriage_n let_v they_o dine_v and_o sup_v gravelie_o and_o moderate_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o marriage_n we_o read_v also_o in_o the_o same_o council_n let_v not_o the_o clergy_n come_v unto_o show_n either_o upon_o the_o stage_n or_o at_o wedding_n they_o may_v indeed_o be_v present_a at_o marriage_n but_o afterward_o when_o there_o come_v in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v singer_n or_o player_n upon_o instrument_n which_o serve_v for_o dance_v let_v they_o rise_v and_o go_v their_o way_n least_o by_o their_o presence_n they_o shall_v seem_v to_o allow_v that_o wantonness_n ilerden_n the_o council_n of_o ilerden_n in_o the_o ilerden_n council_n which_o be_v hold_v under_o the_o pope_n symmachus_n and_o hormisda_n and_o under_o theodoricus_n the_o king_n the_o same_o be_v decree_v namely_o that_o christian_n shall_v not_o danse_v at_o marriage_n alliciodoren_n the_o council_n of_o alliciodoren_n in_o the_o alliciodoren_n council_n which_o be_v hold_v under_o pope_n deus_fw-la dedit_fw-la this_o restraint_n seem_v to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o clergy_n for_o there_o it_o be_v forbid_v that_o any_o of_o the_o clergy_n shall_v at_o a_o feast_n either_o sing_v or_o danse_v as_o though_o in_o a_o sort_n that_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o other_o schoolman_n the_o schoolman_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v certain_a schoole-divines_a upon_o the_o three_o book_n of_o sentence_n distinct_a 37._o who_o refer_v these_o prohibition_n only_o unto_o the_o holy_a day_n richardus_fw-la de_fw-fr media_fw-la villa_n say_v that_o to_o danse_v on_o the_o holy_a day_n be_v a_o sin_n most_o gréevous_a as_o though_o on_o other_o day_n it_o may_v be_v permit_v but_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n and_o sound_a counsel_n be_v far_o more_o severe_a than_o the_o opinion_n of_o these_o man_n who_o perniciouslie_o leave_v those_o thing_n at_o liberty_n which_o shall_v be_v restrain_v see_v therewith_o be_v join_v a_o danger_n unto_o soul_n and_o not_o a_o danger_n only_o but_o offence_n gréevouslie_o to_o be_v lament_v howbeit_o it_o seem_v that_o these_o man_n borrow_v this_o their_o doctrine_n wherein_o they_o forbid_v dance_v on_o the_o holy_a day_n out_o of_o the_o civil_a law_n for_o in_o the_o code_n in_o the_o title_n de_fw-fr ferijs_fw-la in_o the_o law_n dies_fw-la festos_fw-la in_o deed_n we_o release_v idleness_n on_o the_o feast_n day_n but_o we_o will_v not_o have_v man_n give_v themselves_o unto_o voluptuousness_n wherefore_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a on_o the_o feast_n day_n to_o use_v dansing_n whether_o they_o be_v do_v for_o lust_n sake_n or_o for_o pleasure_n 56_o but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o opinion_n the_o ethnik_n have_v of_o this_o matter_n aemilius_z probus_n probus_n aemilius_z probus_n in_o the_o life_n of_o epaminondas_n say_v that_o to_o sing_v and_o danse_v be_v not_o very_o honourable_a among_o the_o roman_n when_o as_o the_o grecian_n have_v it_o in_o estimation_n sallust_n sallust_n sallust_n in_o his_o oration_n against_o catiline_n write_v that_o sempronia_n a_o certain_a lascivious_a and_o unchaste_a woman_n be_v teach_v to_o sing_v and_o danse_v more_o delicate_o than_o become_v a_o honest_a matron_n and_o there_o he_o call_v those_o two_o thing_n the_o instrument_n of_o lechery_n cicero_n cicero_n cicero_n in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o office_n write_v that_o a_o honest_a and_o good_a man_n will_v not_o danse_v in_o the_o market_n place_n although_o by_o that_o mean_v he_o may_v attain_v to_o great_a possession_n and_o in_o his_o oration_n which_o he_o make_v after_o his_o return_n into_o the_o senate_n he_o in_o reproach_n call_v aulus_n gabinius_n his_o enemy_n saltatorem_fw-la calamistratum_fw-la that_o be_v a_o dance_a dizzard_n it_o be_v object_v to_o l._n muraena_fw-la for_o a_o fault_n because_o he_o have_v danse_v in_o asia_n and_o even_o this_o also_o be_v object_v against_o king_n deiotarus_n cicero_n answer_v for_o muraena_fw-la no_o man_n be_v sober_a danse_v either_o in_o the_o wilderness_n or_o at_o a_o honest_a and_o moderate_a banquet_n unless_o perhaps_o he_o be_v out_o of_o his_o wit_n the_o same_o cicero_n in_o his_o philippik_n among_o other_o vice_n upbraid_v anthony_n with_o dance_v but_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o nature_n and_o disposition_n of_o the_o man_n of_o the_o east_n and_o of_o the_o west_n part_n be_v not_o all_o one_o they_o be_v chéerfull_a of_o mind_n and_o nimble_a of_o body_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n delight_n in_o dansing_n 16_o 2._o sam._n 6_o 16_o for_o to_o omit_v other_o example_n david_n the_o king_n danse_v public_o and_o they_o which_o come_v now_o unto_o we_o out_o of_o syria_n do_v affirm_v that_o the_o christian_n which_o live_v in_o those_o region_n do_v upon_o the_o resurrection_n day_n and_o also_o upon_o other_o famous_a feast_n day_n come_v into_o the_o temple_n with_o harp_n &_o viol_n &_o sing_v psalm_n among_o themselves_o &_o danse_v together_o for_o their_o spirit_n be_v very_a light_n and_o we_o more_o sad_a &_o heavy_a howbeit_o they_o say_v they_o danse_v sober_o and_o modest_o the_o man_n apart_o by_o themselves_o and_o the_o woman_n by_o themselves_o of_o garment_n and_o apparel_n 57_o we_o see_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v first_o give_v unto_o man_n decent_a and_o thrifty_a garment_n 21._o in_o gen._n 3_o verse_n 21._o such_o as_o have_v respect_n unto_o a_o use_n and_o not_o unto_o a_o delicatenesse_n and_o prodigality_n and_o see_v that_o in_o all_o man_n justice_n comeliness_n and_o modesty_n ought_v to_o be_v observe_v we_o be_v teach_v here_o to_o use_v the_o same_o in_o our_o garment_n the_o end_n whereof_o be_v profit_n and_o honesty_n this_o must_v be_v observe_v that_o therein_o we_o pass_v not_o our_o bound_n either_o as_o touch_v the_o stuff_n or_o as_o touch_v the_o manner_n and_o fashion_n that_o these_o limit_n be_v appoint_v for_o garment_n it_o appear_v in_o that_o adam_n first_o make_v himself_o breeches_n for_o he_o be_v ashamed_a of_o his_o nakedness_n therefore_o a_o honesty_n must_n be_v regard_v god_n for_o this_o cause_n apparel_v man_n for_o that_o he_o will_v cast_v he_o out_o of_o the_o distemperature_n of_o the_o weather_n therefore_o utility_n be_v to_o be_v respect_v the_o jew_n have_v their_o frindge_n and_o the_o priest_n their_o proper_a kind_n of_o garment_n further_o herein_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o there_o be_v a_o diligent_a consideration_n have_v of_o the_o custom_n age_n and_o sex_n that_o there_o be_v no_o rash_a alteration_n from_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o country_n and_o what_o custom_n must_v be_v observe_v the_o sundry_a garment_n which_o be_v appoint_v unto_o priest_n do_v declare_v and_o in_o that_o the_o prophet_n be_v clothe_v after_o another_o manner_n than_o the_o common_a people_n the_o sex_n also_o must_v be_v consider_v 5._o deut._n 22_o 5._o for_o a_o woman_n must_v not_o wear_v the_o apparel_n of_o a_o man_n nor_o the_o man_n of_o a_o woman_n touch_v age_n the_o youth_n must_v go_v after_o one_o sort_n and_o the_o elder_a people_n after_o another_o the_o use_n of_o the_o country_n must_v be_v regard_v for_o the_o jew_n wear_v frindge_n on_o their_o garment_n 5._o matt._n 23_o 5._o how_o great_o man_n do_v sin_n by_o wear_v of_o wanton_a apparel_n we_o may_v guess_v by_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n 9_o 1._o pet._n 3_o 3._o 1._o tim._n 2_o 9_o who_o forbid_v woman_n to_o wear_v precious_a garment_n and_o superfluous_a deck_v of_o their_o hair_n that_o shall_v be_v trim_v or_o braid_v with_o gold_n or_o pearl_n who_o nevertheless_o have_v a_o colourable_a excuse_n namely_o to_o please_v their_o husband_n wherefore_o how_o much_o more_o must_v these_o thing_n be_v reproove_v in_o man_n us._n wherefore_o the_o use_n of_o garment_n be_v give_v us._n if_o then_o the_o use_n of_o garment_n be_v devise_v to_o withstand_v the_o provocation_n unto_o wantonness_n whereof_o a_o shamefastness_n be_v give_v we_o by_o god_n they_o be_v great_o to_o be_v blame_v which_o provoke_v the_o same_o evil_n by_o the_o curious_a fashion_n fineness_n and_o niceness_n or_o vanity_n of_o apparel_n also_o let_v all_o superstitiousnesse_n be_v avoid_v neither_o let_v there_o be_v any_o virtue_n or_o holiness_n attribute_v unto_o garment_n and_o let_v here_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v consider_v
sometime_o with_o safforne_o and_o so_o they_o beguile_v the_o beholder_n of_o they_o and_o with_o marvellous_a craft_n deceive_v they_o hereof_o come_v that_o which_o we_o have_v in_o common_a talk_n namely_o that_o a_o man_n cast_v a_o colour_n upon_o any_o thing_n when_o he_o deceive_v and_o it_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v utter_v in_o bargain_n in_o covenant_n and_o agréement_n without_o colour_n or_o counterfeit_n that_o be_v free_o in_o good_a faith_n absolute_o and_o plain_o these_o thing_n of_o the_o end_n the_o efficient_a and_o proper_a cause_n be_v the_o naughty_a desire_n of_o please_v cause_n the_o efficient_a cause_n the_o which_o sometime_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o pride_n and_o sometime_o by_o lust_n by_o pride_n because_o they_o will_v not_o have_v any_o to_o surpass_v they_o in_o beauty_n but_o will_v make_v a_o show_n to_o be_v far_o more_o beautiful_a than_o other_o by_o lust_n for_o that_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v beautiful_a more_fw-mi and_o more_o than_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o own_o natural_a favour_n have_v appoint_v and_o so_o to_o allure_v man_n to_o satisfy_v their_o lust_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n especial_o cyprian_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr velandis_fw-la virginibus_fw-la teach_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o inventor_n of_o such_o manner_n of_o trim_v for_o when_o as_o he_o think_v the_o evil_a angel_n have_v burn_v in_o the_o desire_n of_o woman_n and_o have_v abuse_v their_o body_n they_o for_o a_o reward_n of_o the_o licentious_a pleasure_n permit_v unto_o they_o make_v demonstration_n of_o these_o art_n and_o shameful_a ornament_n wherefore_o cyprian_n write_v that_o these_o be_v not_o the_o ornament_n which_o god_n make_v but_o those_o which_o the_o devil_n devise_v touch_v the_o cause_n efficient_a we_o have_v speak_v enough_o but_o the_o matter_n be_v nothing_o else_o in_o a_o manner_n matter_n the_o matter_n but_o filth_n to_o wit_n smoke_n soot_n foam_n and_o spittle_n and_o such_o thing_n for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o will_v loathe_v a_o man_n to_o touch_v they_o yea_o and_o sometime_o poison_n be_v mingle_v so_o that_o they_o with_o their_o counterfeit_a colour_n do_v not_o only_o wound_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o beholder_n but_o do_v also_o hurt_v their_o body_n of_o the_o form_n i_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v because_o these_o thing_n be_v temper_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o way_n and_o look_v how_o many_o counterfeit_a woman_n there_o be_v almost_o so_o many_o kind_n of_o false_a colour_n there_o be_v they_o be_v say_v also_o to_o die_v their_o face_n and_o that_o be_v both_o to_o colour_v they_o and_o to_o deform_v they_o it_o be_v also_o say_v that_o this_o vice_n be_v great_a charge_n to_o woman_n than_o to_o man_n because_o a_o woman_n through_o her_o defile_a and_o corrupt_a nature_n be_v desirous_a of_o beauty_n and_o as_o the_o greek_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v desirous_a to_o be_v trim_a howbeit_o paulus_n the_o second_o of_o that_o name_n pope_n of_o rome_n face_n pope_n paul_n the_o second_o use_v to_o paint_v his_o face_n as_o platina_n write_v at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o shall_v come_v abroad_o abstein_v not_o from_o false_a colour_n even_o to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v seem_v of_o the_o more_o beautiful_a countenance_n as_o he_o be_v very_o tall_a of_o stature_n but_o how_o shameful_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o challenge_v himself_o to_o be_v let_v other_o man_n judge_v certeinlie_o the_o ethnic_a poet_n pronounce_v that_o it_o best_o become_v man_n to_o be_v careless_a of_o their_o beauty_n and_o again_o far_o from_o we_o may_v such_o young_a man_n be_v which_o be_v curious_o trim_v like_o woman_n for_o julius_n caesar_n be_v desirous_a to_o cover_v his_o baldness_n caesar_n julius_n caesar_n wherefore_o because_o of_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v very_o many_o that_o the_o city_n have_v bestow_v upon_o he_o he_o most_o willing_o receive_v the_o laurall_a crown_n which_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o wear_v in_o a_o manner_n always_o and_o jerom_n write_v maximilla_n maximilla_n that_o maximilla_n the_o prophetess_n of_o montanus_n use_v stibium_fw-la which_o may_v note_v unto_o we_o by_o what_o spirit_n she_o be_v lead_v word_n the_o general_a word_n the_o general_a word_n of_o this_o vice_n be_v feign_v and_o also_o lease_v since_o they_o feign_v a_o countenance_n to_o themselves_o as_o they_o listen_v and_o they_o counterfeit_a beauty_n neither_o be_v wantonness_n far_o from_o it_o for_o when_o by_o nature_n they_o have_v not_o the_o worthiness_n of_o beauty_n they_o counterfeit_v the_o same_o as_o they_o can_v and_o we_o will_v not_o omit_v that_o there_o be_v diverse_a which_o have_v sometime_o paint_v their_o face_n not_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v appear_v the_o better_a favour_a and_o fair_a but_o because_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v more_o cruel_a fierce_a and_o horrible_a to_o behold_v terrible_a the_o briton_n die_v their_o face_n to_o seem_v terrible_a as_o it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o briton_n who_o die_v their_o face_n with_o a_o kind_n of_o herb_n like_a unto_o plantine_n as_o caesar_n report_v in_o his_o five_o book_n of_o his_o commentary_n and_o in_o india_n where_o be_v no_o small_a plenty_n of_o precious_a stone_n they_o be_v wont_v to_o make_v hollow_a place_n in_o their_o own_o flesh_n that_o in_o the_o hollowness_n thereof_o they_o may_v close_v in_o precious_a stone_n and_o that_o as_o well_o in_o the_o forehead_n as_o in_o the_o cheek_n these_o thing_n shall_v suffice_v for_o declare_v the_o nature_n of_o false_a colour_n now_o remain_v to_o be_v say_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v the_o same_o colour_n argument_n whereby_o some_o will_v prove_v it_o lawful_a to_o use_v false_a colour_n some_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a of_o who_o there_o be_v many_o schoolman_n who_o rather_o favour_n and_o make_v much_o of_o vice_n than_o pursue_v they_o and_o seek_v to_o weed_n they_o out_o first_o they_o allege_v certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o at_o the_o first_o view_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o their_o side_n secondlie_o they_o labour_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o reason_n 61_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o allege_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o seven_o chapter_n 34._o verse_n 34._o he_o that_o be_v not_o marry_v care_v for_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o lord_n how_o he_o may_v please_v the_o lord_n but_o he_o that_o have_v marry_v a_o wife_n be_v careful_a for_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o world_n and_o how_o he_o may_v please_v his_o wife_n the_o unmarried_a woman_n care_v for_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o she_o may_v be_v holy_a both_o in_o body_n and_o in_o spirit_n but_o the_o marry_a woman_n care_v for_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o world_n and_o how_o she_o may_v please_v her_o husband_n it_o be_v lawful_a therefore_o for_o woman_n to_o endeavour_v to_o please_v their_o own_o husband_n whereby_o they_o may_v retain_v they_o still_o to_o be_v content_a with_o their_o own_o wife_n for_o if_o they_o shall_v despise_v they_o they_o may_v easy_o incline_v to_o whoredom_n and_o adultery_n wherefore_o say_v they_o there_o be_v some_o good_a use_n even_o of_o counterfeit_n colour_n and_o further_o unto_o this_o purpose_n they_o draw_v that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o of_o timothy_n the_o second_o chapter_n 9_o verse_n 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v in_o trim_a &_o comely_a apparel_n and_o they_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v this_o when_o he_o give_v precept_n touch_v woman_n moreover_o they_o declare_v that_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n the_o twelve_o chapter_n it_o be_v write_v 23._o verse_n 23._o that_o upon_o those_o part_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v less_o honourable_a put_v we_o more_o honour_n on_o and_o our_o uncomelie_a part_n have_v more_o comeliness_n on_o and_o that_o therefore_o if_o any_o deformity_n be_v either_o in_o the_o countenance_n or_o in_o the_o eye_n it_o be_v convenient_a that_o we_o shall_v deck_v they_o more_o costly_a and_o because_o they_o be_v not_o so_o very_o blind_a and_o blockish_a but_o that_o they_o see_v this_o to_o be_v a_o great_a stop_n unto_o they_o that_o man_n by_o these_o painting_n and_o counterfeit_a colour_n be_v provoke_v unto_o lust_n they_o have_v invent_v certain_a crafty_a and_o subtle_a shift_n that_o with_o they_o they_o may_v shadow_v and_o colour_v their_o error_n 62_o first_n they_o say_v that_o we_o fall_v into_o the_o false_a argument_n which_o be_v call_v a_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o that_o which_o be_v in_o some_o respect_n unto_o that_o which_o be_v absolute_a it_o
therefore_o god_n give_v his_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n 17_o exod._n 20_o 17_o that_o we_o shall_v both_o in_o mind_n will_n and_o whole_o in_o all_o the_o part_n both_o of_o the_o soul_n and_o of_o the_o body_n abhor_v those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v forbid_v and_o on_o this_o wise_a these_o two_o commandment_n be_v one_o answerable_a to_o another_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o hart_n with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v to_o be_v repeat_v in_o all_o the_o precept_n that_o do_v command_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v and_o this_o last_o precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n which_o again_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v forbid_v and_o so_o in_o these_o two_o commandment_n be_v understand_v the_o pith_n and_o if_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v the_o very_a soul_n of_o the_o law_n as_o without_o which_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n can_v be_v full_a and_o perfect_a precept_n even_o the_o holy_a mortal_a man_n be_v guilty_a of_o those_o two_o precept_n and_o all_o mortal_a man_n be_v they_o never_o so_o holy_a yet_o be_v they_o accuse_v convince_a and_o condemn_v for_o the_o breach_n of_o either_o of_o these_o two_o precept_n for_o unless_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n shall_v succour_v we_o we_o have_v nothing_o before_o our_o eye_n but_o certain_a destruction_n because_o how_o free_a we_o be_v from_o lust_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v here_o augustine_n most_o plain_o declare_v in_o many_o place_n and_o especial_o in_o his_o 200._o epistle_n to_o asellicus_n the_o bishop_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v that_o in_o mind_n he_o may_v do_v that_o which_o he_o love_v and_o not_o consent_v unto_o the_o flesh_n which_o do_v that_o which_o he_o hate_v that_o be_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o lust_n at_o all_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o follow_v after_o his_o lust_n and_o straitwaie_o he_o say_v we_o shall_v one_o day_n come_v to_o the_o end_n thereof_o when_o the_o lust_n of_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v restrain_v or_o bridle_v but_o shall_v not_o be_v at_o all_o for_o this_o have_v the_o law_n set_v forth_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n not_o that_o we_o be_v here_o able_a to_o perform_v this_o but_o that_o we_o may_v profit_v in_o indevor_v ourselves_o towards_o the_o same_o and_o against_o julian_n in_o his_o sixth_o book_n and_o five_o chapter_n and_o who_o doubt_v but_o that_o lust_n in_o this_o life_n may_v be_v diminish_v though_o not_o take_v away_o 2_o but_o there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v that_o this_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n forbid_v not_o the_o naughtiness_n and_o vice_n of_o nature_n or_o the_o first_o motion_n whereby_o we_o be_v affect_v towards_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v forbid_v but_o by_o that_o commandment_n say_v they_o be_v only_o prohibit_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o will_n and_o of_o the_o mind_n and_o then_o at_o the_o length_n they_o confess_v that_o we_o sin_n when_o we_o give_v place_n unto_o those_o first_o motion_n and_o suffer_v sin_n to_o reign_v in_o us._n howbeit_o those_o thing_n which_o follow_v even_o in_o that_o same_o chapter_n do_v most_o manifest_o reproove_v they_o for_o paul_n show_v that_o he_o intreat_v of_o that_o lust_n which_o be_v burdensome_a unto_o the_o mind_n that_o serve_v the_o law_n of_o god_n 15._o rom._n 7_o 15._o and_o he_o add_v that_o by_o it_o he_o do_v that_o evil_a which_o he_o hate_v but_o these_o thing_n have_v no_o place_n where_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v join_v withal_o and_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o lust_n he_o cry_v out_o unhappy_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n and_o he_o add_v that_o he_o be_v thereby_o draw_v captive_a though_o he_o be_v unwilling_a and_o do_v strive_v against_o the_o same_o wherefore_o see_v this_o lust_n be_v of_o this_o nature_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o it_o shall_v be_v wrest_v unto_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o herein_o our_o adversary_n be_v excéedinglie_o deceive_a for_o that_o they_o think_v this_o precept_n be_v give_v in_o vain_a if_o it_o prohibit_v that_o which_o can_v be_v avoid_v in_o this_o life_n and_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a thing_n say_v they_o to_o command_v any_o thing_n unto_o the_o brute_n and_o foolish_a flesh_n and_o unto_o those_o part_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o be_v void_a of_o reason_n and_o understand_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o be_v of_o necessity_n move_v to_o do_v that_o whereunto_o they_o be_v ordain_v notwithstanding_o vain_a a_o commandment_n which_o can_v be_v fulfil_v be_v not_o give_v in_o vain_a these_o man_n ought_v to_o have_v remember_v that_o this_o precept_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n endue_v with_o reason_n and_o that_o not_o in_o vain_a or_o without_o purpose_n for_o god_n have_v create_v man_n to_o his_o own_o image_n and_o likeness_n wherefore_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o he_o shall_v have_v nothing_o in_o he_o which_o shall_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v the_o commandment_n which_o can_v be_v perform_v in_o this_o life_n give_v in_o vain_a as_o these_o man_n fain_o for_o the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v a_o far_a other_o end_n than_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v absolute_o perform_v of_o we_o or_o that_o we_o shall_v by_o the_o observation_n of_o it_o obtain_v righteousness_n wherefore_o lust_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n lust_n two_o sort_n of_o lust_n the_o one_o be_v a_o manifest_a consent_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o pertain_v to_o every_o one_o of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o anger_n and_o hatred_n perteine_v to_o this_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v lust_n and_o filthy_a desire_n perteine_a unto_o this_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n the_o other_o be_v a_o general_a lust_n which_o be_v a_o pronesse_n or_o inclination_n against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o be_v with_o all_o the_o motion_n thereof_o express_v in_o the_o last_o precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n but_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o doubt_n remain_v moses_n paul_n agree_v with_o moses_n for_o moses_n set_v not_o forth_o that_o precept_n so_o nakedlie_o as_o paul_n do_v but_o say_v he_o thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n after_o thy_o neighbour_n house_n his_o field_n his_o servant_n his_o maid_n his_o ox_n his_o wife_n the_o cause_n of_o this_o diversity_n be_v for_o that_o when_o as_o moses_n shall_v give_v the_o law_n unto_o man_n be_v rude_a he_o will_v more_o open_o and_o more_o plain_o describe_v lust_n by_o the_o object_n whereunto_o it_o be_v carry_v that_o thereby_o they_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o understand_v it_o but_o paul_n which_o see_v that_o he_o have_v to_o do_v with_o they_o that_o know_v the_o law_n think_v it_o enough_o preciselie_o to_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n suppose_v that_o it_o shall_v need_v no_o further_o explication_n 3_o neither_o also_o do_v moses_n himself_o reckon_v up_o all_o thing_n whereunto_o we_o be_v lead_v by_o lust_n sow_v moses_n reckon_v not_o all_o the_o thing_n into_o which_o lust_n be_v sow_v he_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o reckon_v a_o certain_a few_o thing_n which_o straitwaie_o for_o their_o homeliness_n and_o plainness_n shall_v be_v ready_a for_o every_o man_n to_o understand_v and_o so_o we_o see_v that_o god_n in_o like_a manner_n use_v the_o figure_n synecdoche_n well-néere_a in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o commandment_n and_o this_o have_v christ_n in_o matthew_n plain_o teach_v we_o 5_o matth._n 5_o when_o against_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n he_o defend_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o law_n for_o he_o teach_v that_o in_o this_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v be_v not_o only_o forbid_v handy_a stroke_n but_o also_o contumely_n hatred_n and_o wrath_n and_o in_o that_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n be_v not_o only_o forbid_v the_o unclean_a action_n but_o also_o the_o lustful_a look_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o inflame_v of_o the_o mind_n towards_o a_o woman_n not_o be_v thy_o wife_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n we_o may_v easy_o declare_v that_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v use_v the_o figure_n synecdoche_n further_o in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o commandment_n be_v command_v the_o virtue_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o that_o vice_n which_o be_v there_o prohibit_v for_o when_o we_o be_v forbid_v to_o bear_v false_a witness_n against_o our_o neighbour_n therewithal_o also_o we_o be_v command_v to_o defend_v the_o truth_n and_o earnest_o to_o maintain_v the_o good_a name_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o when_o we_o be_v forbid_v to_o steal_v we_o be_v also_o command_v to_o be_v liberal_a
they_o be_v dead_a say_v he_o which_o shall_v not_o have_v happen_v if_o they_o have_v together_o with_o the_o sign_n eat_v i_o by_o faith_n which_o be_o the_o true_a bread_n send_v down_o from_o heaven_n 11._o rom._n 4_o 11._o 15_o paul_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n when_o he_o have_v occasion_n to_o entreat_v of_o circumcision_n speak_v honourable_o thereof_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o unto_o the_o roman_n he_o call_v it_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n and_o we_o ourselves_o that_o be_v the_o faithful_a of_o christ_n say_v he_o be_v circumcise_v in_o baptism_n with_o a_o circumcision_n not_o make_v with_o hand_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n when_o he_o write_v thereof_o as_o it_o be_v obtrude_v by_o the_o false_a apostle_n say_v he_o to_o the_o galathian_o if_o you_o be_v circumcise_v 5._o gal._n 5_o 3_o 4._o and_o 5._o christ_n profit_v you_o nothing_o you_o be_v fall_v away_o from_o grace_n and_o you_o be_v become_v debtor_n of_o keep_v the_o whole_a law_n 2._o phil._n 3_o 2._o and_o unto_o the_o philippian_n he_o speak_v so_o contemptuouslie_o thereof_o 3._o 2._o cor._n 3._o as_o he_o call_v it_o concision_n the_o same_o do_v he_o when_o he_o write_v of_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o the_o which_o he_o speak_v diverslie_o according_a to_o the_o distinction_n that_o be_v bring_v no_o otherwise_o say_v christ_n unto_o the_o jew_n you_o only_o have_v respect_n unto_o carnal_a meat_n you_o have_v only_o a_o care_n for_o the_o belly_n you_o special_o follow_v idleness_n and_o therefore_o above_o i_o you_o prefer_v moses_n of_o who_o the_o father_n like_v unto_o yourselves_o have_v no_o other_o but_o earthly_a food_n but_o i_o be_o to_o give_v you_o heavenly_a food_n if_o so_o be_v you_o apply_v your_o faith_n thereto_o 16_o and_o that_o the_o thing_n may_v the_o more_o appear_v we_o learn_v of_o augustine_n in_o the_o 26._o treatise_n upon_o john_n augustine_n augustine_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a father_n as_o touch_v the_o sign_n be_v differ_v from_o we_o but_o as_o concern_v the_o thing_n signify_v they_o be_v all_o one_o by_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v perceive_v that_o as_o many_o of_o the_o father_n as_o be_v godly_a notwithstanding_o that_o they_o receive_v other_o sign_n than_o we_o do_v yet_o they_o have_v all_o one_o thing_n with_o we_o and_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o we_o be_v but_o they_o which_o be_v wicked_a and_o destitute_a of_o faith_n indeed_o take_v the_o outward_a thing_n but_o they_o be_v utterlie_o destitute_a of_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o they_o christ_n speak_v 49._o joh._n 6_o 49._o because_o they_o may_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o unbeléeve_a multitude_n with_o who_o he_o have_v then_o deal_v thou_o will_v say_v that_o the_o very_a same_o happen_v in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o ungodlie_a come_v thereunto_o do_v indeed_o receive_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n howbeit_o they_o have_v no_o fruit_n thereof_o but_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v unto_o their_o damnation_n whereas_o the_o godly_a and_o faithful_a person_n use_v not_o the_o simple_a and_o bare_a sign_n but_o through_o belief_n be_v therewithal_o partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o that_o which_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v with_o these_o man_n the_o same_o also_o come_v to_o pass_v with_o we_o and_o our_o sacrament_n for_o which_o cause_n there_o ought_v not_o such_o difference_n to_o be_v put_v by_o he_o see_v the_o selfsame_a thing_n come_v to_o pass_v as_o well_o in_o the_o one_o as_o in_o the_o other_o but_o this_o be_v meet_a to_o be_v consider_v that_o christ_n when_o he_o speak_v these_o thing_n in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n mean_v only_o of_o spiritual_a eat_n which_o be_v perform_v by_o faith_n for_o thereof_o augustine_n say_v augustine_n augustine_n why_o do_v thou_o prepare_v thy_o tooth_n and_o belly_n believe_v and_o thou_o have_v eat_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o sign_n be_v long_a time_n afterward_o deliver_v in_o the_o last_o supper_n which_o he_o have_v with_o his_o apostle_n where_o he_o add_v no_o new_a thing_n unto_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n except_o it_o be_v the_o outward_a sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o even_o as_o christ_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n which_o be_v then_o at_o that_o time_n so_o the_o jew_n against_o who_o he_o dispute_v have_v only_o a_o understanding_n of_o the_o outward_a eat_n therefore_o christ_n call_v they_o from_o that_o gross_a and_o earthly_a feed_n unto_o that_o which_o be_v mere_a spiritual_a of_o the_o which_o he_o then_o frame_v his_o talk_n and_o say_v that_o the_o father_n which_o be_v like_a unto_o they_o die_v in_o the_o desert_n and_o be_v not_o holpen_v by_o the_o meat_n offer_v unto_o they_o by_o moses_n &_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o die_v which_o receive_v that_o spiritual_a feed_n which_o he_o then_o entreat_v of_o and_o the_o death_n which_o he_o there_o mention_v be_v not_o this_o temporal_a death_n but_o everlasting_a death_n death_n our_o death_n if_o we_o be_v faithful_a can_v be_v call_v death_n howbeit_o our_o death_n of_o body_n so_o we_o be_v faithful_a can_v true_o be_v call_v death_n see_v thereby_o the_o way_n be_v open_a to_o life_n yea_o &_o that_o to_o the_o bless_a life_n so_o then_o manna_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o touch_v the_o institution_n thereof_o be_v heavenly_a &_o spiritual_a meat_n but_o all_o that_o do_v eat_v receive_v not_o the_o same_o spiritual_o only_o those_o receive_v it_o so_o which_o do_v eat_v it_o by_o faith_n neither_o do_v christ_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v many_o of_o the_o father_n as_o moses_n aaron_n josua_n caleb_n and_o other_o who_o faithful_o &_o to_o life_n receive_v that_o meat_n but_o this_o he_o deni_v namely_o that_o the_o outward_a meat_n or_o sign_n be_v take_v alone_o and_o by_o itself_o as_o they_o with_o who_o he_o speak_v regard_v the_o same_o have_v any_o virtue_n or_o utility_n as_o concern_v the_o spirit_n and_o so_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o attribute_v not_o severallie_o unto_o the_o sign_n that_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o thing_n 17_o david_n in_o the_o 78._o psalm_n make_v evident_a mention_n of_o the_o food_n give_v to_o the_o father_n in_o the_o wilderness_n say_v and_o god_n command_v the_o cloud_n 25._o psal_n 78_o 24._o and_o 25._o and_o open_v the_o door_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n where_o thou_o hear_v the_o prophet_n say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v then_o give_v from_o heaven_n refer_v manna_n from_o heaven_n be_v two_o way_n to_o be_v refer_v which_o say_v thou_o must_v as_o well_o refer_v unto_o the_o outward_a sign_n as_o unto_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n unto_o christ_n i_o mean_v who_o be_v thereby_o represent_v for_o the_o substance_n itself_o be_v manna_n be_v give_v out_o of_o the_o air_n or_o cloud_n and_o that_o region_n be_v very_o oftentimes_o in_o the_o scripture_n call_v heaven_n in_o the_o gospel_n we_o read_v 26._o matth._n 6_o 26._o behold_v the_o bird_n of_o heaven_n and_o it_o oftentimes_o speak_v of_o rain_v from_o heaven_n and_o such_o other_o like_o speech_n doubtless_o it_o be_v true_o say_v of_o christ_n that_o he_o come_v down_o see_v he_o have_v his_o divine_a nature_n out_o of_o the_o heaven_n who_o body_n also_o be_v by_o paul_n call_v heavenly_a 47_o 1._o co._n 15_o 47_o furthermore_o david_n in_o the_o same_o place_n add_v that_o man_n do_v eat_v the_o bread_n of_o giborim_n which_o word_n may_v be_v interpret_v of_o prince_n or_o noble_a personage_n the_o 70._o interpreter_n have_v translate_v it_o of_o angel_n which_o thing_n the_o chaldaean_a interpreter_n seem_v to_o expound_v as_o though_o manna_n be_v send_v down_o from_o the_o place_n of_o angel_n habitation_n other_o think_v it_o be_v therefore_o call_v angel_n food_n in_o respect_n of_o be_v bring_v forth_o in_o the_o cloud_n by_o their_o ministry_n and_o here_o i_o may_v easy_o acknowledge_v a_o figure_n to_o be_v as_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v the_o hebrews_n do_v eat_v a_o most_o noble_a bread_n which_o the_o angel_n may_v have_v use_v if_o they_o do_v eat_v bread_n as_o we_o common_o speak_v of_o excellent_a fare_n this_o be_v the_o meat_n of_o lord_n and_o prince_n and_o whereas_o by_o paul_n this_o meat_n be_v call_v spiritual_a it_o be_v signify_v that_o sacrament_n be_v no_o common_a sign_n as_o though_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v be_v there_o receive_v for_o else_o they_o shall_v only_o be_v extern_a &_o earthly_a meat_n and_o not_o spiritual_a furthermore_o god_n mock_v not_o neither_o do_v he_o deceive_v that_o he_o will_v promise_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o
say_v blessed_n be_v the_o womb_n that_o bear_v thou_o 28_o luke_n 11_o 27_o and_o 28_o and_o the_o pap_n that_o give_v thou_o suck_v christ_n answer_v yea_o rather_o happy_a be_v they_o which_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o keep_v the_o same_o but_o christ_n by_o this_o answer_n reject_v not_o the_o friendship_n of_o his_o mother_n but_o he_o show_v which_o be_v to_o be_v count_v the_o better_a degree_n of_o felicity_n beside_o this_o they_o allege_v reason_n the_o 10._o reason_n that_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n can_v take_v humane_a flesh_n upon_o they_o and_o endue_v themselves_o with_o our_o body_n who_o for_o all_o that_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o woman_n and_o what_o shall_v let_v say_v they_o but_o that_o we_o may_v say_v the_o very_a same_o of_o christ_n that_o he_o put_v on_o the_o form_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o take_v not_o the_o same_o of_o marie_n we_o answer_v that_o according_a to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n for_o christ_n to_o be_v clad_v with_o a_o humane_a body_n by_o any_o other_o mean_n than_o by_o the_o virgin_n womb_n but_o the_o similitude_n of_o angel_n appéer_v in_o humane_a form_n must_v not_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o they_o take_v no_o body_n upon_o they_o to_o be_v crucify_v to_o die_v and_o to_o redeem_v mankind_n but_o to_o execute_v the_o message_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o but_o christ_n to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v redeem_v man_n will_v be_v in_o very_a deed_n a_o man_n which_o have_v not_o happen_v if_o his_o body_n have_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o heaven_n see_v that_o celestial_a and_o terrestrial_a nature_n do_v differ_v more_o than_o in_o kind_n also_o they_o think_v hilarius_n hilarius_n that_o hilarius_n be_v on_o their_o side_n who_o in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la write_v that_o marie_n the_o virgin_n add_v nothing_o of_o she_o unto_o the_o flesh_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n beside_o the_o ministry_n of_o conceive_v bear_v and_o bring_v forth_o when_o as_o this_o sentence_n nevertheless_o do_v vantage_n they_o but_o little_a for_o hilarius_n most_o manifest_o bear_v witness_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o creature_n but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n add_v nothing_o of_o she_o as_o touch_v those_o three_o ministery_n which_o he_o mention_v of_o conceive_v bear_v &_o bring_v forth_o for_o the_o 4._o ministry_n have_v be_v to_o have_v have_v the_o company_n of_o man_n to_o have_v join_v with_o he_o and_o to_o have_v admit_v his_o seed_n which_o marie_n do_v not_o of_o her_o own_o 1._o look_v par_fw-fr 1_o place_n 12_o art_n 15._o many_o proof_n that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a humane_a body_n the_o first_o reason_n luke_n 3_o 28_o matth._n 1_o 1._o 9_o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o he_o have_v a_o true_a humane_a body_n it_o be_v prove_v many_o way_n for_o by_o the_o evangelist_n his_o genealogy_n be_v set_v forth_o the_o which_o by_o luke_n be_v finish_v in_o adam_n in_o matthew_n it_o be_v begin_v at_o abraham_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o hindrance_n that_o he_o name_v joseph_n as_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n because_o joseph_n and_o marie_n be_v both_o of_o one_o kindred_n wherefore_o both_o their_o petigrée_n be_v join_v together_o which_o whether_o it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o great_a grandfather_n grandfather_n or_o afterward_o it_o be_v no_o need_n at_o this_o present_a to_o inquire_v further_o reason_n the_o second_o reason_n matth._n 8_o 20_o 9_o 6_o and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n gen._n 3_o 15._o the_o three_o reason_n the_o four_o reason_n gen._n 22_o 18_o the_o five_o reason_n rom._n 1_o 3._o the_o sixth_o reason_n rom._n 9_o 5._o the_o seven_o reason_n gal._n 4_o 4._o gal._n 3_o 16._o the_o eight_o reason_n the_o nine_o reason_n christ_n everywhere_a pronounce_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o unto_o eve_n be_v promise_v the_o seed_n that_o shall_v break_v the_o serpent_n head_n and_o unto_o abraham_n be_v promise_v a_o seed_n wherein_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v bless_v and_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o rom._n write_v of_o christ_n who_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o again_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n of_o who_o be_v the_o father_n &_o of_o who_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v who_o be_v god_n over_o all_o bless_v for_o ever_o moreover_o unto_o the_o galathian_o we_o read_v when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v god_n send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n make_v of_o a_o woman_n make_v under_o the_o law_n and_o also_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n be_v treat_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n by_o which_o the_o blessing_n shall_v afterward_o come_v and_o the_o apostle_n urge_v the_o word_n seed_n that_o it_o be_v not_o speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n seed_n as_o though_o we_o shall_v understand_v the_o same_o of_o many_o but_o the_o scripture_n use_v the_o singular_a number_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v respect_n unto_o one_o man_n christ_n 8._o the_o ten_o reason_n 2._o tim._n 2_o 8._o unto_o timothy_n it_o be_v write_v remember_v thou_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o my_o gospel_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a but_o most_o evident_o of_o all_o do_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n prove_v this_o doctrine_n reason_n heb._n 2_o 16._o the_o 11._o reason_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n take_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n not_o of_o angel_n and_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v like_a unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n &_o be_v tempt_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o see_v his_o child_n be_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o also_o himself_o take_v part_n with_o they_o i_o mean_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n 11._o heb._n 5_o 2._o the_o 12._o reason_n heb._n 2_o 11._o and_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v our_o high_a priest_n which_o can_v suffer_v infirmity_n with_o we_o and_o be_v take_v from_o among_o man_n and_o again_o he_o that_o do_v sanctify_v and_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v be_v all_o of_o one_o and_o we_o be_v call_v his_o very_a brethren_n tertullian_n the_o 14._o reason_n tertullian_n 10_o tertullian_n bring_v another_o argument_n wherein_o he_o proove_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o very_a humane_a body_n nothing_o say_v he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o any_o matter_n but_o it_o retain_v some_o token_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o same_o because_o the_o body_n of_o the_o first_o man_n be_v wrought_v out_o of_o clay_n therefore_o it_o retain_v the_o kind_n of_o the_o two_o element_n for_o flesh_n represent_v the_o earth_n and_o blood_n the_o water_n token_n the_o body_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v earthy_a by_o many_o token_n and_o many_o thing_n declare_v we_o to_o be_v earthy_a in_o respect_n of_o our_o body_n in_o the_o earth_n thou_o may_v see_v clod_n in_o our_o body_n muscle_n the_o earth_n have_v stone_n our_o body_n have_v bone_n in_o the_o earth_n there_o be_v see_v river_n and_o flood_n over_o all_o our_o body_n vein_n be_v derive_v which_o water_n all_o the_o member_n with_o blood_n in_o the_o earth_n be_v spread_v the_o root_n of_o plant_n and_o tree_n in_o the_o body_n be_v place_v sinew_n in_o all_o the_o part_n in_o the_o earth_n be_v find_v pebble_n stone_n neither_o be_v our_o body_n destitute_a of_o gravell-stone_n nail_n and_o such_o other_o like_a the_o earth_n within_o her_o bowel_n and_o secret_a place_n have_v metal_n our_o body_n do_v hold_v marrow_n in_o the_o hollowness_n of_o the_o bone_n we_o see_v moss_n and_o herb_n to_o spring_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n also_o upon_o our_o body_n there_o do_v grow_v hair_n beard_n and_o bush_n of_o hair_n all_o which_o thing_n see_v they_o take_v place_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o adversary_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v christ_n of_o heavenly_a nature_n see_v these_o be_v token_n of_o earthy_a matter_n their_o opinion_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v probable_a if_o they_o can_v show_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n any_o token_n of_o the_o seven_o star_n of_o orion_n lucifer_n or_o arcturus_n for_o then_o after_o a_o sort_n they_o may_v prove_v the_o matter_n thereof_o to_o be_v bring_v from_o heaven_n ¶_o of_o the_o personal_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n into_o one_o person_n of_o christ_n look_v the_o dialog_n of_o p._n martyr_n special_o set_v forth_o touch_v that_o matter_n 11_o jesus_n in_o latin_a seruator_fw-la a_o saviour_n anoint_v a_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n jesus_n and_o christ_n in_o 1._o cor._n 1_o verse_n 3._o matt._n 1_o 21._o why_o prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n
man_n 7._o psal_n 22_o 7._o see_v he_o mount_v up_o from_o so_o base_a a_o servitude_n unto_o so_o high_a and_o noble_a a_o degree_n of_o dignity_n from_o a_o earthly_a condition_n unto_o a_o celestial_a glory_n out_o of_o a_o place_n subject_n to_o many_o infirmity_n and_o tribulation_n unto_o a_o state_n sure_a and_o free_a from_o misery_n from_o mortal_a flesh_n unto_o a_o immortal_a body_n final_o when_o as_o he_o be_v so_o thrust_v down_o ascend_v nevertheless_o unto_o the_o high_a state_n of_o the_o most_o excellent_a monarchy_n do_v it_o not_o appear_v to_o you_o that_o he_o have_v be_v very_o honourable_o lift_v up_o on_o high_a 23_o and_o that_o he_o be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a christ_n the_o sublimity_n of_o christ_n have_v attein_v chief_a principality_n paul_n do_v apt_o teach_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n say_v 20._o ephe._n 1_o 20._o who_o god_n place_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o heaven_n far_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o might_n and_o domination_n and_o above_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v not_o only_o in_o this_o world_n but_o also_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o he_o have_v put_v all_o thing_n in_o subjection_n under_o his_o foot_n and_o have_v appoint_v he_o over_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v head_n to_o the_o church_n the_o very_a same_o thing_n also_o do_v the_o same_o apostle_n put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o 7._o phil._n 2_o 7._o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n where_o by_o christ_n voluntary_a submission_n of_o himself_o even_o to_o the_o time_n of_o his_o glory_n he_o gather_v profitable_a and_o excellent_a doctrine_n in_o these_o word_n say_v for_o that_o he_o submit_v himself_o and_o become_v obedient_a unto_o death_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n therefore_o god_n have_v high_o exalt_v he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o name_n that_o be_v above_o every_o name_n that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v both_o of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o of_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n which_o say_v in_o very_o good_a right_n be_v agreeable_a to_o he_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n prescribe_v by_o himself_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 12._o mat._n 23_o 12._o he_o that_o will_v humble_v himself_o shall_v be_v exalt_v whereby_o also_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o the_o glory_n must_v be_v high_a and_o magnificent_a according_a as_o the_o submission_n be_v voluntary_a and_o see_v there_o never_o be_v nor_o never_o shall_v be_v any_o voluntary_a submission_n so_o abject_a as_o the_o same_o that_o appear_v in_o christ_n it_o follow_v thereby_o that_o of_o a_o most_o deserve_a right_a he_o be_v advance_v above_o every_o creature_n that_o be_v most_o high_a many_o affliction_n and_o misery_n do_v he_o suffer_v while_o he_o live_v here_o among_o man_n now_o he_o enjoy_v most_o bless_a rest_n and_o be_v safe_a as_o well_o in_o body_n as_o in_o soul_n from_o all_o trouble_n and_o disquietness_n he_o so_o pass_v from_o the_o most_o shameful_a and_o ignominious_a death_n unto_o the_o most_o excellent_a life_n as_o he_o be_v now_o all_o whole_o bless_v and_o immortal_a wherefore_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n say_v 9_o rom._n 6_o 9_o that_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a die_v no_o more_o death_n have_v no_o more_o power_n over_o he_o now_o then_o if_o he_o be_v altogether_o free_a from_o death_n he_o must_v of_o necessity_n also_o be_v rid_v from_o all_o infirmity_n and_o suffering_n which_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v the_o minister_n and_o soldier_n of_o death_n there_o be_v none_o but_o do_v sufficient_o understand_v how_o far_o distant_a heaven_n be_v from_o earth_n in_o like_a manner_n also_o must_v we_o consider_v that_o the_o same_o high_a state_n unto_o the_o which_o christ_n be_v now_o carry_v do_v even_o as_o much_o differ_v from_o that_o state_n to_o the_o which_o he_o submit_v himself_o while_o he_o live_v here_o among_o man_n 24_o and_o albeit_o that_o difference_n between_o the_o earthly_a and_o heavenly_a state_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v ample_a this_o nevertheless_o be_v certain_a that_o i_o procee_v not_o so_o far_o in_o these_o word_n as_o paul_n do_v who_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n call_v that_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v restore_v to_o we_o in_o the_o last_o resurrection_n not_o celestial_a but_o spiritual_a it_o be_v sow_v say_v he_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o a_o spiritual_a body_n 44_o 1._o co._n 15_o 44_o he_o mean_v not_o that_o christ_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o shall_v rise_v with_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v flesh_n bone_n blood_n distinct_a member_n and_o final_o a_o true_a body_n for_o without_o doubt_n the_o truth_n and_o property_n of_o humane_a nature_n shall_v still_o remain_v but_o he_o call_v it_o a_o spiritual_a body_n because_o that_o same_o noble_a nature_n and_o form_n unto_o the_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v restore_v shall_v not_o flow_v from_o a_o earthly_a original_n such_o as_o humane_a seed_n be_v but_o from_o the_o power_n of_o god_n spirit_n furthermore_o the_o body_n be_v raise_v up_o shall_v be_v adorn_v with_o new_a quality_n which_o shall_v draw_v near_o unto_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o unto_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n shall_v justly_o be_v call_v spiritual_a wherefore_o he_o that_o right_o shall_v weigh_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n while_o he_o name_v it_o a_o spiritual_a body_n will_v not_o allege_v the_o same_o against_o a_o corporal_a body_n but_o against_o a_o earthly_a mortal_a and_o corrupt_a body_n wherefore_o he_o add_v these_o word_n it_o be_v sow_v a_o infamous_a body_n it_o rise_v a_o glorious_a body_n it_o be_v sow_v in_o weakness_n it_o rise_v in_o power_n it_o be_v sow_v a_o natural_a body_n it_o rise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n in_o a_o body_n raise_v up_o be_v no_o infirmity_n or_o natural_a motion_n to_o resist_v the_o spirit_n &_o no_o heaviness_n or_o grossness_n so_o great_a but_o that_o it_o chéerefullie_o obei_v the_o right_a affect_n of_o the_o spirit_n howsoever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v sufficient_o confirm_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v speak_v that_o the_o name_n of_o spiritual_a do_v in_o very_o good_a right_n apperteine_a unto_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v raise_v up_o because_o it_o be_v somewhat_o more_o than_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v heavenly_a for_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n as_o it_o be_v add_v in_o this_o créed_a not_o only_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o also_o be_v carry_v above_o heaven_n &_o there_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a thereby_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o what_o be_v mean_v thereby_o which_o manner_n of_o speech_n see_v it_o lay_v before_o our_o eye_n a_o certain_a humane_a form_n we_o must_v diligent_o ponder_v from_o whence_o it_o be_v derive_v i_o say_v therefore_o that_o no_o other_o be_v place_v at_o the_o princess_n side_n but_o those_o who_o prince_n favour_v have_v exalt_v to_o some_o high_a degree_n of_o dignity_n and_o among_o those_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o this_o honour_n no_o other_o be_v place_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n but_o those_o which_o be_v advance_v to_o the_o high_a room_n of_o honour_n or_o power_n next_o the_o prince_n but_o this_o which_o here_o be_v declare_v touch_v christ_n we_o must_v understand_v to_o be_v altogether_o figurativelie_o speak_v of_o christ_n see_v god_n be_v without_o body_n hand_n &_o side_n neither_o have_v he_o right_a hand_n or_o leave_v but_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n we_o be_v give_v to_o understand_v that_o christ_n in_o that_o he_o be_v man_n be_v by_o god_n endue_v after_o the_o resurrection_n with_o such_o honour_n &_o dignity_n as_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o his_o whole_a empire_n that_o not_o only_o can_v be_v prefer_v above_o he_o but_o not_o compare_v with_o he_o 25_o but_o this_o be_v now_o declare_v namely_o christ_n the_o fruit_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o glory_n of_o christ_n unto_o what_o high_a glory_n christ_n by_o his_o resurrection_n ascend_v and_o the_o same_o be_v set_v forth_o as_o plain_n as_o the_o capacity_n of_o they_o to_o who_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v will_v bear_v and_o as_o the_o occasion_n of_o my_o own_o leisure_n will_v give_v i_o leave_v it_o shall_v be_v very_o necessary_a to_o add_v what_o profit_n the_o same_o may_v bring_v unto_o we_o whereby_o also_o we_o shall_v understand_v unto_o what_o use_n we_o ought_v to_o refer_v the_o same_o for_o see_v there_o be_v no_o action_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o of_o very_o great_a importance_n to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o our_o
the_o body_n of_o abraham_n be_v dead_a and_o also_o the_o womb_n of_o sara_n in_o which_o word_n chrysostome_n say_v be_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o resurrection_n which_o we_o believe_v shall_v come_v for_o if_o god_n be_v able_a to_o do_v these_o thing_n then_o can_v there_o be_v no_o want_n in_o he_o either_o of_o mean_n or_o power_n to_o restore_v the_o dead_a to_o life_n again_o god_n what_o faith_n confirm_v abraham_n to_o obey_v god_n and_o undoubted_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o this_o faith_n be_v no_o small_a help_n unto_o abraham_n for_o move_v of_o he_o to_o sacrifice_v his_o son_n according_a as_o god_n have_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n for_o though_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o promise_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v posterity_n by_o isaac_n yet_o he_o see_v that_o although_o he_o be_v slay_v yet_o there_o be_v place_n still_o remain_v for_o that_o promise_n for_o he_o beléeve_v that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o raise_v he_o up_o although_o he_o be_v slay_v and_o make_v he_o to_o live_v again_o and_o how_o praise-woorthie_a the_o faith_n of_o that_o patriarch_n be_v paul_n declare_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v not_o a_o regard_n unto_o his_o own_o dead_a body_n or_o to_o the_o dead_a womb_n of_o sara_n but_o give_v the_o glory_n unto_o god_n be_v most_o assure_o persuade_v that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v and_o bring_v to_o pass_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v promise_v ambrose_n by_o a_o antithesis_fw-la or_o contrary_a position_n declare_v the_o excellency_n of_o this_o faith_n for_o he_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o incredulity_n of_o zacharie_n 18._o luke_n 1_o 18._o unto_o who_o when_o the_o angel_n show_v of_o the_o birth_n of_o john_n baptist_n yet_o he_o remain_v still_o in_o unbeléefe_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v reproove_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o tongue_n so_o tie_v that_o he_o can_v not_o declare_v it_o which_o punishment_n be_v very_o convenient_a for_o that_o offence_n for_o they_o which_o believe_v not_o do_v neither_o speak_v nor_o confess_v abraham_n consider_v with_o himself_o although_o i_o be_o now_o by_o nature_n past_o child_n get_v and_o be_o become_v barren_a yet_o the_o power_n and_o might_n of_o god_n be_v not_o subject_a unto_o the_o impediment_n of_o creature_n for_o god_n can_v beyond_o the_o accustom_a manner_n and_o course_n of_o nature_n bring_v to_o pass_v whatsoever_o he_o will_n wherefore_o although_o i_o by_o my_o ability_n can_v beget_v a_o child_n yet_o god_n can_v make_v his_o promise_n excellent_a with_o a_o miracle_n whereby_o he_o may_v excee_v the_o order_n of_o nature_n the_o rabbin_n of_o the_o hebrews_n say_v that_o abram_n beget_v not_o but_o abraham_n beget_v because_o say_v they_o therein_o be_v put_v the_o aspiration_n he_o be_v a_o letter_n pertain_v to_o the_o name_n tetragrammaton_fw-gr as_o if_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v say_v the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v add_v he_o which_o can_v not_o beget_v now_o beget_v child_n augustine_n in_o his_o question_n upon_o genesis_n think_v that_o this_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o absolute_o to_o be_v understand_v for_o we_o read_v that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o sara_n abraham_n have_v many_o child_n by_o his_o wife_n chetura_n 1._o gen._n 25_o 1._o which_o he_o afterward_o marry_v and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o natural_a philosopher_n be_v that_o man_n of_o great_a year_n can_v beget_v child_n of_o old_a woman_n but_o yet_o they_o may_v of_o young_a maiden_n wherefore_o he_o think_v that_o in_o this_o place_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o body_n of_o abraham_n be_v dead_a as_o touch_v sara_n his_o wife_n which_o be_v now_o ninety_o year_n old_a but_o this_o exposition_n have_v no_o such_o assure_a cause_n to_o compel_v we_o to_o think_v it_o to_o be_v true_a for_o in_o that_o abraham_n beget_v child_n of_o chetura_n sara_n be_v now_o dead_a that_o may_v come_v by_o this_o mean_n that_o god_n have_v now_o beside_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n restore_v strength_n unto_o he_o for_o beget_v of_o child_n neither_o make_v that_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n which_o origin_n affirm_v who_o upon_o this_o place_n write_v that_o the_o body_n of_o abraham_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v dead_a because_o he_o now_o live_v chastelie_o with_o his_o wife_n neither_o have_v he_o any_o more_o fellowship_n with_o she_o but_o he_o commend_v he_o for_o that_o when_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o advertisement_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v issue_n by_o his_o wife_n he_o again_o go_v in_o unto_o she_o these_o thing_n as_o it_o appear_v be_v devise_v of_o his_o own_o head_n for_o they_o can_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o history_n now_o the_o apostle_n be_v in_o hand_n to_o commend_v the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n for_o that_o he_o constant_o give_v assent_v unto_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n although_o as_o well_o his_o own_o nature_n as_o his_o wife_n be_v utterlie_o against_o it_o laugh_v whether_o abraham_n doubt_v when_o a_o child_n be_v promise_v he_o verse_n 17._o both_o abraham_n &_o sara_n laugh_v 7_o but_o whether_o abraham_n any_o thing_n doubt_v when_o god_n promise_v unto_o he_o a_o child_n the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o leave_v in_o suspense_n for_o in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o genesis_n it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o laugh_v and_o say_v shall_v a_o child_n be_v bear_v to_o one_o of_o a_o hundred_o year_n of_o age_n and_o shall_v sara_n bring_v forth_o a_o child_n be_v ninety_o year_n of_o age_n i_o will_v to_o god_n ishmael_n may_v live_v in_o thy_o sight_n these_o word_n have_v a_o show_n both_o of_o joy_n and_o of_o admiration_n yet_o nevertheless_o be_v join_v with_o some_o doubt_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n do_v this_o scripture_n make_v mention_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n which_o be_v so_o high_o commend_v shall_v in_o no_o wise_a be_v think_v to_o have_v be_v without_o mistrust_n which_o be_v accustom_v to_o spring_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o humane_a sense_n but_o because_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o patriarch_n overcome_v these_o mistrust_n therefore_o it_o be_v praise_v neither_o do_v we_o read_v there_o 12._o gen._n 18_o 12._o that_o abraham_n be_v accuse_v of_o incredulity_n by_o god_n as_o sara_n be_v who_o in_o like_a manner_n laugh_v and_o if_o a_o man_n weigh_v the_o outward_a laughter_n they_o be_v both_o alike_o but_o god_n which_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n understand_v right_o well_o the_o faith_n of_o either_o of_o they_o holy_a man_n although_o they_o beléeve_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n yet_o sometime_o faith_n the_o saint_n to_o confirm_v their_o faith_n sometime_o require_v miracle_n judg._n 6_o 17._o 2_o king_n 20_o 8_o a_o remedy_n against_o a_o weak_a faith_n through_o humane_a weakness_n be_v in_o some_o doubt_n and_o thereof_o it_o come_v oftentimes_o to_o pass_v that_o they_o require_v sign_n and_o miracle_n for_o strengthen_v of_o their_o imbecility_n which_o thing_n we_o read_v of_o gedeon_n and_o king_n ezechias_n but_o in_o this_o place_n be_v show_v a_o remedy_n against_o such_o temptation_n namely_o that_o we_o shall_v call_v our_o thought_n back_o from_o earthly_a impediment_n and_o fire_v our_o eye_n only_o upon_o the_o power_n of_o god_n of_o this_o thing_n the_o angel_n admonish_v the_o bless_a virgin_n say_v nothing_o shall_v be_v impossible_a with_o god_n doubt_v luke_n 1_o 37._o whether_o the_o bless_a virgin_n doubt_v although_o it_o appear_v not_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o virgin_n that_o she_o doubt_v but_o only_o she_o ask_v how_o that_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v for_o she_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o as_o the_o angel_n have_v tell_v she_o she_o shall_v conceive_v and_o that_o straitwaie_o but_o because_o she_o see_v that_o she_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o couple_v in_o matrimony_n although_o she_o be_v betroth_v she_o demand_v how_o that_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v whether_o she_o shall_v wait_v till_o she_o be_v join_v in_o matrimony_n or_o whether_o it_o shall_v by_o any_o other_o mean_v come_v to_o pass_v wherefore_o the_o angel_n in_o his_o answer_n comprehend_v two_o principal_a point_n the_o one_o be_v that_o by_o the_o same_o he_o may_v remove_v mistrust_n if_o any_o such_o have_v peradventure_o stick_v in_o the_o virgin_n mind_n for_o he_o say_v with_o god_n nothing_o shall_v be_v impossible_a the_o second_o point_n be_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o conceive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v he_o shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v overshadowe_v thou_o but_o whereas_o some_o feign_v that_o she_o ask_v this_o because_o she_o have_v vow_v her_o virginity_n unto_o god_n this_o need_v no_o long_a confutation_n special_o vow_n the_o bless_a virgin_n make_v no_o vow_n see_v we_o be_v by_o the_o history_n itself_o teach_v that_o
wise_a and_o foolish_a virgin_n how_o far_o forth_o faith_n agree_v with_o fear_n 9_o moreover_o that_o say_v of_o paul_n salvation_n in_o rom._n 11_o verse_n 22._o john_n 5_o 24._o no_o godly_a man_n be_v uncerteine_a of_o his_o salvation_n otherwise_o thou_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o seem_v to_o make_v against_o faith_n none_o which_o beléeve_v aught_o as_o touch_v himself_o to_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o for_o faith_n suffer_v not_o this_o persuasion_n to_o take_v place_n the_o lord_n say_v that_o he_o which_o believe_v pass_v from_o death_n unto_o life_n not_o every_o kind_n of_o life_n but_o unto_o eternal_a life_n which_o be_v now_o already_o begin_v and_o shall_v be_v accomplish_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v wherefore_o see_v that_o eternal_a life_n be_v promise_v unto_o we_o we_o ought_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o doubt_v thereof_o every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a beléeve_v that_o he_o be_v adopt_v by_o god_n into_o his_o son_n and_o that_o he_o be_v choose_v unto_o eternal_a life_n wherefore_o it_o shall_v be_v unto_o he_o as_o he_o beléeve_v faith_n the_o etymology_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o etymology_n of_o this_o word_n faith_n be_v think_v by_o many_o to_o be_v draw_v from_o hence_o to_o wit_n if_o that_o be_v do_v which_o be_v speak_v howbeit_o he_o which_o so_o beléeve_v ought_v always_o to_o be_v mindful_a of_o perseverance_n and_o not_o to_o live_v looselie_o and_o ought_v also_o to_o crave_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n his_o gift_n and_o grace_n to_o abide_v in_o his_o goodness_n touch_v the_o obteinement_n whereof_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o doubt_v see_v both_o god_n have_v promise_v it_o unto_o he_o and_o also_o that_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a can_v be_v pour_v out_o with_o doubt_v as_o the_o apostle_n james_n testify_v howbeit_o 6._o james._n 1._o 6._o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o take_v diligent_a heed_n to_o our_o flesh_n see_v it_o be_v weak_a and_o every_o way_n unclean_a unclean_a we_o must_v take_v heed_n to_o our_o flesh_n see_v it_o be_v weak_a and_o unclean_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o nature_n thereof_o but_o may_v be_v condemn_v wherefore_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n stir_v we_o up_o to_o bridle_v the_o pride_n thereof_o and_o to_o break_v the_o security_n of_o the_o same_o and_o also_o to_o shake_v off_o sluggishness_n but_o for_o the_o retain_v still_o of_o certainty_n we_o must_v fly_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v write_v a_o little_a after_o 29_o rom._n 11_o 29_o namely_o that_o the_o gift_n and_o call_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n and_o that_o we_o may_v see_v how_o profitable_a this_o admonition_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v faithful_a and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o any_o respect_n vain_a 20._o what_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v as_o touch_v the_o church_n and_o what_o not_o matt._n 28_o 20._o we_o will_v use_v this_o distribution_n first_o to_o see_v as_o touch_v the_o church_n what_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o must_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a fear_n that_o it_o shall_v ever_o fail_v for_o christ_n promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o it_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n indeed_o it_o may_v be_v tempt_v sift_v and_o shake_v but_o overthrow_v it_o can_v be_v wherefore_o let_v we_o pray_v that_o the_o cross_n temptation_n and_o persecution_n thereof_o may_v be_v assuage_v and_o turn_v to_o good_a but_o touch_v particular_a church_n fail_v particular_a church_n may_v fail_v because_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o they_o may_v be_v transfer_v we_o do_v pray_v as_o well_o against_o their_o continual_a temptation_n as_o also_o that_o with_o they_o and_o especial_o with_o our_o church_n may_v abide_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o concern_v our_o posterity_n also_o there_o be_v cause_n why_o we_o shall_v fear_v posterity_n we_o be_v to_o fear_v touch_v our_o posterity_n because_o the_o promise_n be_v indefinitelie_o set_v forth_o and_o unless_o the_o same_o be_v draw_v more_o narrow_a through_o election_n and_o predestination_n it_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o comprehend_v they_o even_o as_o all_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o comprehend_v in_o the_o promise_n and_o touch_v infant_n we_o may_v also_o judge_v the_o like_a in_o very_a deed_n the_o covenant_n and_o promise_n exclude_v they_o not_o nay_o rather_o they_o be_v general_o signify_v in_o these_o word_n wherein_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o will_v be_v thy_o god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o seed_n 7._o gen._n 17_o 7._o under_o which_o promise_n we_o baptise_v they_o and_o visible_o incorporate_v they_o into_o the_o church_n who_o yet_o when_o they_o come_v to_o age_n may_v reject_v the_o covenant_n and_o contemn_v the_o gospel_n whereby_o be_v make_v manifest_a that_o they_o in_o very_a deed_n pertein_v not_o to_o election_n and_o unto_o the_o promise_n wherefore_o we_o may_v justly_o fear_v lest_o they_o shall_v not_o stand_v as_o we_o see_v happen_v in_o ishmael_n and_o esau_n there_o be_v moreover_o in_o the_o church_n some_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v which_o believe_v but_o for_o a_o time_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o temptation_n step_v back_o as_o do_v judas_n and_o they_o which_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n deny_v christ_n wherefore_o for_o these_o also_o we_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o be_v afraid_a as_o touch_v those_o which_o sincere_o believe_v in_o christ_n although_o they_o have_v a_o confidence_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o be_v assure_v thereof_o afraid_a many_o fall_n be_v imminent_a to_o the_o godly_a matt._n 26_o 70._o 2._o sam._n 11_o 4_o the_o godly_a have_v whereof_o to_o be_v afraid_a yet_o so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v here_o there_o be_v many_o fall_v even_o ready_a at_o hand_n with_o we_o and_o those_o great_a as_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o that_o which_o peter_n and_o david_n do_v wherefore_o they_o have_v whereof_o to_o be_v afraid_a although_o they_o be_v not_o afraid_a that_o they_o shall_v eternal_o be_v damn_v but_o assure_o hope_v that_o either_o they_o shall_v be_v defend_v by_o god_n or_o that_o if_o they_o do_v fall_v they_o shall_v be_v restore_v again_o as_o we_o also_o do_v trust_n of_o they_o which_o be_v excommunicate_v for_o they_o be_v not_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o shall_v perish_v but_o that_o their_o spirit_n may_v at_o length_n be_v save_v and_o therefore_o the_o elect_a also_o and_o they_o which_o sincere_o believe_v ought_v continual_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o fall_v and_o to_o beware_v lest_o they_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o christ_n 1._o the_o godly_a must_v be_v afraid_a of_o excommunication_n jerem._n 3_o 1._o though_o it_o be_v but_o for_o a_o time_n and_o of_o this_o restitution_n of_o they_o that_o have_v fall_v be_v also_o mention_v make_v in_o jeremie_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n thou_o have_v play_v the_o harlot_n with_o thy_o lover_n howbeit_o return_n again_o all_o these_o thing_n declare_v unto_o we_o that_o this_o exhortation_n of_o paul_n unto_o fear_n be_v not_o unprofitable_a see_v we_o ought_v so_o many_o way_n to_o be_v careful_a both_o for_o ourselves_o and_o also_o for_o other_o further_o chrysostome_n add_v hereunto_o that_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o reign_v among_o we_o aught_o to_o be_v unto_o we_o a_o great_a fear_n and_o horror_n so_o often_o as_o we_o consider_v of_o it_o 10_o whereunto_o belong_v that_o 24._o in_o rom._n 11_o ve_fw-la 20._o rom._n 11_o 20_o &_o 2_o cor._n 1_o verse_n 24._o which_o be_v write_v both_o unto_o the_o roman_n and_o unto_o the_o corinthian_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o godly_a stand_n by_o faith_n neither_o be_v that_o hereunto_o repugnant_a which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o selfsame_o 15._o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 1._o 1._o cor._n 15_o 1._o that_o they_o stand_v in_o the_o gospel_n because_o faith_n be_v refer_v unto_o the_o gospel_n as_o unto_o his_o own_o object_n yea_o rather_o it_o spring_v hereof_o after_o a_o sort_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v before_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o speech_n make_v in_o this_o place_n of_o man_n particular_o but_o of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o body_n of_o the_o beléever_n and_o therefore_o he_o admonish_v we_o upon_o just_a cause_n 20_o rom._n 11_o 20_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v high_o mind_v but_o shall_v fear_v for_o even_o as_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v now_o extinguish_v and_o africa_n likewise_o and_o greece_n declare_v a_o comparison_n declare_v and_o asia_n have_v lose_v many_o church_n so_o be_v it_o to_o be_v fear_v lest_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n happen_v now_o unto_o the_o church_n which_o seem_v to_o stand_v wherefore_o let_v they_o not_o advance_v themselves_o salvation_n
26._o you_o be_v all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o what_o be_v it_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o because_o we_o have_v already_o obtain_v adoption_n which_o we_o obtain_v only_o by_o regeneration_n or_o justification_n and_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n 28._o rom._n 4_o 28._o brethren_n say_v he_o we_o be_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o isaac_n child_n of_o the_o promise_n but_o to_o be_v child_n of_o the_o promise_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o believe_v those_o thing_n which_o god_n promise_v whereby_o we_o be_v make_v his_o child_n according_a as_o he_o have_v promise_v we_o shall_v be_v for_o so_o be_v isaac_n bear_v unto_o abraham_n not_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n in_o the_o five_o chapter_n he_o write_v 5._o rom._n 5_o 5._o we_o in_o the_o spirit_n look_v for_o the_o hope_n of_o righteousness_n by_o faith_n in_o this_o place_n be_v two_o thing_n touch_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o be_v new_o fashion_v and_o renew_v unto_o salvation_n and_o faith_n whereby_o we_o apprehend_v righteousness_n wherefore_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o our_o justification_n although_o there_o be_v in_o our_o mind_n many_o other_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o except_o faith_n help_v to_o justification_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n conclude_v circumcision_n be_v nothing_o 6._o ibidem_fw-la 6._o and_o uncircumcision_n be_v nothing_o but_o only_a faith_n which_o work_v through_o love_n hereof_o only_o depend_v justification_n of_o this_o faith_n i_o say_v not_o be_v dead_a but_o live_v and_o of_o force_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n paul_n add_v which_o work_v by_o love_n which_o yet_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o faith_n shall_v depend_v of_o love_n or_o have_v of_o it_o as_o they_o use_v to_o speak_v her_o form_n but_o for_o that_o when_o it_o burst_v forth_o into_o act_n and_o will_v show_v forth_o itself_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n do_v this_o by_o love_n so_o the_o knowledge_n of_o any_o man_n depend_v not_o hereon_o for_o that_o he_o teach_v other_o man_n but_o by_o that_o mean_v it_o be_v most_o of_o all_o declare_v but_o if_o any_o perfection_n of_o these_o action_n of_o love_a and_o teach_v redound_v unto_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n that_o come_v of_o another_o cause_n and_o not_o for_o that_o they_o depend_v of_o it_o or_o thereof_o have_v their_o form_n as_o many_o sophister_n have_v dream_v 8._o ephes_n 2_o 8._o 52_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n the_o 2._o chapter_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v by_o grace_n you_o be_v make_v safe_a through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o for_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o after_o that_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n 16._o eph._n 3_o 16._o that_o according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n he_o will_v grant_v you_o that_o you_o may_v be_v strengthen_v with_o might_n in_o the_o inward_a man_n by_o the_o spirit_n that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o your_o hart_n by_o faith_n he_o that_o have_v christ_n in_o he_o the_o same_o have_v without_o all_o doubt_n righteousness_n for_o of_o he_o paul_n thus_o write_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n in_o the_o former_a epistle_n 30._o 1._o cor._n 1_o 30._o and_o the_o first_o chapter_n who_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n righteousness_n holiness_n and_o redemption_n here_o therefore_o it_o be_v show_v by_o what_o mean_v christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n namely_o by_o faith_n again_o paul_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n to_o the_o philippian_n 9_o phil._n 3_o 9_o that_o i_o may_v be_v find_v say_v he_o in_o he_o not_o have_v my_o own_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n but_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n here_o that_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o work_n and_o of_o the_o law_n he_o call_v he_o but_o that_o which_o be_v of_o faith_n and_o which_o he_o most_o of_o all_o desire_v he_o call_v the_o righteousness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 33._o heb._n 11_o 33._o unto_o the_o hebrews_n also_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n the_o saint_n by_o faith_n have_v overcome_v kingdom_n have_v wrought_v righteousness_n and_o have_v obtain_v the_o promise_n these_o word_n declare_v how_o much_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o faith_n for_o by_o it_o the_o saint_n be_v say_v not_o only_o to_o have_v possess_v outward_a kingdom_n but_o also_o to_o have_v exercise_v the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n namely_o to_o have_v live_v ho_o and_o without_o blame_n and_o to_o have_v obtain_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n 5._o verse_n 5._o and_o peter_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n and_o first_o chapter_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n say_v he_o be_v you_o keep_v unto_o salvation_n through_o faith_n in_o these_o word_n be_v signify_v two_o principal_a ground_n of_o our_o salvation_n the_o one_o be_v the_o might_n and_o power_n of_o god_n which_o be_v whole_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o obtain_v salvation_n the_o other_o be_v faith_n whereby_o as_o by_o a_o instrument_n salvation_n be_v apply_v unto_o us._n john_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n and_o five_o chapter_n 1._o verse_n 1._o every_o one_o say_v he_o which_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n but_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n be_v nothing_o else_o than_o to_o be_v justify_v or_o to_o be_v bear_v again_o in_o christ_n if_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n ●_o ibidem_fw-la ●_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n which_o overcom_v the_o world_n even_o our_o faith_n by_o which_o testimony_n be_v declare_v that_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o sin_n of_o death_n and_o of_o hell_n be_v by_o no_o other_o thing_n drive_v away_o from_o we_o but_o by_o faith_n only_o and_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o selfsame_o chapter_n it_o be_v say_v and_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o write_v unto_o you_o 3._o verse_n 3._o which_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o that_o you_o shall_v believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 53_o now_o let_v we_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o evangelist_n as_o much_o as_o shall_v serve_v for_o this_o present_a question_n matthew_n in_o his_o eight_o chapter_n say_v 19_o mat._n 8_o 19_o that_o christ_n exceed_o wonder_v at_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o centurion_n and_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v not_o find_v such_o faith_n in_o israel_n and_o turn_v unto_o he_o say_v even_o as_o thou_o have_v believe_v so_o be_v it_o unto_o thou_o here_o some_o reply_n that_o this_o history_n and_o such_o other_o like_a entreat_v not_o of_o justification_n but_o only_o of_o the_o outward_a benefit_n of_o the_o body_n give_v by_o god._n howbeit_o these_o man_n ought_v to_o consider_v that_o sin_n which_o be_v in_o we_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o grief_n and_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o body_n for_o only_a christ_n except_v who_o utterlie_o die_v a_o innocent_a all_o other_o forsomuch_o as_o they_o be_v subject_a unto_o sin_n do_v suffer_v no_o adversity_n without_o just_a desert_n and_o although_o god_n in_o lay_v of_o his_o calamity_n upon_o we_o have_v not_o always_o a_o respect_n hereunto_o for_o oftentimes_o he_o send_v adversity_n to_o show_v forth_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o the_o trial_n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v he_o yet_o none_o while_o he_o be_v so_o vex_v can_v complain_v that_o he_o be_v uniustlie_o deal_v withal_o for_o there_o be_v none_o so_o holy_a but_o that_o in_o himself_o he_o have_v sin_n which_o be_v worthy_a of_o such_o like_a or_o else_o of_o great_a punishment_n and_o where_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o take_v away_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v the_o effect_n be_v remoove_v wherefore_o christ_n forsomuch_o as_o he_o deliver_v man_n from_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n manifest_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v he_o which_o shall_v justify_v man_n from_o sin_n and_o that_o this_o be_v true_a the_o self-same_a evangelist_n teach_v we_o in_o the_o .9_o chapter_n 2_o verse_n 2_o for_o when_o he_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n to_o be_v heal_v he_o say_v that_o christ_n answer_v be_v of_o good_a cheer_n my_o son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o at_o which_o say_v when_o as_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n be_v offend_v to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v understand_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o evil_n be_v take_v away_o even_o the_o evil_n themselves_o be_v take_v away_o he_o command_v he_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n to_o arise_v and_o take_v up_o his_o bed_n and_o to_o walk_v wherefore_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o christ_n by_o the_o healing_n of_o the_o body_n
first_o fruit_n of_o the_o captivity_n for_o this_o be_v not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o from_o whence_o the_o greek_n derive_v it_o i_o know_v not_o yet_o do_v i_o think_v that_o the_o rechabite_v be_v therefore_o call_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o captive_n because_o while_o they_o wander_v through_o the_o plain_n and_o field_n it_o be_v likely_a that_o they_o be_v the_o first_o which_o be_v take_v and_o afflict_v by_o the_o host_n of_o the_o chaldaean_n 28_o but_o here_o arise_v a_o great_a doubt_n precept_n whether_o jonadab_n do_v well_o to_o bind_v his_o posterity_n to_o these_o precept_n whether_o jonadab_n do_v well_o thus_o to_o bind_v his_o posterite_n to_o precept_n and_o to_o charge_v they_o with_o heavy_a commandment_n certeinlie_o wine_n land_n house_n city_n and_o vineyard_n be_v good_a thing_n the_o which_o god_n have_v make_v for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n why_o then_o will_v he_o have_v his_o posterity_n to_o abstain_v altogether_o from_o they_o especial_o see_v so_o great_a severity_n be_v sometime_o repugnant_a unto_o charity_n also_o there_o may_v happen_v a_o weakness_n of_o health_n and_o such_o a_o infirmity_n of_o the_o body_n that_o wine_n must_v be_v use_v 13._o 2._o tim._n 5_o 13._o even_o as_o paul_n counsel_v his_o timothy_n hereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o cause_n as_o i_o show_v before_o which_o lead_v this_o man_n to_o institute_v such_o thing_n be_v honest_a but_o yet_o this_o we_o must_v add_v that_o the_o observance_n hereof_o be_v not_o command_v by_o he_o with_o such_o severity_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o exception_n therein_o for_o not_o only_o the_o precept_n of_o man_n but_o those_o also_o which_o god_n himself_o have_v make_v must_v be_v season_v and_o temper_v by_o the_o law_n of_o charity_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n appoint_v by_o god_n i_o will_v have_v mercy_n 6._o os●_n 6_o 6._o and_o not_o sacrifice_v undoubted_o he_o command_v sacrifice_n but_o yet_o if_o at_o any_o time_n they_o be_v a_o hindrance_n of_o show_v mercy_n unto_o our_o neighbour_n they_o be_v to_o be_v lay_v aside_o for_o a_o time_n and_o season_n so_o then_o the_o precept_n of_o jonadab_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o bind_v his_o child_n if_o by_o chance_n any_o necessity_n have_v urge_v which_o necessity_n as_o it_o be_v common_o say_v be_v the_o mother_n of_o dispensation_n or_o releasement_n for_o this_o cause_n be_v the_o charterhouse_n monk_n to_o be_v blame_v carthusian_n the_o strict_a rigour_n of_o the_o carthusian_n which_o so_o strict_o profess_v a_o abstinence_n from_o flesh_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n they_o will_v not_o minister_v the_o same_o unto_o he_o wherefore_o when_o any_o rechabite_n have_v need_n of_o wine_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o health_n he_o may_v use_v the_o same_o notwithstanding_o the_o commandment_n of_o jonadab_n even_o as_o now_o also_o because_o they_o be_v compel_v by_o necessity_n they_o go_v into_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o be_v not_o accuse_v of_o disobedience_n yea_o and_o god_n testify_v with_o they_o on_o this_o manner_n 18._o jere._n 35_o 18._o because_o you_o have_v obey_v the_o voice_n of_o your_o father_n and_o have_v fulfil_v all_o thing_n that_o he_o command_v you_o etc._n etc._n he_o say_v that_o they_o fulfil_v all_o thing_n when_o as_o now_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v abide_v in_o the_o city_n beside_o this_o jonadab_n do_v not_o so_o command_v as_o though_o he_o think_v these_o thing_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n to_o be_v unclean_a the_o use_n of_o which_o he_o forbid_v unto_o his_o posterity_n manicheis_n the_o pevishnes_n of_o the_o manicheis_n this_o be_v the_o péevishnes_n of_o the_o manicheis_n which_o think_v that_o wine_n flesh_n and_o other_o like_a thing_n be_v unclean_a as_o those_o that_o be_v create_v by_o some_o evil_a god_n so_o do_v not_o jonadab_n think_v but_o forbid_v they_o to_o his_o posterity_n for_o the_o cause_n now_o allege_v furthermore_o the_o rechabite_v be_v not_o bind_v by_o vow_n to_o perform_v they_o but_o they_o only_o abstein_v because_o they_o will_v obey_v their_o father_n and_o because_o the_o commandment_n whereby_o wine_n be_v forbid_v may_v seem_v at_o the_o first_o view_n to_o be_v somewhat_o strict_a observe_v in_o the_o use_n of_o meat_n &_o drink_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o region_n must_v be_v observe_v therefore_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o the_o condition_n of_o all_o country_n and_o region_n be_v not_o all_o one_o for_o to_o refrain_v altogether_o from_o wine_n in_o this_o climate_n of_o we_o it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a discommodity_n for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o man_n neither_o may_v it_o be_v abide_v but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o syria_n or_o palestine_n where_o man_n be_v trouble_v with_o great_a heat_n and_o the_o water_n there_o be_v very_o excellent_a and_o be_v not_o unprofitable_a to_o be_v droonke_v for_o which_o cause_n both_o there_o be_v and_o may_v be_v in_o that_o place_n man_n in_o great_a number_n abstain_v from_o wine_n and_o that_o thus_o it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o nazarite_n confirm_v it_o the_o which_o law_n utterlie_o forbid_v they_o the_o use_n of_o wine_n all_o the_o time_n wherein_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o their_o vow_n and_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v deal_v so_o hardly_o with_o his_o nazarite_n to_o charge_v they_o with_o thing_n intolerable_a now_o then_o see_v the_o precept_n may_v be_v undoone_v upon_o a_o cause_n of_o necessity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o difficult_a thing_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o those_o region_n jonadab_n in_o make_v of_o such_o a_o precept_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v withal_o whereunto_o may_v be_v add_v that_o such_o a_o precept_n be_v very_o convenient_a for_o they_o for_o they_o be_v wander_v people_n and_o run_v about_o in_o chariot_n together_o with_o their_o herd_n of_o cattle_n use_v milk_n for_o their_o meat_n and_o whaie_v in_o stead_n of_o drink_n so_o then_o he_o command_v they_o nothing_o but_o that_o they_o be_v accustom_v unto_o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o marry_v the_o rechabite_v not_o forbid_v to_o marry_v in_o so_o strict_a a_o discipline_n he_o forbid_v they_o not_o to_o marry_v but_o contrariwise_o the_o monk_n do_v abundantlie_o enjoy_v all_o pleasure_n and_o think_v that_o they_o have_v perform_v all_o godliness_n if_o they_o abstain_v from_o marriage_n 1._o in_o judge_n 1_o verse_n 16._o what_o be_v the_o best_a cause_n of_o peregrination_n look_v in_o 2._o king_n 2_o 1._o and_o 8_o 1._o 29_o but_o we_o ought_v to_o remember_v with_o ourselves_o the_o very_a good_a cause_n of_o peregrination_n of_o these_o man_n for_o all_o good_a man_n travel_v not_o into_o strange_a country_n for_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o purpose_n many_o there_o be_v which_o oftentimes_o leave_v their_o country_n because_o they_o may_v not_o worship_n god_n there_o after_o the_o sincere_a and_o lawful_a kind_n of_o worship_v yea_o they_o be_v gréevouslie_o trouble_v if_o they_o endeavour_v themselves_o thereunto_o so_o abraham_n be_v call_v out_o of_o his_o land_n 1._o gen._n 12_o 1._o and_o from_o his_o kindred_n lest_o he_o shall_v still_o have_v proceed_v in_o contaminate_v himself_o with_o his_o forefather_n in_o idolatry_n and_o so_o be_v it_o say_v of_o christ_n that_o if_o they_o have_v persecute_v we_o in_o one_o city_n 23._o mat._n 10_o 23._o let_v we_o fly_v unto_o another_o but_o there_o be_v other_o which_o although_o they_o be_v not_o hinder_v at_o home_n from_o true_a godliness_n yet_o will_v they_o visit_v those_o place_n wherein_o they_o think_v to_o attain_v more_o profit_n and_o be_v more_o instruct_v in_o thing_n divine_a and_o necessary_a for_o salvation_n commend_v plato_n peregrination_n commend_v for_o which_o cause_n plato_n be_v commend_v because_o he_o travel_v to_o the_o egyptian_n and_o go_v to_o a_o part_n of_o italy_n name_v magna_fw-la graecia_n he_o go_v also_o into_o diverse_a nation_n as_o though_o he_o have_v follow_v wisdom_n fly_v from_o he_o 1._o 1._o kin._n 10_o 1._o so_o likewise_o be_v the_o queen_n of_o saba_n commend_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o travel_v from_o so_o far_o country_n to_o hear_v solomon_n after_o this_o manner_n the_o kenites_n in_o the_o first_o of_o judge_n follow_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n for_o although_o at_o home_n they_o know_v and_o worship_v one_o god_n who_o priest_n also_o their_o father_n be_v yet_o nevertheless_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v still_o more_o instruct_v and_o more_o absolute_o to_o receive_v the_o law_n the_o ordinance_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n they_o also_o be_v very_o much_o worthy_a of_o praise_n that_o travel_n into_o strange_a country_n only_o for_o the_o intent_n to_o profit_v other_o &_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o misery_n wherewith_o they_o be_v
signify_v howbeit_o if_o they_o be_v all_o sacrament_n which_o represent_v christ_n we_o have_v a_o infinite_a number_n 33_o matt._n 13_o 33_o leven_n betoken_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n shall_v it_o therefore_o be_v a_o sacrament_n so_o do_v a_o grain_n of_o mustard_n séed_o a_o vine_n a_o door_n shepeherd_n 7._o ibidem_fw-la 31._o john_n 15_o 1._o john_n 10_o 7._o and_o such_o like_a do_v represent_v christ_n shall_v they_o therefore_o be_v sacrament_n by_o this_o mean_n there_o will_v be_v as_o many_o sacrament_n as_o there_o can_v be_v bring_v similitude_n which_o betoken_v christ_n but_o paul_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n 32._o eph._n 5_o 32._o call_v a_o sacrament_n a_o mystery_n in_o very_a deed_n that_o which_o be_v signify_v in_o matrimony_n be_v a_o secret_a thing_n in_o sacrament_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v hide_v partly_o be_v the_o thing_n signify_v &_o partly_o it_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a sign_n because_o it_o have_v the_o power_n of_o signify_v give_v to_o it_o by_o god_n in_o matrimony_n the_o mystery_n be_v refer_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v signify_v namely_o the_o conjunction_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n the_o apostle_n oftentimes_o use_v this_o word_n mystery_n in_o the_o 11._o to_o the_o roman_n brethren_n 35._o verse_n 35._o i_o tell_v you_o a_o mystery_n be_v not_o wise_a in_o your_o own_o self_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 15._o chapter_n entreat_v of_o the_o resurrection_n 15._o verse_n 15._o i_o show_v you_o a_o mystery_n we_o shall_v not_o all_o die_v in_o the_o thir●_n to_o the_o ephesian_n he_o name_v the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n a_o mystery_n 3._o verse_n 3._o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o colossian_n he_o speak_v of_o a_o mystery_n hide_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 26._o verse_n 26._o in_o the_o first_o unto_o timothy_n the_o 3._o chapter_n 16._o verse_n 16._o true_o great_a be_v the_o mystery_n that_o god_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o sacrament_n as_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o they_o but_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v what_o promise_n have_v matrimony_n even_o the_o procreation_n of_o child_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o remedy_n for_o fornication_n here_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o remission_n furthermore_o that_o promise_n be_v not_o only_o under_o the_o gospel_n but_o under_o the_o law_n also_o and_o before_o the_o law_n how_o then_o do_v they_o call_v it_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n even_o in_o the_o same_o sort_n may_v they_o speak_v of_o repentance_n repentance_n be_v in_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o before_o the_o law_n why_o then_o do_v they_o call_v it_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n 16_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o mind_n gratianus_n in_o the_o first_o cause_n the_o first_o question_n in_o the_o chapter_n arianos_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n seem_v to_o deny_v repentance_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n he_o allege_v a_o reason_n namely_o because_o it_o be_v often_o renew_v the_o reason_n appear_v to_o be_v fond_a for_o by_o that_o mean_v the_o action_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n shall_v be_v no_o sacrament_n because_o it_o be_v often_o repeat_v but_o if_o thou_o diligent_o examine_v his_o word_n he_o seem_v to_o compare_v the_o repentance_n of_o private_a man_n with_o that_o solemn_a repentance_n we_o speak_v of_o the_o which_o only_o he_o seem_v to_o ordain_v as_o a_o sacrament_n and_o the_o other_o not_o for_o solemn_a repentance_n be_v not_o renew_v dionysius_n dionysius_n but_o let_v gratian_n go_v very_o dionysius_n which_o of_o some_o be_v think_v to_o be_v areopagita_n acknowledge_v but_o three_o sacrament_n namely_o baptism_n gregory_n sundry_a opinion_n of_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n gregory_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o chrism_n he_o seem_v to_o grant_v annoil_v in_o his_o hierarchy_n the_o minister_n be_v bring_v which_o anoint_v a_o dead_a body_n gregory_n in_o the_o first_o cause_n question_v the_o first_o in_o the_o decree_n in_o the_o chapter_n multi_fw-la seem_v to_o acknowledge_v but_o three_o sacrament_n namely_o baptism_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o anoint_v barnard_n barnard_n barnard_n add_v another_o that_o be_v the_o wash_n of_o foot_n yea_o and_o in_o his_o sermon_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la he_o say_v that_o this_o sacrament_n must_v be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n the_o sacrifice_a priest_n which_o consecrate_v salt_n do_v add_v one_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v thou_o a_o healthful_a sacrament_n to_o chase_v away_o the_o devil_n but_o why_o seek_v we_o so_o many_o thing_n they_o which_o appoint_v seven_o sacrament_n distinguish_v the_o holy_a order_n into_o seven_o namely_o doore-kéepers_a reader_n acolythe_n exorcist_n subdeacons_n deacons_n and_o priest_n other_o have_v add_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o the_o office_n of_o sing_v psalm_n so_o that_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n among_o they_o be_v uncerteine_a let_v they_o not_o complain_v of_o we_o that_o we_o diminish_v the_o number_n we_o rather_o ought_v to_o complain_v of_o they_o for_o increase_v the_o number_n 17_o repentance_n be_v divide_v into_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v a_o virtue_n pertain_v to_o justice_n we_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o sacrament_n now_o let_v we_o consider_v of_o the_o other_o member_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v no_o virtue_n that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v virtue_n whether_o repentance_n be_v a_o virtue_n as_o a_o certain_a virtue_n the_o which_o be_v a_o quality_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o be_v a_o great_a while_n idle_a they_o devise_v the_o same_o because_o it_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o we_o shall_v repent_v but_o repent_v we_o can_v always_o wherefore_o they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o virtue_n in_o the_o mind_n 17._o matt._n 4_o 17._o which_o in_o due_a time_n do_v that_o which_o belong_v thereunto_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n nor_o by_o the_o father_n nor_o by_o the_o canon_n christ_n say_v repent_v you_o there_o be_v require_v a_o action_n not_o a_o certain_a habit_n job_n say_v that_o the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v a_o warfare_n upon_o the_o earth_n 1._o job._n 7_o 1._o it_o be_v no_o habit_n but_o a_o action_n barnard_n say_v he_o that_o go_v not_o forward_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o profit_v not_o such_o a_o one_o go_v backward_o the_o same_o father_n say_v when_o thou_o forsake_v the_o desire_n to_o become_v better_a than_o thou_o cease_v to_o be_v good_a the_o life_n of_o godly_a man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o certain_a way_n a_o path_n a_o race_n there_o must_v be_v a_o go_v not_o a_o stand_n still_o in_o the_o 2._o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 3_o chapter_n 18._o verse_n 18._o it_o be_v write_v that_o we_o be_v transform_v into_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n because_o this_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n he_o add_v even_o as_o it_o be_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n wherefore_o they_o which_o think_v upon_o those_o thing_n that_o concern_v their_o call_n be_v say_v to_o repent_v because_o they_o do_v abstain_v from_o sin_n as_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o they_o do_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n if_o their_o meaning_n be_v to_o go_v forward_o in_o their_o vocation_n they_o be_v true_o penitent_a but_o they_o say_v it_o seem_v this_o can_v be_v in_o repentance_n there_o be_v sorrow_n unto_o god-ward_o 9_o 2._o cor._n 7_o 9_o but_o we_o ought_v sometime_o to_o rejoice_v with_o they_o that_o rejoice_v those_o thing_n can_v be_v do_v together_o time_n whether_o we_o sorrow_n and_o rejoice_n both_o at_o one_o time_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o repugnant_a because_o they_o have_v sundry_a object_n we_o may_v rejoice_v in_o god_n and_o sorrow_n in_o ourselves_o we_o have_v lament_v mingle_v with_o reioise_v and_o reioise_v with_o lament_v they_o say_v that_o sometime_o we_o must_v sleep_v and_o then_o our_o action_n be_v break_v off_o and_o aristotle_n say_v that_o during_o the_o time_n of_o our_o sleep_n off_o how_o our_o action_n be_v break_v off_o although_o we_o be_v happy_a we_o differ_v not_o from_o miserable_a man_n let_v we_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o say_n of_o paul_n he_o that_o eat_v eat_v unto_o the_o lord_n 6._o rom._n 14_o 6._o and_o he_o that_o eat_v not_o eat_v not_o unto_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n also_o whether_o we_o live_v or_o whether_o we_o die_v 8._o ibidem_fw-la 8._o we_o be_v the_o lord_n in_o like_a manner_n we_o may_v say_v he_o that_o sleep_v sleep_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o paul_n say_v whether_o you_o eat_v or_o whether_o you_o drink_v 31_o 1._o co._n 10_o 31_o or_o whatsoever_o
of_o tear_n fast_v and_o watch_n be_v the_o outward_a exercise_n of_o repentance_n &_o first_o concern_v tear_n tear_n be_v count_v as_o certain_a thing_n add_v and_o join_v with_o repentance_n 4._o in_o judg._n 2_o vers_n 4._o prayer_n tear_n be_v use_v aswell_o to_o repentance_n as_o to_o prayer_n and_o also_o unto_o prayer_n for_o not_o only_o the_o repentant_n be_v wont_v to_o weep_v when_o they_o detest_v their_o sin_n with_o gréevous_a sorrow_n but_o also_o as_o many_o as_o do_v earnest_o and_o vehementlie_o strive_v to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n howbeit_o 17._o tear_n be_v not_o always_o the_o token_n of_o true_a repentance_n gen._n 27_o 38._o heb._n 12_o 17._o the_o token_n of_o true_a repentance_n be_v not_o always_o measure_v by_o tear_n for_o we_o read_v as_o well_o in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n as_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n that_o esau_n also_o weep_v prayer_n in_o like_a manner_n to_o be_v effectual_a to_o obtain_v that_o which_o be_v desire_v be_v not_o always_o judge_v by_o tear_n for_o david_n after_o his_o adultery_n fast_v and_o weep_v while_o he_o earnest_o pray_v that_o the_o life_n of_o his_o son_n 16._o in_o 2._o sam._n 12_o vers_n 16._o which_o be_v bear_v unto_o he_o by_o bethsabe_n may_v be_v spare_v which_o nevertheless_o he_o can_v not_o obtain_v but_o in_o that_o tear_n in_o those_o example_n have_v no_o good_a success_n there_o be_v diverse_a cause_n for_o esau_n as_o we_o will_v straitwaie_o declare_v mourn_v not_o in_o faith_n and_o david_n obtain_v not_o that_o which_o he_o desire_v because_o god_n have_v determine_v to_o give_v he_o that_o which_o be_v much_o better_o and_o more_o honourable_a than_o that_o which_o he_o desire_v indeed_o the_o son_n which_o be_v conceive_v in_o adultery_n remain_v not_o alive_a but_o of_o the_o same_o mother_n he_o afterward_o have_v solomon_n who_o god_n do_v substitute_n unto_o a_o most_o ample_a and_o peaceable_a kingdom_n after_o his_o father_n death_n yea_o and_o while_o he_o yet_o live_v but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n let_v we_o consider_v how_o that_o tear_n in_o peter_n be_v token_n of_o very_a true_a repentance_n and_o also_o in_o that_o woman_n 62._o luk._n 23_o 62._o which_o as_o the_o evangelist_n declare_v with_o her_o tear_n wash_v the_o lord_n foot_n 38._o luke_n 7_o 38._o and_o as_o touch_v prayer_n 2._o esaie_n 38_o 2._o ezechias_n be_v hear_v when_o he_o pray_v with_o weep_v and_o death_n be_v show_v unto_o he_o be_v defer_v until_o another_o time_n josias_n likewise_o be_v hear_v 19_o 2._o kin_n 22_o 19_o who_o pray_v unto_o god_n with_o many_o tear_n the_o 126._o psalm_n speak_v thus_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o prayer_n which_o have_v sorrow_n and_o tear_n join_v therewith_o 6._o verse_n 6._o they_o go_v and_o weep_v cast_v their_o seed_n but_o doubtless_o they_o shall_v come_v again_o and_o with_o joy_n shall_v bring_v their_o sheaf_n with_o they_o and_o they_o which_o sow_n in_o tear_n shall_v reap_v in_o joy_n it_o be_v also_o write_v in_o the_o sixth_o psalm_n 9_o psal_n 6_o 9_o the_o lord_n have_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o my_o weep_n and_o in_o the_o 56._o psalm_n 9_o psal_n 56_o 9_o the_o tear_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v as_o it_o be_v put_v in_o a_o pot_n or_o bottle_n before_o god_n and_o faithful_o seal_v in_o his_o book_n 9_o verse_n 9_o david_n also_o in_o the_o 95._o psalm_n stir_v we_o up_o by_o these_o word_n let_v we_o weep_v before_o the_o lord_n that_o make_v we_o etc._n etc._n but_o much_o more_o be_v we_o stir_v up_o thereunto_o by_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n who_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n with_o a_o loud_a cry_n 7._o heb._n 5_o 7._o and_o with_o tear_n pray_v for_o us._n 19_o verse_n 19_o paul_n also_o in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n say_v that_o he_o have_v long_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o a_o humble_a hart_n and_o with_o tear_n god_n what_o tear_n be_v not_o allow_v unto_o god_n 2_o nevertheless_o god_n allow_v not_o those_o tear_n which_o be_v pour_v out_o by_o a_o certain_a natural_a motion_n without_o any_o affection_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o it_o common_o happen_v unto_o those_o who_o eye_n be_v strike_v with_o any_o strike_v or_o to_o those_o which_o run_v either_o on_o foot_n or_o on_o horseback_n and_o which_o with_o overmuch_a drink_n become_v drunken_a for_o those_o be_v natural_a sign_n neither_o perteine_a they_o any_o thing_n to_o godliness_n but_o the_o affection_n after_o which_o tear_n do_v follow_v follow_v after_o what_o affection_n tear_n do_v follow_v be_v these_o heaviness_n of_o mind_n which_o other_o do_v call_v sorrow_n and_o also_o gladness_n and_o that_o by_o contrary_a reason_n for_o of_o sorrow_n spring_v cold_a whereby_o as_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v wring_v so_o be_v also_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o head_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o weep_v be_v wrest_v out_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n by_o gladness_n the_o pipe_n pore_n and_o way_n about_o the_o eye_n be_v loose_v whereby_o the_o way_n be_v make_v open_a unto_o tear_n and_o certeinlie_o of_o these_o two_o affection_n we_o have_v a_o testimony_n in_o the_o book_n of_o esdras_n 12_o esdras_n 3_o 12_o for_o there_o it_o be_v write_v that_o when_o the_o temple_n be_v build_v the_o people_n weep_v but_o not_o all_o for_o one_o cause_n part_v of_o they_o sorrow_v that_o the_o new_a building_n differ_v much_o in_o dignity_n and_o ornament_n from_o the_o first_o but_o contrariwise_o other_o reioise_v that_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o have_v be_v so_o long_o prostrate_a be_v raise_v up_o again_o and_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o holy_a history_n that_o joseph_n when_o he_o see_v his_o brother_n benjamin_n who_o he_o love_v weep_v through_o overmuch_a joy_n furthermore_o there_o be_v certain_a other_o affection_n mingle_v together_o of_o sorrow_n and_o gladness_n the_o which_o make_v we_o to_o weep_v it_o anger_n have_v sorrow_n and_o pleasure_n join_v with_o it_o as_o be_v vehement_a anger_n the_o which_o by_o reason_n of_o contempt_n have_v sorrow_n mingle_v with_o it_o and_o also_o some_o joy_n or_o pleasure_n while_o it_o consider_v of_o revenge_n as_o if_o it_o be_v present_a mercy_n also_o make_v the_o tear_n to_o come_v forth_o tear_n mercy_n cause_v tear_n when_o we_o be_v disquiet_v and_o sorrowful_a for_o other_o man_n harm_n and_o be_v desirous_a to_o help_v they_o that_o be_v afflict_v for_o a_o vehement_a desire_n also_o bring_v forth_o tear_n so_o as_o the_o man_n of_o god_n when_o they_o earnest_o desire_v to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n while_o they_o be_v pray_v do_v easy_o break_v forth_o into_o tear_n tear_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o tear_n but_o what_o the_o matter_n of_o such_o a_o humour_n be_v we_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o natural_a philosopher_n thereof_o diverse_a opinion_n thereof_o for_o therein_o they_o agree_v not_o among_o themselves_o some_o think_v that_o they_o do_v come_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o gall_n be_v trouble_v unto_o which_o opinion_n agree_v the_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr mirabilibus_fw-la sacrae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la the_o ten_o chapter_n the_o which_o book_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n other_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o sweat_n which_o thing_n plutarch_n affirm_v plutarch_n plutarch_n but_o some_o do_v think_v that_o even_o as_o whaie_n be_v separate_v from_o milk_n so_o also_o a_o waterish_a humour_n be_v separate_v from_o blood_n whereof_o the_o great_a part_n turn_v into_o urine_n and_o that_o which_o remain_v be_v press_v forth_o into_o tear_n last_o seneca_n seneca_n seneca_n in_o his_o 100_o epistle_n to_o lucillus_n think_v that_o with_o the_o stroke_n of_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n the_o whole_a body_n be_v almost_o shake_v and_o therewithal_o the_o eye_n out_o of_o which_o the_o humour_n lie_v near_o unto_o they_o be_v press_v out_o but_o howsoever_o this_o matter_n be_v it_o little_a pertain_v unto_o we_o wherefore_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o it_o may_v beseem_v a_o godly_a man_n to_o weep_v 3_o augustine_n in_o his_o four_o sermon_n of_o the_o first_o sunday_n in_o lent_n write_v weep_v augustine_n the_o cause_n for_o which_o we_o must_v weep_v that_o the_o tear_n of_o true_a repentance_n have_v two_o cause_n one_o be_v for_o that_o we_o have_v through_o negligence_n omit_v many_o thing_n that_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v do_v and_o by_o overmuch_o boldness_n we_o have_v commit_v more_o than_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v omit_v sin_n of_o commit_v and_o omit_v these_o be_v common_o call_v sin_n of_o commit_v and_o omit_v and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o interprete_v this_o sentence_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o repentance_n after_o this_o
philistine_n 24._o 1._o sa._n 14._o 24._o and_o have_v the_o victory_n in_o his_o hand_n forbid_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v taste_v of_o any_o meat_n before_o evening_n so_o also_o certain_a hebrews_n vow_v that_o they_o will_v neither_o eat_v nor_o drink_v any_o thing_n before_o they_o have_v kill_v paul_n 12._o acts._n 23_o 12._o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n this_o manner_n of_o fast_v also_o pertain_v not_o unto_o this_o present_a matter_n 6_o there_o be_v another_o kind_n of_o fast_v christian_n the_o fast_a familiar_a to_o christian_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v familiar_a to_o christian_n man_n namely_o to_o take_v meat_n sober_o and_o temperate_o which_o be_v do_v if_o they_o neither_o eat_v too_o often_o in_o one_o day_n nor_o when_o they_o shall_v eat_v do_v gorge_v themselves_o with_o overmuch_a meat_n or_o seek_v for_o delicate_a meat_n and_o dainty_a dish_n this_o order_n of_o live_v be_v very_o profitable_a to_o diminish_v lust_n feed_n what_o profit_n come_v by_o temperate_a feed_n and_o it_o suffer_v not_o the_o mind_n to_o be_v trouble_v with_o affection_n it_o make_v the_o mind_n to_o be_v more_o cheerful_a and_o ready_a both_o unto_o prayer_n and_o unto_o all_o the_o action_n pertain_v to_o the_o life_n of_o man_n wherefore_o christ_n say_v 34._o luk._n 12_o 34._o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v oppress_v with_o surfeit_v and_o droonkennes_n 8._o 1._o pet._n 5_o 8._o peter_n also_o have_v write_v be_v you_o sober_a for_o your_o enemy_n the_o devil_n go_v about_o like_o a_o roar_a lion_n seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v 27._o 1._o cor._n 9_o 27._o also_o paul_n write_v of_o himself_o i_o chasten_v my_o body_n and_o bring_v it_o into_o bondage_n lest_o i_o preach_v unto_o other_o shall_v be_v a_o reprobate_n myself_o there_o be_v beside_o another_o commodity_n by_o this_o fast_n to_o wit_n that_o cost_n be_v spare_v not_o to_o be_v do_v that_o we_o shall_v lay_v up_o covetouslie_o but_o that_o we_o shall_v distribute_v to_o the_o poor_a of_o that_o which_o be_v overplus_a unto_o us._n further_o there_o be_v another_o fast_n which_o be_v above_o man_n strength_n and_o otherwhiles_o be_v give_v by_o god_n miraculous_o unto_o some_o of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o commend_v of_o their_o doctrine_n moses_n upon_o the_o mountain_n fast_v forty_o day_n fast_n a_o miraculous_a fast_n for_o god_n mean_v by_o a_o notable_a example_n to_o show_v that_o that_o law_n which_o he_o set_v forth_o come_v from_o himself_o and_o be_v not_o invent_v by_o man_n neither_o go_v moses_n therefore_o unto_o the_o mountain_n 28_o exod._n 34_o 28_o to_o fast_o but_o to_o receive_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o to_o talk_v with_o he_o elias_n also_o receive_v bread_n and_o water_n of_o the_o angel_n and_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o that_o meat_n walk_v forty_o day_n even_o unto_o the_o mount_n horeb_n that_o he_o may_v be_v declare_v by_o this_o miracle_n to_o be_v the_o true_a revenger_n of_o the_o law_n by_o this_o kind_n of_o fast_v 2._o matt._n 4_o 2._o our_o saviour_n commend_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o common_a thing_n but_o a_o matter_n of_o god_n own_o ordinance_n and_o beginning_n howbeit_o these_o fasting_n be_v miracle_n neither_o perteine_a they_o any_o thing_n unto_o we_o but_o only_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v they_o in_o admiration_n &_o by_o such_o example_n be_v stir_v up_o with_o reverence_n to_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god._n there_o be_v also_o a_o other_o fast_o which_o lie_v not_o in_o our_o power_n as_o when_o we_o be_v destitute_a of_o meat_n have_v not_o whereof_o to_o eat_v here_o have_v we_o need_v of_o patience_n and_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v strengthen_v and_o encourage_v us._n so_o the_o saint_n when_o they_o wander_v about_o and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v sometime_o press_v and_o straiten_v with_o hunger_n and_o the_o disciple_n 1._o matt._n 12_o 1._o when_o they_o follow_v the_o lord_n be_v drive_v through_o hunger_n to_o pluck_v the_o ear_n of_o corn_n 6._o 1._o kin._n 17._o 9_o ibidem_fw-la 6._o and_o to_o rub_v out_o the_o seed_n elias_n also_o desire_v meat_n of_o the_o widow_n and_o wait_v at_o the_o brook_n for_o such_o meat_n as_o the_o raven_n shall_v bring_v he_o this_o kind_n of_o fast_v man_n do_v not_o take_v upon_o they_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n but_o it_o be_v lay_v upon_o they_o by_o god_n 7_o but_o pass_v over_o all_o these_o fast_n be_v such_o as_o perteine_v nothing_o unto_o this_o disputation_n fast_o a_o religious_a fast_o let_v we_o come_v to_o our_o fast_n which_o we_o may_v call_v a_o religious_a fast_o fast_o a_o definition_n of_o a_o religious_a fast_o and_o this_o fast_o be_v a_o unaccustomed_a abstinence_n not_o only_o from_o meat_n and_o drink_n so_o much_o as_o the_o strength_n will_v permit_v but_o also_o from_o all_o other_o thing_n which_o may_v delight_v and_o nourish_v the_o body_n and_o it_o be_v do_v of_o a_o repentant_a mind_n and_o of_o a_o true_a faith_n for_o the_o attain_v of_o god_n mercy_n by_o prayer_n because_o of_o calamity_n which_o either_o already_o overcharge_v we_o or_o else_o be_v very_o nigh_o at_o hand_n fast_a the_o form_n of_o this_o fast_a the_o form_n of_o this_o definition_n be_v abstinence_n such_o abstinence_n i_o say_v as_o be_v above_o the_o accustom_a manner_n and_o yet_o go_v not_o beyond_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o body_n matter_n the_o matter_n the_o matter_n be_v not_o only_o meat_n and_o drink_n but_o all_o other_o thing_n that_o may_v cheer_n up_o the_o body_n cause_n the_o efficient_a cause_n the_o efficient_a cause_n be_v faith_n and_o repentance_n for_o sin_n commit_v against_o god_n the_o end_n be_v end_n the_o end_n that_o by_o prayer_n we_o crave_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o either_o to_o turn_v away_o or_o to_o diminish_v calamity_n true_o the_o exercise_n of_o they_o that_o fast_o true_o wherefore_o they_o which_o fast_o aught_o to_o give_v themselves_o unto_o prayer_n almesdéeds_a visit_v of_o the_o sick_a and_o to_o the_o holy_a supper_n when_o we_o fervent_o pray_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o do_v from_o the_o hart_n true_o repent_v we_o of_o the_o sin_n which_o we_o have_v commit_v and_o by_o reason_n of_o they_o be_v earnest_o afflict_v we_o can_v very_o soon_o think_v upon_o meat_n drink_n and_o also_o fine_a delicate_n for_o to_o they_o which_o be_v urge_v with_o so_o vehement_a a_o grief_n it_o be_v more_o pleasant_a to_o abstain_v than_o any_o other_o delectation_n be_v so_o david_n in_o the_o 35._o psalm_n say_v of_o his_o enemy_n 13._o verse_n 13._o when_o they_o be_v sick_a i_o laugh_v not_o but_o i_o put_v on_o sackcloth_n and_o afflict_v my_o soul_n with_o fast_v &_o earnest_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o they_o which_o deject_v and_o humble_v themselves_o because_o they_o in_o a_o manner_n despair_n of_o their_o business_n be_v wont_v to_o contemn_v and_o loath_a meat_n and_o drink_n and_o other_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n jerom._n why_o fasting_n do_v please_v god_n jerom._n hereby_o we_o may_v perceive_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o our_o fasting_n do_v please_v god_n undoubted_o not_o because_o the_o emptiness_n of_o the_o belly_n delight_v god_n and_o so_o jerom_o deride_v some_o which_o fast_v overmuch_o become_v unprofitable_a all_o their_o life_n long_o to_o all_o purpose_n it_o please_v god_n when_o we_o humble_v our_o soul_n because_o we_o may_v return_v unto_o he_o with_o prayer_n and_o cast_v away_o other_o pleasure_n repose_v all_o our_o delight_n in_o he_o only_o 8_o but_o the_o fasting_n private_a religious_a fast_n be_v public_a and_o private_a whereof_o we_o now_o entreat_v be_v sometime_o public_a and_o sometime_o private_a we_o take_v private_a fast_n in_o hand_n when_o we_o be_v afflict_v with_o our_o own_o domestical_a misery_n for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o be_v not_o sometime_o vex_v either_o in_o himself_o or_o in_o his_o family_n or_o if_o peradventure_o it_o happen_v that_o he_o be_v not_o private_o grieve_v with_o any_o calamity_n of_o his_o own_o &_o of_o they_o that_o perteine_a unto_o he_o cause_n we_o must_v sometime_o fast_o for_o other_o man_n cause_n yet_o must_v he_o sometime_o mourn_v for_o other_o for_o if_o we_o be_v all_o member_n of_o one_o body_n we_o must_v think_v that_o the_o discommodity_n of_o our_o brethren_n do_v perteine_a even_o unto_o our_o self_n so_o david_n pray_v for_o they_o which_o afterward_o become_v his_o enemy_n and_o who_o triumph_v at_o his_o harm_n 11._o job._n 2_o 11._o so_o job_n friend_n when_o they_o see_v he_o vex_v with_o most_o gréevous_a plague_n do_v sit_v by_o he_o full_a seven_o day_n in_o dust_n and_o ash_n before_o they_o speak_v any_o thing_n unto_o
of_o their_o people_n of_o marathonia_n salamina_n plataea_n and_o thermopilae_n but_o we_o be_v they_o that_o may_v true_o praise_v our_o martyr_n who_o a_o thousand_o time_n more_o constant_o and_o valiant_o have_v suffer_v much_o more_o gréevous_a thing_n than_o they_o when_o prince_n at_o this_o day_n boast_v of_o their_o valiant_a courage_n let_v they_o take_v heed_n unto_o what_o end_n they_o employ_v the_o same_o and_o we_o ourselves_o that_o profess_v the_o gospel_n if_o we_o suffer_v any_o thing_n of_o our_o adversary_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o suffer_v it_o not_o otherwise_o than_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n for_o so_o will_v god_n himself_o be_v present_a with_o we_o and_o in_o most_o exquisite_a torment_n will_v give_v unto_o we_o a_o incredible_a courage_n and_o chéerfulnesse_n of_o mind_n 3_o but_o mortification_n point_n in_o 1._o cor._n 9_o verse_n 27._o mortification_n be_v reduce_v unto_o two_o principal_a point_n which_o the_o scripture_n so_o oftentimes_o urge_v be_v divide_v into_o two_o principal_a point_n the_o first_o belong_v unto_o patience_n in_o trouble_n and_o adversity_n send_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n the_o other_o consist_v in_o moderation_n of_o expense_n and_o in_o temperance_n the_o which_o we_o of_o our_o own_o accord_n take_v in_o hand_n for_o repress_v the_o wantonness_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o we_o must_v beware_v that_o we_o do_v not_o there_o fasten_v our_o foot_n as_o though_o we_o do_v these_o thing_n of_o a_o superstition_n but_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o invocation_n confession_n the_o praise_n of_o god_n holy_a read_n and_o the_o work_n of_o charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n may_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o do_v and_o in_o any_o wise_a these_o thing_n must_v be_v use_v that_o they_o may_v prepare_v the_o mind_n unto_o better_a thing_n but_o we_o must_v note_v that_o these_o exercise_n can_v not_o be_v comprehend_v in_o rule_n which_o may_v serve_v for_o all_o man_n general_o as_o they_o have_v attempt_v to_o do_v in_o monastery_n furthermore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o there_o be_v a_o honour_n have_v unto_o the_o body_n as_o paul_n command_v unto_o the_o colossian_n body_n col._n 2_o 23._o basil_n and_o nazianzen_n too_o much_o mortify_v their_o body_n lest_o that_o come_v to_o pass_v which_o happen_v unto_o basil_n and_o nazianzen_n otherwise_o worthy_a bishop_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o these_o immoderate_a exercise_n so_o waste_v themselves_o and_o consume_v the_o power_n of_o the_o body_n as_o they_o be_v make_v unprofitable_a for_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o keep_v their_o cabinet_n sometime_o half_a a_o year_n together_o sometime_o a_o whole_a year_n 29._o 1._o cor._n 7_o 29._o but_o those_o word_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o nine_o chapter_n the_o 29._o verse_n be_v against_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o flesh_n because_o unto_o the_o corinthian_n he_o set_v forth_o temperance_n whereby_o they_o shall_v bridle_v their_o desire_n and_o remove_v offence_n from_o their_o brethren_n by_o which_o reason_n they_o also_o be_v admonish_v who_o after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o corinthian_n when_o they_o have_v give_v their_o name_n unto_o christ_n and_o have_v begin_v to_o profess_v the_o gospel_n do_v slack_v the_o reins_n and_o bridle_n unto_o all_o kind_n of_o lust_n which_o sort_n paul_n diligent_o instruct_v welnéere_o in_o the_o whole_a sixth_o and_o seven_o chapter_n unto_o the_o roman_n 4_o but_o of_o the_o first_o principal_a point_n the_o apostle_n write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 10._o 1._o cor._n 4_o 10._o we_o carry_v about_o in_o our_o body_n the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o therein_o the_o life_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v therefore_o be_v we_o draw_v to_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n be_v rack_v &_o suffer_v many_o thing_n that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v express_v in_o our_o body_n and_o again_o that_o by_o the_o labour_n and_o travel_v of_o those_o our_o body_n the_o life_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v declare_v and_o set_v forth_o and_o to_o speak_v in_o few_o word_n the_o cross_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o adversity_n heavy_a hap_n temptation_n and_o sorrow_n as_o well_o of_o the_o mind_n as_o of_o the_o body_n the_o which_o be_v lay_v upon_o we_o by_o god_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o own_o name_n and_o for_o our_o salvation_n he_o cause_n why_o god_n will_v afflict_v they_o that_o be_v he_o but_o why_o god_n will_v have_v his_o people_n so_o to_o be_v afflict_v there_o be_v many_o cause_n show_v first_o that_o his_o wrath_n may_v be_v declare_v against_o sin_n with_o which_o kind_n of_o judgement_n god_n do_v very_o oftentimes_o begin_v at_o his_o own_o house_n to_o the_o intent_n it_o may_v be_v the_o more_o evident_a and_o that_o other_o may_v understand_v thereby_o what_o remain_v for_o they_o further_o he_o will_v by_o this_o mean_n stir_v up_o his_o own_o unto_o repentance_n and_o he_o use_v these_o adversity_n in_o steed_n of_o sermon_n the_o which_o be_v of_o more_o vehemency_n and_o effect_n than_o word_n be_v moreover_o by_o this_o mean_n every_o one_o of_o we_o do_v prove_v and_o through_o know_v himself_o for_o herein_o we_o see_v how_o much_o faith_n charity_n and_o other_o virtue_n be_v want_v or_o else_o how_o much_o of_o they_o we_o have_v already_o obtain_v of_o god_n and_o whereas_o by_o reason_n of_o sin_n we_o be_v all_o subject_n unto_o these_o evil_n which_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o death_n yet_o be_v god_n so_o good_a towards_o we_o as_o he_o will_v alter_v the_o use_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o by_o they_o his_o gospel_n and_o christian_n verity_n may_v be_v confirm_v in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o only_o have_v a_o testimony_n of_o word_n but_o also_o of_o most_o extreme_a calamity_n and_o shall_v remain_v confirm_v by_o witness_n of_o spend_v both_o blood_n and_o life_n for_o this_o cause_n christ_n suffer_v and_o so_o do_v john_n baptist_n the_o apostle_n and_o infinite_a martyr_n further_o from_o hence_o we_o have_v a_o strong_a argument_n of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o come_v and_o of_o the_o judgement_n for_o see_v the_o just_a man_n be_v so_o evil_o entertain_v in_o this_o life_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v there_o some_o alteration_n and_o change_n of_o thing_n as_o abraham_n show_v the_o rich_a man_n which_o be_v torment_v in_o the_o flame_n 25._o luke_n 16_o 25._o beside_o this_o see_v we_o be_v adopt_v to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n it_o be_v convenient_a that_o in_o the_o cross_n and_o affliction_n we_o shall_v be_v like_a unto_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o first_o beget_v moreover_o by_o this_o mean_n our_o love_n towards_o god_n be_v most_o of_o all_o declare_v for_o to_o honour_n and_o embrace_v he_o when_o all_o thing_n go_v well_o with_o we_o and_o according_a to_o our_o desire_n be_v not_o the_o property_n of_o a_o valiant_a mind_n because_o therein_o we_o may_v appear_v not_o to_o worship_n god_n in_o respect_n of_o himself_o but_o rather_o that_o we_o follow_v he_o for_o his_o benefit_n but_o if_o so_o be_v we_o fly_v not_o from_o he_o in_o time_n of_o adversity_n it_o be_v a_o token_n that_o we_o seek_v he_o and_o not_o his_o benefit_n we_o must_v also_o add_v that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v more_o declare_v in_o affliction_n and_o adversity_n than_o in_o prosperity_n for_o when_o all_o our_o do_n have_v prosperous_a success_n we_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v need_n of_o the_o help_n of_o god_n but_o when_o god_n deliver_v out_o of_o adversity_n then_o be_v he_o most_o praise_v and_o especial_o his_o power_n be_v show_v when_o he_o comfort_v we_o and_o make_v we_o cheerful_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o tribulation_n wherefore_o augustine_n augustine_n as_o augustine_n write_v upon_o the_o psalm_n say_v the_o cross_n be_v no_o small_a cause_n of_o invocate_a and_o glorifieng_v of_o god_n 12._o 2._o tim._n 3_o 12._o further_n it_o give_v a_o token_n of_o a_o godly_a life_n for_o all_o they_o which_o will_v live_v godly_a in_o christ_n shall_v suffer_v persecution_n i_o pass_v over_o that_o which_o even_o the_o ethnik_n have_v see_v namely_o that_o adversity_n do_v make_v man_n more_o industrious_a and_o more_o wise_a and_o those_o that_o be_v in_o misery_n more_o courteous_a and_o dutiful_a 20_o punishment_n do_v unto_o the_o guilty_a belong_v not_o to_o the_o cross_n cyprian_a jerom._n luke_n 23_o 40._o 1._o pet._n 2_o 20_o but_o from_o this_o cross_n of_o christ_n two_o thing_n must_v be_v remoove_v first_o thereunto_o belong_v not_o those_o punishment_n which_o come_v upon_o wicked_a man_n for_o their_o naughty_a act_n commit_v
semie_n when_o as_o abisai_n will_v have_v kill_v he_o 10._o ibidem_fw-la 10._o for_o how_o know_v thou_o say_v he_o whether_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v he_o to_o curse_v i_o that_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o man_n may_v have_v contrary_a affection_n david_n declare_v when_o he_o say_v 11._o psal_n 2_o 11._o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n and_o rejoice_v in_o he_o with_o tremble_v but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o affliction_n be_v evil_a how_o then_o can_v we_o rejoice_v in_o they_o that_o they_o be_v evil_a no_o man_n will_v deny_v for_o they_o be_v punishment_n of_o sin_n minister_n of_o death_n the_o last_o enemy_n that_o shall_v be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o at_o length_n from_o godly_a man_n be_v utterlie_o remoove_v 4_o apoc._n 21_o 4_o for_o god_n shall_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o saint_n we_o grant_v that_o affliction_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v evil_a howbeit_o we_o say_v 28._o affliction_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v evil_a rom._n 8_o 28._o that_o unto_o the_o godly_a and_o to_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n of_o who_o we_o here_o speak_v they_o be_v by_o the_o clemency_n of_o god_n make_v good_a and_o profitable_a for_o unto_o they_o all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o the_o best_a for_o neither_o do_v they_o suffer_v these_o thing_n to_o their_o hurt_n but_o to_o their_o triumph_n and_o these_o thing_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o red_a sea_n wherein_o pharaoh_n be_v drown_v similitude_n a_o similitude_n but_o israel_n be_v save_v for_o in_o the_o wicked_a they_o stir_v up_o desperation_n but_o in_o the_o godly_a a_o most_o assure_a hope_n they_o be_v instrument_n whereby_o as_o we_o have_v say_v be_v show_v forth_o the_o goodness_n and_o might_n of_o god_n both_o in_o comfort_v we_o and_o also_o in_o erect_v us._n they_o be_v occasion_n even_o of_o most_o excellent_a good_a thing_n the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o our_o infirmity_n by_o these_o thing_n as_o by_o a_o fatherlie_a chastisement_n our_o daily_a fall_n be_v repair_v haughtiness_n and_o pride_n keep_v untder_v the_o flesh_n and_o wantonness_n restrain_v our_o old_a man_n corrupt_v but_o our_o inward_a man_n renew_v sluggishness_n and_o slothfulness_n be_v shake_v off_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n be_v express_v the_o weakness_n of_o our_o strength_n be_v discover_v and_o we_o be_v provoke_v more_o earnest_o to_o pray_v and_o call_v for_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o daily_o do_v better_o understand_v the_o perverseness_n of_o our_o own_o nature_n beside_o through_o affliction_n we_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o christ_n for_o it_o behoove_v christ_n to_o suffer_v 26_o luke_n 22_o 26_o and_o so_o to_o obtain_v his_o kingdom_n &_o we_o also_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o very_a same_o step_n 7._o matt._n 11_o 12._o matt._n 7_o 13._o phil._n 2_o 7._o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n suffer_v violence_n and_o straight_o be_v the_o way_n that_o lead_v unto_o life_n but_o even_o as_o he_o after_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v exalt_v 12._o 2._o tim._n 2_o 12._o and_o have_v give_v he_o a_o name_n above_o all_o name_n so_o we_o also_o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v reign_v together_o with_o he_o and_o it_o be_v a_o sweet_a thing_n for_o a_o lover_n even_o to_o suffer_v for_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o love_v by_o this_o mean_n also_o we_o accustom_v ourselves_o unto_o patience_n that_o be_v become_v as_o it_o be_v the_o diamond_n stone_n we_o shall_v rather_o weary_v they_o that_o strike_v we_o than_o we_o ourselves_o be_v break_v for_o these_o thing_n be_v as_o exercise_n in_o a_o humane_a body_n whereby_o rather_o the_o health_n be_v confirm_v and_o the_o strength_n recover_v than_o take_v away_o or_o weaken_v through_o they_o 3._o rom._n 5_o 3._o 11_o wherefore_o the_o godly_a upon_o good_a cause_n rejoice_v in_o affliction_n know_v that_o affliction_n work_v patience_n and_o here_o be_v to_o be_v note_v a_o phrase_n of_o speech_n much_o use_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n whereby_o that_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o thing_n instrument_n that_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o thing_n be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o instrument_n be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o instrument_n or_o sign_n and_o that_o this_o be_v oftentimes_o use_v in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o have_v prove_v by_o the_o say_n of_o augustine_n albeit_o that_o our_o adversary_n be_v earnest_o against_o it_o here_o paul_n attribute_v unto_o affliction_n that_o which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n &_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n namely_o patience_n affliction_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n work_v not_o patience_n to_o work_v patience_n by_o which_o affliction_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o be_v of_o their_o own_o nature_n evil_a and_o odious_a patience_n be_v not_o get_v but_o rather_o shake_v off_o and_o this_o do_v we_o perceive_v to_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o wicked_a who_o at_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v somewhat_o gréevouslie_o afflict_v do_v burst_v forth_o into_o blasphemy_n and_o also_o fall_v oftentimes_o into_o desperation_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n but_o as_o the_o physician_n of_o thing_n venomous_a and_o hurtful_a make_v most_o healthful_a medicine_n even_o so_o almighty_a god_n by_o his_o wisdom_n out_o of_o affliction_n although_o they_o be_v evil_a thing_n bring_v forth_o most_o excellent_a virtue_n among_o which_o patience_n be_v one_o this_o virtue_n belong_v to_o fortitude_n whereunto_o be_v refer_v all_o those_o thing_n fortitude_n patience_n belong_v unto_o fortitude_n which_o the_o saint_n do_v suffer_v whether_o it_o be_v in_o courageous_a abide_n of_o affliction_n of_o the_o body_n or_o else_o in_o subdue_a of_o reason_n and_o mortify_v of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n many_o ethnik_v also_o suffer_v many_o thing_n with_o a_o valiant_a mind_n but_o yet_o endure_v they_o not_o with_o a_o i_o sound_a consolation_n only_o they_o say_v that_o by_o sorrow_n they_o can_v neither_o change_v they_o nor_o let_v they_o for_o they_o ascribe_v those_o thing_n unto_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o matter_n wherefore_o they_o say_v that_o this_o be_v our_o lot_n that_o even_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o banquet_n we_o must_v either_o drink_v or_o depart_v and_o if_o we_o chance_v to_o die_v either_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o feel_v after_o death_n or_o if_o any_o feel_v be_v we_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o better_a state_n in_o this_o manner_n do_v they_o frame_v themselves_o after_o a_o sort_n to_o bear_v all_o adversity_n but_o in_o godly_a man_n the_o consideration_n of_o fortitude_n and_o patience_n be_v far_o otherwise_o godly_a the_o consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a they_o have_v other_o cause_n and_o other_o mean_n whereby_o they_o confirm_v themselves_o for_o they_o bear_v not_o those_o thing_n with_o a_o good_a courage_n as_o though_o they_o shall_v happen_v at_o all_o adventure_n but_o because_o they_o know_v that_o by_o singular_a providence_n they_o come_v from_o the_o most_o love_a and_o almighty_a god_n from_o god_n i_o say_v their_o father_n who_o with_o a_o love_a mind_n and_o by_o his_o right_a hand_n 17_o psal_n 119_o 17_o send_v upon_o they_o those_o affliction_n to_o wit_n 2._o james._n 1_o 2._o unto_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n they_o also_o with_o their_o right_a hand_n that_o be_v to_o say_v patient_o do_v receive_v they_o and_o take_v they_o in_o good_a part_n cry_v with_o david_n it_o be_v good_a for_o i_o that_o thou_o have_v humble_v i_o and_o with_o james_n they_o reckon_v that_o all_o joy_n consist_v in_o those_o adversity_n which_o the_o most_o good_a and_o the_o most_o wise_a god_n their_o father_n send_v they_o always_o lift_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o mind_n to_o those_o promise_n of_o christ_n 4._o matt._n 5_o 4._o blessed_n be_v they_o which_o mourn_v for_o they_o shall_v receive_v comfort_n bless_a be_v they_o which_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o righteousness_n sake_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n bless_a be_v you_o when_o man_n revile_v you_o and_o persecute_v you_o and_o say_v manner_n of_o evil_n against_o you_o for_o my_o sake_n false_o rejoice_v and_o be_v glad_a for_o great_a be_v your_o reward_n in_o heaven_n they_o do_v bear_v all_o thing_n with_o a_o good_a courage_n not_o because_o in_o sorrow_v they_o can_v be_v change_v but_o because_o they_o know_v that_o in_o valiant_a suffering_n they_o offer_v themselves_o a_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n and_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v one_o day_n be_v deliver_v from_o those_o evil_n in_o the_o steed_n whereof_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o they_o most_o ample_a joy_n and_o quietness_n wherewith_o no_o fortune_n be_v it_o never_o so_o adverse_a may_v be_v compare_v for_o the_o suffering_n of_o this_o life_n 18._o rom._n 8_o 18._o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o
of_o thing_n and_o be_v miserable_o deceive_v they_o will_v at_o the_o length_n despair_n of_o be_v able_a to_o perceive_v any_o thing_n or_o else_o if_o they_o think_v they_o have_v understand_v any_o thing_n they_o shall_v false_o so_o persuade_v themselves_o and_o while_o we_o mistrust_v they_o use_v reason_n and_o understanding_n to_o search_v out_o the_o truth_n they_o overthwart_v we_o and_o as_o any_o thing_n either_o gréevous_a or_o pleasant_a shall_v be_v bring_v to_o mind_n they_o call_v we_o against_o our_o will_n from_o our_o earnest_a study_n further_n who_o see_v not_o that_o in_o every_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n there_o be_v need_n of_o sever_a the_o mind_n which_o the_o more_o earnest_a it_o be_v and_o the_o more_o the_o matter_n be_v exclude_v from_o our_o cogitation_n the_o more_o excellent_a and_o worthy_a kind_n of_o knowledge_n be_v have_v and_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o that_o knowledge_n which_o we_o use_v in_o contemplation_n and_o discern_v of_o any_o thing_n but_o if_o thou_o go_v unto_o that_o knowledge_n which_o be_v perform_v in_o do_v and_o practise_v which_o common_o by_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v practice_n there_o it_o be_v dispute_v chéeflie_o whether_o the_o matter_n be_v honest_a and_o just_a but_o of_o that_o which_o be_v good_a honest_a just_a of_o virtue_n and_o such_o like_a no_o sense_n of_o the_o body_n have_v knowledge_n at_o all_o i_o pass_v over_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o body_n it_o be_v needful_a to_o eat_v to_o drink_v to_o prepare_v garment_n and_o such_o other_o necessary_n innumerable_a which_o commodity_n see_v it_o be_v a_o most_o laboursome_a thing_n to_o attain_v it_o be_v unspeakable_a how_o much_o we_o be_v for_o this_o cause_n draw_v away_o from_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n yea_o and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o disappoint_v of_o these_o thing_n we_o must_v heap_v riches_n together_o hereof_o come_v chide_n contention_n war_n and_o infinite_a other_o thing_n which_o if_o so_o be_v they_o do_v not_o overthrow_v all_o good_a endeavour_n yet_o do_v they_o corrupt_v &_o hinder_v the_o same_o whereof_o it_o come_v as_o it_o be_v conclude_v by_o the_o philosopher_n that_o by_o reason_n of_o all_o the_o thing_n now_o speak_v of_o either_o we_o shall_v know_v any_o thing_n with_o a_o true_a and_o perfect_a knowledge_n or_o else_o that_o we_o shall_v attain_v the_o same_o after_o death_n only_o then_o see_v that_o the_o mind_n do_v so_o much_o the_o more_o know_v and_o understand_v any_o thing_n as_o it_o be_v more_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n and_o less_o cleave_v thereunto_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o ought_v continual_o to_o indevor_n to_o withdraw_v the_o mind_n from_o the_o body_n and_o this_o they_o make_v to_o be_v the_o very_a cleanse_n of_o man_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o pure_a shall_v be_v divide_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o unpure_a now_o than_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o they_o make_v the_o body_n to_o be_v the_o prison_n and_o sepulchre_n of_o the_o mind_n if_o thou_o peruse_v history_n depart_v many_o have_v kill_v themselves_o to_o visit_v their_o friend_n depart_v thou_o shall_v find_v many_o which_o kill_v themselves_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v go_v to_o visit_v their_o lover_n and_o dear_a friend_n which_o be_v depart_v and_o shall_v we_o say_v they_o bear_v it_o gréevouslie_o if_o death_n come_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a manifest_o and_o without_o impediment_n to_o behold_v the_o truth_n wherefore_o they_o say_v that_o they_o which_o for_o death_n sake_n afflict_v or_o macerate_v themselves_o and_o die_v through_o sorrow_n and_o sadness_n be_v not_o worthy_a the_o name_n of_o philosopher_n but_o to_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lover_n of_o their_o own_o body_n or_o 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lover_n of_o riches_n 5_o in_o this_o say_n of_o the_o philosopher_n now_o declare_v why_o death_n be_v a_o evil_a thing_n and_o why_o be_v comprehend_v certain_a thing_n which_o be_v not_o very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o the_o right_a catholic_a faith_n for_o we_o say_v that_o death_n be_v to_o be_v count_v not_o good_a but_o evil_a see_v god_n lay_v the_o same_o upon_o mankind_n as_o a_o punishment_n 19_o gen._n 3_o 19_o wherefore_o he_o will_v have_v we_o mourn_v and_o lament_v for_o the_o same_o the_o which_o thou_o see_v to_o be_v do_v by_o humane_a law_n for_o if_o any_o grievous_a offence_n be_v commit_v by_o citizen_n they_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n and_o all_o live_a creature_n which_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o nature_n which_o can_v not_o be_v deceive_v because_o it_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n see_v they_o shun_v death_n and_o by_o a_o certain_a common_a sense_n by_o all_o mean_n abhor_v it_o no_o doubt_n but_o they_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o evil_a thing_n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n also_o to_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o contrary_n life_n be_v account_v good_a wherefore_o death_n be_v evil_a and_o that_o life_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o good_a thing_n hereby_o thou_o may_v perfect_o perceive_v because_o god_n promise_v the_o same_o as_o the_o reward_n of_o obedience_n towards_o his_o law_n he_o that_o do_v these_o thing_n say_v he_o shall_v live_v 5._o levit._fw-la 18_o 5._o further_o death_n be_v evil_a see_v it_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n through_o a_o evil_a cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v through_o sin_n 19_o gen._n 3_o 19_o and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n doubt_v not_o to_o call_v the_o same_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n for_o paul_n write_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 26_o 1._o co._n 15_o 26_o that_o the_o last_o enemy_n which_o shall_v be_v destroy_v by_o christ_n be_v death_n and_o it_o be_v so_o evil_a as_o it_o darken_v the_o action_n of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o excellent_a virtue_n i_o mean_v the_o delight_n of_o fortitude_n or_o valiant_a courage_n for_o as_o testify_v aristotle_n in_o his_o ethic_n the_o same_o work_v not_o with_o pleasure_n except_o it_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n that_o it_o have_v relation_n unto_o the_o end_n for_o a_o man_n of_o valiant_a courage_n while_o he_o die_v for_o a_o honest_a cause_n do_v it_o not_o without_o grief_n and_o some_o sadness_n which_o how_o true_a it_o be_v 37_o matt._n 26_o 37_o be_v declare_v in_o christ_n himself_o when_o as_o in_o the_o garden_n he_o abide_v the_o conflict_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n philosopher_n a_o humane_a body_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v against_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o philosopher_n then_o be_v they_o deceive_v in_o this_o consolation_n of_o they_o while_o they_o will_v make_v death_n to_o be_v good_a unto_o us._n moreover_o this_o reason_n of_o they_o have_v a_o other_o absurdity_n because_o they_o condemn_v a_o humane_a body_n the_o which_o be_v a_o worthy_a and_o notable_a gift_n of_o god_n not_o a_o unperfect_a but_o a_o most_o excellent_a woorkmanship_n of_o god_n shine_v therein_o who_o be_v able_a to_o express_v how_o cunning_o the_o same_o have_v be_v wrought_v by_o god_n this_o be_v a_o wonder_a thing_n not_o only_o unto_o aristotle_n galen_n and_o other_o ethnic_a writer_n but_o also_o unto_o lactantius_n gregory_n nazianzen_n 2._o psal_n 8_o 2._o and_o other_o catholic_a father_n innumerable_a and_o david_n confess_v that_o thereby_o be_v know_v the_o wonder_a wisdom_n of_o god_n final_o see_v we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o god_n make_v the_o same_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o creature_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n plain_o confess_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n himself_o that_o whatsoever_o thing_n god_n make_v they_o be_v very_o good_a it_o follow_v without_o all_o controversy_n that_o the_o same_o also_o be_v good_a 6_o as_o touch_v the_o conjunction_n also_o of_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o we_o must_v affirm_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v account_v good_a lest_o we_o fall_v into_o that_o opinion_n which_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o origin_n namely_o that_o soul_n for_o their_o demerit_n in_o a_o other_o life_n be_v thrust_v unto_o body_n who_o the_o apostle_n sufficient_o proove_v to_o have_v judge_v amiss_o who_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n say_v concern_v jacob_n and_o esau_n 12._o rom._n 9_o 12._o when_o as_o they_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o do_v any_o thing_n either_o good_a or_o evil_n of_o the_o one_o it_o be_v say_v jacob_n have_v i_o love_v and_o of_o the_o other_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v neither_o be_v the_o thing_n obscure_a to_o he_o that_o do_v well_o
civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o unto_o paulinus_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la he_o cit_v eusebius_n caesariensis_n which_o report_v that_o in_o gallia_n there_o be_v martyr_n slay_v for_o profess_v of_o christ_n who_o body_n be_v burn_v and_o their_o ash_n throw_v into_o rhodanus_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v bury_v be_v those_o holy_a confessor_n any_o thing_n less_o happy_a for_o this_o cause_n i_o judge_v no._n the_o very_a same_o thing_n happen_v at_o rome_n live_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o the_o dead_a profit_v not_o they_o but_o be_v consolation_n of_o the_o live_n 10_o but_o to_o answer_v unto_o the_o argument_n object_v let_v this_o be_v the_o proposition_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v at_o funeral_n and_o in_o burieng_v of_o dead_a body_n belong_v unto_o they_o which_o be_v alive_a they_o be_v their_o consolation_n they_o nothing_o profit_v the_o dead_a this_o understand_v by_o a_o argument_n of_o contrary_n even_o as_o it_o profit_v not_o the_o wicked_a to_o be_v bury_v so_o it_o hurt_v not_o the_o faithful_a to_o lie_v unbury_v certain_o if_o it_o do_v profit_n and_o further_o unto_o salvation_n unhappy_a be_v the_o state_n of_o poor_a man_n who_o oftentimes_o be_v without_o burial_n and_o especial_o of_o martyr_n against_o who_o dead_a body_n the_o tyrant_n be_v cruel_a that_o which_o virgil_n and_o poet_n say_v argument_n a_o answer_n unto_o the_o contrary_a argument_n namely_o that_o soul_n can_v pass_v away_o unless_o their_o body_n be_v first_o bury_v be_v to_o to_o fabulous_a but_o if_o thou_o will_v say_v we_o read_v of_o such_o a_o like_a matter_n although_o it_o be_v not_o altogether_o the_o same_o in_o the_o find_n out_o of_o many_o of_o the_o martyr_n body_n which_o appéer_v unto_o diverse_a and_o show_v their_o dead_a carcase_n and_o will_v be_v honourable_o bury_v therefore_o they_o care_v for_o sepulcher_n which_o thing_n we_o read_v in_o find_v out_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n steeven_n that_o geruasius_n also_o and_o prothasius_fw-la appéer_v unto_o ambrose_n dead_a apparition_n of_o the_o dead_a he_o himself_o testify_v some_o such_o thing_n be_v report_v of_o find_v the_o head_n of_o john_n baptist_n but_o i_o beseech_v thou_o to_o consider_v here_o that_o see_v these_o appéering_n tend_v to_o that_o end_n not_o only_o that_o body_n shall_v be_v bury_v but_o that_o bury_a body_n shall_v after_o a_o sort_n be_v dig_v up_o and_o idolatry_n be_v bring_v in_o whereby_o the_o man_n may_v worship_v relic_n and_o dead_a carcase_n there_o must_v not_o be_v much_o attribute_v unto_o they_o yea_o if_o they_o happen_v under_o this_o pretence_n they_o must_v not_o be_v credit_v tell_v i_o i_o pray_v thou_o if_o one_o shall_v appear_v to_o thou_o in_o thy_o dream_n and_o shall_v declare_v to_o thou_o that_o his_o body_n be_v unbury_v willing_a or_o desire_v thou_o to_o hide_v the_o same_o because_o he_o may_v not_o attain_v unto_o rest_n by_o reason_n thereof_o if_o thou_o search_v out_o his_o body_n shall_v find_v it_o according_a as_o he_o have_v show_v thou_o will_v thou_o therefore_o believe_v that_o fabulous_a feign_v of_o poet_n i_o think_v not_o but_o thou_o will_v suppose_v that_o the_o same_o vision_n in_o thy_o dream_n happen_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a even_o as_o we_o oftentimes_o be_v alive_a appear_v in_o dream_n unto_o our_o friend_n we_o have_v no_o knowledge_n thereof_o or_o else_o thou_o will_v suspect_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o thou_o be_v deceive_v with_o that_o odious_a opinion_n shall_v err_v from_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o if_o so_o be_v we_o think_v that_o such_o thing_n happen_v in_o the_o martyr_n wherefore_o be_v we_o reproove_v the_o devil_n care_v for_o nothing_o else_o but_o that_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n may_v flourish_v neither_o will_v he_o refrain_v from_o deceive_v of_o man_n with_o the_o bone_n of_o holy_a martyr_n for_o see_v he_o have_v also_o so_o perniciouslie_o delude_v mankind_n in_o the_o symbol_n or_o sign_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o have_v study_v and_o endeavour_v to_o obtrude_v these_o thing_n unto_o we_o for_o idol_n neither_o do_v it_o otherwise_o fall_v out_o than_o he_o look_v for_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o he_o do_v the_o same_o in_o the_o bone_n of_o dead_a man_n see_v our_o sin_n have_v most_o justly_o deserve_v the_o same_o yet_o will_v i_o not_o obstinate_o affirm_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v unpossible_a but_o that_o god_n do_v sometime_o provide_v that_o the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n may_v be_v honest_o bury_v aswell_o to_o show_v what_o account_n he_o make_v of_o they_o and_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o they_o as_o also_o to_o renew_v to_o we_o the_o memory_n of_o they_o but_o forsomuch_o as_o i_o see_v so_o many_o foul_a and_o ungodlie_a woorshipping_n arise_v thereof_o i_o be_o thorough_o persuade_v to_o believe_v that_o those_o work_n be_v do_v by_o the_o devil_n endeavour_n it_o must_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o do_v for_o increase_v of_o their_o salvation_n &_o heap_v up_o of_o their_o felicity_n for_o how_o do_v they_o understand_v or_o perceive_v what_o be_v do_v here_o among_o we_o touch_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o they_o their_o state_n serve_v not_o to_o know_v that_o unless_o god_n declare_v it_o unto_o they_o which_o thing_n we_o must_v believe_v that_o god_n do_v unto_o abraham_n when_o he_o say_v unto_o that_o rich_a man_n which_o be_v torment_v in_o hell_n 29._o luk._n 16_o 29._o they_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n let_v they_o hear_v they_o howbeit_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o parable_n be_v not_o to_o be_v draw_v unto_o argument_n which_o shall_v serve_v for_o prove_v of_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n 11_o whereas_o it_o be_v afterward_o say_v that_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o general_a mind_n of_o we_o all_o that_o sepulcher_n do_v profit_v some_o thing_n otherwise_o they_o will_v not_o be_v so_o diligent_o care_v for_o of_o all_o man_n we_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o maxim_n in_o no_o wise_a to_o be_v deny_v 29_o ephes_n 5_o 29_o every_o man_n love_v his_o own_o flesh_n neither_o do_v he_o so_o hate_v the_o same_o as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o accustom_a duty_n and_o honour_n wherefore_o as_o touch_v they_o that_o live_v we_o willing_o grant_v that_o burial_n do_v somewhat_o profit_n but_o not_o as_o touch_v they_o that_o be_v dead_a alive_a after_o what_o manner_n burial_n do_v belong_v unto_o we_o that_o be_v alive_a when_o i_o say_v they_o that_o live_v understand_v even_o themselves_o who_o shall_v be_v bury_v for_o while_o they_o live_v and_o think_v of_o themselves_o they_o will_v well_o unto_o their_o own_o flesh_n and_o desire_v that_o they_o may_v be_v bury_v after_o the_o usual_a manner_n or_o else_o those_o which_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v dead_a do_v any_o way_n perteine_a unto_o they_o by_o some_o affinity_n or_o friendship_n and_o do_v think_v of_o they_o as_o touch_v these_o then_o we_o willing_o grant_v that_o it_o somewhat_o further_v to_o be_v bury_v and_o intoomb_v by_o which_o place_n thou_o see_v what_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o the_o prophet_n 20_o 1._o kin._n 13_o 20_o unto_o who_o the_o unburieng_n be_v appoint_v as_o a_o punishment_n it_o be_v no_o doubt_n a_o punishment_n unto_o he_o be_v alive_a to_o remember_v what_o hard_a hap_n that_o flesh_n of_o he_o shall_v have_v which_o see_v it_o will_v in_o common_a sense_n be_v displease_v unto_o he_o it_o may_v draw_v he_o back_o from_o sin_n follow_v by_o that_o which_o go_v before_o be_v understand_v that_o which_o follow_v i_o let_v it_o pass_v that_o by_o a_o figurative_a kind_n of_o speech_n that_o which_o follow_v be_v understand_v by_o that_o which_o go_v before_o that_o he_o shall_v die_v out_o of_o his_o native_a country_n be_v destitute_a of_o a_o number_n of_o help_n and_o succour_n of_o his_o own_o friend_n &_o shall_v die_v with_o a_o kind_n of_o cruel_a death_n unto_o josias_n also_o 19_o 2._o kin._n 22._o 19_o when_o burial_n be_v promise_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v good_a he_o be_v yet_o alive_a &_o weigh_v the_o thing_n do_v before_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v carry_v away_o into_o captivity_n and_o the_o man_n of_o jabe_n be_v say_v to_o have_v deal_v very_o merciful_o with_o their_o master_n in_o burieng_v of_o they_o 5._o 1._o sam._n 2_o 5._o in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o show_v that_o unto_o they_o which_o they_o poor_a wretch_n will_v have_v do_v to_o their_o own_o self_n when_o as_o they_o remember_v their_o own_o end_n for_o not_o
so_o in_o the_o resurrection_n which_o be_v a_o second_o nativity_n he_o shall_v be_v repair_v again_o in_o the_o 19_o 28._o verse_n 28._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o regeneration_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v sit_v in_o his_o majesty_n in_o deed_n the_o regeneration_n as_o concern_v the_o soul_n begin_v now_o but_o it_o shall_v be_v then_o perform_v as_o touch_v the_o body_n so_o as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a new_a generation_n which_o i_o therefore_o say_v lest_o it_o shall_v be_v esteem_v for_o a_o creation_n the_o which_o be_v not_o do_v of_o thing_n that_o be_v extant_a but_o of_o nothing_o howbeit_o it_o be_v not_o always_o take_v after_o this_o sort_n in_o the_o divine_a scripture_n wherefore_o the_o soul_n shall_v return_v and_o of_o her_o be_v shall_v impart_v unto_o the_o body_n even_o as_o it_o do_v before_o death_n and_o shall_v not_o only_o give_v a_o be_v thereunto_o but_o it_o shall_v bring_v therewith_o all_o the_o property_n of_o man_n and_o shall_v communicate_v they_o thereunto_o in_o deed_n there_o shall_v be_v some_o diversity_n but_o yet_o not_o as_o concern_v the_o essential_a beginning_n only_o the_o thing_n accidental_a shall_v be_v change_v the_o which_o may_v be_v alter_v notwithstanding_o that_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o subject_n still_o remain_v for_o other_o be_v the_o quality_n and_o affection_n of_o child_n and_o other_o of_o young_a man_n and_o old_a man_n yet_o be_v the_o person_n all_o one_o and_o even_o the_o same_o man_n both_o in_o childhood_n in_o youth_n define_v resurrection_n define_v and_o in_o age_n thus_o than_o we_o may_v define_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a namely_o that_o it_o be_v a_o new_a couple_v together_o of_o the_o soul_n unto_o the_o body_n by_o the_o might_n or_o power_n of_o god_n that_o man_n may_v stand_v whole_o in_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o may_v receive_v reward_n or_o punishment_n according_a to_o the_o state_n of_o their_o former_a life_n by_o this_o definition_n all_o the_o kind_n of_o cause_n be_v express_v the_o form_n be_v the_o couple_v together_o of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n the_o which_o also_o be_v do_v so_o soon_o as_o man_n be_v bear_v and_o therefore_o be_v add_v new_a or_o doone_n again_o namely_o after_o death_n the_o efficient_a cause_n be_v show_v when_o we_o affirm_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v by_o the_o might_n and_o power_n of_o god_n the_o matter_n be_v the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n which_o shall_v again_o be_v join_v together_o the_o end_n also_o be_v that_o at_o the_o last_o judgement_n it_o may_v be_v determine_v of_o the_o whole_a man_n beast_n the_o difference_n between_o the_o death_n of_o man_n and_o the_o death_n of_o brute_n beast_n 13_o furthermore_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v no_o small_a difference_n between_o the_o death_n of_o man_n which_o go_v before_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o death_n whereby_o brute_n beast_n do_v perish_v for_o the_o death_n of_o man_n be_v call_v a_o separation_n of_o the_o soul_n from_o the_o body_n for_o albeit_o that_o the_o body_n do_v perish_v yet_o do_v the_o soul_n still_o remain_v alive_a which_o happen_v not_o in_o brute_n beast_n who_o death_n be_v destruction_n of_o mind_n and_o body_n both_o together_o whereupon_o that_o which_o solomon_n say_v in_o ecclesiastes_n 19_o eccl._n 3_o 19_o that_o the_o end_n of_o man_n and_o of_o beast_n be_v all_o one_o be_v not_o true_a unless_o it_o be_v understand_v general_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n that_o death_n happen_v to_o both_o but_o the_o kind_n of_o death_n be_v not_o all_o one_o both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o in_o the_o other_o but_o of_o the_o sentence_n bring_v by_o solomon_n shall_v be_v speak_v afterward_o i_o make_v mention_n of_o it_o now_o because_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o even_o as_o between_o brute_n beast_n and_o man_n be_v give_v a_o sundry_a respect_n of_o death_n so_o if_o resurrection_n also_o shall_v be_v grant_v to_o they_o both_o the_o form_n of_o the_o same_o shall_v not_o be_v all_o one_o wherefore_o although_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o body_n and_o not_o of_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o shall_v rise_v yet_o without_o the_o soul_n the_o resurrection_n shall_v not_o be_v for_o the_o same_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v present_a but_o yet_o it_o may_v after_o some_o sort_n be_v say_v of_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o shall_v rise_v again_o in_o two_o respect_n first_o again_o in_o two_o respect_n the_o soul_n be_v say_v to_o rise_v again_o that_o even_o as_o through_o death_n it_o cease_v to_o form_n and_o direct_v the_o body_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n after_o a_o sort_n to_o die_v so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n when_o it_o return_v to_o form_n and_o direct_v the_o same_o it_o may_v as_o touch_v these_o thing_n be_v say_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o rise_v again_o an_o other_o cause_n be_v that_o even_o the_o soul_n be_v say_v to_o fall_v so_o as_o if_o it_o be_v his_o property_n to_o rise_v again_o which_o have_v fall_v they_o also_o see_v after_o a_o sort_n they_o fall_v may_v be_v understand_v to_o rise_v therefore_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o colossian_n 1._o col._n 3_o 1._o if_o you_o have_v rise_v together_o with_o christ_n savour_v you_o of_o thing_n that_o be_v from_o above_o now_o be_v there_o any_o doubt_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o soul_n for_o they_o as_o yet_o live_v to_o who_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o roman_n also_o he_o say_v 4._o rom._n 6_o 4._o if_o christ_n be_v rise_v by_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n so_o walk_v you_o also_o in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n 14._o ephe._n 5_o 14._o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a rise_z and_o christ_n shall_v illuminate_v thou_o and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 7._o eccl._n 2_o 7._o the_o second_o chapter_n shrink_v not_o away_o from_o god_n that_o you_o fall_v not_o again_o he_o that_o stand_v 12_o 1._o co._n 10_o 12_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n he_o fall_v not_o and_o unto_o the_o roman_n 4._o rom._n 14._o 4._o as_o touch_v the_o not_o judge_v of_o a_o other_o man_n servant_n it_o be_v write_v he_o stand_v or_o fall_v to_o his_o own_o master_n see_v therefore_o that_o all_o these_o place_n be_v refer_v to_o soul_n it_o seem_v that_o both_o fall_n and_o resurrection_n belong_v unto_o they_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a resurrection_n the_o scripture_n appoint_v two_o sort_n of_o resurrection_n but_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v put_v two_o sort_n of_o resurrection_n namely_o a_o former_a and_o a_o latter_a in_o the_o first_o we_o rise_v in_o the_o soul_n from_o sin_n but_o in_o the_o latter_a the_o body_n be_v restore_v now_o at_o this_o time_n we_o speak_v of_o the_o latter_a therefore_o say_v we_o that_o the_o same_o be_v proper_a unto_o the_o body_n and_o even_o as_o in_o that_o former_a the_o soul_n rise_v again_o and_o not_o the_o body_n so_o in_o the_o latter_a the_o body_n rise_v and_o not_o the_o soul_n 14_o these_o two_o sort_n of_o resurrection_n we_o gather_v 6._o apoc._n 20_o 6._o not_o only_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n where_o they_o be_v pronounce_v bless_v which_o have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o first_o resurrection_n but_o we_o learn_v it_o also_o out_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o john_n 28._o john_n 5_o 28._o where_o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n both_o be_v join_v together_o in_o one_o place_n first_o christ_n speak_v there_o of_o the_o former_a resurrection_n when_o he_o say_v the_o time_n come_v and_o now_o be_v when_o the_o dead_a shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o believe_v it_o shall_v live_v that_o these_o word_n belong_v unto_o the_o first_o resurrection_n it_o sufficient_o appear_v in_o that_o he_o say_v the_o time_n will_v come_v and_o now_o be_v but_o there_o be_v no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o hour_n of_o the_o latter_a resurrection_n be_v then_o present_a so_o as_o then_o he_o mean_v that_o those_o dead_a shall_v live_v again_o if_o they_o beléeve_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o for_o their_o sin_n be_v destitute_a of_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o soul_n of_o who_o christ_n say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n 28._o matt._n 8_o 28._o let_v the_o dead_a bury_v their_o dead_a and_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n it_o be_v write_v 1._o eph._n 2_o 1._o when_o you_o be_v dead_a in_o your_o offence_n and_o sin_n and_o unto_o timothy_n it_o be_v write_v of_o widow_n 5._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 5._o she_o that_o be_v true_o a_o widow_n continue_v still_o in_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n before_o the_o lord_n but_o she_o that_o live_v in_o
worldly_a pleasure_n she_o be_v dead_a while_o she_o yet_o live_v undoubted_o before_o justification_n by_o faith_n we_o be_v all_o dead_a in_o original_a sin_n or_o else_o in_o those_o sin_n which_o we_o of_o our_o own_o accord_n have_v add_v by_o our_o choice_n and_o we_o have_v altogether_o need_n of_o this_o resurrection_n from_o death_n but_o between_o the_o first_o resurrection_n and_o the_o latter_a there_o be_v very_o much_o difference_n because_o the_o first_o belong_v unto_o the_o elect_a only_o and_o unto_o they_o which_o shall_v perpetuallie_o be_v make_v bless_v but_o the_o latter_a belong_v unto_o all_o as_o well_o miserable_a as_o bless_a of_o the_o which_o resurrection_n christ_n add_v in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o john_n 28._o joh._n 1_o 28._o say_v and_o marvel_v you_o not_o for_o the_o time_n will_v come_v when_o they_o that_o be_v in_o their_o grave_n shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o shall_v come_v forth_o they_o that_o have_v do_v well_o into_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v ill_o into_o the_o resurrection_n of_o judgement_n here_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o grave_n that_o be_v of_o sepulcher_n further_o he_o say_v the_o time_n will_v come_v and_o say_v not_o that_o it_o be_v already_o come_v wherefore_o as_o there_o be_v appoint_v a_o first_o and_o second_o death_n so_o be_v there_o also_o appoint_v a_o first_o and_o second_o resurrection_n but_o we_o as_o it_o have_v be_v already_o say_v do_v only_o entreat_v at_o this_o present_a of_o the_o latter_a 15_o thus_o it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v a_o action_n of_o those_o kind_n of_o thing_n which_o consist_v of_o miracle_n and_o not_o of_o nature_n he_o than_o that_o shall_v demand_v whether_o it_o be_v natural_a we_o will_v answer_v he_o after_o this_o manner_n as_o touch_v the_o form_n the_o which_o i_o say_v be_v a_o join_v together_o of_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n the_o name_n of_o natural_a be_v not_o to_o be_v refuse_v for_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n that_o the_o soul_n shall_v be_v join_v to_o the_o body_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n and_o of_o the_o mean_a those_o thing_n do_v utterlie_o go_v beyond_o nature_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o may_v easy_o answer_v to_o the_o three_o point_n of_o this_o treatise_n wherein_o it_o be_v demand_v whether_o for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a reason_n whether_o the_o resurrection_n may_v be_v prove_v and_o declare_v by_o natural_a reason_n there_o may_v be_v natural_a reason_n give_v and_o demonstration_n make_v after_o this_o manner_n i_o say_v see_v the_o thing_n itself_o pass_v all_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n there_o can_v no_o reason_n be_v make_v for_o this_o kind_n in_o deed_n there_o be_v some_o reason_n of_o force_n great_a enough_o but_o if_o they_o be_v diligent_o examine_v they_o be_v probable_a argument_n yet_o respect_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n they_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o plain_a we_o must_v understand_v kind_n probable_a reason_n of_o two_o kind_n that_o demonstration_n be_v two_o fold_n for_o there_o be_v some_o which_o resolve_v their_o question_n into_o principle_n which_o be_v know_v by_o themselves_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n but_o there_o be_v very_o few_o reason_n of_o this_o kind_n so_o as_o a_o certain_a few_o only_a can_v be_v show_v in_o the_o mathematical_o other_o there_o be_v which_o although_o they_o consist_v not_o of_o proposition_n know_v at_o the_o first_o and_o by_o themselves_o yet_o the_o proposition_n whereby_o they_o conclude_v may_v resolve_v into_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v very_o and_o of_o themselves_o know_v and_o again_o there_o be_v certain_a argument_n which_o consist_v of_o true_a and_o necessary_a principle_n but_o yet_o not_o evident_a in_o that_o science_n which_o use_v they_o but_o such_o as_o be_v show_v and_o true_o know_v in_o a_o high_a and_o more_o worthy_a faculty_n this_o kind_n of_o science_n be_v common_o call_v subalternum_fw-la that_o be_v which_o succéede_v by_o turn_n for_o a_o musician_n show_v and_o conclude_v some_o thing_n of_o harmony_n and_o sound_n which_o he_o show_v and_o make_v out_o of_o certain_a principle_n in_o arythmeticke_n which_o kind_n of_o argument_n be_v demonstrative_a yet_o to_o he_o that_o know_v both_o the_o science_n namely_o arythmeticke_n and_o music_n but_o to_o he_o that_o be_v only_o a_o musician_n it_o can_v be_v call_v a_o demonstration_n see_v thereof_o be_v make_v no_o resolution_n into_o principle_n that_o be_v know_v at_o the_o first_o and_o by_o themselves_o even_o so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o reason_n concern_v resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a many_o reason_n for_o the_o same_o be_v bring_v of_o natural_a proposition_n the_o which_o be_v very_o probable_a but_o if_o the_o principle_n of_o they_o be_v examine_v natural_a man_n and_o such_o as_o only_o respect_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v convince_v because_o they_o can_v see_v a_o resolution_n unto_o supernatural_a cause_n the_o which_o may_v prove_v a_o conclusion_n and_o constant_o approve_v the_o same_o but_o godly_a man_n when_o they_o refer_v these_o proposition_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o their_o resolution_n fortify_v and_o confirm_v they_o thereby_o they_o have_v they_o for_o demonstration_n which_o in_o deed_n procee_v not_o from_o natural_a knowledge_n but_o from_o faith_n which_o altogether_o depend_v of_o divine_a oracle_n 16_o but_o by_o what_o way_n the_o philosopher_n and_o they_o which_o lean_a only_a on_o natural_a reason_n resurrection_n a_o ponder_v of_o the_o probable_a reason_n which_o make_v for_o resurrection_n do_v set_v themselves_o against_o the_o reason_n which_o be_v draw_v forth_o of_o natural_a principle_n must_v now_o be_v declare_v and_o now_o to_o begin_v with_o those_o reason_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v more_o strength_n than_o the_o rest_n first_o they_o say_v that_o a_o thing_n unperfect_a be_v not_o capable_a of_o perfect_a felicity_n but_o the_o soul_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n be_v maim_v &_o unperfect_a therefore_o the_o soul_n for_o obtain_v of_o felicity_n must_v be_v again_o join_v to_o the_o body_n this_o argument_n the_o philosopher_n answer_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n for_o either_o they_o will_v say_v that_o the_o part_n which_o be_v pull_v from_o the_o other_o be_v unperfect_a thing_n that_o the_o soul_n be_v pull_v from_o the_o body_n be_v a_o unperfect_a thing_n forsomuch_o as_o it_o receive_v some_o benefit_n and_o perfection_n from_o that_o other_o but_o that_o this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o it_o give_v her_o good_a thing_n to_o the_o body_n when_o as_o yet_o it_o receive_v nothing_o of_o it_o either_o of_o perfection_n or_o profit_n therefore_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o body_n be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d felicity_n of_o the_o soul_n or_o else_o they_o will_v a●…der_v that_o unto_o the_o perfect_a blessedness_n of_o the_o ●oule_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o the_o last_o good_a thing_n be_v present_a with_o it_o whereby_o it_o perfect_o understand_v the_o same_o and_o do_v embrace_v it_o with_o singular_a delight_n and_o that_o the_o body_n be_v not_o needful_a thereunto_o but_o to_o the_o faithful_a the_o reason_n that_o be_v bring_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o scripture_n because_o there_o they_o learn_v that_o soul_n &_o body_n together_o be_v cast_v by_o god_n into_o hell_n 28._o matt._n 10_o 28._o but_o if_o he_o do_v so_o as_o touch_v punishment_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o do_v so_o as_o touch_v towards_o another_o argument_n be_v frame_v after_o this_o sort_n whatsoever_o shall_v be_v against_o nature_n be_v not_o perpetual_a nature_n whether_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o soul_n from_o the_o body_n be_v against_o nature_n but_o it_o be_v against_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o it_o shall_v continue_v sever_v from_o the_o body_n but_o it_o continue_v see_v it_o be_v immortal_a and_o fall_v not_o together_o with_o the_o body_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a thing_n unto_o it_o to_o be_v the_o form_n of_o the_o body_n so_o be_v it_o against_o the_o nature_n thereof_o to_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o same_o if_o this_o can_v be_v perpetual_a there_o remain_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o it_o be_v again_o unite_v to_o the_o body_n unto_o this_o reason_n first_o the_o ethnik_n will_v say_v that_o that_o which_o be_v take_v for_o a_o certain_a and_o evident_a thing_n mortal_a the_o philosopher_n judge_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v mortal_a be_v unto_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n obscure_a namely_o that_o the_o soul_n after_o death_n remain_v and_o be_v immortal_a for_o noble_a philosopher_n not_o a_o few_o
judge_v far_o otherwise_o auerroës_n tertullian_n gregory_n nazianzen_n aristotle_n alexander_n aphrodysaeus_n auerroës_n yea_o and_o by_o very_o learned_a man_n to_o wit_n tertullian_n and_o gregory_n nazianzen_n it_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o aristotle_n himself_o that_o he_o think_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n to_o be_v mortal_a and_o alexander_n aphrodysaeus_n no_o mean_a peripatetic_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n and_o auerroes_n teach_v in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o peripatetik_n that_o there_o be_v only_o one_o humane_a intelligence_n which_o by_o conceit_n be_v adjoin_v unto_o every_o man_n wherefore_o this_o principle_n that_o be_v assume_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o soul_n after_o death_n remain_v uncorrupt_a see_v it_o be_v a_o doubt_n and_o depend_v not_o of_o thing_n which_o of_o themselves_o be_v know_v and_o evident_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n the_o argument_n that_o be_v build_v thereupon_o stagger_v and_o can_v be_v count_v firm_a auicenna_n auicenna_n for_o auicenna_n in_o his_o metaphysic_n faith_n that_o the_o soul_n be_v therefore_o join_v to_o the_o body_n because_o through_o the_o outward_a sense_n it_o may_v procure_v unto_o itself_o both_o inward_a knowledge_v and_o science_n of_o thing_n which_o when_o it_o have_v once_o obtain_v there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o resort_v again_o to_o that_o conjunction_n other_o confute_v this_o reason_n more_o subtle_o say_v that_o it_o be_v against_o nature_n not_o to_o be_v continual_a when_o the_o original_n of_o the_o restitution_n thereof_o remain_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n but_o if_o these_o be_v utterlie_o abolish_v restitution_n be_v not_o to_o be_v look_v for_o and_o that_o which_o they_o have_v allege_v they_o set_v forth_o with_o a_o indifferent_a plain_a similitude_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n a_o tree_n say_v they_o be_v cut_v off_o lie_v along_o against_o his_o nature_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v restore_v if_o the_o root_n remain_v be_v quick_a because_o it_o spring_v and_o grow_v again_o but_o if_o the_o root_n be_v altogether_o pluck_v up_o the_o destruction_n shall_v be_v perpetual_a whereby_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v pull_v away_o from_o the_o body_n do_v sufficient_o understand_v that_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n there_o be_v no_o more_o extant_a the_o beginning_n of_o this_o conjunction_n to_o be_v make_v again_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o affect_v with_o the_o desire_n thereof_o because_o the_o chief_a of_o our_o will_n be_v not_o carry_v to_o thing_n impossible_a thus_o wido●…_n ethniks_n answer_n to_o the_o reason_n that_o be_v bring_v but_o the_o faithful_a use_n the_o same_o reason_n &_o comfort_v themselves_o in_o confirm_v it_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o immortality_n of_o our_o soul_n after_o death_n in_o confirm_v &_o free_a power_n of_o unite_n it_o with_o the_o body_n be_v grant_v to_o be_v in_o god_n 17_o the_o three_o reason_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n which_o must_v render_v punishment_n and_o reward_n for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v own_o in_o this_o life_n by_o the_o body_n punishment_n that_o the_o body_n also_o must_v have_v either_o reward_n or_o punishment_n for_o because_o it_o can_v seem_v just_a that_o see_v these_o two_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n be_v join_v both_o together_o do_v either_o right_a or_o wrong_n only_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v either_o be_v punish_v or_o reward_v hereto_o the_o philosopher_n will_v answer_v that_o it_o appear_v not_o to_o they_o that_o the_o world_n be_v so_o govern_v of_o god_n by_o justice_n that_o reward_v and_o punish_v as_o it_o have_v consideration_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n in_o give_v to_o each_o one_o either_o reward_n or_o punishment_n perhaps_o they_o will_v grant_v that_o as_o touch_v the_o firm_a and_o constant_a motion_n of_o the_o heaven_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a providence_n so_o will_v they_o also_o do_v as_o touch_v the_o preservation_n of_o kind_n but_o they_o will_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v have_v as_o concern_v every_o particular_a further_o they_o will_v add_v that_o there_o be_v reward_n and_o punishment_n enough_o use_v in_o those_o very_a action_n good_a and_o evil_n for_o in_o well_o do_v there_o be_v a_o wonder_a ioifulnesse_n of_o conscience_n which_o excel_v all_o outward_a reward_n and_o again_o in_o do_v wicked_o man_n be_v woonderfullie_o vex_v neither_o can_v they_o escape_v the_o butchery_n of_o conscience_n which_o be_v misery_n and_o unhappiness_n enough_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o they_o at_o length_n they_o will_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a while_o the_o soul_n itself_o either_o receive_v reward_n or_o suffer_v punishment_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v unto_o the_o body_n because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o action_n but_o only_o the_o instrument_n and_o there_o may_v be_v a_o similitude_n bring_v of_o artificer_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n unto_o who_o only_o be_v give_v a_o reward_n if_o they_o have_v make_v a_o fair_a web_n or_o build_v a_o fair_a house_n but_o unto_o the_o instrument_n which_o they_o use_v either_o in_o weave_v or_o in_o building_n there_o be_v no_o recompense_n make_v the_o which_o instrument_n receive_v not_o the_o same_o punishment_n or_o loss_n if_o the_o work_n have_v in_o success_n neither_o will_v any_o man_n break_v a_o poison_a pot_n because_o some_o have_v perish_v by_o drink_v out_o of_o the_o same_o especial_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o precious_a &_o beautiful_a vessel_n neither_o do_v man_n break_v or_o cast_v away_o the_o sword_n wherewith_o any_o man_n be_v slay_v forsomuch_o as_o these_o be_v instrument_n but_o not_o special_a cause_n howbeit_o wrath_n be_v sometime_o so_o outrageous_a as_o cup_n envenom_a be_v break_v and_o sword_n cast_v away_o wherefore_o see_v both_o the_o one_o thing_n and_o the_o other_o may_v be_v and_o sometime_o do_v happen_v the_o argument_n will_v be_v probable_a but_o not_o necessary_a but_o as_o concern_v that_o which_o belong_v unto_o instrument_n instrument_n a_o distinction_n of_o instrument_n it_o seem_v that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o distinction_n make_v to_o wit_n that_o some_o instrument_n be_v conjoin_v and_o some_o dissever_v doubtless_o the_o body_n be_v a_o instrument_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o be_v join_v unto_o it_o so_o as_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o it_o bear_v away_o with_o it_o both_o punishment_n and_o profit_n for_o we_o see_v even_o while_o we_o live_v here_o that_o the_o hand_n be_v cut_v off_o that_o the_o eye_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v put_v out_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o it_o must_v not_o be_v forget_v that_o this_o reason_n which_o be_v take_v of_o the_o justice_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v not_o general_a because_o infant_n also_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o who_o for_o all_o this_o shall_v not_o have_v need_n to_o yield_v a_o reckon_n of_o the_o work_n which_o they_o do_v by_o the_o body_n but_o yet_o paul_n seem_v to_o confirm_v this_o argument_n say_v in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n to_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o have_v confirm_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n 58._o verse_n 58._o therefore_o my_o belove_a brethren_n be_v you_o steadfast_a and_o constant_a abound_v in_o every_o good_a work_n know_v that_o your_o labour_n shall_v not_o be_v unprofitable_a before_o the_o lord_n but_o labour_n be_v common_a as_o well_o to_o the_o mind_n as_o to_o the_o body_n therefore_o profit_n shall_v redound_v to_o they_o both_o and_o this_o kind_n of_o argument_n well-neare_a all_o the_o father_n use_v i_o have_v already_o declare_v those_o which_o be_v of_o the_o great_a force_n now_o will_v i_o come_v to_o other_o argument_n which_o be_v more_o feeble_a wherein_o be_v perceive_v no_o proof_n of_o resurrection_n but_o a_o certain_a show_n of_o the_o same_o 18_o day_n say_v they_o do_v daily_a as_o we_o see_v pass_v away_o and_o return_v but_o in_o very_a deed_n yesterday_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o number_n with_o this_o day_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n also_o there_o be_v bring_v a_o similitude_n of_o herb_n and_o tree_n these_o thing_n seem_v in_o the_o winter_n season_n to_o be_v dead_a resurrection_n semblance_n of_o the_o resurrection_n but_o when_o the_o spring-time_n come_v they_o bud_v forth_o again_o they_o be_v garnish_v with_o leaf_n they_o put_v forth_o flower_n and_o last_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n but_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o they_o be_v not_o utterlie_o dead_a in_o the_o winter_n season_n for_o there_o remain_v life_n still_o in_o they_o although_o it_o lie_v secret_a but_o thereunto_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v that_o the_o life_n also_o of_o man_n after_o death_n be_v not_o utterlie_o take_v away_o because_o it_o still_o remain_v in_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v alive_a and_o certeinlie_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n
in_o the_o 29._o chapter_n when_o he_o have_v reproove_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n say_v that_o they_o be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o all_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v unto_o they_o like_o a_o book_n seal_v up_o which_o they_o may_v not_o read_v if_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o they_o and_o he_o straitwaie_o add_v the_o cause_n say_v because_o this_o people_n honour_v i_o with_o their_o lip_n but_o their_o hart_n be_v far_o from_o i_o 38_o wherefore_o the_o fault_n must_v not_o be_v lay_v unto_o the_o scripture_n 8._o psal_n 19_o 8._o but_o rather_o unto_o the_o sloth_n and_o negligence_n of_o man_n who_o love_n darkness_n rather_o than_o light_v otherwise_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o give_v understand_v even_o to_o the_o simple_a so_o as_o they_o be_v very_o ill_o advise_v which_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o difficulty_n and_o obscureness_n lie_v aside_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o some_o such_o you_o may_v find_v which_o say_v they_o know_v not_o the_o secret_a mystery_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o they_o know_v not_o whether_o they_o be_v one_o god_n and_o whether_o one_o god_n be_v these_o three_o namely_o the_o father_n the_o son_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o neglect_v the_o diligent_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o sometime_o they_o so_o deceive_v themselves_o as_o they_o suffer_v to_o be_v obtrude_v unto_o they_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o honour_v for_o god_n he_o who_o they_o think_v to_o be_v a_o creature_n in_o those_o mystery_n they_o fain_o themselves_o dull_a of_o understanding_n when_o as_o otherwise_o they_o be_v sharp_a enough_o of_o wit_n and_o diligent_a to_o defend_v their_o own_o invention_n and_o whereas_o they_o challenge_v unto_o themselves_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o boast_v that_o they_o have_v the_o key_n of_o they_o neither_o do_v they_o enter_v in_o themselves_o nor_o yet_o suffer_v other_o to_o enter_v but_o i_o return_v unto_o david_n kimhi_n who_o albeit_o as_o i_o have_v show_v that_o he_o do_v interpret_v the_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n to_o belong_v to_o david_n who_o trust_v in_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n hope_v to_o receive_v help_n in_o all_o danger_n and_o that_o he_o understand_v not_o these_o thing_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o happy_a resurrection_n so_o as_o except_v he_o have_v affirm_v the_o same_o in_o a_o other_o place_n i_o will_v soon_o have_v judge_v he_o to_o be_v a_o saducie_a yet_o do_v he_o not_o overpasse_v a_o certain_a sentence_n of_o the_o elder_n in_o midrasch_n which_o be_v write_v after_o this_o manner_n achare_v melam_v melmalto_n bhi_fw-mi vet_z bolaa_o that_o be_v he_o teach_v that_o after_o death_n the_o worm_n &_o moth_n shall_v not_o bear_v rule_n over_o he_o but_o wherefore_o in_o this_o place_n they_o have_v so_o great_o shun_v the_o light_n i_o see_v no_o other_o cause_n but_o the_o hatred_n which_o they_o bear_v against_o christian_n which_o be_v great_a than_o that_o wherewith_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n hate_v vatinius_n for_o see_v it_o be_v not_o unknown_a unto_o they_o that_o the_o apostle_n namely_o peter_n and_o paul_n have_v use_v this_o testimony_n of_o david_n for_o confirm_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n therefore_o devise_v they_o so_o many_o sundry_a &_o intricate_v exposition_n because_o they_o shall_v not_o consent_v unto_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n last_o of_o all_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o prophet_n be_v teach_v by_o inspiration_n from_o god_n not_o by_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n that_o resurrection_n shall_v come_v when_o he_o say_v unto_o god_n himself_o thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n neither_o suffer_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n and_o much_o more_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o follow_v thou_o shall_v show_v i_o the_o path_n of_o life_n etc._n etc._n 39_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o david_n be_v plain_o expound_v declare_v esaie_n 26_o 4._o a_o place_n of_o esaie_n touch_v the_o resurrection_n declare_v it_o seem_v good_a to_o bring_v forth_o a_o other_o testimony_n which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 26._o chapter_n of_o esaie_n there_o the_o prophet_n at_o such_o time_n as_o the_o israelite_n be_v gréevouslie_o afflict_v and_o oppress_v with_o extreme_a calamity_n will_v have_v they_o comfort_v by_o testifieng_v unto_o they_o what_o help_n shall_v be_v expect_v from_o god_n the_o help_n i_o mean_v of_o eternal_a life_n through_o the_o resurrection_n that_o shall_v come_v wherefore_o he_o turn_v his_o speech_n towards_o god_n say_v thy_o slay_a man_n shall_v live_v 16_o 1._o thes_n 4_o 16_o call_v martyr_n or_o those_o who_o whole_a life_n be_v a_o martyrdom_n the_o slay_a man_n of_o god_n because_o they_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n through_o their_o good_a work_n and_o who_o the_o same_o paul_n call_v the_o dead_a in_o christ_n and_o he_o add_v together_o with_o my_o dead_a body_n couple_v and_o associate_a himself_o to_o those_o elect_n of_o god_n that_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o certeinlie_o the_o piece_n of_o sentence_n add_v do_v not_o a_o little_a serve_v for_o vehement_a affirmation_n for_o he_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v or_o intreat_v not_o of_o thing_n unknown_a or_o such_o as_o pertein_v not_o unto_o he_o but_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o very_o perceive_v and_o after_o a_o sort_n have_v already_o taste_v which_o we_o in_o like_a manner_n shall_v imitate_v namely_o to_o apply_v unto_o our_o own_o self_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v promise_v by_o god_n unto_o the_o saint_n undoubted_o the_o slay_v of_o god_n shall_v live_v in_o that_o resurrection_n which_o be_v now_o begin_v when_o god_n reléeve_v his_o elect_a in_o affliction_n but_o shall_v be_v thorough_o and_o perfect_o fulfil_v at_o the_o last_o day_n in_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n whereupon_o 21._o verse_n 21._o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o three_o chapter_n that_o day_n be_v call_v the_o time_n of_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o we_o must_v not_o forget_v that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n nibblathi_o may_v by_o another_o manner_n of_o hebrew_n prick_n be_v read_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n nibblothai_n so_o as_o it_o may_v signify_v my_o dead_a body_n shall_v rise_v as_o though_o god_n shall_v answer_v unto_o the_o prophet_n which_o say_v thy_o slay_a man_n shall_v arise_v and_o say_v affirmativelie_a yea_o very_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v arise_v furthermore_o it_o must_v be_v diligent_o consider_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v express_v resurrection_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o therefore_o the_o slay_a man_n shall_v arise_v because_o they_o be_v of_o god_n but_o god_n be_v not_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n as_o christ_n himself_o testify_v 40_o beside_o this_o it_o be_v say_v awake_v you_o or_o be_v you_o raise_v up_o because_o the_o death_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v count_v like_o a_o sleep_n as_o we_o oftentimes_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o he_o add_v rejoice_v you_o because_o see_v there_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o godly_a that_o day_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v most_o comfortable_a unto_o they_o and_o he_o call_v they_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o dust_n partly_o because_o it_o happen_v to_o they_o to_o be_v disquiet_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_n while_o they_o be_v in_o this_o life_n and_o partly_o because_o after_o death_n they_o be_v resolve_v into_o ash_n afterward_o he_o turn_v himself_o to_o god_n say_v thy_o dew_n be_v even_o as_o the_o dew_n of_o herb_n for_o even_o as_o they_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n be_v dry_v up_o in_o the_o winter_n either_o else_o through_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n do_v again_o flourish_v and_o wax_v green_a by_o receive_v the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n so_o the_o dead_a by_o virtue_n of_o thy_o goodness_n and_o power_n shall_v return_v unto_o life_n herein_o consist_v the_o elegancy_n of_o this_o similitude_n that_o even_o as_o these_o thing_n flourish_v and_o be_v green_a without_o man_n labour_n even_o so_o shall_v the_o dead_a rise_n again_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n without_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n god_n have_v paint_v out_o in_o extern_a thing_n the_o form_n and_o image_n of_o the_o expect_a resurrection_n while_o as_o those_o thing_n do_v spring_n bud_v forth_o flourish_n and_o fructify_v which_o before_o be_v wither_v 36._o 1._o co._n 15_o 36._o which_o similitude_n also_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n touch_v it_o follow_v in_o the_o prophet_n the_o earth_n shall_v thrust_v forth_o her_o dead_a and_o shall_v discover_v her_o blood_n but_o thou_o my_o people_n enter_v thou_o into_o thy_o chamber_n namely_o while_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n be_v attend_v for_o thou_o may_v patient_o
into_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v live_v but_o it_o be_v a_o marvel_n that_o the_o prophet_n shall_v be_v command_v to_o prophesy_v and_o speak_v unto_o the_o bone_n which_o be_v so_o rude_a base_a and_o void_a of_o sense_n as_o they_o can_v either_o hear_v or_o understand_v any_o thing_n but_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o all_o thing_n though_o they_o be_v void_a of_o life_n and_o without_o sense_n and_o motion_n do_v obey_v god_n without_o delay_n and_o christ_n in_o like_a manner_n say_v in_o john_n the_o hour_n shall_v come_v 28._o john_n 5_o 28._o when_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n whereas_o yet_o the_o bone_n &_o ash_n of_o dead_a man_n which_o be_v in_o grave_n neither_o hear_v nor_o feel_v any_o thing_n yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o shall_v arise_v at_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o trumpet_n of_o god_n 42_o the_o order_n and_o disposition_n of_o bone_n in_o the_o resurrection_n be_v most_o diligent_o teach_v by_o the_o prophet_n first_o bone_n be_v join_v to_o bone_n be_v bind_v and_o knit_v together_o with_o sinew_n further_o they_o be_v replenish_v with_o flesh_n which_o because_o it_o shall_v not_o remain_v unséemelie_a and_o foul_a to_o look_v upon_o it_o be_v cover_v with_o skin_n when_o the_o dead_a body_n be_v now_o become_v perfect_a he_o command_v the_o prophet_n to_o prophesy_v unto_o the_o spirit_n that_o it_o shall_v come_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v thing_n live_v with_o soul_n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o spirit_n mention_v spirit_n a_o mention_n of_o two_o sort_n of_o spirit_n namely_o of_o the_o soul_n which_o quicken_v the_o body_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o illuminate_v and_o sanctifi_v the_o soul_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o dead_a raise_v up_o be_v not_o only_o say_v to_o have_v stand_v upon_o their_o foot_n but_o also_o it_o be_v add_v and_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o god_n undoubted_o god_n be_v know_v by_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o work_n but_o that_o knowledge_n happen_v not_o without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n a_o voice_n be_v hear_v perhaps_o it_o be_v thunder_n and_o there_o be_v a_o earthquake_n for_o these_o thing_n be_v use_v to_o be_v do_v in_o show_v of_o the_o excellent_a miracle_n of_o god_n 18._o exo._n 19_o 18._o when_o the_o law_n be_v give_v in_o sina_n there_o be_v horrible_a thunder_n and_o earthquake_n 2._o matt._n 27_o 51._o and_o 28_o 2._o yea_o and_o at_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n a_o great_a earthquake_n be_v make_v the_o spirit_n come_v from_o the_o four_o wind_n etc._n etc._n at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v dead_a the_o soul_n return_v unto_o their_o body_n from_o the_o high_a place_n of_o heaven_n howbeit_o by_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a way_n because_o the_o ash_n and_o dead_a body_n of_o they_o be_v not_o heap_v up_o together_o into_o one_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o way_n do_v the_o scripture_n comprehend_v by_o the_o four_o wind_n that_o be_v by_o the_o east_n west_n south_n and_o north_n or_o else_o perhaps_o the_o scatter_v abroad_o of_o the_o captive_n unto_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v note_v moses_n also_o in_o deuteronomie_n promise_v unto_o the_o penitent_a jew_n 1._o deut._n 30_o 1._o this_o restitution_n from_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o world_n hereby_o moreover_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v not_o breed_v in_o they_o even_o as_o god_n breathe_v a_o soul_n into_o adam_n and_o afterward_o to_o every_o man_n creat_v soul_n 7._o gen._n 2_o 7._o even_o so_o in_o the_o resurrection_n he_o will_v send_v they_o from_o abroad_o unto_o they_o again_o which_o also_o be_v a_o a_o plain_a token_n that_o they_o with_o their_o body_n do_v not_o die_v and_o where_o it_o be_v after_o add_v that_o all_o these_o bone_n be_v the_o whole_a house_n of_o israel_n thereby_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o speech_n here_o be_v mean_v as_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o godly_a for_o they_o be_v true_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o prophet_n see_v a_o exceed_a great_a host_n because_o as_o we_o also_o read_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n the_o company_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v a_o great_a number_n 9_o apoc._n 7_o 9_o signify_v the_o verb_n be_v of_o the_o same_o force_n that_o signify_v 43_o all_o these_o bone_n be_v the_o whole_a house_n of_o israel_n when_o he_o have_v now_o finish_v the_o proposition_n he_o add_v the_o application_n it_o may_v be_v note_v that_o the_o verb_n substantive_a be_v be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v it_o signify_v for_o those_o bone_n be_v not_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o house_n of_o israel_n but_o they_o do_v betoken_v the_o same_o even_o as_o the_o seven_o unfruitful_a and_o empty_a ear_n 5._o gen._n 41_o 5._o which_o be_v see_v unto_o pharaoh_n be_v the_o seven_o year_n of_o dearth_n i_o will_v open_v say_v the_o lord_n your_o sepulcher_n but_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o grave_n be_v open_a already_o see_v those_o bone_n be_v scatter_v in_o the_o field_n unto_o this_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o as_o concern_v those_o bone_n the_o grave_n be_v first_o open_v but_o if_o so_o be_v respect_n be_v have_v unto_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o israelit_n into_o the_o land_n of_o chanaan_n they_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v open_v and_o whereas_o the_o prophet_n say_v and_o i_o will_v bring_v you_o into_o your_o land_n some_o understand_v it_o allegoricallie_o as_o if_o the_o land_n of_o the_o israelit_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n alone_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a shall_v not_o be_v in_o judea_n alone_o and_o eternal_a felicity_n but_o set_v allegory_n aside_o i_o rather_o weigh_v this_o in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o vanity_n of_o those_o jew_n be_v confute_v who_o think_v that_o the_o dead_a shall_v only_o be_v raise_v up_o in_o judaea_n whereas_o the_o prophet_n in_o this_o place_n affirm_v it_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v far_o otherwise_o for_o to_o the_o dead_a already_o reviue_v he_o promise_v a_o return_n into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n certeinlie_o it_o be_v a_o fond_a and_o foolish_a devise_n so_o to_o tie_v the_o power_n &_o strength_n of_o god_n to_o a_o certain_a place_n as_o it_o may_v not_o or_o will_v not_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o one_o place_n that_o it_o have_v do_v in_o a_o other_o the_o grave_n do_v betoken_v the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n and_o the_o lamentable_a servitude_n under_o a_o tyrant_n which_o god_n promise_v to_o release_v also_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v extreme_a desperation_n which_o they_o run_v into_o cast_v aside_o all_o hope_n of_o their_o return_n this_o sepulchre_n do_v god_n promise_v to_o unlock_v by_o open_v the_o way_n of_o their_o return_n to_o their_o own_o country_n so_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o case_n stand_v as_o touch_v assistance_n of_o the_o godly_a as_o when_o thing_n be_v in_o great_a despair_n then_o arise_v the_o daie-breake_a of_o heavenly_a help_n to_o be_v short_a two_o thing_n be_v show_v by_o this_o oracle_n the_o first_o be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a the_o second_o the_o return_n of_o the_o israelit_n into_o their_o country_n and_o one_o thing_n be_v prove_v by_o a_o other_o for_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v confirm_v by_o raise_v up_o the_o dry_a bone_n unto_o life_n 44_o against_o this_o sound_n and_o true_a interpretation_n resurrection_n a_o confutation_n of_o they_o which_o deny_v that_o in_o this_o place_n 〈◊〉_d be_v me●t_v of_o the_o universal_a resurrection_n some_o do_v vehementlie_o argue_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n say_v first_o that_o there_o be_v no_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o universal_a resurrection_n of_o all_o man_n see_v those_o bone_n make_v alive_a be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o house_n of_o israel_n secondlie_o that_o this_o be_v a_o feign_a and_o imagine_a vision_n and_o therefore_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v constant_o affirm_v thereby_o here_o unto_o we_o answer_v that_o indeed_o we_o confess_v that_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v before_o but_o in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o vision_n it_o make_v no_o matter_n neither_o do_v it_o make_v any_o thing_n the_o less_o but_o that_o this_o vision_n be_v a_o general_a consolation_n for_o confirm_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n as_o well_o as_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o the_o argument_n be_v take_v and_o derive_v from_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a also_o the_o hebrew_n
glad_a that_o i_o be_v not_o there_o whereby_o he_o testify_v himself_o to_o be_v so_o in_o the_o way_n 15_o john_n 11_o 15_o as_o he_o be_v not_o at_o that_o time_n in_o bethania_n and_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v show_v he_o to_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n say_v unto_o the_o woman_n he_o be_v rise_v he_o be_v not_o here_o 6_o matt._n 28_o 6_o thus_o he_o so_o go_v from_o thence_o as_o he_o be_v not_o there_o present_a after_o this_o manner_n do_v christ_n speak_v and_o the_o angel_n testify_v so_o as_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v comprehend_v in_o a_o place_n and_o be_v not_o where_o else_o but_o they_o will_v say_v act_n what_o manner_n of_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o the_o power_n to_o the_o act_n when_o we_o ask_v the_o ●…estion_n concern_v power_n thou_o answer_v we_o as_o touch_v the_o fact_n hereunto_o say_v i_o that_o that_o power_n which_o be_v not_o show_v to_o have_v at_o any_o time_n break_v out_o into_o act_n be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o any_o purpose_n again_o i_o return_v to_o the_o first_o demand_n and_o i_o require_v that_o they_o will_v show_v i_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n how_o this_o can_v be_v namely_o that_o a_o humane_a body_n be_v without_o place_n and_o that_o it_o be_v together_o in_o diverse_a place_n but_o see_v they_o can_v not_o do_v this_o let_v they_o cease_v to_o affirm_v and_o to_o set_v it_o forth_o as_o a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v beléeve_v i_o know_v they_o will_v say_v that_o it_o be_v write_v and_o affirm_v by_o christ_n as_o touch_v the_o wine_n and_o bread_n of_o the_o supper_n .28_o matt._n 26_o 26._o and_o .28_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n but_o these_o word_n be_v far_o otherwise_o understand_v and_o expound_v by_o the_o wise_a sort_n than_o they_o understand_v they_o wherefore_o a_o firm_a and_o certain_a argument_n be_v not_o take_v from_o a_o place_n diverslie_o expound_v and_o this_o perhaps_o also_o they_o will_v object_v 37._o luke_n 1_o 37._o there_o be_v nothing_o unpossible_a unto_o god_n i_o know_v that_o so_o it_o be_v write_v howbeit_o that_o sentence_n must_v not_o be_v admit_v without_o all_o exception_n 13._o 2._o tim._n 2_o 13._o for_o paul_n except_v when_o he_o say_v that_o god_n be_v so_o true_a as_o he_o can_v deny_v himself_o and_o the_o father_n except_v many_o other_o thing_n and_o it_o be_v common_o say_v in_o the_o school_n that_o whatsoever_o thing_n do_v include_v contradiction_n among_o themselves_o can_v be_v do_v by_o god_n furthermore_n god_n the_o heretic_n argument_n from_o the_o power_n of_o god_n the_o heretic_n abuse_v that_o say_n who_o be_v reproove_v by_o the_o catholic_n that_o they_o affirm_v absurd_a and_o unpossible_a thing_n answer_v that_o with_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la which_o deny_v the_o distinction_n of_o person_n and_o affirm_v the_o father_n to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v the_o son_n and_o be_v urge_v by_o we_o that_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o any_o shall_v beget_v himself_o grant_v the_o same_o to_o be_v unpossible_a as_o touch_v we_o but_o that_o with_o god_n allthing_n may_v be_v together_o the_o place_n and_o the_o body_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n be_v join_v together_o 66_o but_o i_o retire_v myself_o to_o the_o scripture_n which_o acknowledge_v so_o great_a a_o conjunction_n between_o a_o place_n and_o a_o body_n comprehend_v therein_o as_o the_o place_n be_v take_v away_o it_o utterlie_o forbid_v the_o thing_n place_v to_o be_v which_o reason_n will_v not_o be_v firm_a but_o altogether_o feeble_a if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o body_n to_o be_v without_o a_o place_n for_o it_o may_v not_o be_v prove_v that_o it_o have_v no_o be_v if_o the_o place_n be_v utterlie_o take_v away_o in_o job_n the_o seven_o chapter_n 10._o verse_n 10._o when_o as_o the_o prophet_n will_v show_v that_o man_n after_o death_n have_v no_o be_v say_v his_o place_n shall_v not_o know_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v 9_o verse_n 9_o and_o in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o take_v away_o of_o the_o wicked_a out_o of_o life_n the_o place_n shall_v not_o behold_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v 36._o verse_n 36._o and_o david_n in_o the_o 37._o psalm_n express_v the_o same_o more_o plain_o say_v yet_o a_o little_a while_n and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o be_v thou_o shall_v seek_v his_o place_n and_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v find_v thus_o therefore_o do_v the_o scripture_n speak_v whereupon_o augustine_n who_o these_o man_n with_o so_o great_a impudency_n refuse_v be_v not_o to_o be_v accuse_v when_o he_o write_v concern_v body_n that_o if_o they_o be_v not_o where_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o for_o he_o do_v not_o learn_v that_o form_n of_o speak_v only_o of_o aristotle_n or_o of_o natural_a philosophy_n but_o of_o the_o phrase_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n come_v the_o place_n also_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n why_o these_o man_n shall_v imagine_v that_o these_o saieng_n belong_v only_o unto_o this_o life_n and_o to_o the_o present_a state_n we_o be_v in_o see_v place_n do_v also_o perteine_a unto_o the_o everlasting_a felicity_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n 24._o john_n 14_o 2._o john_n 17_o 24._o when_o he_o advertise_v they_o of_o his_o departure_n i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o and_o again_o i_o will_v that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o my_o minister_n shall_v be_v and_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n we_o be_v teach_v 4_o apoc._n 14_o 4_o that_o the_o company_n of_o the_o elect_a do_v follow_v the_o lamb_n whither_o soever_o he_o shall_v go_v but_o local_a motion_n can_v be_v without_o place_n and_o that_o one_o body_n can_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n the_o father_n do_v so_o well_o know_v once_o that_o one_o body_n can_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o as_o they_o will_v not_o attribute_v that_o unto_o angel_n yea_o and_o they_o prove_v thereby_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n because_o he_o be_v together_o at_o one_o time_n in_o many_o place_n which_o as_o they_o declare_v can_v agree_v to_o any_o creature_n and_o to_o this_o opinion_n do_v basil_n in_o his_o tretise_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la didymus_n cyrillus_n theodoretus_n and_o many_o other_o condescend_v but_o the_o scripture_n do_v confess_v the_o very_a same_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o peter_n in_o the_o act_n say_v 21._o acts._n 3_o 21._o that_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o so_o long_o as_o or_o until_o all_o thing_n be_v restore_v there_o be_v a_o great_a efficacy_n and_o a_o great_a weight_n of_o signification_n in_o the_o adverbe_n of_o time_n until_o or_o so_o long_o as_o for_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v so_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n his_o presence_n shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o our_o place_n there_o may_v perhaps_o be_v other_o thing_n bring_v but_o these_o i_o judge_v sufficient_a for_o prove_v of_o these_o property_n in_o the_o body_n of_o they_o that_o rise_v again_o whereof_o i_o have_v hitherto_o treat_v 67_o now_o last_o we_o must_v confute_v those_o argument_n which_o be_v object_v at_o the_o beginning_n as_o though_o they_o shall_v make_v against_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a first_o it_o be_v say_v that_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o porphyrius_n soul_n for_o obtain_v of_o the_o chief_a felicity_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n shall_v eschew_v all_o body_n because_o those_o trouble_n and_o let_v the_o mind_n that_o it_o can_v apply_v itself_o unto_o heavenly_a thing_n yea_o and_o he_o seem_v for_o this_o cause_n to_o have_v forsake_v plato_n who_o affirm_v a_o return_n of_o soul_n to_o their_o former_a body_n here_o we_o answer_v that_o this_o philosopher_n have_v respect_n to_o humane_a body_n not_o as_o they_o be_v institute_v at_o the_o beginning_n but_o as_o they_o be_v now_o infect_v and_o corrupt_v and_o indeed_o so_o good_a be_v god_n as_o at_o the_o beginning_n he_o give_v nothing_o unto_o man_n that_o be_v evil_a or_o that_o may_v hinder_v felicity_n he_o see_v allthing_n that_o he_o have_v make_v and_o they_o be_v very_o good_a 31._o gen._n 1_o 31._o and_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a devise_n i_o will_v not_o say_v a_o wicked_a to_o affirm_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v say_v as_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o body_n as_o it_o be_v a_o sepulchre_n because_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o sepulchre_n of_o our_o soul_n man_n the_o
by_o the_o number_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n but_o how_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o satan_n be_v bind_v in_o this_o time_n it_o can_v be_v so_o easy_o answer_v for_o even_o now_o also_o the_o church_n be_v gréevouslie_o vex_v by_o he_o but_o augustine_n think_v bind_v why_o satan_n be_v say_v to_o be_v bind_v that_o he_o be_v therefore_o bind_v because_o his_o strength_n be_v break_v and_o christ_n have_v overcome_v the_o strong_a arm_a man_n so_o as_o he_o can_v now_o in_o such_o sort_n rage_n as_o he_o will_v but_o especial_o because_o he_o can_v turn_v the_o elect_a &_o those_o that_o be_v predestinate_a unto_o everlasting_a life_n from_o their_o appoint_a salvation_n albeit_o as_o touch_v this_o even_o before_o christ_n ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n satan_n be_v no_o less_o hinder_v than_o he_o be_v now_o that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o disturb_v the_o elect_a from_o eternal_a life_n but_o here_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v that_o they_o which_o so_o live_v be_v few_o in_o number_n before_o christ_n for_o the_o devil_n range_v and_o spoil_v in_o a_o manner_n everywhere_a throughout_o the_o world_n except_o some_o of_o the_o israelite_n and_o a_o few_o other_o but_o now_o after_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v spread_v abroad_o throughout_o the_o world_n the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o satan_n be_v much_o more_o restrain_v and_o this_o may_v sufficient_o appear_v by_o the_o cease_n of_o oracle_n and_o by_o the_o overthrow_n of_o idolatry_n in_o a_o manner_n every_o where_o wherefore_o i_o think_v with_o augustine_n that_o this_o renew_n of_o creature_n shall_v not_o serve_v to_o this_o use_n that_o the_o saint_n shall_v use_v they_o live_v with_o christ_n in_o any_o temporal_a kingdom_n in_o this_o world_n and_o as_o for_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v every_o where_o set_v forth_o touch_v the_o kingdom_n of_o messiah_n metaphorical_a the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o prophet_n touch_v the_o kingdme_n of_o christ_n be_v metaphorical_a and_o which_o make_v mention_v of_o certain_a thing_n carnal_a and_o that_o belong_v to_o a_o earthly_a kingdom_n they_o be_v so_o to_o be_v take_v as_o we_o understand_v they_o to_o describe_v by_o such_o metaphor_n as_o be_v commanlie_a thought_n agreeable_a to_o the_o greatness_n and_o majesty_n of_o our_o kingdom_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o now_o exercise_v in_o the_o church_n &_o which_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o will_v show_v forth_o with_o great_a power_n and_o this_o the_o prophet_n themselves_o have_v sufficient_o signify_v see_v they_o have_v interlace_v many_o thing_n which_o far_o exceed_v belief_n and_o go_v beyond_o the_o course_n of_o humane_a thing_n for_o therein_o they_o plain_o show_v that_o they_o speak_v metaphoricallie_o but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o purpose_n we_o think_v that_o the_o world_n as_o touch_v the_o nature_n and_o substance_n thereof_o shall_v not_o utterlie_o perish_v but_o rather_o as_o write_v esaie_n peter_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o also_o paul_n in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v renew_v and_o of_o this_o renovation_n there_o be_v set_v forth_o two_o principal_a condition_n heat_n two_o principal_a condition_n of_o the_o renovation_n of_o the_o world_n all_o manner_n of_o light_n do_v not_o give_v heat_n the_o one_o be_v immortality_n and_o the_o other_o be_v light_a the_o schoolman_n have_v note_v that_o that_o light_n shall_v not_o be_v such_o as_o can_v cause_v heat_n for_o if_o it_o shall_v so_o do_v all_o thing_n shall_v soon_o be_v dry_v up_o and_o burn_v and_o it_o be_v no_o difficult_a thing_n to_o find_v light_n which_o engender_v not_o heat_n for_o there_o be_v find_v many_o precious_a stone_n most_o bright_a which_o give_v no_o heat_n at_o all_o 23_o now_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o declare_v let_v we_o consider_v of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n whether_o they_o also_o shall_v be_v preserve_v as_o plant_n precious_a stone_n metal_n brute_n beast_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n the_o schoolman_n think_v that_o man_n be_v renew_v which_o be_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o world_n other_o creature_n shall_v be_v restore_v also_o which_o say_v be_v most_o true_a for_o it_o be_v gather_v by_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n but_o as_o touch_v the_o part_n they_o think_v that_o only_a heaven_n and_o the_o element_n and_o the_o body_n of_o man_n shall_v remain_v thing_n a_o reason_n of_o the_o schoolman_n touch_v the_o unmortalitie_n of_o thing_n yet_o in_o my_o judgement_n the_o reason_n that_o they_o bring_v be_v weak_a for_o they_o affirm_v that_o only_o those_o thing_n shall_v have_v immortality_n which_o after_o some_o sort_n be_v make_v fit_a for_o it_o such_o be_v a_o celestial_a body_n which_o be_v altogether_o simple_a and_o be_v not_o change_v by_o contrary_a quality_n the_o element_n also_o which_o as_o touch_v part_n be_v engender_v and_o corrupt_v yet_o as_o touch_v the_o whole_a do_v always_o abide_v so_o say_v they_o also_o of_o man_n who_o although_o he_o have_v a_o transitory_a body_n yet_o he_o have_v a_o immortal_a soul_n yea_o rather_o the_o body_n itself_o be_v so_o make_v at_o the_o beginning_n as_o it_o have_v possibility_n not_o to_o die_v wherefore_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v absurd_a if_o immortality_n be_v also_o communicate_v with_o it_o reason_n a_o disable_n of_o the_o former_a reason_n howbeit_o this_o reason_n be_v weak_a for_o two_o cause_n first_o for_o that_o without_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o take_v away_o renovation_n from_o many_o part_n of_o the_o world_n secondlie_o because_o that_o which_o it_o affirm_v be_v even_o as_o doubtful_a as_o be_v that_o which_o be_v conclude_v namely_o that_o those_o thing_n only_o shall_v be_v renew_v with_o immortality_n which_o by_o their_o constitution_n seem_v fit_a for_o the_o same_o nature_n immortality_n be_v the_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o depend_v not_o of_o nature_n for_o see_v this_o immortality_n be_v the_o liberal_a and_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n it_o can_v depend_v of_o any_o mean_n or_o power_n of_o nature_n for_o that_o power_n of_o god_n whereby_o both_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o element_n shall_v be_v restore_v unto_o immortality_n can_v preserve_v also_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o the_o element_n remain_v whole_a although_o their_o part_n be_v engender_v and_o corrupt_v even_o so_o also_o do_v general_a nature_n of_o brute_n beast_n and_o plant_n perpetuallie_o endure_v although_o their_o individua_fw-la their_o individua_fw-la particular_n be_v renew_v and_o perish_v if_o thou_o demand_v what_o utility_n these_o thing_n shall_v have_v if_o they_o remain_v still_o i_o answer_v they_o shall_v have_v the_o self-same_a that_o thou_o can_v attribute_v unto_o the_o element_n for_o even_o as_o then_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o element_n no_o more_o shall_v we_o have_v need_n of_o brute_n beast_n or_o plant_n or_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o my_o judgement_n side_n probable_a reason_n on_o both_o side_n it_o have_v be_v a_o better_a reason_n for_o they_o to_o have_v say_v that_o therefore_o they_o think_v that_o other_o thing_n shall_v not_o endure_v because_o the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o their_o preservation_n albeit_o i_o see_v also_o that_o this_o reason_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n for_o though_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o make_v mention_n of_o these_o creature_n apart_o by_o themselves_o and_o expressedlie_o yet_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o it_o have_v general_o signify_v that_o creature_n shall_v be_v renew_v neither_o do_v they_o ever_o except_v any_o thing_n further_o if_o we_o shall_v contend_v by_o reason_n that_o the_o sun_n as_o they_o say_v shall_v therefore_o be_v adorn_v with_o great_a abundance_n of_o light_n because_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o after_o a_o sort_n it_o shall_v receive_v a_o reward_n of_o his_o labour_n so_o may_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o creature_n also_o say_v that_o they_o have_v with_o no_o less_o labour_n and_o fidelity_n do_v service_n unto_o man_n than_o the_o sun_n have_v add_v moreover_o that_o there_o be_v no_o less_o inclination_n and_o natural_a desire_n in_o other_o creature_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o than_o be_v in_o the_o sun_n moon_n heaven_n and_o earth_n wherefore_o if_o the_o one_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v frustrate_v of_o their_o desire_n no_o more_o ought_v the_o other_o 24_o these_o thing_n may_v probable_o be_v say_v on_o both_o side_n 20_o eph._n 3_o 15._o col._n 1_o 20_o and_o paul_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n and_o colossian_n say_v that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v restore_v by_o christ_n whether_o they_o be_v thing_n in_o heaven_n or_o thing_n in_o earth_n but_o this_o also_o in_o very_a deed_n make_v not_o a_o argument_n of_o necessity_n for_o thing_n
of_o martianus_n be_v a_o wise_a woman_n and_o well_o commend_v she_z in_o her_o epistle_n unto_o strategus_n in_o the_o prohem_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n strategus_n the_o example_n of_o pulcheria_n to_o strategus_n command_v that_o out_o of_o nice_a a_o city_n of_o bithynia_n where_o she_o will_v have_v have_v the_o council_n which_o afterward_o be_v translate_v to_o chalcedon_n shall_v be_v expel_v all_o the_o clergy_n man_n and_o moonke_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o may_v leave_v the_o place_n void_a and_o free_a unto_o the_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o matter_n may_v not_o be_v molest_v by_o they_o the_o argument_n be_v of_o a_o act_n or_o example_n which_o be_v not_o of_o force_n in_o very_a deed_n that_o woman_n be_v in_o other_o thing_n godly_a and_o wise_a but_o in_o this_o act_n she_o can_v be_v allow_v neither_o be_v it_o thus_o do_v by_o our_o adversary_n at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o in_o many_o other_o together_o with_o bishop_n there_o sit_v abbot_n &_o general_a master_n of_o the_o franciscan_n of_o the_o carmelites_n &_o of_o other_o order_n which_o be_v not_o bishop_n 18_o fricius_n also_o a_o polonian_a polonia_n the_o judgement_n of_o fricius_n of_o polonia_n a_o excellent_a learned_a man_n judge_v that_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o province_n of_o christianity_n shall_v be_v admit_v unto_o these_o kind_n of_o action_n of_o the_o church_n but_o set_v aside_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n i_o think_v we_o must_v have_v a_o regard_n unto_o the_o first_o council_n which_o be_v in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n counsel_n acts._n 15._o for_o 22._o 23._o the_o apostolical_a council_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o pattern_n unto_o all_o counsel_n this_o for_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v holy_a and_o apostolical_a aught_o to_o be_v account_v for_o a_o law_n and_o rule_n to_o all_o counsel_n there_o the_o apostle_n establish_v the_o decree_n of_o christ_n say_v so_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n afterward_o they_o be_v mind_v to_o write_v thereof_o to_o the_o antiochian_o write_v letter_n after_o this_o manner_n the_o apostle_n elder_n and_o brethren_n etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n do_v plain_o testify_v that_o not_o only_o the_o bishop_n but_o the_o other_o member_n of_o the_o church_n have_v place_n in_o counsel_n and_o as_o to_o that_o which_o we_o complain_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o allege_v that_o the_o same_o have_v always_o have_v singular_a authority_n among_o the_o christian_n church_n the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_n church_n exceed_v her_o bound_n have_v bring_v great_a loss_n unto_o the_o church_n unto_o this_o we_o answer_v that_o whatsoever_o power_n the_o church_n have_v the_o same_o aught_o to_o be_v unto_o edify_v let_v now_o the_o romanistes_n themselves_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o edify_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o have_v raise_v up_o infinite_a contention_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o primacy_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n they_o stir_v up_o most_o bitter_a contentious_a trouble_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v obtain_v and_o keep_v the_o same_o they_o diminish_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n they_o shorten_v it_o and_o contrive_v it_o in_o a_o narrow_a room_n for_o all_o those_o which_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v their_o primacy_n they_o excommunicate_v and_o cast_v out_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a furthermore_o they_o lay_v upon_o man_n a_o intolerable_a burden_n of_o man_n tradition_n beside_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n they_o have_v adiect_v innumerable_a decree_n and_o decretal_n their_o sext_n their_o clementines_n &_o their_o extravagant_a constitution_n thus_o the_o church_n be_v charge_v by_o they_o with_o most_o gréevous_a burden_n so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o be_v ease_v time_n the_o complaint_n of_o augustine_n for_o the_o burden_n of_o ceremony_n in_o his_o time_n augustine_n in_o his_o time_n complain_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v more_o charge_v than_o in_o old_a time_n the_o church_n of_o the_o hebrew_n be_v i_o beseech_v you_o what_o will_v that_o father_n now_o say_v if_o he_o shall_v behold_v our_o time_n which_o be_v now_o so_o gréevouslie_o press_v with_o superstitious_a rite_n and_o manifold_a tradition_n as_o it_o be_v altogether_o oppress_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o may_v fit_o be_v say_v in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o 14._o esa_n 29._o 14._o teach_v the_o doctrine_n and_o precept_n of_o man_n but_o let_v we_o consider_v to_o what_o end_n they_o so_o extol_v the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n certain_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o that_o they_o may_v easy_o obtrude_v their_o tradition_n and_o every_o feign_a thing_n church_n why_o they_o so_o great_o extol_v the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o as_o with_o hear_v the_o name_n of_o a_o decree_n letter_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o shall_v straightwaie_o give_v a_o blind_a consent_n 19_o when_o we_o demand_v of_o they_o how_o so_o great_a a_o power_n happen_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o say_v and_o especial_o cardinal_n caietanus_n 1._o from_o whence_o they_o claim_v the_o roman_a power_n before_o pl._n 3_o act._n 1._o that_o it_o come_v by_o peter_n for_o christ_n as_o they_o say_v when_o he_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v go_v from_o hence_o into_o heaven_n leave_v that_o apostle_n to_o be_v his_o vicar_n upon_o the_o earth_n but_o we_o demand_v why_o have_v not_o other_o church_n the_o popedom_n from_o peter_n because_o say_v they_o they_o be_v not_o proper_o or_o peculiarlie_o appoint_v or_o join_v unto_o peter_n they_o feign_v that_o before_o peter_n be_v any_o where_o bishop_n the_o popedom_n be_v a_o wander_a and_o flitter_a thing_n namely_o that_o there_o it_o shall_v be_v wheresoever_o peter_n abide_v at_o the_o last_o as_o they_o trifle_v he_o settle_v himself_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o see_v they_o judge_v also_o that_o peter_n before_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n be_v also_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n why_o do_v they_o not_o attribute_v the_o popedom_n unto_o that_o seat_n especial_o see_v they_o celebrate_v every_o year_n the_o feast_n of_o peter_n chair_n whereby_o they_o declare_v that_o they_o renew_v the_o memory_n of_o his_o be_v bishop_n in_o antioch_n yet_o must_v we_o not_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v plant_v by_o peter_n for_o it_o be_v before_o that_o peter_n go_v thither_o he_o no_o doubt_n be_v at_o jerusalem_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n 7._o acts._n 15._o 4._o &_o 7._o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 15._o of_o the_o act_n when_o that_o great_a contention_n spring_v up_o among_o the_o beléever_n of_o antioch_n as_o concern_v the_o legal_a ceremony_n of_o moses_n whether_o they_o shall_v be_v observe_v or_o refuse_v all_o which_o cause_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o apostle_n at_o jerusalem_n rome_n whether_o peter_n leave_v his_o bishopric_n of_o antioch_n go_v to_o rome_n 20_o but_o they_o fain_o that_o peter_n go_v afterward_o unto_o rome_n and_o forsake_v the_o bishopric_n of_o antioch_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n but_o how_o know_v they_o that_o peter_n go_v to_o rome_n keep_v not_o to_o himself_o the_o bishopric_n of_o antioch_n as_o though_o we_o see_v not_o daily_a that_o the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n london_n artois_n and_o augusta_n do_v go_v to_o rome_n &_o yet_o do_v not_o renounce_v their_o byshoprick_n but_o let_v we_o grant_v they_o that_o they_o desire_v let_v they_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a show_n why_o they_o give_v not_o the_o second_o place_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n next_o unto_o rome_n true_o they_o make_v the_o patriarche_n of_o alexandria_n to_o be_v chief_a see_v that_o church_n be_v found_v and_o plant_v by_o mark_n a_o evangelist_n not_o a_o apostle_n further_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedone_n they_o deprive_v the_o patriarche_n of_o alexandria_n from_o his_o place_n give_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n the_o second_o place_n next_o unto_o the_o roman_a bishop_n whenas_o neverthelesie_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v found_v by_o none_o of_o the_o apostle_n whereby_o be_v gather_v that_o church_n have_v not_o get_v their_o honour_n or_o degree_n of_o the_o founder_n otherwise_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n jerusalem_n corinthe_n and_o thessalonica_n and_o such_o like_a which_o have_v the_o apostle_n their_o master_n builder_n shall_v be_v prefer_v above_o alexandria_n constantinople_n &_o many_o other_o famous_a church_n than_o that_o which_o they_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o canon_n have_v be_v less_o esteem_v and_o as_o touch_v peter_n it_o be_v very_o uncertain_a to_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n whether_o he_o come_v to_o rome_n long_o whether_o peter_n
great_o deceive_v this_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n alone_o and_o therefore_o john_n in_o point_v unto_o christ_n say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o exodus_fw-la the_o 33._o 39_o verse_n 39_o it_o be_v express_v as_o a_o thing_n proper_a unto_o god_n that_o he_o take_v away_o iniquity_n ungodliness_n and_o sin_n and_o esaie_n in_o the_o 43._o chapter_n 25._o verse_n 25._o it_o be_v i_o that_o take_v away_o sin_n in_o the_o first_o of_o john_n we_o read_v 10._o 1._o joh._n 2._o 10._o he_o it_o be_v that_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n which_o also_o paul_n affirm_v unto_o the_o roman_n when_o he_o say_v 25._o rom._n 3._o 25._o who_o he_o have_v set_v forth_o a_o propitiation_n through_o his_o blood_n 9_o 1._o john_n 1._o 9_o also_o john_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n and_o first_o chapter_n write_v the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n very_o the_o outward_a thing_n do_v not_o cleanse_v the_o conscience_n otherwise_o christ_n have_v die_v in_o vain_a again_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o without_o body_n be_v not_o purge_v by_o gross_a &_o corporal_a thing_n which_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o 9_o 9_o verse_n 9_o chapter_n do_v plain_o teach_v when_o it_o say_v that_o the_o gift_n and_o sacrifice_n do_v not_o purge_v nor_o make_v clean_o but_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o very_a high_a priest_n who_o have_v wrought_v eternal_a redemption_n pass_v into_o the_o heaven_n and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v seem_v to_o attribute_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n or_o salvation_n to_o outward_a sign_n that_o must_v be_v understand_v by_o the_o figure_n metonymy_fw-la whereby_o those_o thing_n be_v give_v unto_o sign_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o the_o thing_n signify_v &_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v express_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o sign_n so_o peter_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n say_v 20_o 1._o pet._n 3._o 20_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o noah_n viij_o soul_n be_v save_v by_o the_o water_n allude_v unto_o baptism_n howbeit_o by_o water_n he_o understand_v not_o the_o outward_a element_n but_o that_o wash_v which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o in_o the_o outward_a sign_n he_o comprehend_v the_o thing_n signify_v which_o he_o himself_o manifest_o declare_v afterward_o when_o he_o say_v 21._o 1._o pet._n 3._o 21._o not_o in_o that_o wherein_o the_o filthe_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v put_v away_o but_o in_o that_o a_o good_a conscience_n answer_v even_o to_o god_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o that_o by_o the_o water_n he_o note_v the_o blood_n &_o death_n which_o be_v express_v under_o the_o name_n of_o resurrection_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n must_v that_o be_v understand_v 25_o ephe._n 5._o 25_o which_o we_o have_v to_o the_o ephesian_n namely_o that_o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o the_o church_n that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n through_o the_o word_n etc._n etc._n the_o cause_n of_o sanctification_n be_v christ_n himself_o who_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n give_v the_o wash_n of_o water_n that_o the_o cleanse_n by_o he_o may_v be_v testify_v by_o the_o word_n and_o by_o the_o sign_n brief_o this_o must_v be_v hold_v that_o the_o outward_a sign_n join_v we_o not_o unto_o christ_n but_o that_o they_o be_v give_v when_o we_o be_v already_o join_v unto_o he_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n even_o as_o the_o watch_n word_n of_o soldier_n do_v not_o levy_v a_o soldier_n but_o have_v be_v accustom_v to_o be_v give_v when_o he_o be_v already_o levy_v and_o there_o be_v none_o that_o mark_v his_o sheep_n horse_n and_o ox_n unless_o he_o first_o possess_v those_o beast_n yea_o and_o the_o letter_n of_o donation_n be_v first_o finish_v and_o write_v before_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o giver_n be_v set_v unto_o they_o and_o assure_o thus_o god_n deal_v with_o abraham_n 6._o gen._n 15._o 6._o first_o he_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n then_o he_o receive_v circumcision_n as_o a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o when_o he_o be_v uncircumcised_a neither_o do_v god_n begin_v to_o deal_v with_o abraham_n in_o circumcision_n but_o the_o same_o circumcision_n follow_v justification_n which_o be_v also_o do_v in_o baptism_n the_o thing_n itself_o that_o be_v the_o covenant_n make_v with_o mankind_n by_o christ_n go_v before_o afterward_o follow_v the_o outward_a token_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o otherwise_o with_o we_o than_o with_o abraham_n paul_n declare_v when_o he_o say_v 23._o rom._n 4._o 23._o that_o he_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o as_o a_o example_n of_o justification_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o all_o the_o argument_n of_o paul_n concern_v that_o matter_n shall_v be_v weak_a yea_o rather_o they_o will_v be_v utter_o overthrow_v 19_o yet_o do_v i_o not_o deny_v baptism_n certain_a signify_v thing_n that_o follow_v baptism_n but_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a signify_v thing_n of_o baptism_n which_o do_v not_o go_v before_o but_o follow_v the_o eternal_a wash_n as_o be_v mortification_n and_o repentance_n and_o according_a to_o this_o analogy_n i_o understand_v that_o which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o roman_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o die_v with_o christ_n 4._o rom._n 6._o 4._o and_o be_v bury_v together_o with_o he_o because_o the_o old_a man_n that_o be_v the_o affection_n and_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n must_v perpetuallie_o be_v mortify_v which_o be_v not_o yet_o bring_v to_o pass_v so_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v baptize_v but_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o it_o shall_v afterward_o be_v do_v and_o whereas_o we_o read_v unto_o the_o galathian_o 27._o gal._n 3._o 27._o so_o many_o of_o you_o as_o be_v baptize_v have_v put_v on_o christ_n i_o judge_v it_o must_v be_v so_o expound_v as_o if_o thou_o understand_v to_o put_v on_o christ_n for_o to_o be_v make_v the_o member_n of_o he_o that_o go_v before_o baptism_n but_o if_o you_o mean_v it_o by_o manner_n and_o life_n to_o express_v the_o child_n of_o god_n expound_v two_o place_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o expound_v that_o follow_v after_o baptism_n receive_v so_o as_o we_o must_v decree_v as_o concern_v the_o child_n of_o faithful_a man_n that_o they_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o faithful_a and_o that_o the_o child_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v number_v among_o the_o saint_n 14_o 1._o cor._n 7._o 14_o as_o paul_n testify_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o if_o that_o one_o will_v object_v 13_o ib._n 12._o ve_fw-la 13_o that_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n the_o 12._o chapter_n it_o be_v write_v that_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n that_o must_v not_o be_v so_o expound_v as_o though_o we_o first_o pass_v by_o outward_a baptism_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n confute_v a_o objection_n touch_v original_a sin_n confute_v see_v we_o be_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n before_o then_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o this_o may_v be_v testify_v and_o seal_v we_o be_v outward_o baptize_v ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la and_o therefore_o before_o those_o word_n it_o be_v write_v by_o the_o spirit_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n so_o that_o it_o be_v first_o wrought_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o we_o become_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n then_o baptism_n be_v add_v wherefore_o see_v the_o infant_n of_o christian_n be_v such_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v adiur_v or_o breathe_v upon_o but_o we_o must_v weigh_v that_o it_o be_v not_o bring_v to_o pass_v by_o those_o thing_n that_o original_a sin_n be_v utter_o take_v away_o because_o we_o confess_v that_o all_o man_n be_v bear_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o be_v deprave_a with_o original_a sin_n see_v that_o kind_n of_o sin_n come_v not_o by_o imitation_n as_o the_o pelagian_o teach_v but_o it_o be_v the_o corrupt_a of_o the_o whole_a nature_n of_o man_n both_o as_o touch_v the_o soul_n &_o as_o touch_v the_o body_n again_o we_o add_v that_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n do_v make_v clean_o his_o elect_a and_o predestinate_a so_o as_o the_o vice_n which_o in_o his_o own_o nature_n shall_v be_v mortal_a sin_n shall_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o they_o unto_o death_n further_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o renu_v and_o adorn_v they_o afterward_o be_v add_v the_o seal_n of_o outward_a baptism_n first_o therefore_o they_o have_v election_n or_o predestination_n they_o have_v the_o promise_n and_o they_o be_v bear_v of_o faithful_a parent_n and_o see_v they_o be_v now_o in_o the_o
the_o new_a birth_n 11._o john_n 3._o 4._o etc._n etc._n john_n 4._o 11._o no_o less_o do_v that_o woman_n of_o samaria_n err_v as_o concern_v that_o water_n which_o christ_n promise_v she_o and_o the_o hebrew_n err_v when_o christ_n say_v unto_o they_o 6._o john_n 8._o 5_o 6._o that_o abraham_n see_v his_o day_n and_o rejoice_v wherefore_o let_v they_o not_o always_o say_v unto_o we_o that_o this_o scripture_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v plain_a for_o we_o will_v answer_v they_o it_o be_v plain_a as_o touch_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o be_v not_o plain_a as_o in_o the_o like_a sentence_n it_o do_v appear_v christ_n be_v the_o rock_n 7_o 1._o cor._n 10._o 4_o john_n 1._o 29._o 1._o co._n 10._o 27_o 1._o co._n 10._o 7_o christ_n be_v the_o lamb_n you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n we_o that_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n all_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o we_o may_v pronounce_v of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v plain_a that_o they_o be_v manifest_a yet_o for_o all_o that_o none_o of_o they_o infer_v transubstantiation_n 33_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o perspicuity_n shall_v be_v so_o much_o pretend_v body_n a_o first_o declaration_n of_o the_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n it_o behoove_v by_o other_o place_n and_o circumstance_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o regard_v well_o what_o be_v here_o mean_v wherefore_o we_o will_v expound_v this_o proposition_n in_o scan_v of_o it_o more_o deep_o god_n mean_v to_o draw_v man_n unto_o he_o by_o ample_a promise_n because_o he_o will_v bless_v he_o and_o make_v he_o happy_a and_o because_o we_o have_v unbeléeving_a heart_n he_o will_v have_v many_o benefit_n to_o appear_v towards_o mankind_n whereby_o he_o may_v allure_v the_o same_o unto_o he_o wherefore_o he_o not_o only_o give_v we_o free_o all_o creature_n but_o also_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o flood_n deliver_v mankind_n which_o otherwise_o have_v ill_o deserve_v from_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o water_n he_o declare_v himself_o very_o merciful_a unto_o abraham_n also_o he_o give_v good_a success_n unto_o the_o stock_n of_o isaac_n and_o to_o his_o seed_n jacob_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v increase_v in_o egypt_n and_o when_o they_o be_v there_o oppress_v he_o deliver_v they_o he_o give_v they_o a_o very_a happy_a land_n and_o he_o exalt_v they_o to_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o priesthood_n but_o yet_o they_o be_v always_o unbeléeving_a man_n and_o small_o persuade_v themselves_o of_o the_o good_a will_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o wherefore_o because_o of_o their_o infidelity_n he_o cast_v they_o into_o diverse_a captivity_n and_o afterward_o he_o deliver_v they_o final_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o place_n leave_v to_o doubt_v of_o his_o goodness_n he_o bestow_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o benefit_n upon_o we_o namely_o his_o own_o son_n endue_v with_o man_n flesh_n that_o he_o shall_v die_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o salvation_n which_o benefit_n be_v such_o 31._o rom._n 8._o 31._o that_o as_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o roman_n how_o can_v it_o be_v but_o that_o he_o give_v all_o thing_n together_o with_o he_o and_o lest_o it_o shall_v be_v forget_v he_o will_v have_v it_o renew_v in_o the_o memory_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o we_o shall_v revolve_v in_o our_o mind_n by_o faith_n that_o christ_n by_o he_o be_v deliver_v unto_o death_n for_o we_o and_o that_o in_o beléeve_v we_o shall_v eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n which_o that_o it_o may_v the_o more_o effectual_o be_v do_v the_o token_n both_o of_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v add_v which_o may_v move_v we_o more_o earnest_o than_o bare_a word_n can_v do_v life_n mat._n 26._o 26_o john_n 6._o 35._o he_o compare_v the_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n with_o that_o in_o the_o 6._o of_o john_n i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n 34_o therefore_o when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n he_o mean_v no_o otherwise_o than_o he_o promise_v in_o the_o 6._o of_o john_n i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n he_o speak_v of_o himself_o as_o touch_v the_o body_n and_o flesh_n deliver_v unto_o death_n or_o rather_o to_o be_v deliver_v as_o by_o his_o word_n it_o be_v manifest_a neither_o will_v he_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v unto_o we_o bread_n and_o meat_n whereby_o our_o mind_n shall_v be_v confirm_v and_o cherish_v and_o by_o the_o mind_n the_o body_n and_o final_o the_o whole_a man_n wherefore_o in_o the_o supper_n christ_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o he_o transpose_v the_o proposition_n and_o as_o before_o he_o have_v say_v that_o his_o body_n and_o flesh_n be_v bread_n so_o now_o on_o the_o otherside_n he_o say_v in_o show_v bread_n that_o the_o very_a same_o be_v his_o body_n and_o while_o he_o pronounce_v this_o be_v my_o body_n it_o be_v even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v my_o body_n be_v receive_v by_o faith_n shall_v be_v unto_o you_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o bread_n or_o as_o it_o be_v bread_n whereby_o you_o shall_v be_v spiritual_o feed_v wherefore_o let_v the_o sense_n be_v i_o give_v unto_o you_o bread_n to_o eat_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o set_v forth_o unto_o you_o my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v fasten_v unto_o the_o cross_n that_o with_o a_o faithful_a memory_n and_o attentive_a mind_n you_o may_v eat_v it_o spiritual_o with_o yourselves_o and_o as_o you_o with_o the_o body_n eat_v bread_n so_o with_o the_o mind_n you_o may_v feed_v upon_o my_o flesh_n what_o be_v more_o easy_a &_o plain_a than_o this_o interpretation_n and_o that_o do_v more_o better_o agree_v with_o the_o promise_n which_o the_o lord_n make_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o john_n but_o and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v contend_v that_o that_o first_o say_v of_o christ_n i_o be_o the_o lively_a bread_n be_v take_v for_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o chrysostome_n seem_v to_o take_v it_o first_o we_o say_v that_o this_o do_v not_o well_o agree_v because_o christ_n have_v order_v his_o speech_n concern_v the_o eat_n of_o his_o body_n &_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o earthly_a bread_n he_o offer_v to_o the_o capernaite_n his_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v which_o thing_n by_o the_o course_n of_o his_o speech_n do_v plain_o appear_v although_o he_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n because_o oftentimes_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o godhead_n be_v also_o communicate_v with_o the_o humanity_n but_o if_o this_o exposition_n of_o chrysostome_n be_v of_o so_o great_a force_n with_o they_o let_v that_o also_o prevail_v with_o they_o when_o he_o say_v afterward_o that_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n 5●_n verse_n 5●_n the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n which_o i_o will_v give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n do_v belong_v unto_o the_o eucharist_n neither_o have_v he_o alone_o affirm_v this_o but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o interpreter_n do_v also_o consent_v unto_o he_o therefore_o when_o as_o the_o lord_n say_v there_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v his_o flesh_n he_o now_o testify_v the_o same_o in_o the_o supper_n for_o the_o bread_n be_v show_v he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n he_o pronounce_v both_o in_o the_o one_o place_n and_o the_o other_o that_o his_o body_n or_o his_o flesh_n be_v bread_n namely_o of_o the_o soul_n and_o of_o our_o regenerate_v substance_n which_o bread_n be_v spiritual_o eat_v and_o so_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o conversion_n of_o the_o proposition_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v understand_v after_o the_o self_n same_o manner_n both_o in_o the_o one_o place_n and_o in_o the_o other_o body_n what_o figure_n be_v admit_v in_o this_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o if_o thou_o understand_v the_o whole_a together_o to_o wit_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o thing_n offer_v by_o the_o bread_n that_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n we_o admit_v the_o figure_n synecdoche_n for_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o whole_a or_o of_o the_o one_o part_v which_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o other_o but_o if_o thou_o refer_v the_o say_n unto_o bread_n which_o both_o signify_v and_o offer_v unto_o we_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v eat_v it_o shall_v be_v the_o figure_n of_o denomination_n to_o wit_n when_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o sign_n in_o this_o interpretation_n also_o all_o thing_n be_v easy_a absurdity_n be_v shame_v and_o one_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o other_o scripture_n 35_o they_o say_v if_o place_n be_v thus_o give_v unto_o figure_n the_o heretic_n will_v pervert_v all_o thing_n heretic_n unless_o we_o use_v figure_n we_o can_v
it_o appear_v that_o they_o not_o only_o among_o themselves_o but_o even_o with_o we_o also_o have_v the_o self_n same_o sacrament_n we_o see_v likewise_o that_o the_o speech_n adjoin_v be_v understand_v figurativelie_o for_o in_o these_o it_o be_v say_v 16_o 1._o co._n 10._o 16_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o again_o 25_o 1._o co._n 11._o 25_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n the_o which_o thing_n we_o have_v oftentimes_o rehearse_v moreover_o it_o do_v not_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o by_o these_o thing_n it_o appear_v at_o large_a what_o ought_v to_o be_v say_v to_o the_o second_o argument_n in_o the_o which_o they_o object_v that_o the_o sentence_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v by_o a_o figure_n unless_o that_o there_o be_v some_o other_o thing_n before_o or_o after_o which_o shall_v move_v we_o to_o the_o same_o and_o they_o urge_v that_o particle_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o you_o that_o we_o rather_o retain_v it_o in_o the_o proper_a sense_n but_o this_o be_v manifest_o false_a see_v we_o there_o change_v the_o tense_n neither_o do_v we_o take_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n that_o be_v deliver_v forsomuch_o as_o that_o be_v visible_a and_o passable_a neither_o can_v both_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o corruptible_a body_n and_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o glorified_a body_n be_v in_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o substance_n or_o subject_n so_o as_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n may_v be_v passable_a and_o impassable_a together_o at_o one_o time_n further_o we_o have_v show_v what_o other_o place_n lead_v we_o to_o admit_v these_o kind_n of_o figure_n i_o mean_v synecdoche_n or_o denomination_n 39_o we_o will_v answer_v to_o a_o other_o argument_n as_o touch_v thing_n distinct_a or_o as_o the_o schoolman_n call_v they_o disparata_fw-la different_a proposition_n how_o thing_n distinct_a or_o va●l●e_a may_v be_v of_o strength_n to_o make_v a_o proposition_n among_o which_o no_o mutual_a predication_n can_v be_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v so_o several_a or_o different_a if_o a_o analogy_n or_o signification_n do_v happen_v may_v now_o be_v so_o join_v together_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v of_o strength_n to_o make_v a_o proposition_n and_o this_o we_o perceive_v to_o be_v do_v not_o only_a when_o it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o lord_n 11._o luke_n 8._o 11._o the_o seed_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n again_o i_o be_o the_o vine_n 1._o john_n 15._o 1._o but_o also_o even_o of_o paul_n when_o he_o pronounce_v that_o we_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o again_o he_o say_v the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o again_o 18._o 1._o co._n 10._o 18._o 25_o ib._n ver_fw-la 17._o 1._o co._n 11._o 25_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n neither_o do_v we_o much_o pass_v that_o some_o say_v that_o matthew_n and_o mark_n do_v plain_o and_o manifest_o utter_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 24._o mat._n 25._o 28_o mat._n 14._o 24._o for_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o these_o evangelist_n thus_o write_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o say_v that_o the_o word_n also_o which_o luke_n and_o paul_n have_v must_v be_v receive_v and_o we_o say_v that_o those_o even_o as_o other_o sentence_n which_o we_o do_v now_o cite_v consist_v of_o word_n that_o do_v much_o differ_v and_o that_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o logician_n may_v be_v call_v disparata_fw-la that_o be_v differ_v one_o from_o a_o other_o but_o by_o analogy_n and_o signification_n they_o be_v very_o well_o and_o fit_o join_v together_o 40_o in_o a_o other_o argument_n it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n when_o he_o utter_v this_o be_v my_o body_n say_v not_o this_o signify_v my_o body_n or_o represent_v my_o body_n this_o bread_n be_v a_o figure_n or_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n against_o these_o we_o reply_v that_o christ_n say_v not_o that_o his_o body_n lie_v hide_v in_o those_o accident_n without_o a_o subject_n neither_o affirm_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n cease_v to_o be_v or_o be_v change_v or_o transubstantiate_v into_o his_o body_n furthermore_o i_o marvel_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v object_v see_v among_o the_o father_n these_o exposition_n be_v find_v for_o they_o oftentimes_o say_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v represent_v be_v signify_v be_v notify_v be_v show_v and_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n they_o call_v a_o seal_n a_o figure_n and_o a_o type_n and_o a_o example_n of_o like_a form_n neither_o be_v there_o cause_n why_o any_o shall_v cavil_v that_o they_o refer_v these_o sign_n or_o figure_n unto_o the_o death_n figure_n testimony_n of_o the_o father_n by_o which_o they_o call_v the_o sacrament_n sign_n and_o figure_n and_o not_o unto_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o the_o father_n manifest_o say_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v signify_v and_o that_o sign_n and_o figure_n be_v give_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v to_o be_v true_a among_o many_o place_n of_o the_o father_n we_o will_v here_o set_v forth_o these_o few_o augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n de_fw-fr catechis_n rudib_fw-la as_o touch_v the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o receive_v he_o say_v in_o deed_n that_o there_o be_v visible_a seal_n of_o divine_a thing_n but_o that_o the_o very_a invisible_a thing_n be_v honour_v in_o they_o augustine_n the_o same_o augustine_n the_o same_o father_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 10_o book_n and_o 5_o chapter_n wherefore_o the_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n jerom._n jerom._n that_o be_v it_o be_v a_o holy_a sign_n jerom_n in_o his_o 4_o book_n upon_o matthew_n chap._n the_o 26._o that_o even_o as_o in_o the_o prefiguration_n of_o he_o melchisedeck_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a god_n do_v in_o the_o offering_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n so_o he_o himself_o also_o represent_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o to_o set_v aside_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o the_o say_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n bertran_n say_v that_o that_o bread_n which_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o cup_n which_o be_v call_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o figure_n tertullian_n tertullian_n because_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n tertullian_n against_o martion_n the_o 4_o book_n he_o have_v receive_v bread_n and_o distribute_v it_o unto_o his_o disciple_n make_v it_o his_o body_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n cyprian_a cyprian_a that_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n cyprian_n in_o his_o 2_o epistle_n the_o 2._o book_n we_o see_v that_o in_o the_o water_n the_o people_n be_v understand_v in_o the_o wine_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v show_v ambrose_n in_o his_o book_n de_n his_o qui_fw-la initiantur_fw-la mysterijs_fw-la before_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o heavenly_a word_n a_o other_o kind_n be_v name_v after_o consecration_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v signify_v the_o same_o father_n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la the_o 4._o book_n and_o 5_o chapter_n do_v thou_o this_o oblation_n for_o we_o be_v record_v in_o writing_n to_o be_v a_o reasonable_a and_o acceptable_a oblation_n because_o it_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o father_n upon_o the_o xi_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinth_n we_o be_v mindful_a hereof_o do_v in_o eat_v and_o drink_v signify_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v offer_v for_o us._n and_o straightway_o after_o according_a to_o the_o figure_n whereof_o we_o receive_v the_o cup_n be_v the_o mystical_a body_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o body_n &_o soul_n bernard_n in_o his_o sermon_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la to_o this_o end_n therefore_o the_o lord_n draw_v towards_o his_o passion_n provide_v to_o adorn_v his_o own_o people_n with_o his_o grace_n that_o the_o invisible_a grace_n may_v he_o give_v by_o a_o visible_a sign_n chrysost_n chrysost_n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinth_n the_o x._o chapter_n for_o what_o do_v i_o call_v the_o communion_n we_o be_v even_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o body_n and_o what_o signify_v bread_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o what_o become_v they_o that_o do_v receive_v it_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n basiliu●_n basiliu●_n basil_n in_o his_o liturgy_n call_v it_o a_o example_n of_o like_a form_n and_o that_o after_o baptism_n augustine_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la the_o 3._o book_n and_o 4._o augustine_n augustine_n chapter_n the_o apostle_n may_v in_o signify_v preach_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o tongue_n otherwise_o by_o a_o epistle_n
in_o this_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n do_v wonderful_o beguile_v the_o simple_a sort_n for_o he_o change_v the_o colour_n of_o the_o wine_n that_o it_o may_v altogether_o appear_v blood_n &_o by_o his_o enchantment_n he_o so_o increase_v a_o little_a wine_n as_o the_o whole_a cup_n be_v fill_v &_o run_v over_o and_o when_o again_o there_o be_v a_o cup_n long_o and_o of_o more_o recept_n that_o also_o be_v fill_v up_o to_o the_o top_n without_o addition_n of_o more_o liquor_n who_o will_v say_v that_o through_o these_o miracle_n his_o heresy_n shall_v be_v approve_v if_o we_o shall_v make_v mention_n of_o ethnic_n we_o read_v that_o there_o flow_v in_o the_o earth_n river_n of_o blood_n that_o out_o of_o the_o thumb_n of_o jubiter_n spring_v blood_n livius_n t._n livius_n titus_n livius_n say_v that_o at_o rome_n it_o rain_v flesh_n quintus_fw-la curtius_n say_v curtius_n quintus_fw-la curtius_n that_o at_o tyre_n when_o it_o be_v besiege_v by_o alexander_n the_o great_a bread_n do_v open_o sweat_v forth_o blood_n and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o apollonius_n thyanaeus_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o council_n before_o domitianus_n the_o emperor_n sudden_o vanish_v away_o so_o that_o he_o be_v no_o more_o find_v and_o infinite_a be_v the_o thing_n that_o the_o ethnic_n can_v bring_v for_o to_o confirm_v their_o service_n of_o idol_n wherefore_o we_o whole_o reject_v these_o miracle_n which_o these_o man_n say_v do_v serve_v for_o establish_v the_o superstition_n of_o transubstantiation_n neither_o be_v we_o to_o make_v great_a account_n of_o that_o which_o they_o bring_v in_o here_o as_o touch_v a_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o gregory_n bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o it_o be_v write_v in_o his_o life_n rome_n the_o life_n gregory_n bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o if_o thou_o will_v call_v it_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o finger_n of_o flesh_n which_o if_o it_o be_v do_v for_o the_o two_o cause_n which_o we_o ourselves_o allow_v we_o be_v not_o much_o to_o stand_v upon_o it_o albeit_o that_o life_n of_o gregory_n be_v not_o of_o any_o great_a credit_n for_o if_o we_o shall_v believe_v vincentius_n it_o be_v describe_v a_o hundred_o year_n after_o his_o death_n by_o john_n a_o deacon_n of_o rome_n and_o send_v to_o a_o certain_a emperor_n of_o germany_n but_o admit_v it_o be_v so_o so_o long_o as_o our_o adversary_n will_v thereof_o conclude_v that_o through_o the_o token_n of_o a_o fleshy_a finger_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n do_v corporal_o lie_v hide_v under_o accident_n any_o man_n may_v by_o this_o kind_n of_o miracle_n conclude_v that_o under_o sacramental_a form_n be_v contain_v ash_n and_o coal_n because_o the_o holy_a bread_n be_v once_o convert_v into_o these_o in_o the_o time_n of_o cyprian_a as_o himself_o write_v i_o think_v also_o that_o the_o liegerdemaine_n of_o naughty_a fellow_n which_o they_o have_v often_o time_n use_v to_o the_o feign_v of_o miracle_n be_v not_o unknowen_a body_n a_o argument_n from_o the_o glorify_a body_n 62_o in_o a_o other_o argument_n they_o very_o much_o obtrude_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o glorify_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o after_o the_o resurrection_n be_v be_v call_v spiritual_a this_o we_o deny_v dot_v yet_o do_v we_o give_v warning_n of_o that_o which_o augustine_n have_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o consentius_n that_o such_o a_o body_n be_v not_o so_o spiritual_a as_o it_o pass_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n 44_o 2._o co._n 15._o 44_o for_o paul_n also_o call_v the_o body_n a_o certain_a natural_a body_n which_o must_v not_o so_o be_v understode_v as_o though_o the_o body_n pass_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o again_o the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o 13._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 20._o chapter_n write_v the_o soul_n sometime_o while_o it_o obey_v the_o flesh_n be_v call_v carnal_a not_o that_o it_o pass_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o flesh_n so_o likewise_o the_o body_n be_v call_v spiritual_a not_o because_o it_o gather_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n but_o because_o it_o will_v be_v whole_o subject_a to_o fulfil_v the_o will_n thereof_o and_o jerom_n in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o pamachius_n which_o be_v a_o apology_n against_o john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o attribute_v unto_o the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o rise_v again_o a_o elementary_a or_o airy_a body_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v subject_a either_o to_o feeling_n or_o feed_v contend_v by_o all_o mean_n that_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n have_v a_o most_o true_a body_n and_o that_o doubtless_o visible_a and_o he_o prevent_v a_o objection_n if_o in_o such_o sort_n it_o be_v visible_a and_o ownself_o same_o body_n why_o be_v it_o not_o know_v when_o he_o show_v himself_o like_o a_o stranger_n he_o answer_v because_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v that_o they_o may_v not_o know_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o body_n both_o be_v visible_a and_o may_v be_v know_v but_o there_o be_v a_o impediment_n in_o their_o eye_n which_o be_v hold_v that_o they_o can_v not_o discern_v see_v therefore_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n have_v a_o true_a body_n bind_v to_o measure_n and_o place_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v deprive_v it_o of_o these_o property_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o narrow_a corner_n of_o a_o small_a piece_n of_o bread_n as_o though_o it_o be_v whole_o contain_v therein_o how_o great_a so_o ever_o it_o be_v but_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o this_o also_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n can_v it_o straightway_o be_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v do_v the_o argument_n as_o we_o show_v before_o be_v weak_a they_o also_o argue_v from_o the_o greek_a article_n see_v christ_n say_v article_n the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o gréek_n article_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o though_o the_o article_n can_v have_v strength_n to_o draw_v the_o proposition_n unto_o the_o proper_a sense_n and_o permit_v not_o a_o figurative_a meaning_n these_o man_n be_v deceive_v for_o the_o greek_a article_n have_v not_o always_o that_o strength_n and_o that_o appear_v plain_o in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o luke_n 11._o luk._n 8._o 11._o where_o christ_n expound_v that_o parable_n which_o he_o have_v utter_v of_o the_o sour_a of_o the_o seed_n and_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o seed_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o thou_o see_v that_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v add_v the_o greek_a article_n yet_o do_v not_o this_o speech_n work_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v bind_v as_o though_o it_o shall_v proper_o real_o and_o corporal_o be_v in_o that_o seed_n which_o be_v throw_v into_o the_o earth_n whereof_o the_o parable_n be_v propose_v at_o the_o beginning_n but_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v contain_v therein_o by_o the_o power_n and_o property_n of_o the_o signification_n after_o which_o manner_n we_o also_o understand_v it_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n for_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o pronounce_v of_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n unless_o it_o be_v by_o signification_n moreover_o there_o be_v a_o argument_n take_v of_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n wherein_o he_o say_v 30._o mat._n 28._o 30._o i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o which_o be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o our_o opinion_n world_n after_o what_o manner_n christ_n be_v present_a with_o we_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o we_o confess_v that_o christ_n be_v present_a with_o we_o by_o his_o divine_a nature_n by_o grace_n also_o and_o by_o many_o gift_n which_o his_o spirit_n bring_v unto_o us._n furthermore_o if_o we_o desire_v his_o blood_n and_o flesh_n we_o may_v also_o comprehend_v they_o in_o this_o sacrament_n by_o faith_n and_o may_v spiritual_o eat_v they_o whereunto_o there_o afterward_o follow_v a_o most_o true_a yet_o a_o secret_a and_o unspeakable_a conjunction_n of_o we_o with_o christ_n when_o we_o be_v change_v into_o he_o 63_o then_o afterward_o it_o be_v propose_v that_o if_o the_o matter_n be_v on_o this_o wise_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o our_o sacrament_n have_v no_o more_o than_o have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n see_v in_o they_o also_o christ_n be_v signify_v yea_o &_o perhaps_o if_o we_o respect_v the_o nature_n of_o sign_n the_o thing_n be_v more_o full_o shadow_v there_o than_o it_o be_v in_o our_o sacrament_n the_o which_o be_v altogether_o unbloudie_a but_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a father_n the_o slaughter_n be_v plain_o see_v and_o the_o blood_n there_o shed_v do_v
they_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v see_v what_o we_o shall_v judge_v in_o both_o to_o be_v avoid_v and_o what_o to_o be_v receive_v wherefore_o some_o there_o have_v be_v which_o retain_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o also_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v together_o with_o these_o sign_n yet_o remain_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n join_v by_o a_o most_o firm_a knot_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o not_o so_o as_o i_o think_v that_o of_o they_o be_v join_v together_o shall_v be_v make_v one_o substance_n nevertheless_o they_o have_v say_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n real_o as_o they_o speak_v corporal_o &_o natural_o but_o other_o have_v join_v they_o together_o by_o signification_n only_o the_o first_o opinion_n be_v attrybute_v unto_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la of_o the_o contention_n between_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la the_o other_o unto_o zuinglius_fw-la howbeit_o i_o have_v hear_v man_n of_o credit_n say_v that_o luther_n judge_v not_o so_o gross_o of_o this_o matter_n and_o that_o zuinglius_fw-la also_o beléeve_v not_o so_o slenderlie_o of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o they_o say_v that_o luther_n incline_v unto_o hyperbolical_a speech_n such_o as_o after_o a_o sort_n exceed_v the_o truth_n because_o he_o think_v that_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o other_o will_v make_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v bare_a and_o vain_a sign_n whereas_o zuinglius_fw-la mean_v not_o such_o matter_n but_o he_o also_o fear_v lest_o luther_n shall_v affirm_v those_o thing_n which_o both_o shall_v derogate_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n and_o also_o include_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o bread_n whereupon_o a_o great_a superstition_n shall_v yet_o be_v nourish_v and_o therefore_o he_o think_v meet_v to_o report_v somewhat_o slenderlie_o of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o thus_o there_o be_v stir_v up_o a_o contention_n more_o than_o be_v meet_v and_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o great_a mischief_n thing_n that_o their_o contention_n be_v rather_o of_o word_n than_o of_o the_o thing_n whereas_o yet_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o contention_n be_v rather_o about_o word_n than_o about_o the_o matter_n wherefore_o we_o will_v remove_v the_o handle_n of_o these_o two_o opinion_n from_o the_o person_n for_o we_o affirm_v not_o that_o either_o zuinglius_fw-la or_o luther_n be_v of_o that_o mind_n but_o only_o we_o will_v examine_v the_o opinion_n such_o as_o be_v carry_v about_o 66_o that_o those_o man_n which_o so_o gross_o join_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o sign_n may_v the_o better_o declare_v themselves_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o bring_v two_o similitude_n similitude_n two_o similitude_n the_o first_o be_v if_o thou_o have_v a_o pot_n full_a of_o wine_n and_o shall_v pronounce_v this_o be_v wine_n thou_o lie_v not_o at_o all_o see_v thou_o show_v the_o wine_n itself_o contain_v in_o the_o cup._n in_o like_a manner_n shall_v it_o be_v if_o thou_o take_v a_o hot_a burn_a iron_n and_o show_v the_o fire_n say_v this_o be_v fire_n therein_o thou_o speak_v neither_o false_o nor_o absurd_o so_o say_v they_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o say_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o they_o manifest_o admit_v the_o figure_n synecdoche_n for_o see_v they_o show_v a_o subject_n compound_v it_o be_v no_o true_a proposition_n unless_o it_o be_v as_o touch_v the_o one_o part_n of_o the_o thing_n show_v yet_o must_v it_o be_v know_v that_o these_o similitude_n be_v not_o take_v by_o they_o as_o though_o they_o think_v that_o every_o manner_n of_o way_n they_o agree_v with_o the_o matter_n propose_v because_o they_o contend_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_v not_o local_o be_v to_o be_v present_a local_o and_o definitive_o what_o it_o be_v but_o only_o diffinitive_o which_o then_o they_o understand_v to_o be_v when_o any_o thing_n be_v not_o circumscribe_v with_o the_o measure_n of_o place_n but_o yet_o be_v say_v to_o be_v there_o because_o his_o nature_n or_o essence_n be_v then_o appoint_v to_o that_o place_n or_o work_v therein_o but_o this_o agree_v not_o with_o wine_n be_v in_o a_o cup_n for_o that_o have_v his_o place_n there_o wherein_o it_o be_v limit_v further_o these_o man_n will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o in_o bread_n as_o it_o shall_v take_v name_n of_o the_o quality_n or_o accident_n thereof_o for_o it_o can_v true_o be_v name_v white_a round_a bake_a or_o sod_v which_o nevertheless_o we_o perceive_v to_o happen_v unto_o fire_n mix_v with_o burn_a iron_n for_o it_o so_o follow_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o iron_n the_o length_n the_o breadth_n and_o the_o depth_n thereof_o as_o it_o may_v be_v name_v by_o the_o shape_n and_o form_n of_o the_o same_o whereby_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o this_o similitude_n in_o this_o opinion_n be_v not_o understand_v by_o these_o man_n as_o touch_v all_o the_o part_n but_o only_o that_o a_o true_a and_o real_a conjunction_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o thing_n may_v be_v show_v which_o be_v grant_v it_o follow_v that_o aswell_o the_o wicked_a as_o the_o godly_a do_v receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n first_o forsooth_o that_o this_o conjunction_n be_v real_a they_o think_v it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o these_o man_n will_v the_o wicked_a receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o other_o namely_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v even_o unto_o the_o wicked_a they_o see_v it_o do_v necessary_o follow_v but_o we_o have_v already_o show_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n drive_v we_o not_o necessary_o unto_o this_o sense_n and_o by_o effectual_a reason_n it_o have_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o wicked_a receive_v only_o the_o outward_a element_n 67_o these_o man_n also_o be_v wont_v to_o argue_v that_o if_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v understand_v figurativelie_o it_o may_v then_o easy_o be_v that_o many_o precept_n shall_v be_v overthrow_v for_o abraham_n may_v have_v say_v of_o circumcision_n when_o it_o be_v command_v 2._o gen._n 17._o 10_o whether_o figurative_a speech_n be_v a_o hurt_n to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n levit._n 11._o 2._o it_o be_v a_o figurative_a speech_n and_o i_o shall_v fulfil_v this_o commandment_n if_o i_o circumcise_v my_o heart_n and_o cut_v off_o the_o lust_n and_o infection_n of_o the_o flesh_n also_o when_o the_o choice_n of_o meat_n be_v command_v the_o israelite_n may_v have_v say_v that_o the_o execution_n of_o that_o commandment_n may_v consist_v in_o the_o moral_a observation_n if_o they_o do_v not_o commit_v those_o sin_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o those_o unclean_a beast_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v neither_o circumcision_n nor_o choice_n of_o meat_n shall_v have_v take_v place_n howbeit_o it_o may_v plain_o be_v prove_v that_o this_o be_v a_o weak_a argument_n because_o it_o be_v perceive_v by_o the_o letter_n itself_o and_o by_o the_o text_n that_o the_o same_o be_v no_o figurative_a speech_n as_o touch_v circumcision_n it_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o viij_o day_n after_o the_o child_n birth_n and_o it_o be_v add_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o flesh_n itself_o by_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v that_o true_a circumcision_n be_v command_v and_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o meat_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o live_a creature_n clean_a and_o unclean_a be_v so_o express_o describe_v and_o a_o purify_n appoint_v as_o touch_v the_o offender_n that_o no_o place_n of_o doubt_v be_v leave_v we_o have_v also_o a_o rule_n of_o augustine_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n augustine_n a_o precept_n of_o augustine_n wherein_o he_o show_v that_o unless_o a_o ill_a act_n be_v command_v or_o some_o good_a work_n prohibit_v the_o speech_n be_v to_o be_v take_v without_o a_o figure_n the_o which_o rule_n if_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o choice_n of_o meat_n and_o unto_o circumcision_n he_o show_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n must_v be_v absolute_o understand_v they_o say_v moreover_o that_o in_o the_o prophet_n and_o history_n figure_n be_v easy_o admit_v because_o in_o these_o the_o holy_a ghost_n deal_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n &_o appli_v himself_o to_o their_o familiar_a speech_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o and_o the_o more_o earnest_o express_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v speak_v but_o in_o doctrine_n and_o precept_n we_o must_v not_o so_o judge_v all_o thing_n say_v they_o must_v be_v take_v simple_o 16_o whether_o in_o the_o doctrine_n &_o precept_n of_o god_n there_o be_v figure_n mat._n 16._o 16_o which_o opinion_n of_o they_o be_v not_o firm_a or_o universal_a for_o as_o touch_v precept_n the_o lord_n say_v beware_v of_o
the_o leven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n where_o he_o manifest_o use_v a_o figure_n &_o that_o such_o a_o figure_n as_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n understand_v he_o amiss_o moreover_o in_o the_o 7._o 11._o matt._n 7._o 11._o of_o matthew_n he_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n for_o they_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o say_v he_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n in_o which_o commandment_n who_o perceive_v not_o a_o figurative_a speech_n and_o in_o teach_v of_o doctrine_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o figure_n &_o trope_n be_v use_v paul_n say_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n 29_o 1._o cor._n 10._o 4_o ib._n ver_fw-la 18._o heb._n 12._o 29_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n we_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o of_o god_n it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o be_v a_o consume_a fire_n 68_o afterward_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v every_o where_o 13._o whether_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v everywhere_o look_v in_o the_o dialogue_n several_o set_v out_o by_o p._n martyr_n concern_v this_o manner_n john_n 3._o 13._o and_o that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o nichodemus_n in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o john_n where_o it_o be_v say_v no_o man_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n even_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n behold_v say_v they_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o be_v christ_n speak_v unto_o they_o as_o touch_v his_o humane_a nature_n and_o be_v also_o in_o heaven_n because_o the_o humane_a nature_n can_v be_v pluck_v away_o from_o the_o divine_a therefore_o what_o he_o affirm_v of_o one_o must_v also_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o other_o but_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o we_o will_v not_o divide_v these_o two_o nature_n one_o from_o a_o other_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o therefore_o that_o that_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o one_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o other_o indeed_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o but_o we_o will_v not_o attribute_v the_o same_o unto_o his_o body_n and_o humanity_n and_o this_o do_v augustine_n unto_o dardanus_n most_o manifest_o teach_v and_o that_o which_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o john_n the_o same_o augustine_n enterprete_v that_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v in_o heaven_n as_o touch_v his_o divine_a nature_n neither_o do_v chrysostome_n otherwise_o judge_v when_o he_o expound_v this_o place_n for_o he_o affirm_v that_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v not_o attribute_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o how_o feeble_a a_o argument_n this_o be_v these_o two_o nature_n be_v join_v together_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o one_o must_v be_v attribute_v also_o to_o the_o other_o this_o may_v be_v show_v by_o the_o like_a the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n and_o the_o light_n thereof_o have_v between_o they_o a_o natural_a and_o excellent_a conjunction_n yet_o the_o light_n extend_v not_o itself_o to_o every_o place_n whereunto_o the_o body_n do_v real_o attain_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o body_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n our_o eye_n and_o sight_n be_v very_o much_o join_v one_o with_o a_o other_o and_o yet_o do_v our_o sight_n attain_v to_o many_o thing_n unto_o which_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n extend_v not_o afterward_o they_o argue_v that_o unto_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n many_o thing_n must_v be_v grant_v beside_o the_o common_a course_n and_o condition_n of_o other_o body_n and_o that_o for_o two_o cause_n partly_o because_o it_o be_v glorify_v and_o partly_o because_o it_o have_v the_o word_n join_v with_o it_o we_o confess_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v give_v but_o to_o be_v every_o where_o this_o can_v be_v fit_a for_o it_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n body_n preserve_v and_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v this_o unto_o it_o it_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v renown_n but_o ruin_n thereunto_o for_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v extrude_v from_o his_o own_o nature_n moreover_o it_o do_v not_o much_o further_a this_o matter_n because_o although_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n have_v this_o in_o it_o that_o it_o can_v be_v in_o many_o place_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o thereof_o follow_v that_o god_n will_v deal_v so_o in_o this_o sacrament_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n 69_o moreover_o they_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v this_o corporal_a presence_n by_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o teacher_n who_o see_v he_o can_v extend_v his_o word_n unto_o many_o hearer_n in_o they_o he_o communicate_v unto_o the_o hearer_n the_o concept_n of_o his_o mind_n so_o as_o all_o they_o understand_v he_o full_o alike_o so_o say_v he_o do_v god_n deal_v in_o the_o word_n which_o be_v utter_v at_o the_o sacrament_n he_o fold_v his_o body_n in_o they_o that_o by_o they_o he_o may_v be_v show_v in_o all_o these_o sign_n and_o may_v be_v communicate_v unto_o all_o that_o be_v receiver_n wherefore_o that_o which_o be_v grant_v unto_o a_o master_n and_o that_o a_o earthly_a master_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v grant_v unto_o christ_n but_o the_o comparison_n be_v far_o wide_a and_o as_o we_o say_v before_o word_n do_v not_o discover_v thing_n or_o the_o concept_n of_o the_o mind_n unless_o it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o signification_n and_o that_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n which_o afterward_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o out_o of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n where_o it_o be_v say_v 22._o ephe._n 5._o 22._o christ_n be_v give_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n which_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o gréeke_n be_v the_o fullness_n of_o he_o that_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o thing_n for_o the_o apostle_n mean_v not_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n fill_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v every_o where_o as_o these_o man_n infer_v ephesian_n a_o exposition_n of_o a_o place_n to_o the_o ephesian_n but_o because_o the_o signification_n of_o that_o verb_n or_o participle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d fulfil_n be_v doubtful_a for_o it_o may_v be_v take_v both_o active_o and_o passivelie_o see_v it_o be_v a_o verb_n of_o the_o mean_a voice_n if_o thou_o understand_v it_o passive_o according_a to_o the_o gréeke_n exposition_n the_o sense_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fill_v as_o touch_v all_o thing_n in_o all_o his_o member_n not_o that_o he_o be_v accomplish_v in_o himself_o for_o he_o be_v both_o sufficient_o perfect_a &_o happy_a howbeit_o that_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o body_n &_o member_n for_o as_o to_o be_v the_o head_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o so_o likewise_o the_o church_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n namely_o for_o that_o it_o fill_v and_o make_v perfect_a his_o mystical_a body_n but_o if_o the_o signification_n thereof_o be_v active_a then_o shall_v it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n because_o he_o himself_o perfect_v all_o the_o gift_n and_o virtue_n in_o all_o his_o member_n where_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n be_v not_o every_o where_n neither_o be_v the_o sense_n that_o he_o as_o he_o be_v man_n be_v every_o where_o and_o it_o be_v think_v that_o this_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n 15._o joh._n 11._o ver_fw-la 14._o &_o 15._o for_o christ_n open_o confess_v that_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a when_o he_o be_v not_o there_o but_o if_o he_o will_v contend_v that_o he_o have_v not_o a_o glorify_a body_n it_o make_v not_o much_o to_o the_o matter_n because_o he_o have_v nevertheless_o the_o godhead_n join_v with_o it_o but_o to_o take_v away_o the_o doubt_n the_o angel_n now_o after_o the_o resurrection_n say_v unto_o the_o woman_n he_o be_v rise_v he_o be_v not_o here_o 7._o matt._n 28._o ver_fw-la 6._o &_o 7._o and_o again_o he_o shall_v go_v before_o you_o into_o galilee_n and_o again_o 9_o acts._n 1._o 9_o he_o be_v take_v away_o from_o their_o eye_n as_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n wherefore_o he_o fill_v not_o all_o thing_n nor_o be_v every_o where_o 70_o they_o be_v wont_v also_o to_o cite_v a_o place_n in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 10._o verse_n 10._o he_o that_o descend_v be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o ascend_v even_o above_o all_o heaven_n expound_v an_o other_o place_n to_o the_o ephesian_n expound_v that_o he_o may_v fill_v all_o thing_n which_o place_n notwithstanding_o proove_v nothing_o and_o be_v expound_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o that_o to_o fill_v all_o thing_n be_v refer_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v
prophesy_v and_o write_v of_o christ_n wherefore_o a_o little_a before_o he_o cite_v the_o scripture_n 8._o verse_n 8._o he_o ascend_v on_o high_a he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a and_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n and_o if_o thou_o will_v refer_v it_o unto_o place_n thou_o must_v understand_v this_o of_o the_o kind_n of_o place_n not_o of_o each_o one_o place_n particular_o according_a to_o that_o sentence_n 4._o 1._o tim._n 2._o 4._o the_o lord_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v so_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o christ_n sometime_o occupy_v the_o middle_a place_n sometime_o the_o high_a place_n and_o otherwhile_o the_o low_a place_n as_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n the_o transubstantiator_n say_v that_o this_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o because_o they_o say_v not_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o but_o only_o where_o the_o sacrament_n be_v yea_o rather_o it_o be_v against_o they_o for_o if_o as_o they_o judge_v it_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n see_v if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v together_o in_o many_o place_n it_o may_v also_o be_v every_o where_o which_o thing_n also_o scotus_n see_v to_o be_v at_o one_o time_n and_o together_o in_o xx_o or_o fifty_o place_n it_o will_v not_o be_v repugnant_a to_o be_v in_o a_o hundred_o or_o in_o a_o thousand_o and_o final_o in_o all_o place_n and_o so_o will_v they_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v infinite_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o thou_o shall_v accuse_v the_o form_n of_o the_o argument_n for_o the_o selfsame_o do_v jerom_n use_v against_o john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n where_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o our_o body_n after_o resurrection_n can_v remain_v without_o meat_n for_o elias_n say_v he_o and_o moses_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n can_v remain_v without_o meat_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 40_o day_n therefore_o may_v man_n for_o more_o day_n also_o be_v sustain_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o if_o for_o long_a time_n it_o follow_v that_o for_o evermore_o if_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o to_o return_v to_o those_o man_n they_o because_o they_o see_v that_o upon_o so_o near_a a_o conjunction_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v adore_v for_o if_o the_o lord_n be_v corporal_o and_o real_o contain_v therein_o who_o will_v not_o worship_n he_o sacrament_n the_o adversary_n teach_v it_o to_o be_v free_a to_o adore_v or_o not_o to_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n they_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v free_a for_o thou_o to_o do_v it_o or_o not_o do_v it_o for_o they_o say_v although_o he_o be_v there_o yet_o be_v he_o not_o there_o to_o the_o end_n he_o shall_v be_v woorship_v if_o thou_o receive_v he_o and_o eat_v he_o it_o be_v enough_o if_o also_o thou_o worship_n he_o thou_o err_v not_o but_o we_o rather_o judge_v that_o in_o woorship_v we_o shall_v not_o convert_v our_o mind_n unto_o the_o sign_n but_o if_o any_o man_n while_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v exercise_v be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o mystery_n shall_v turn_v his_o mind_n to_o the_o woorship_v of_o christ_n reign_v in_o heaven_n he_o do_v right_o and_o his_o bind_a duty_n to_o worship_n christ_n which_o declare_v himself_o unto_o he_o neither_o be_v idolatry_n commit_v therein_o and_o this_o paul_n teach_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 23_o 1._o co._n 14._o 23_o when_o he_o say_v if_o a_o man_n enter_v into_o your_o congregation_n if_o he_o be_v unlearned_a and_o a_o plain_a man_n and_o hear_v you_o all_o speak_v together_o in_o tongue_n doubtless_o he_o will_v say_v they_o be_v mad_a neither_o shall_v he_o be_v edify_v but_o if_o he_o shall_v hear_v you_o prophesy_v and_o shall_v perceive_v that_o the_o secret_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v open_v then_o will_v he_o fall_v down_o upon_o his_o face_n and_o worship_n god_n he_o will_v not_o worship_n man_n in_o such_o wise_a prophesy_a but_o see_v the_o lord_n be_v there_o reveal_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v turn_v himself_o to_o the_o woorship_v of_o god_n opinion_n reason_n against_o the_o second_o opinion_n 71_o the_o reason_n in_o brief_a for_o the_o which_o their_o gross_a judgement_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v true_a be_v these_o to_o wit_n that_o this_o real_a and_o corporal_a presence_n bring_v therewith_o no_o utility_n which_o we_o receive_v not_o aswell_o by_o the_o spiritual_a presence_n 51._o verse_n 51._o for_o in_o the_o 6._o of_o john_n the_o lord_n promise_v to_o they_o that_o eat_v he_o eternal_a life_n further_o that_o he_o will_v dwell_v in_o they_o and_o they_o in_o he_o over_o and_o beside_o these_o thing_n what_o be_v require_v moreover_o it_o may_v not_o be_v grant_v that_o we_o and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a law_n have_v the_o selfsame_o sacrament_n &c_n 1._o cor._n 10._o ver_fw-la 2._o 3._o &c_n &c_n because_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o the_o old_a father_n can_v have_v obtain_v this_o real_a presence_n for_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o take_v upon_o he_o humane_a flesh_n further_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o both_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a do_v eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n again_o beside_o that_o spiritual_a eat_n which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o 6._o of_o john_n they_o bring_v in_o a_o other_o carnal_a and_o corporal_a eat_n which_o can_v be_v allow_v see_v this_o eat_n and_o that_o be_v all_o one_o save_v that_o in_o the_o latter_a be_v add_v sign_n for_o the_o more_o confirmation_n of_o the_o thing_n final_o it_o follow_v that_o when_o they_o attribute_v so_o much_o unto_o word_n they_o be_v in_o the_o same_o difficulty_n wherein_o the_o transubstantiator_n be_v when_o they_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n for_o they_o can_v express_v their_o meaning_n that_o they_o may_v speak_v plain_o without_o contradiction_n what_o they_o will_v declare_v and_o how_o the_o word_n while_o they_o be_v utter_v may_v be_v true_a if_o they_o admit_v not_o a_o figure_n they_o spread_v abroad_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o may_v be_v together_o in_o many_o place_n and_o every_o where_o neither_o be_v it_o of_o force_n if_o they_o say_v not_o locallie_o because_o although_o he_o be_v there_o as_o angel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o a_o place_n that_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o the_o creature_n as_o it_o be_v prove_v before_o by_o didimus_n basill_n augustine_n unto_o dardanus_n and_o by_o cyrill_n which_o place_n thou_o shall_v find_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o disputation_n against_o tresham_n the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n drive_v we_o not_o to_o so_o gross_a and_o corporal_a a_o presence_n and_o faith_n be_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherefore_o faith_n ought_v not_o to_o embrace_v the_o same_o 72_o beside_o this_o the_o father_n teach_v otherwise_o for_o what_o manner_n of_o body_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n cyprian_a in_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n show_v when_o he_o say_v who_o unto_o this_o day_n creat_v sanctifi_v &_o bless_v his_o most_o true_a and_o holy_a body_n and_o divide_v it_o unto_o the_o godly_a receiver_n the_o proper_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o create_v or_o sanctify_v of_o man_n neither_o yet_o be_v it_o divide_v chrysostome_n upon_o matthew_n the_o 5._o chapter_n in_o the_o 11._o homily_n in_o the_o unfinished_a work_n if_o therefore_o it_o be_v so_o dangerous_a to_o transfer_v unto_o private_a use_n these_o vessel_n sanctify_v wherein_o be_v not_o contain_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n etc._n etc._n and_o how_o we_o must_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n when_o we_o communicate_v if_o we_o will_v enjoy_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o father_n declare_v upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 10._o chapter_n homily_n 24._o he_o command_v we_o that_o with_o great_a concord_n and_o charity_n we_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o be_v make_v eagle_n in_o this_o life_n we_o shall_v fly_v unto_o the_o very_a heaven_n or_o rather_o above_o heaven_n for_o where_o say_v he_o the_o dead_a carcase_n be_v 28._o mat._n 24._o 28._o there_o also_o the_o eagle_n be_v the_o carcase_n be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o death_n for_o unless_o that_o he_o have_v fall_v we_o have_v not_o rise_v again_o and_o he_o call_v we_o eagle_n to_o show_v that_o he_o which_o come_v unto_o this_o body_n must_v mount_v on_o high_a &_o must_v have_v no_o community_n with_o the_o earth_n and_o must_v not_o lay_v hold_n upon_o or_o be_v draw_v unto_o inferior_a thing_n but_o always_o fly_v aloft_o and_o look_v into_o the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n and_o have_v a_o most_o ready_a eye_n of_o the_o mind_n for_o this_o be_v a_o table_n of_o eagle_n and_o not_o
of_o the_o magistrate_n that_o i_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o ungodlie_a man_n if_o they_o afflict_v i_o against_o right_n and_o unlawfullie_o because_o i_o shall_v think_v that_o god_n will_v have_v it_o so_o to_o be_v do_v by_o they_o but_o the_o reason_n be_v not_o alike_o solution_n a_o solution_n because_o in_o this_o case_n god_n have_v open_v a_o lawful_a way_n unto_o thou_o that_o the_o condition_n of_o piety_n be_v keep_v a_o man_n may_v justly_o obtain_v remedy_n from_o the_o magistrate_n but_o against_o a_o tyrant_n thou_o have_v not_o how_o to_o deal_v unless_o thou_o will_v raise_v up_o sedition_n tumult_n or_o conspiracy_n against_o he_o or_o else_o thou_o thyself_o of_o thy_o private_a authority_n will_v kill_v he_o which_o thing_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o some_o object_n unto_o we_o gideon_n 14._o an_o other_o objection_n jud._n 6._o 11._o 14._o samson_n jiphtah_n and_o such_o other_o godly_a judge_n howbeit_o these_o man_n do_v not_o their_o act_n by_o private_a authority_n see_v they_o be_v drive_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o himself_o testify_v see_v we_o read_v that_o with_o great_a miracle_n he_o further_v their_o success_n christ_n a_o solution_n a_o example_n of_o christ_n what_o we_o be_v to_o do_v in_o these_o thing_n let_v we_o rather_o learn_v of_o christ_n 21._o mat._n 17._o 27._o &_o 11._o 21._o who_o pay_v tribute_n money_n and_o answer_v to_o the_o herodian_o that_o unto_o caesar_n must_v be_v give_v that_o which_o be_v caesar_n neither_o will_v he_o ever_o move_v or_o work_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o roman_n who_o without_o all_o doubt_n exercise_v tyrannical_a power_n against_o the_o jew_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n judas_n and_o theudas_n etc._n acts._n 5._o 25._o etc._n etc._n as_o josephus_n show_v in_o his_o 18_o book_n of_o antiquity_n when_o they_o vaunt_v that_o they_o will_v set_v themselves_o against_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_n their_o success_n be_v no_o less_o unhappy_a than_o wicked_a they_o fill_v all_o with_o robbery_n turn_v at_o the_o length_n the_o weapon_n upon_o themselves_o as_o touch_v the_o machaby_n 29._o 1._o mac._n 2._o etc._n etc._n jud._n 19_o 29._o thou_o may_v affirm_v the_o same_o that_o we_o answer_v of_o the_o judge_n for_o the_o levite_n which_o send_v the_o dead_a body_n of_o his_o concubine_n cut_v into_o so_o many_o part_n and_o distribute_v through_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n and_o therefore_o seem_v to_o have_v raise_v up_o war_n be_v no_o cause_n to_o move_v thou_o see_v that_o fact_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o accusation_n when_o the_o israelite_n be_v in_o that_o liberty_n that_o they_o obey_v not_o a_o king_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o such_o a_o heinous_a act_n shall_v be_v judge_v public_o that_o by_o public_a sentence_n and_o counsel_v it_o may_v be_v punish_v three_o special_a way_n have_v god_n exact_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n tyranny_n three_o manner_n of_o way_n god_n deliver_v his_o people_n from_o tyranny_n of_o deliver_v of_o his_o people_n from_o tyranny_n first_o by_o give_v of_o miracle_n and_o power_n from_o above_o as_o happen_v at_o the_o go_v forth_o out_o of_o egypt_n &c_n exod._n 7._o &c_n &c_n sometime_o on_o the_o other_o part_n by_o change_v the_o mind_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o he_o will_v to_o be_v do_v in_o cyrus_n and_o darius_n 1._o esa_n 1._o 1._o for_o these_o wear_v make_v so_o gentle_a and_o welwilling_a towards_o the_o israelite_n as_o they_o send_v they_o home_o again_o honourable_o endue_v with_o most_o bountiful_a gift_n otherwhile_o the_o lord_n raise_v up_o unto_o his_o people_n some_o deliverer_n which_o may_v be_v the_o author_n of_o liberty_n and_o may_v have_v a_o certain_a call_n to_o this_o purpose_n as_o in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n we_o read_v to_o be_v oftentimes_o do_v 18._o jud._n 2._o 18._o thou_o shall_v note_v moreover_o that_o the_o brother_n of_o dina_n can_v object_v the_o maid_n hurt_v by_o the_o tyrant_n belong_v unto_o we_o &c_n gen._n 34._o &c_n &c_n her_o virginity_n be_v commit_v unto_o we_o wherefore_o we_o may_v revenge_v upon_o he_o that_o have_v violate_v the_o same_o god_n the_o deflower_v of_o dina_n shall_v have_v be_v commit_v to_o the_o revengement_n of_o god_n but_o they_o shall_v have_v consult_v with_o themselves_o say_n she_o belong_v more_o unto_o god_n than_o unto_o we_o she_o be_v he_o he_o will_v revenge_v he_o will_v deliver_v see_v a_o lawful_a way_n for_o we_o unto_o these_o thing_n appear_v not_o let_v we_o bear_v it_o as_o we_o may_v and_o let_v we_o commit_v unto_o god_n the_o matter_n which_o belong_v altogether_o unto_o he_o neither_o can_v a_o sheep_n be_v take_v away_o nor_o hog_n be_v lose_v without_o he_o himself_o will_v neither_o by_o tyrant_n no_o nor_o yet_o by_o the_o devil_n 12._o job._n 1._o &_o 2._o mark_n 5._o 12._o as_o we_o may_v perceive_v by_o the_o book_n of_o job_n and_o by_o the_o gospel_n of_o mark_n 21_o to_o be_v short_a because_o power_n be_v of_o god_n tyranny_n must_v be_v abide_v 29._o dan._n 9_o 29._o and_o in_o the_o 9_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n when_o the_o prophet_n will_v begin_v to_o speak_v of_o this_o matter_n he_o straightway_o say_v and_o the_o word_n go_v forth_o and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n speak_v in_o solomon_n by_o i_o king_n do_v reign_v 15._o prou._n 8._o 15._o and_o because_o thou_o shall_v not_o think_v that_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o lawful_a king_n he_o also_o make_v mention_n of_o tyrant_n but_o if_o thou_o affirm_v that_o it_o must_v be_v there_o interpret_v in_o the_o good_a part_n let_v it_o not_o be_v forget_v which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o job_n 30._o job._n 34._o 30._o that_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n a_o hypocrite_n do_v reign_v albeit_o that_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n truth_n that_o place_n may_v be_v otherwise_o understand_v also_o christ_n plain_o answer_v unto_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o roman_n who_o exercise_v tyranny_n in_o judaea_n 11._o joh._n 19_o 11._o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o against_o i_o unless_o it_o be_v give_v thou_o from_o above_o wherefore_o see_v thou_o be_v certain_a god_n tyrant_n reign_n by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o tyrant_n also_o do_v reign_n by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n thou_o when_o thou_o be_v press_v with_o their_o yoke_n or_o injury_n shall_v thus_o reason_v with_o thyself_o unless_o that_o god_n will_v have_v i_o to_o suffer_v these_o thing_n either_o he_o will_v by_o his_o power_n have_v deliver_v i_o from_o this_o injury_n after_o i_o be_v fall_v thereinto_o or_o else_o he_o will_v have_v turn_v away_o the_o same_o lest_o i_o shall_v have_v run_v into_o it_o either_o of_o both_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v do_v of_o he_o but_o see_v he_o have_v do_v neither_o now_o be_o i_o certain_a of_o his_o will_n i_o patient_o suffer_v this_o hand_n of_o he_o and_o thou_o be_v thus_o certify_v thou_o will_v not_o attempt_v or_o endeavour_v any_o thing_n seditiouslie_o in_o the_o commonweal_n god_n when_o we_o be_v oppress_v we_o must_v appeal_v to_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n wherefore_o thou_o must_v appeal_v only_o unto_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o superior_a or_o great_a power_n give_v who_o thy_o tyrant_n be_v to_o obey_v for_o if_o a_o great_a be_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o let_n but_o that_o thou_o may_v fly_v unto_o he_o even_o as_o paul_n 11_o acts._n 25._o 11_o who_o from_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o jerusalem_n appeal_v unto_o caesar_n let_v all_o godly_a man_n therefore_o persuade_v themselves_o of_o this_o that_o their_o force_n be_v discharge_v without_o reproach_n from_o the_o raise_n of_o trouble_n in_o the_o commonweal_n in_o that_o respect_n that_o they_o will_v by_o violence_n do_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o public_a magistrate_n of_o what_o condition_n soever_o he_o be_v and_o when_o they_o pretend_v a_o offend_a a_o abuse_n and_o such_o like_a of_o wife_n of_o daughter_n or_o sister_n and_o that_o they_o will_v have_v she_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o filthiness_n from_o the_o sword_n and_o from_o violence_n let_v they_o always_o have_v that_o say_n before_o their_o eye_n 8._o rom._n 3._o 8._o we_o must_v not_o do_v evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v thereof_o those_o thing_n which_o thou_o may_v and_o be_v lawful_a for_o thou_o to_o do_v do_v they_o faithful_o admonish_v a_o tyrant_n desire_v he_o and_o neglect_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o thou_o shall_v think_v will_n further_o thy_o business_n and_o most_o careful_o commit_v the_o matter_n unto_o god_n 2._o why_o tyrant_n do_v so_o rage_v against_o godly_a man_n and_o against_o the_o gospel_n ephe._n 2._o 2._o
will_n there_o be_v great_a want_n of_o strength_n to_o resist_v lust_n moreover_o see_v there_o be_v a_o perpetual_a conflict_n between_o the_o superior_a part_n and_o the_o inferior_a it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o man_n do_v sometime_o faint_a in_o courage_n and_o that_o they_o which_o so_o fight_n can_v avoid_v wound_n which_o many_o time_n be_v deadly_a héerewithall_o be_v join_v the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o body_n which_o both_o be_v corrupt_v and_o be_v burdensome_a to_o the_o soul_n and_o oftentimes_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o we_o can_v bring_v to_o pass_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o think_v meet_a to_o be_v do_v see_v that_o be_v true_a which_o paul_n say_v of_o the_o regenerate_a that_o they_o feel_v a_o other_o law_n in_o the_o member_n 23._o rom._n 7_o 23._o strive_v against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o lead_v they_o captive_a whither_o they_o will_v not_o and_o that_o if_o the_o flesh_n do_v so_o lust_n against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n against_o the_o flesh_n that_o they_o do_v not_o that_o which_o they_o will_v again_o if_o they_o do_v not_o that_o good_a thing_n which_o they_o desire_v but_o the_o evil_n which_o they_o hate_v what_o think_v we_o do_v happen_v in_o they_o that_o be_v not_o regenerate_v undoubted_o much_o more_o gréevous_a thing_n moreover_o philosopher_n the_o end_n of_o virtue_n of_o the_o philosopher_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o natural_a end_n which_o the_o philosopher_n have_v appoint_v that_o man_n shall_v live_v according_a to_o reason_n and_o excellent_a virtue_n and_o let_v we_o see_v unto_o how_o few_o it_o have_v happen_v and_o thereby_o learn_v the_o weakness_n of_o man_n strength_n even_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o excee_v not_o the_o capacity_n of_o man_n reason_n an_o other_o necessity_n beside_o may_v be_v consider_v of_o whereunto_o man_n in_o this_o state_n be_v subject_a the_o which_o be_v the_o necessity_n of_o sin_n because_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n &_o faith_n of_o necessity_n they_o be_v sin_n 36_o ephe._n 2_o 3._o john_n 3_o 36_o for_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o see_v they_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n remain_v upon_o they_o wherefore_o they_o can_v do_v no_o good_a thing_n that_o may_v please_v god_n 8._o gen._n 4_o 4._o matth._n 7_o 18_o phil._n 3_o 8._o for_o god_n have_v more_o respect_n unto_o man_n than_o to_o their_o gift_n they_o be_v evil_a tree_n therefore_o they_o can_v bear_v no_o fruit_n except_o it_o be_v evil_a and_o paul_n call_v those_o his_o jewish_a good_a work_v not_o only_o doong_n but_o also_o lo●…es_v because_o they_o be_v offensive_a unto_o he_o further_o that_o which_o be_v of_o flesh_n can_v be_v but_o flesh_n 6._o john_n 3_o 6._o and_o that_o man_n not_o regenerate_v be_v flesh_n it_o have_v no_o need_n of_o proof_n yea_o and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n the_o sixth_o and_o eight_o chapter_n 21._o gen._n 6_o 3._o and_o 8._o 21._o it_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o imagination_n of_o man_n which_o they_o devise_v be_v evil_a yea_o and_o that_o from_o their_o infancy_n furthermore_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v of_o the_o regenerate_a do_v want_v their_o due_a end_n because_o they_o be_v not_o refer_v unto_o god_n so_o as_o they_o can_v love_v god_n above_o all_o thing_n which_o in_o very_a deed_n be_v to_o refer_v all_o thing_n unto_o he_o so_o then_o all_o their_o work_n be_v corrupt_a and_o therefore_o sin_n see_v they_o be_v without_o faith_n 23_o rom._n 14_o 23_o for_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n if_o they_o be_v compare_v unto_o that_o state_n whereof_o we_o now_o speak_v be_v unpossible_a although_o they_o may_v be_v perform_v of_o the_o regenerate_a by_o a_o certain_a new_a begoonne_a obedience_n sin_n augustine_n place_n touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o sin_n this_o necessity_n of_o sin_v augustine_n acknowledge_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr natura_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la the_o 66._o chapter_n where_o he_o write_v that_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n not_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o nature_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a necessity_n of_o sin_v wherefore_o we_o cry_v out_o unto_o the_o lord_n from_o the_o necessity_n o_o lord_n deliver_v us._n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n the_o 67._o chapter_n he_o teach_v that_o certain_a thing_n do_v of_o necessity_n be_v to_o be_v disallow_v where_o a_o man_n will_v do_v right_o and_o can_v but_o these_o thing_n he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v not_o only_a sin_n but_o also_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o second_o disputation_n against_o fortunatus_n the_o manichei_n he_o write_v that_o the_o first_o man_n tarry_v not_o in_o free_a will_n and_o that_o we_o thereby_o fall_v headlong_o into_o necessity_n and_o in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr natura_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la the_o 46._o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o not_o all_o necessity_n strive_v with_o the_o will_n for_o we_o will_v felicity_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o yea_o and_o the_o god_n of_o justice_n himself_o have_v no_o more_o a_o will_n than_o a_o necessity_n the_o same_o author_n in_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la the_o 18._o chapter_n which_o be_v also_o touch_v in_o the_o first_o of_o his_o retractation_n the_o 9_o chapter_n in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr natura_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la the_o 66._o chapter_n he_o speak_v of_o man_n not_o regenerate_v he_o be_v evil_a neither_o can_v he_o be_v good_a either_o because_o he_o see_v not_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o if_o he_o shall_v see_v it_o he_o can_v do_v that_o which_o he_o know_v he_o ought_v to_o do_v that_o he_o may_v be_v good_a and_o undoubted_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n receive_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o first_o man_n not_o to_o die_v as_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o he_o not_o to_o sin_n &_o when_o we_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o sin_n and_o not_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o die_v the_o same_o father_n also_o in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la &_o litera_fw-la write_v that_o whereas_o free_a will_n be_v not_o of_o force_n except_o unto_o sin_n it_o must_v have_v relation_n unto_o the_o present_a state_n of_o man_n council_n the_o milevitane_n council_n and_o in_o the_o milevitane_n council_n those_o be_v condemn_v which_o say_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o justification_n be_v give_v to_o the_o intent_n that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o easy_o perform_v which_o be_v require_v by_o free_a will_n as_o though_o indeed_o free_a will_n can_v perform_v this_o by_o itself_o but_o somewhat_o hardly_o this_o necessity_n also_o do_v the_o holy_a scripture_n show_v 7._o rom._n 8_o 7._o the_o wisdom_n or_o sense_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n and_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n nor_o in_o very_a deed_n can_v be_v and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n 3._o verse_n 3._o that_o which_o be_v unpossible_a to_o the_o law_n forsomuch_o as_o it_o be_v weak_a because_o of_o the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o those_o that_o be_v not_o regenerate_v be_v under_o this_o necessity_n of_o sin_v which_o nevertheless_o must_v be_v understand_v general_o not_o of_o particular_a sin_n for_o it_o be_v of_o no_o necessity_n that_o they_o shall_v rather_o admit_v this_o sin_n than_o that_o there_o be_v also_o a_o certain_a other_o necessity_n which_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o foreshewing_n of_o the_o prophecy_n moreover_o the_o necessity_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o by_o supposition_n or_o as_o they_o call_v it_o of_o the_o consequence_n of_o that_o i_o will_v speak_v afterward_o when_o i_o shall_v handle_v the_o place_n of_o predestination_n but_o at_o this_o present_a i_o will_v touch_v it_o no_o further_o 6_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v consider_v turn_n the_o diversity_n of_o affection_n by_o turn_n that_o in_o the_o variety_n of_o man_n will_n there_o be_v a_o intercourse_n of_o affection_n so_o as_o one_o maister_v another_o and_o this_o be_v do_v by_o turn_n and_o those_o have_v the_o overhand_n which_o be_v the_o more_o vehement_a moreover_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n of_o affection_n insomuch_o as_o some_o be_v more_o honest_a some_o less_o honest_a and_o herein_o the_o will_n have_v some_o freedom_n that_o sometime_o it_o yield_v to_o the_o one_o sort_n and_o sometime_o to_o the_o other_o again_o this_o must_v we_o not_o forget_v to_o consider_v mind_n the_o will_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o mind_n that_o the_o will_n itself_o in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v blind_a &_o that_o it_o follow_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o be_v show_v by_o the_o mind_n
of_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n and_o of_o eternal_a life_n wherefore_o i_o admit_v not_o neither_o can_v i_o acknowledge_v a_o ●ha●_n or_o a_o substantial_a or_o a_o corporal_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n neither_o 〈◊〉_d the_o sign_n nor_o yet_o in_o the_o communicant_n themselves_o when_o as_o nevertheless_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o do_v affirm_v that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a communion_n and_o participation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n give_v unto_o the_o communicant_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v have_v even_o before_o the_o eat_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o be_v increase_v by_o a_o exercise_n of_o faith_n in_o eat_v of_o the_o mystery_n for_o unless_o that_o before_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o eucharist_n we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n we_o shall_v be_v stranger_n from_o he_o we_o shall_v want_v faith_n and_o approach_v unwoorthilie_o unto_o the_o table_n of_o his_o spiritual_a feast_n they_o which_o be_v destitute_a of_o a_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n although_o they_o come_v to_o receive_v the_o sign_n sign_n that_o the_o unfaithful_a be_v only_a partaker_n of_o the_o sign_n the_o bread_n i_o mean_v &_o the_o wine_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o make_v partaker_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n except_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o those_o sign_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n for_o such_o a_o knit_n together_o there_o be_v between_o the_o holy_a sign_n and_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v easy_o change_v one_o name_n of_o they_o for_o another_o for_o both_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v bread_n 51._o john_n 6_o 51._o as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o john_n and_o bread_n in_o the_o holy_a supper_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n 26._o matt._n 26_o 26._o so_o likewise_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o jew_n say_v that_o they_o do_v eat_v the_o passover_n 17._o matt._n 26_o 17._o when_o as_o they_o do_v eat_v the_o lamb_n itself_o whereby_o the_o passover_n that_o be_v the_o pass_v over_o be_v signify_v i_o may_v therefore_o affirm_v that_o the_o wicked_a do_v receive_v the_o lord_n body_n because_o they_o receive_v the_o sign_n thereof_o and_o even_o as_o in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o murmurer_n do_v eat_v manna_n and_o do_v drink_v water_n of_o the_o rack_n who_o for_o all_o that_o have_v not_o any_o communion_n with_o christ_n that_o be_v look_v for_o so_o on_o the_o otherside_n the_o holy_a and_o godly_a jew_n while_o they_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v together_o with_o they_o 28._o john_n 18_o 28._o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o drink_v with_o us._n and_o lest_o we_o shall_v doubt_v what_o meat_n and_o drink_v that_o be_v which_o they_o have_v common_a with_o we_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o ten_o chapter_n expound_v it_o say_v they_o drink_v of_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n 4._o verse_n 4._o which_o follow_v they_o and_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n wherefore_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v destitute_a of_o that_o instrument_n whereby_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v receive_v namely_o faith_n do_v for_o that_o cause_n not_o receive_v the_o thing_n themselves_o which_o be_v signify_v but_o do●_n only_o receive_v the_o sign_n of_o those_o thing_n howbeit_o they_o which_o be_v prepare_v with_o faith_n as_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n they_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o sign_n so_o by_o say_v and_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o mind_n they_o true_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n 26._o matt._n 26_o 26._o be_v speak_v by_o the_o lord_n altogether_o figurativelie_o institution_n the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n for_o when_o he_o have_v take_v bread_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o have_v show_v the_o same_o unto_o his_o apostle_n sit_v at_o the_o table_n he_o can_v not_o affirm_v of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n if_o it_o cease_v not_o to_o be_v bread_n for_o who_o will_v in_o proper_a speech_n call_v bread_n a_o man_n body_n certeinlie_o no_o man_n that_o be_v wise_a for_o those_o form_n and_o nature_n be_v altogether_o distinct_a and_o several_a so_o that_o one_o of_o they_o can_v be_v another_o wherefore_o since_o that_o a_o figure_n must_v be_v use_v that_o aught_o to_o be_v choose_v which_o may_v most_o agree_v with_o sacrament_n and_o the_o receive_a definition_n of_o sacrament_n be_v that_o they_o be_v sign_n of_o holy_a thing_n wherefore_o 17._o matt._n 26_o 17._o even_o as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o hebrews_n be_v call_v the_o passover_n because_o it_o signify_v the_o pass_v over_o 10._o gen._n 17_o 10._o and_o circumcision_n the_o covenant_n of_o god_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n thereof_o neither_o be_v the_o rock_n whereof_o the_o forefather_n drink_v for_o any_o other_o cause_n call_v christ_n so_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n because_o it_o signify_v the_o same_o not_o undoubted_o by_o a_o common_a signification_n and_o such_o as_o be_v use_v upon_o a_o stage_n or_o theatre_n but_o effectual_a forsomuch_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v that_o instrument_n for_o the_o stir_v up_o of_o faith_n in_o we_o whereby_o we_o may_v apprehend_v the_o promise_a participation_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n i_o may_v also_o grant_v that_o the_o bread_n in_o a_o certain_a manner_n thereof_o be_v and_o be_v call_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n namely_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n thereof_o for_o both_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n do_v many_o time_n so_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o they_o which_o defend_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n both_o they_o themselves_o perhaps_o will_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o figure_n in_o the_o word_n allege_v yea_o and_o be_v constrain_v of_o necessity_n do_v thus_o expound_v that_o say_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v with_o this_o bread_n undoubted_o be_v give_v my_o body_n which_o interpretation_n i_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o receive_v if_o they_o mean_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v without_o a_o substantial_a or_o corporal_a presence_n which_o because_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v therefore_o for_o avoid_v of_o ambiguity_n i_o abstain_v from_o that_o kind_n of_o figure_n and_o stay_v myself_o upon_o the_o common_a and_o receive_a kind_n of_o signification_n and_o which_o the_o father_n in_o time_n past_o use_v absent_a that_o we_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n although_o it_o be_v absent_a in_o this_o point_n be_v the_o state_n of_o our_o controversy_n that_o of_o many_o it_o be_v not_o think_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v true_o communicate_v except_o it_o be_v as_o i_o may_v say_v real_o and_o corporal_o present_a howbeit_o these_o man_n in_o my_o judgement_n have_v not_o sufficient_o perceive_v the_o force_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o thing_n which_o otherwise_o be_v most_o far_o distant_a be_v by_o it_o present_a unto_o us._n also_o the_o forefather_n so_o many_o as_o be_v godly_a 3._o 1._o cor._n 10_o 3._o receive_v as_o paul_n testify_v the_o self_n same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o drink_v that_o we_o do_v that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o unto_o the_o corinthian_n it_o be_v say_v neither_o be_v the_o great_a distance_n of_o time_n any_o let_v wherein_o christ_n be_v now_o bear_v these_o thing_n begin_v to_o have_v their_o be_v to_o the_o spiritual_a and_o true_a communion_n hereof_o for_o by_o faith_n they_o be_v make_v present_a unto_o they_o therefore_o what_o impediment_n shall_v now_o the_o space_n of_o place_n be_v which_o be_v between_o heaven_n where_o christ_n abide_v and_o we_o here_o in_o earth_n but_o that_o we_o may_v have_v the_o true_a fruition_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o be_v quicken_v thereby_o sure_o nothing_o at_o all_o if_o we_o have_v faith_n whereby_o our_o mind_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o there_o be_v refresh_v with_o the_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v restore_v unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o while_o i_o now_o and_o then_o name_n heaven_n i_o use_v no_o metaphor_n but_o i_o very_o understand_v those_o celestial_a place_n whereinto_o christ_n be_v receive_v when_o he_o depart_v from_o we_o 51_o luke_n 24_o 51_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n testify_v every_o faithful_a man_n since_o he_o be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n wheresoever_o he_o be_v have_v he_o for_o his_o head_n and_o be_v true_o and_o most_o néerelie_o join_v unto_o he_o so_o as_o from_o thence_o he_o draw_v life_n
and_o spirit_n which_o do_v so_o flow_v from_o the_o divinity_n as_o by_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n give_v unto_o death_n they_o be_v derive_v unto_o us._n for_o god_n do_v not_o give_v any_o celestial_a gift_n unto_o mortal_a man_n but_o by_o one_o mediator_n of_o god_n &_o man_n 5._o 1._o tim._n 2_o 5._o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n as_o paul_n say_v unto_o timothy_n whereof_o it_o come_v that_o our_o bone_n and_o our_o flesh_n body_n regeneration_n of_o the_o body_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o heavenly_a regeneration_n and_o of_o eternal_a life_n be_v of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n 30._o ephes_n 5_o 30._o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n for_o unless_o they_o do_v depend_v of_o they_o and_o spiritual_o clean_a thereunto_o they_o can_v not_o derive_v unto_o themselves_o from_o god_n by_o they_o either_o regeneration_n the_o spirit_n or_o eternal_a life_n wherefore_o although_o between_o we_o and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v great_a distance_n of_o place_n yet_o do_v we_o depend_v of_o he_o and_o unto_o he_o be_v maruellouslie_o join_v and_o see_v this_o conjunction_n be_v spiritual_a secret_a and_o divine_a there_o be_v not_o require_v a_o substantial_a and_o corporal_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o admit_v the_o same_o because_o it_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n humane_a nature_n and_o do_v evident_o disagree_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o man_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n a_o husband_n happen_v upon_o some_o occasion_n to_o journey_n into_o a_o far_a country_n he_o leave_v his_o wife_n for_o a_o time_n at_o home_n cease_v not_o therefore_o with_o she_o as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v to_o be_v one_o flesh_n wherefore_o their_o true_a proper_a and_o lawful_a conjunction_n remain_v perfect_a although_o the_o one_o be_v never_o so_o far_o absent_a from_o the_o other_o how_o much_o more_o do_v christ_n 23._o ephes_n 5_o 23._o who_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v be_v the_o husband_n of_o the_o church_n remain_v with_o all_o his_o member_n wine_v together_o although_o he_o be_v go_v away_o into_o heaven_n and_o depart_v bodily_a wherefore_o unto_o this_o union_n which_o we_o have_v with_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v with_o his_o body_n blood_n and_o bone_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o natural_a touch_n neither_o of_o place_n conjoin_v continual_a or_o close_o together_o only_o there_o must_v be_v spirit_n and_o faith_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v most_o néerlie_o copy_v to_o whole_a christ_n our_o spouse_n and_o saviour_n but_o they_o which_o deny_v that_o there_o become_v such_o a_o conjunction_n with_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n without_o his_o substantial_a and_o corporal_a presence_n seem_v to_o attribute_v but_o little_a to_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n whereas_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n do_v perpetuallie_o warn_v we_o to_o have_v regard_n unto_o it_o when_o we_o judge_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v neither_o be_v every_o where_o nor_o in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o let_v they_o themselves_o use_v that_o remedy_n which_o they_o offer_v unto_o other_o and_o let_v they_o grant_v that_o power_n of_o god_n which_o the_o truth_n and_o our_o godly_a judgement_n require_v and_o the_o same_o be_v grant_v there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o take_v away_o from_o the_o humanity_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v remain_v find_v and_o we_o shall_v agree_v together_o in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o the_o confession_n make_v at_o augusta_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v perceive_v but_o may_v agree_v with_o the_o opinion_n which_o i_o have_v now_o set_v forth_o but_o because_o both_o in_o word_n and_o mind_n as_o it_o manifest_o appear_v we_o agree_v not_o among_o ourselves_o therefore_o what_o i_o believe_v and_o understand_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o mean_v to_o declare_v that_o none_o may_v afterward_o justly_o complain_v that_o they_o be_v deceive_v and_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o comprehend_v in_o very_a few_o word_n touch_v which_o i_o can_v no_o long_o with_o a_o perfect_a and_o safe_a conscience_n hold_v my_o peace_n from_o teach_v dispute_v and_o write_v wherefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o that_o when_o opportunity_n shall_v serve_v it_o may_v be_v free_a for_o i_o to_o entreat_v plain_o and_o manifest_o in_o word_n and_o writing_n what_o i_o judge_v as_o concern_v that_o substantial_a and_o bodily_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n and_o of_o the_o other_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v rehearse_v which_o if_o it_o may_v not_o seem_v good_a to_o be_v grant_v i_o desire_v to_o be_v dismiss_v by_o your_o authority_n with_o good_a licence_n and_o favour_n the_o opinion_n of_o d._n peter_n martyr_n vermillius_fw-la as_o touch_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n propound_v by_o he_o in_o the_o communication_n that_o be_v have_v at_o poissy_n ye_o reverend_a prelate_n and_o most_o learned_a man_n see_v there_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n a_o consent_n as_o touch_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o supper_n yesterday_o i_o profess_v to_o you_o what_o my_o opinion_n faith_n and_o judgement_n shall_v be_v thereof_o which_o as_o i_o then_o express_v in_o word_n so_o be_o i_o now_o mind_v to_o rehearse_v it_o by_o writing_n whereby_o i_o may_v make_v the_o same_o more_o certain_a and_o more_o evident_a unto_o you_o wherefore_o i_o judge_v that_o the_o real_a and_o substantial_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v only_o in_o the_o heaven_n but_o yet_o that_o the_o faithful_a in_o communicate_v do●_n spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n true_o receive_v his_o very_a body_n and_o very_a blood_n which_o be_v give_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n wherefore_o i_o allow_v no_o transubstantiation_n and_o consubstantiation_n in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o supper_n further_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o distance_n of_o place_n be_v no_o let_v to_o our_o conjunction_n with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n because_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o although_o that_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n we_o receive_v upon_o the_o earth_n bread_n and_o wine_n be_v sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o by_o faith_n and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n our_o mind_n whereunto_o special_o belong_v this_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a food_n be_v carry_v unto_o heaven_n do_v enjoy_v the_o present_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o i_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o determine_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v true_o substantial_o and_o corporal_o present_a either_o to_o we_o or_o in_o the_o sign_n by_o a_o presence_n not_o local_a i_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v not_o otherwise_o join_v unto_o the_o outward_a sign_n than_o sacramentallie_o forsomuch_o as_o by_o they_o they_o be_v not_o prophanelie_o and_o light_o but_o effectual_o signify_v by_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o my_o faith_n which_o i_o hold_v in_o this_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o the_o consent_n bring_v in_o writing_n i_o do_v admit_v in_o this_o respect_n as_o they_o be_v refer_v or_o may_v be_v apply_v unto_o the_o sense_n now_o declare_v against_o which_o if_o any_o man_n do_v either_o wrest_v they_o or_o interpret_v they_o i_o profess_v that_o i_o dissent_v from_o he_o and_o whereas_o in_o these_o speech_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n i_o understand_v no_o other_o thing_n by_o that_o name_n or_o word_n but_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n for_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o direct_v unto_o a_o feign_a thing_n or_o fantasy_n but_o unto_o the_o true_a humane_a and_o natural_a body_n which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n take_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o give_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o by_o that_o word_n we_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o believe_v that_o his_o real_a presence_n be_v elsewhere_o than_o in_o heaven_n i_o peter_n martyr_n vermillius_fw-la a_o florentine_a bear_v have_v write_v these_o thing_n with_o my_o own_o hand_n and_o have_v profess_v they_o with_o my_o own_o mouth_n before_o the_o reverend_a and_o honourable_a personage_n of_o this_o conference_n question_n question_n i_o whether_o the_o law_n in_o the._n 22._o of_o exodus_fw-la of_o maid_n deflower_v to_o be_v marry_v of_o such_o as_o have_v deflower_v they_o shall_v be_v retain_v in_o a_o christian_n common_a weal_n question_n two_o if_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v think_v
be_v put_v in_o a_o other_o place_n and_o so_o there_o follow_v carnal_a copulation_n yet_o there_o the_o matrimony_n be_v not_o ratify_v proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xxix_o thirty_o and_o xxxi_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o iacob_n be_v not_o to_o be_v accuse_v for_o have_v of_o many_o wife_n both_o because_o of_o the_o time_n and_o also_o because_o he_o himself_o desire_v but_o one_o and_o the_o rest_n he_o marry_v by_o the_o provocation_n of_o other_o proposition_n 2_o albeit_o that_o child_n riches_n and_o honour_n be_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v not_o they_o which_o want_v these_o to_o be_v pronounce_v simple_o accurse_v proposition_n 3_o as_o the_o carefulness_n of_o get_v riches_n for_o our_o child_n must_v be_v avoid_v so_o must_v the_o labour_n and_o endeavour_n of_o get_v they_o necessary_n be_v follow_v that_o they_o be_v not_o drive_v to_o beg_v proposition_n 4_o the_o industry_n and_o observation_n whereby_o we_o make_v our_o commodity_n of_o natural_a thing_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n why_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n proposition_n 5_o the_o industry_n of_o jacob_n whereby_o he_o cause_v the_o sheep_n &_o goat_n to_o conceive_v through_o lay_v of_o rod_n in_o the_o gutter_n have_v a_o miracle_n join_v therewith_o proposition_n 6_o see_v health_n to_o be_v restore_v unto_o the_o sick_a be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o medicine_n be_v instrument_n which_o he_o use_v to_o restore_v the_o same_o therefore_o they_o must_v not_o be_v neglect_v nor_o yet_o ought_v there_o be_v too_o much_o attribute_v unto_o they_o proposition_n 7_o we_o must_v not_o by_o stealth_n take_v that_o from_o any_o man_n which_o he_o owe_v unto_o we_o lest_o we_o violate_v the_o public_a power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n proposition_n 8_o true_a faith_n suffer_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v mingle_v a_o strange_a and_o superstitious_a religion_n with_o the_o sincere_a worship_v of_o god_n proposition_n 9_o it_o be_v not_o for_o private_a man_n to_o strive_v to_o purge_v religion_n from_o idol_n and_o superstition_n but_o holy_a sermon_n and_o godly_a conference_n have_v be_v lawful_a instrument_n for_o this_o purpose_n proposition_n 10_o it_o be_v the_o magistrate_n part_v to_o provide_v that_o within_o his_o dominion_n sound_a doctrine_n may_v be_v have_v further_o he_o ought_v to_o provide_v by_o force_n and_o arm_n that_o nothing_o be_v do_v therein_o which_o may_v be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o lawful_a service_n of_o god_n proposition_n 11_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o lord_n touch_v the_o fly_v away_o in_o persecution_n be_v not_o revoke_v neither_o be_v it_o as_o some_o affirm_v temporal_a proposition_n 12_o we_o be_v not_o to_o fly_v away_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n to_o the_o intent_n to_o maintain_v our_o fear_n &_o infirmity_n but_o rather_o to_o serve_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o polygamy_n be_v to_o be_v avoid_v for_o both_o it_o bring_v many_o discommodity_n and_o the_o civil_a law_n which_o be_v receive_v and_o honesty_n itself_o do_v forbid_v the_o same_o proposition_n 2_o he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n to_o contain_v must_v not_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o poverty_n delay_n marriage_n proposition_n 3_o by_o the_o forceable_a power_n of_o the_o imagination_n which_o change_v the_o body_n and_o the_o fruit_n join_v thereunto_o we_o may_v conclude_v of_o the_o great_a power_n of_o faith_n which_o change_v the_o whole_a body_n while_o it_o do_v effectual_o take_v hold_n of_o christ_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xxxi_o xxxij_o xxxiij_o and_o xxxiiij_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o the_o church_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v power_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o punish_v the_o ungodlie_a proposition_n 2_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o provoke_v holy_a man_n unto_o anger_n for_o oftentimes_o they_o be_v hear_v when_o they_o curse_v man_n proposition_n 3_o it_o be_v meet_a for_o they_o that_o have_v the_o government_n of_o god_n people_n that_o they_o purge_v themselves_o of_o the_o crime_n object_v against_o they_o if_o they_o will_v give_v testimony_n to_o their_o innocence_n proposition_n 4_o albeit_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v rehearse_v many_o name_n of_o angel_n yet_o have_v it_o teach_v we_o but_o little_a of_o their_o nature_n property_n and_o difference_n proposition_n 5_o in_o this_o respect_n that_o christ_n exceed_v all_o the_o angel_n in_o glory_n and_o that_o he_o have_v make_v we_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n with_o he_o be_v not_o necessary_o infer_v that_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v better_o than_o the_o angel_n proposition_n 6_o fear_v therefore_o profit_v godly_a man_n because_o it_o provoke_v they_o to_o call_v upon_o god_n and_o to_o live_v circumspect_o proposition_n 7_o when_o god_n or_o the_o angel_n offer_v themselves_o to_o man_n under_o any_o shape_n of_o bodily_a thing_n they_o feign_v not_o see_v they_o use_v those_o mean_n to_o instruct_v they_o proposition_n 8_o the_o wrestle_n of_o jacob_n with_o the_o angel_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o strength_n give_v he_o by_o god_n so_o as_o he_o may_v not_o be_v vanquish_v nor_o put_v from_o obtain_v the_o promise_n proposition_n 9_o the_o variety_n of_o name_n wherewith_o god_n and_o the_o angel_n be_v name_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v derive_v of_o the_o diversity_n of_o action_n which_o be_v attribute_v unto_o they_o proposition_n 10_o it_o be_v a_o punishment_n of_o sin_n that_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o endure_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n proposition_n 11_o he_o that_o match_v in_o matrimony_n with_o infidel_n be_v hold_v guilty_a of_o the_o contempt_n of_o religion_n proposition_n 12_o there_o be_v no_o people_n one_o indeed_o which_o dissent_v in_o itself_o as_o touch_v religion_n probable_a proposition_n 1_o whether_o jacob_n wake_v or_o sleep_a wrestle_v with_o the_o angel_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n proposition_n 2_o to_o see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n do_v not_o always_o signify_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o behold_v evident_o the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o god_n proposition_n 3_o the_o sinew_n smite_v by_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o wrestle_n with_o jacob_n signify_v that_o he_o without_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o flesh_n shall_v not_o overcome_v the_o adversity_n which_o be_v come_v upon_o he_o proposition_n 4_o we_o also_o do_v wrestle_v with_o god_n and_o do_v overcome_v when_o we_o overcome_v the_o temptation_n which_o come_v unto_o us._n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xxxiiij_o xxxv_o and_o xxxvi_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n necessary_a proposition_n 1_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o private_a man_n to_o raise_v up_o sedition_n against_o tyrant_n and_o by_o private_a authority_n to_o slay_v they_o proposition_n 2_o when_o a_o tyrant_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o high_a power_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o private_a man_n to_o deal_v against_o he_o by_o law_n before_o that_o power_n but_o if_o he_o have_v the_o chief_a sovereignty_n the_o revenge_n must_v be_v commit_v unto_o god_n proposition_n 3_o the_o judge_n which_o rise_v up_o in_o israel_n and_o deliver_v the_o people_n of_o god_n from_o tyrant_n do_v it_o not_o of_o any_o private_a authority_n but_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o god_n proposition_n 4_o when_o any_o be_v oppress_v with_o tyranny_n they_o must_v think_v with_o themselves_o that_o the_o same_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n as_o famine_n pestilence_n hail_n lightning_n and_o such_o other_o like_a proposition_n 5_o when_o we_o come_v together_o to_o the_o church_n our_o mind_n must_v be_v purge_v with_o great_a diligence_n than_o if_o we_o shall_v make_v our_o prayer_n to_o god_n in_o any_o other_o place_n proposition_n 6_o the_o necessity_n of_o die_v be_v no_o cause_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o sorrow_n for_o death_n proposition_n 7_o we_o must_v not_o in_o this_o respect_n take_v comfort_n in_o death_n that_o it_o be_v simple_o good_a see_v rather_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n it_o must_v be_v account_v among_o evil_n proposition_n 8_o nor_o yet_o again_o by_o this_o argument_n that_o the_o body_n be_v evil_a or_o the_o conjunction_n thereof_o with_o the_o soul_n evil_a see_v they_o be_v absolute_o good_a proposition_n 9_o the_o hope_n of_o resurrection_n bring_v true_a consolation_n of_o death_n for_o by_o it_o the_o body_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o soul_n all_o corruption_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o same_o and_o the_o evil_n whereby_o it_o trouble_v the_o soul_n proposition_n 10_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v we_o comfort_v that_o death_n be_v vanquish_v by_o christ_n and_o that_o now_o it_o have_v no_o more_o the_o nature_n of_o death_n for_o thereby_o be_v grant_v a_o return_n unto_o life_n
three_o heaven_n when_o he_o have_v power_n to_o see_v christ_n the_o which_o he_o testify_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n for_o there_o he_o only_o say_v that_o he_o see_v christ_n but_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o place_n or_o time_n indeed_o he_o appear_v unto_o paul_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n and_o while_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n do_v speak_v unto_o he_o nevertheless_o as_o i_o have_v say_v he_o may_v do_v this_o remain_v in_o heaven_n and_o frame_v a_o voice_n from_o thence_o which_o shall_v be_v hear_v upon_o the_o earth_n furthermore_o put_v the_o case_n that_o the_o lord_n exhibit_v himself_o to_o be_v see_v of_o paul_n upon_o the_o earth_n you_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n at_o the_o selfsame_o time_n we_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v assumpt_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n but_o that_o he_o can_v sometime_o transfer_v himself_o from_o thence_o and_o appear_v to_o who_o he_o will_v that_o be_v not_o we_o bind_v to_o believe_v it_o be_v enough_o to_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v his_o proper_a mansion_n in_o heaven_n d._n tresham_n whereas_o augustine_n say_v upon_o the_o psalm_n that_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n when_o he_o cry_v saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o my_o opinion_n for_o it_o signify_v that_o he_o be_v at_o one_o time_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o earth_n or_o else_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o heaven_n be_v mean_v by_o he_o to_o be_v the_o air_n where_o perhaps_o christ_n be_v when_o he_o cry_v saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o and_o that_o the_o air_n be_v call_v heaven_n the_o scripture_n testify_v when_o it_o say_v the_o soul_n of_o heaven_n d._n martyr_n whereas_o you_o do_v say_v that_o christ_n according_a to_o augustine_n judgement_n be_v in_o both_o place_n to_o wit_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n 9_o gen._n 1_o 30._o job._n 28_o 21._o psal_n 8_o 9_o you_o learn_v not_o that_o of_o he_o nay_o rather_o he_o show_v himself_o elsewhere_o to_o be_v of_o a_o other_o mind_n and_o to_o appoint_v christ_n to_o hang_v in_o the_o air_n be_v a_o absurdity_n and_o you_o seem_v thereby_o to_o make_v he_o a_o foul_a of_o the_o air_n d._n tresham_n i_o make_v not_o christ_n a_o foul_a of_o the_o air_n for_o than_o shall_v he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o when_o he_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n d._n martyr_n no_o very_o for_o he_o be_v then_o fasten_v to_o the_o cross_n but_o let_v these_o toy_n pass_v if_o we_o will_v see_v what_o augustine_n judgement_n be_v as_o touch_v this_o matter_n let_v we_o consider_v his_o epistle_n unto_o dardanus_n where_o he_o write_v as_o concern_v the_o glorify_a body_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v in_o some_o certain_a place_n because_o of_o the_o measure_n of_o a_o true_a body_n the_o question_n be_v propound_v unto_o he_o how_o the_o thief_n be_v with_o christ_n in_o paradise_n that_o same_o day_n wherein_o he_o die_v as_o he_o promise_v he_o shall_v be_v and_o he_o answer_v that_o if_o for_o paradise_n we_o understand_v heaven_n it_o be_v not_o so_o as_o touch_v his_o humanity_n because_o his_o body_n be_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o his_o soul_n in_o the_o nethermost_a place_n whereupon_o he_o decree_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v understand_v as_o touch_v his_o divinity_n and_o thereby_o i_o gather_v this_o argument_n if_o augustine_n dare_v not_o admit_v unto_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v at_o one_o time_n both_o in_o hell_n and_o in_o heaven_n much_o less_o must_v it_o be_v grant_v unto_o his_o body_n d._n tresham_n i_o say_v with_o augustine_n distribute_v the_o time_n and_o the_o scripture_n agree_v three_o error_n do_v augustine_n impugn_v at_o that_o time_n one_o be_v of_o those_o man_n which_o do_v take_v the_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o godhead_n in_o place_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n another_o take_v the_o word_n for_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n the_o three_o be_v of_o they_o which_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v spread_v every_o where_n augustine_n therefore_o in_o that_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o have_v a_o visible_a form_n and_o after_o that_o manner_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v only_o in_o heaven_n unless_o that_o at_o any_o time_n it_o do_v miraculous_o happen_v otherwise_o howbeit_o he_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o a_o invisible_a form_n according_a whereunto_o augustine_n beléeve_v that_o it_o be_v in_o diverse_a place_n at_o once_o for_o even_o in_o the_o selfsame_o epistle_n he_o make_v mention_n of_o our_o sacrifice_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o christ_n do_v offer_v himself_o visible_a and_o again_o invisible_a even_o as_o please_v he_o as_o in_o the_o four_o of_o luke_n when_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o the_o multitude_n &_o go_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o &_o on_o the_o mount_n thabor_n he_o show_v his_o glorify_a body_n and_o therefore_o unto_o augustine_n i_o answer_v that_o much_o rather_o now_o he_o do_v these_o work_n at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n d._n martyr_n you_o have_v gather_v many_o thing_n together_o but_o yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v gather_v of_o all_o these_o that_o augustine_n will_v have_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o albeit_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o our_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v for_o a_o other_o cause_n neither_o do_v it_o belong_v unto_o this_o article_n as_o may_v appear_v unto_o they_o which_o read_v it_o yea_o rather_o he_o refer_v our_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n and_o make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o the_o flesh_n or_o blood_n of_o christ_n himself_o neither_o take_v he_o in_o hand_n to_o confute_v the_o error_n touch_v the_o soul_n or_o mind_n of_o christ_n nay_o rather_o he_o suppose_v that_o dardanus_n be_v not_o entangle_v with_o they_o and_o it_o appear_v how_o great_o he_o write_v there_o against_o you_o since_o he_o will_v have_v no_o accident_n if_o the_o subject_n be_v want_v nor_o body_n if_o you_o take_v place_n away_o from_o they_o and_o undoubted_o if_o he_o do_v make_v for_o your_o part_n when_o he_o write_v these_o thing_n where_o if_o christ_n may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o he_o may_v also_o be_v every_o where_o it_o behoove_v to_o except_v the_o eucharist_n beside_o all_o this_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o any_o body_n may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o it_o can_v also_o be_v in_o all_o place_n and_o that_o likewise_o do_v scotus_n see_v howbeit_o as_o i_o have_v already_o affirm_v it_o stand_v as_o yet_o firm_a by_o the_o say_n of_o augustine_n that_o because_o of_o the_o measure_n of_o a_o true_a body_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n require_v a_o place_n certain_a d._n tresham_n and_o yet_o if_o god_n will_v it_o may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n yea_o even_o in_o so_o many_o as_o he_o himself_o will_n neither_o must_v it_o be_v ascribe_v to_o any_o want_n of_o divine_a power_n in_o he_o which_o include_v not_o any_o contradiction_n in_o the_o term_n d._n martyr_n there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n diminish_v by_o i_o although_o i_o have_v speak_v after_o this_o manner_n and_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n with_o all_o modesty_n but_o yet_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o therefore_o can_v be_v do_v because_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n do_v not_o permit_v be_v such_o as_o be_v mere_a contrary_n and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o you_o do_v imply_v contradiction_n and_o this_o must_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o a_o infirmity_n in_o god_n howbeit_o you_o have_v not_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v here_o no_o repugnancy_n of_o the_o term_n as_o you_o speak_v only_a you_o say_v it_o d._n tresham_n here_o there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o paul_n distinguish_v between_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o a_o spiritual_a body_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v spiritual_a and_o hereby_o be_v take_v away_o all_o the_o difficulty_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o not_o only_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n spiritual_a but_o even_o so_o shall_v our_o body_n be_v after_o the_o resurrection_n d._n martyr_n i_o know_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v spiritual_a but_o augustine_n say_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o consentius_n it_o be_v mean_v that_o a_o natural_a body_n be_v say_v to_o be_v like_a unto_o other_o live_a creature_n because_o of_o the_o dissolution_n and_o corruption_n of_o death_n but_o a_o spiritual_a
for_o quality_n have_v their_o subject_n according_a to_o the_o place_n subject_n that_o a_o accident_n can_v be_v together_o in_o two_o subject_n and_o it_o be_v unpossible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v the_o same_o in_o number_n at_o one_o time_n in_o diverse_a subject_n but_o all_o the_o part_n of_o a_o live_a creature_n be_v the_o very_a same_o in_o subject_n and_o one_o by_o the_o knit_n together_o of_o member_n d._n tresham_n the_o reason_n of_o didymus_n do_v proceed_v from_o that_o that_o be_v of_o it_o own_o nature_n in_o many_o place_n and_o not_o otherwise_o and_o all_o the_o doctor_n agree_v that_o christ_n be_v bear_v his_o mother_n womb_n be_v close_o and_o that_o he_o rise_v the_o sepulchre_n be_v shut_v and_o that_o he_o go_v unto_o his_o disciple_n when_o the_o door_n be_v fast_o and_o hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la say_v that_o the_o angel_n be_v not_o circumscribe_v by_o place_n wherefore_o although_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v proper_o in_o heaven_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v spiritual_a it_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n d._n martyr_n whether_o the_o father_n understand_v their_o reason_n touch_v that_o which_o in_o his_o own_o proper_a nature_n be_v in_o many_o place_n i_o have_v already_o answer_v as_o touch_v the_o virgin_n womb_n the_o sepulcher_n and_o the_o door_n be_v fast_o shut_v oppose_v you_o and_o i_o will_v answer_v in_o place_n convenient_a as_o for_o hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la and_o other_o when_o they_o say_v that_o angel_n be_v not_o contain_v within_o the_o precinct_n of_o place_n they_o must_v i_o say_v be_v understand_v as_o concern_v local_a compass_n whereby_o the_o body_n which_o be_v among_o we_o be_v compass_v about_o with_o the_o circumference_n of_o the_o air_n or_o some_o other_o thing_n contain_v they_o but_o these_o thing_n can_v so_o be_v take_v that_o the_o angel_n or_o any_o creature_n shall_v be_v understand_v to_o have_v no_o definit_a substance_n so_o as_o when_o they_o be_v in_o any_o one_o place_n they_o can_v be_v elsewhere_o and_o so_o i_o return_v to_o the_o argument_n it_o be_v a_o firm_a conclusion_n this_o thing_n be_v in_o many_o place_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o godhead_n d._n tresham_n i_o answer_v christ_n be_v god_n and_o now_o the_o speech_n between_o we_o be_v as_o concern_v the_o body_n which_o have_v the_o godhead_n join_v therewith_o d._n martyr_n i_o demand_v of_o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n a_o thing_n create_v or_o no_o d._n tresham_n i_o grant_v it_o be_v but_o christ_n be_v no_o creature_n d._n martyr_n but_o i_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v both_o to_o wit_n a_o creator_n and_o a_o creature_n creator_n christ_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o sundry_a nature_n be_v both_o a_o creature_n and_o a_o creator_n as_o touch_v his_o godhead_n he_o be_v a_o creator_n and_o as_o touch_v his_o humanity_n a_o creature_n and_o if_o a_o creature_n as_o these_o father_n do_v affirm_v he_o can_v be_v in_o diverse_a place_n at_o once_o d._n tresham_n that_o which_o christ_n take_v once_o upon_o he_o he_o never_o let_v go_v and_o therefore_o because_o of_o his_o godhead_n which_o be_v inseparablie_o knit_v unto_o his_o body_n dissever_v christ_n must_v not_o be_v divide_v but_o yet_o his_o nature_n must_v be_v dissever_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n d._n martyr_n we_o likewise_o do_v not_o divide_v christ_n and_o yet_o will_v we_o have_v both_o his_o nature_n to_o be_v whole_a and_o since_o the_o godhead_n do_v not_o cause_n but_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o creature_n and_o you_o have_v now_o hear_v out_o of_o basil_n and_o didymus_n that_o the_o power_n create_v can_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o you_o yourself_o see_v what_o do_v follow_v d._n tresham_n they_o dispute_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n not_o of_o the_o absolute_a power_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v reason_n or_o sense_n to_o be_v follow_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n otherwise_o many_o absurdity_n will_v follow_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n d._n martyr_n i_o can_v tell_v how_o they_o can_v have_v speak_v more_o apparent_o of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n when_o as_o cyrill_n do_v not_o exclude_v even_o the_o divinity_n itself_o when_o he_o say_v if_o it_o be_v of_o quantity_n it_o may_v not_o choose_v but_o be_v circumscribe_v and_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o which_o you_o say_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o must_v not_o follow_v reason_n nor_o yet_o sense_n howbeit_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o since_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o teach_v this_o any_o where_o nay_o rather_o we_o learn_v otherwise_o out_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n that_o christ_n be_v very_a man_n and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o very_a body_n whereto_o be_v very_o agreeable_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v limit_v within_o bound_n and_o compass_v within_o some_o certain_a place_n and_o touch_v his_o body_n we_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n that_o he_o have_v leave_v the_o world_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n the_o disputation_n of_o the_o second_o day_n which_o be_v the_o 29._o day_n of_o may_n between_o d._n peter_n martyr_n and_o d._n william_n chadse_n d._n peter_n martyr_n i_o think_v it_o not_o meet_v right_a honourable_a that_o i_o shall_v use_v at_o this_o present_a any_o preface_n for_o yesterday_o we_o declare_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v think_v good_a to_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o present_a purpose_n and_o by_o your_o good_a foresight_n &_o authority_n it_o happen_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v peaceable_o and_o quiet_o perform_v which_o i_o hope_v this_o day_n shall_v no_o less_o come_v to_o pass_v now_o master_n doctor_n as_o concern_v the_o matter_n you_o be_v present_a yesterday_o may_v sufficient_o understand_v what_o question_n be_v propound_v &_o perceive_v some_o reason_n of_o my_o opinion_n wherefore_o to_o proceed_v in_o our_o purpose_n i_o desire_v you_o to_o show_v what_o you_o do_v judge_v touch_v the_o question_n neither_o do_v i_o fear_v but_o that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v speak_v of_o you_o with_o indifferency_n and_o modesty_n howbeit_o before_o you_o answer_v you_o shall_v suffer_v i_o according_a to_o my_o accustom_a manner_n to_o call_v for_o the_o help_n of_o god_n the_o prayer_n yesterday_o o_o almighty_a god_n we_o begin_v by_o thy_o gracious_a goodness_n to_o dispute_v and_o since_o this_o day_n also_o we_o shall_v proceed_v in_o that_o business_n we_o call_v upon_o thou_o again_o who_o be_v the_o founteine_v of_o light_n the_o most_o perfect_a truth_n and_o the_o most_o clear_a wisdom_n that_o thou_o will_v so_o direct_v our_o word_n that_o we_o fall_v not_o into_o absurdity_n but_o rather_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v handle_v may_v both_o become_v more_o plain_a and_o also_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o the_o praise_n and_o glory_n of_o thy_o name_n through_o christ_n our_o lord_n amen_n the_o preface_n of_o d._n william_n chadse_n great_a be_v the_o matter_n right_a famous_a doctor_n and_o full_a of_o mystery_n which_o yesterday_o be_v handle_v &_o this_o day_n shall_v be_v handle_v great_a because_o we_o dispute_v of_o the_o body_n wherewith_o we_o be_v satisfy_v and_o do_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o of_o the_o blood_n whereof_o we_o drink_v and_o which_o redéeme_v the_o people_n a_o thing_n full_a of_o mystery_n for_o unless_o you_o believe_v you_o shall_v not_o understand_v my_o word_n be_v spirit_n and_o life_n it_o be_v the_o spirit_n which_o quicken_v 6._o john_n 6._o the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o the_o capernaite_n hear_v and_o say_v this_o be_v a_o hard_a say_n and_o who_o be_v able_a to_o abide_v it_o the_o christian_n hear_v and_o cry_v incessant_o with_o peter_n thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n 68_o john_n 6_o 68_o we_o believe_v and_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n we_o believe_v that_o thou_o do_v promise_v the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o which_o shall_v come_v after_o one_o or_o two_o thousand_o year_n but_o even_o within_o a_o few_o day_n after_o that_o thou_o have_v speak_v it_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o performance_n of_o this_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n he_o shall_v lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n he_o shall_v teach_v we_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o thou_o have_v say_v unto_o us._n forsomuch_o therefore_o as_o thou_o be_v true_a yea_o the_o very_a truth_n itself_o since_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v go_v forth_o of_o thy_o lip_n can_v be_v frustate_n i_o firm_o believe_v from_o thy_o mouth_n and_o pronounce_v it_o from_o my_o hart_n as_o touch_v the_o presence_n of_o thy_o body_n in_o the_o
itself_o be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n the_o very_a same_o mercy_n which_o you_o say_v be_v give_v we_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o accident_n that_o in_o they_o may_v be_v hide_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n lest_o while_o it_o be_v see_v it_o shall_v cause_v a_o loathe_n thereof_o even_o the_o same_o i_o say_v we_o have_v by_o the_o remain_a of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o accustom_a nature_n be_v not_o loathsome_a to_o us._n and_o whereas_o you_o affirm_v that_o the_o accident_n or_o show_n do_v lead_v we_o unto_o that_o similitude_n it_o do_v not_o satisfy_v first_o because_o that_o which_o you_o speak_v of_o accident_n be_v a_o feign_a thing_n secondlie_o because_o that_o must_v remain_v which_o nourish_v we_o natural_o which_o accident_n do_v not_o perform_v for_o a_o sacrament_n must_v signify_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o not_o a_o substance_n that_o have_v be_v which_o you_o say_v it_o have_v cast_v away_o last_o you_o allege_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o extrude_v the_o bread_n oftentimes_o yesterday_o do_v i_o ask_v why_o but_o can_v hear_v nothing_o perhaps_o you_o will_v assign_v a_o cause_n d._n chadse_n first_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o require_v that_o bread_n shall_v remain_v in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o water_n do_v in_o baptism_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o both_o sacrament_n be_v not_o alike_o since_o in_o this_o sacrament_n it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o in_o that_o other_o it_o be_v not_o say_v this_o water_n be_v my_o blood_n or_o my_o body_n further_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a as_o you_o argue_v that_o the_o element_n shall_v remain_v after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o word_n and_o that_o do_v natural_a reason_n teach_v by_o a_o similitude_n as_o in_o digestion_n there_o come_v a_o natural_a heat_n unto_o the_o meat_n now_o receive_v and_o change_v the_o substance_n thereof_o into_o flesh_n so_o in_o the_o sacrament_n when_o the_o word_n come_v it_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o whereas_o you_o demand_v why_o we_o do_v take_v away_o bread_n we_o answer_v because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n foresee_v that_o there_o will_v come_v heretic_n which_o will_v say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v bread_n together_o with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o which_o will_v deny_v real_a presence_n because_o they_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v there_o remain_v d._n martyr_n your_o answer_n stand_v on_o three_o part_n the_o first_o be_v that_o you_o do_v not_o admit_v a_o similitude_n between_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n as_o if_o so_o be_v that_o i_o have_v argue_v from_o the_o like_a i_o touch_v somewhat_o of_o baptism_n by_o the_o way_n but_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o argument_n be_v that_o a_o convenient_a substance_n ought_v to_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o as_o touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v that_o which_o nourish_v we_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n not_o by_o accident_n and_o yet_o do_v i_o not_o for_o this_o cause_n deny_v that_o there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v have_v the_o same_o consideration_n in_o baptism_n that_o be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n neither_o have_v you_o show_v the_o contrary_a also_o you_o contend_v that_o augustine_n say_v the_o word_n come_v to_o the_o element_n and_o it_o be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n do_v not_o make_v against_o you_o as_o i_o show_v that_o it_o do_v but_o i_o prove_v that_o it_o make_v against_o you_o because_o he_o judge_v that_o the_o element_n do_v remain_v and_o that_o the_o word_n be_v join_v therewith_o and_o so_o of_o they_o be_v make_v the_o sacrament_n and_o as_o for_o your_o similitude_n of_o natural_a digestion_n it_o serve_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o when_o the_o natural_a heat_n come_v the_o meat_n be_v convert_v into_o our_o substance_n which_o if_o it_o be_v absent_a as_o you_o exclude_v bread_n in_o the_o transubstantiation_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v sustain_v or_o nourish_v by_o any_o mean_n again_o that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o consideration_n to_o be_v have_v of_o natural_a heat_n that_o be_v of_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n you_o make_v but_o small_a proof_n last_o as_o touch_v the_o cause_n that_o you_o bring_v why_o you_o reject_v bread_n namely_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n foresee_v that_o there_o shall_v come_v heretic_n which_o will_v say_v that_o bread_n remain_v or_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o real_o or_o substantial_o in_o the_o eucharist_n i_o say_v that_o be_v a_o vain_a cause_n for_o these_o heretic_n as_o you_o call_v they_o be_v the_o father_n who_o say_v that_o bread_n there_o remain_v it_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v doctrine_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n make_v mention_v of_o it_o furthermore_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v the_o church_n this_o matter_n why_o do_v you_o not_o bring_v forth_o the_o word_n whereby_o he_o teach_v it_o d._n chadse_n it_o be_v not_o require_v that_o the_o matter_n shall_v remain_v in_o this_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o substance_n for_o as_o i_o have_v say_v the_o analogy_n may_v be_v have_v by_o the_o accident_n which_o remain_v and_o moreover_o augustine_n say_v not_o that_o the_o element_n remain_v so_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v not_o retain_v when_o digestion_n be_v past_a and_o hereof_o let_v physician_n and_o philosopher_n judge_v final_o i_o answer_v the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v the_o church_n in_o the_o laterane_n council_n that_o we_o shall_v confess_v a_o transubstantiation_n d._n martyr_n unto_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o your_o answer_n i_o reply_v that_o i_o ask_v by_o what_o word_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v transubstantiation_n and_o you_o answer_v i_o by_o the_o laterane_n council_n for_o the_o which_o we_o be_v not_o to_o pass_v what_o it_o have_v decree_v unless_o it_o have_v justify_v his_o decree_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o why_o do_v i_o demand_v this_o of_o you_o see_v you_o confess_v in_o you_o preface_n that_o transubstantiation_n can_v expressedlie_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n against_o the_o other_o point_n i_o say_v again_o that_o unless_o the_o matter_n or_o substance_n of_o the_o meat_n or_o bread_n shall_v remain_v in_o we_o after_o the_o digestion_n we_o can_v not_o live_v indeed_o some_o part_n thereof_o be_v cast_v forth_o by_o the_o draught_n and_o excrement_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n unless_o that_o somewhat_o do_v remain_v we_o shall_v not_o be_v sustain_v but_o i_o will_v show_v how_o well_o this_o similitude_n make_v for_o you_o in_o the_o natural_a concoction_n the_o substance_n &_o matter_n of_o the_o meat_n be_v retain_v according_a to_o a_o due_a proportion_n but_o the_o form_n &_o accident_n be_v do_v away_o but_o you_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n do_v cast_v away_o the_o substance_n and_o retain_v the_o accident_n and_o hereof_o as_o you_o also_o say_v i_o will_v have_v the_o physician_n and_o philosopher_n to_o judge_v for_o in_o the_o nourish_a of_o the_o body_n i_o do_v not_o appoint_v any_o form_n of_o bread_n to_o remain_v but_o the_o matter_n substance_n and_o body_n of_o the_o same_o d._n chadse_n i_o affirm_v that_o counsel_n must_v by_o all_o mean_n be_v great_o regard_v when_o they_o decree_v the_o word_n of_o god_n according_a as_o it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o laterane_n council_n which_o i_o cite_v for_o out_o of_o the_o gospel_n you_o have_v transubstantiation_n although_o obscure_o when_o it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o we_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o accident_n remain_v because_o of_o our_o infirmity_n and_o beside_o even_o as_o our_o flesh_n be_v make_v of_o bread_n when_o it_o be_v digest_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n not_o remain_v so_o of_o the_o element_n when_o the_o word_n be_v join_v thereunto_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n d._n martyr_n this_o be_v even_o as_o much_o as_o to_o have_v say_v nothing_o since_o you_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o show_v that_o the_o laterane_n council_n decree_v it_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o i_o have_v now_o often_o object_v that_o the_o element_n must_v of_o necessity_n remain_v if_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n and_o for_o have_v a_o consideration_n of_o our_o infirmity_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v profit_n even_o as_o much_o and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o do_v the_o accident_n d._n chadse_n i_o grant_v that_o which_o augustine_n say_v the_o word_n come_v to_o the_o element_n &_o be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o do_v he_o not_o say_v that_o the_o element_n be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n d._n martyr_n let_v we_o ponder_v the_o word_n the_o word_n
break_n of_o the_o sign_n and_o distribution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o we_o see_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o memory_n of_o a_o thing_n which_o remain_v therein_o you_o be_v deceive_v because_o the_o nature_n of_o memory_n be_v that_o it_o must_v be_v of_o a_o thing_n already_o past_a or_o which_o at_o the_o leastwise_o be_v not_o present_a nay_o rather_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o thing_n and_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o same_o have_v between_o they_o a_o flat_a contrariety_n i_o demand_v of_o you_o moreover_o why_o he_o name_v his_o ascension_n be_v it_o not_o to_o let_v we_o understand_v that_o he_o must_v not_o be_v eat_v carnal_o d._n chadse_n therefore_o do_v he_o speak_v of_o his_o ascension_n because_o he_o true_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o be_v there_o true_o not_o as_o though_o his_o very_a presence_n be_v not_o here_o also_o not_o indeed_o to_o be_v devour_v but_o to_o be_v receive_v and_o eat_v according_a to_o his_o commandment_n d._n martyr_n true_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n to_o have_v mention_v his_o ascension_n unless_o he_o mean_v to_o note_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o kind_n of_o eat_v which_o the_o absence_n of_o a_o corporal_a thing_n may_v not_o hinder_v but_o now_o what_o say_v you_o at_o the_o length_n to_o that_o place_n allege_v the_o bread_n 16_o 1._o co._n 10_o 16_o which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n body_n this_o if_o you_o refer_v it_o to_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o break_v for_o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o bread_n and_o they_o do_v transfer_v it_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o figure_n d._n chadse_n so_o must_v we_o understand_v in_o that_o place_n bread_n break_v even_o as_o it_o be_v there_o say_v we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n figurativelie_o for_o if_o bread_n in_o the_o former_a place_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o natural_a bread_n it_o shall_v so_o likewise_o be_v take_v in_o the_o place_n follow_v &_o so_o all_o we_o shall_v be_v natural_a bread_n and_o our_o substance_n shall_v be_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n if_o you_o will_v argue_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o first_o part_n d._n martyr_n my_o purpose_n be_v only_o to_o show_v that_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o defend_v that_o you_o in_o the_o communion_n do_v break_v bread_n when_o you_o take_v it_o away_o from_o thence_o and_o especial_o if_o you_o take_v bread_n for_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n figurativelie_o as_o you_o yourself_o do_v now_o confess_v for_o you_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v understand_v after_o the_o selfsame_o manner_n as_o when_o afterward_o it_o be_v say_v 17_o 1._o co._n 10_o 17_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o yet_o you_o see_v that_o it_o can_v not_o proper_o be_v fit_a for_o allegorical_a bread_n to_o be_v break_v and_o thus_o for_o your_o transubstantiation_n sake_n you_o be_v constrain_v to_o devise_v there_o two_o figure_n first_o to_o understand_v allegorical_a bread_n in_o both_o the_o place_n secondlie_o to_o understand_v break_v figurativelie_o and_o so_o you_o 1●_n the_o place_n of_o paul_n expound_v 1._o co._n 10_o 1●_n which_o be_v against_o figure_n do_v run_v continual_o into_o they_o but_o for_o my_o part_n i_o understand_v bread_n in_o that_o place_n proper_o and_o when_o it_o be_v say_v we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n i_o interpret_v in_o signification_n not_o in_o substance_n for_o even_o as_o the_o bread_n be_v one_o and_o consist_v of_o many_o grain_n or_o even_o as_o it_o be_v one_o and_o be_v do_v into_o many_o part_n so_o we_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v one_o and_o also_o many_o member_n and_o thus_o i_o understand_v the_o bread_n in_o both_o place_n after_o one_o manner_n the_o figure_n be_v in_o the_o word_n sumus_fw-la we_o be_v herwithall_o if_o you_o will_v understand_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v break_v in_o like_a manner_n as_o afterward_o when_o it_o be_v say_v we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n you_o shall_v be_v compel_v by_o a_o figure_n to_o understand_v the_o mystical_a body_n but_o how_o shall_v that_o be_v break_v sacrament_n a_o figure_n in_o the_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n prove_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o since_o you_o be_v so_o ready_a with_o your_o figure_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o it_o shall_v so_o much_o gréeve_v you_o to_o admit_v a_o figure_n in_o the_o proposition_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n to_o wit_n this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o as_o to_o the_o second_o how_o will_v you_o avoid_v a_o figure_n since_o a_o sacrament_n be_v here_o institute_v and_o unto_o sacrament_n figure_n be_v most_o familiar_a d._n chadse_n we_o do_v not_o here_o utterlie_o deny_v a_o figure_n for_o it_o be_v not_o bread_n that_o be_v handle_v but_o it_o be_v call_v bread_n and_o that_o by_o a_o figure_n but_o yet_o in_o the_o sacramental_a word_n or_o word_n of_o consecration_n we_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o figure_n because_o none_o of_o the_o circumstance_n do_v show_v the_o same_o d._n martyr_n how_o can_v you_o deny_v a_o figure_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacramental_a word_n since_o it_o be_v plain_o say_v at_o the_o cup_n 21_o 1._o co._n 11_o 21_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n where_o if_o you_o grant_v a_o figure_n why_o be_v it_o absurd_a that_o the_o other_o part_n which_o be_v speak_v at_o the_o bread_n shall_v be_v figurative_a and_o i_o wonder_v that_o you_o will_v acknowledge_v no_o circumstance_n in_o this_o place_n since_o i_o show_v before_o of_o many_o which_o you_o dissemble_v and_o pass_v over_o d._n chadse_n that_o which_o you_o speak_v do_v not_o conclude_v for_o here_o at_o the_o cup_n the_o circumstance_n constrein_v we_o to_o confess_v a_o figure_n but_o nothing_o constrein_v on_o the_o other_o part_n again_o whereas_o luke_n and_o paul_n speak_v figurativelie_o the_o other_o two_o evangelist_n say_v flat_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n d._n martyr_n whereas_o you_o say_v that_o matthew_n &_o mark_n say_v absolute_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n because_o those_o word_n also_o which_o be_v in_o luke_n and_o paul_n howsoever_o they_o be_v put_v must_v needs_o be_v true_a which_o can_v be_v if_o a_o figure_n be_v not_o admit_v and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o figure_n in_o the_o former_a sentence_n not_o only_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sament_n as_o i_o have_v say_v but_o also_o the_o father_n have_v confess_v the_o self-same_a why_o do_v you_o so_o earnest_o seek_v to_o shun_v the_o figure_n doubtless_o tertullian_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n also_o augustine_n upon_o the_o three_o psalm_n say_v that_o christ_n give_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o against_o adamantus_fw-la the_o manichei_n father_n the_o figure_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o father_n he_o doubt_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o jerom_n say_v with_o tertullian_n that_o christ_n represent_v his_o body_n and_o such_o testimony_n innumerable_a there_o be_v all_o which_o do_v show_v that_o they_o admit_v a_o figure_n in_o the_o word_n which_o be_v speak_v at_o the_o bread_n d._n chadse_n true_a it_o be_v that_o tertullian_n and_o augustine_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n but_o yet_o they_o exclude_v not_o the_o thing_n itself_o so_o as_o both_o the_o figure_n and_o the_o thing_n figure_v shall_v be_v all_o one_o even_o as_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n 3._o heb._n 1_o 3._o the_o son_n be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o father_n substance_n &_o yet_o be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o father_n substance_n be_v but_o if_o you_o will_v say_v there_o he_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o father_n substance_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o the_o father_n substance_n you_o plain_o see_v that_o the_o argument_n do_v not_o hold_v so_o in_o the_o present_a matter_n to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o good_a conclusion_n d._n martyr_n how_o much_o that_o conclude_v or_o not_o conclude_v i_o dispute_v not_o at_o this_o present_a only_o this_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o father_n in_o that_o kind_n of_o speech_n this_o be_v my_o body_n acknowledge_v a_o figure_n and_o that_o do_v their_o own_o word_n show_v when_o they_o often_o inculcate_v a_o figure_n and_o representation_n and_o augustine_n in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_fw-la and_o elsewhere_o most_o plain_o testify_v that_o the_o speech_n of_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v figurative_a and_o therefore_o what_o you_o deny_v he_o
of_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n d._n martyr_n so_o do_v you_o interpret_v &_o expound_v he_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o answer_v nothing_o for_o the_o liberty_n and_o the_o licence_n that_o you_o take_v in_o the_o turn_n of_o these_o relative_n to_o your_o own_o purpose_n but_o i_o return_v to_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o argument_n wherein_o i_o say_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o sustain_v at_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o time_n so_o contrary_a quality_n as_o be_v passable_a and_o impassable_a and_o you_o flee_v unto_o diverse_a respect_n but_o how_o much_o that_o avail_v in_o this_o question_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n hear_v what_o vigilius_n say_v in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o eutyches_n because_o that_o one_o nature_n alone_o receive_v not_o in_o itself_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v contrary_a or_o diverse_a but_o diverse_a it_o be_v and_o far_o unlike_a to_o be_v bound_v within_o a_o place_n and_o to_o be_v everywhere_a for_o the_o word_n be_v everywhere_a but_o the_o flesh_n thereof_o be_v not_o everywhere_a thus_o you_o see_v that_o this_o most_o learned_a father_n deni_v that_o it_o can_v agree_v with_o one_o only_a nature_n to_o be_v limit_v within_o a_o place_n and_o not_o to_o be_v limit_v wherefore_o the_o one_o of_o these_o thing_n he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o godhead_n and_o the_o other_o to_o the_o manhood_n because_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o both_o but_o if_o we_o shall_v give_v you_o place_n for_o your_o diverse_a respect_n it_o be_v unprofitablie_o speak_v of_o he_o for_o some_o man_n will_v object_v unto_o he_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o one_o respect_n limit_v as_o you_o do_v say_v namely_o as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n it_o be_v without_o limitation_n howbeit_o because_o to_o be_v within_o limit_n &_o without_o limitation_n even_o as_o to_o be_v passable_a and_o impassable_a be_v absolute_a quality_n therefore_o in_o what_o respect_n soever_o you_o speak_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o body_n can_v bear_v both_o condition_n together_o at_o one_o time_n d._n chadse_n i_o do_v not_o confess_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o diverse_a place_n locallie_o but_o i_o say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o diverse_a place_n accidental_o that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o the_o show_n wherein_o he_o be_v contain_v be_v in_o diverse_a place_n d._n martyr_n it_o be_v not_o mean_v by_o i_o out_o of_o the_o place_n of_o vigilius_n which_o i_o cite_v that_o we_o shall_v now_o seek_v whether_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o diverse_a place_n at_o once_o but_o only_o to_o show_v that_o he_o confirm_v that_o which_o i_o say_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o nature_n shall_v together_o at_o one_o time_n admit_v thing_n that_o be_v contrary_a and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o help_v which_o you_o say_v that_o this_o be_v do_v in_o a_o sundry_a respect_n when_o as_o those_o contrary_n be_v absolute_a neither_o be_v the_o speech_n concern_v relative_n but_o nature_n itself_o be_v consider_v howbeit_o because_o you_o slip_v from_o thence_o and_o show_v i_o that_o you_o affirm_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o diverse_a place_n at_o once_o and_o that_o not_o locallie_o but_o by_o accident_n because_o the_o show_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v keep_v in_o sundry_a place_n i_o come_v to_o you_o also_o in_o this_o point_n and_o i_o say_v that_o your_o cause_n be_v not_o reléeve_v at_o all_o by_o this_o distinction_n for_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v neither_o locallie_a nor_o yet_o not_o locallie_o be_v in_o many_o place_n since_o it_o be_v a_o creature_n &_o a_o thing_n definite_a and_o you_o have_v hear_v by_o very_o weighty_a testimony_n that_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o no_o creature_n no_o not_o unto_o angel_n to_o be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o who_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o in_o place_n locallie_o for_o they_o be_v not_o corporal_a moreover_o you_o bring_v new_a matter_n and_o such_o as_o have_v not_o be_v hear_v of_o either_o in_o profane_a writer_n or_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o a_o body_n be_v in_o some_o place_n and_o yet_o not_o locallie_o for_o this_o be_v even_o as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o a_o body_n and_o yet_o no_o body_n d._n chadse_n these_o thing_n do_v therefore_o happen_v because_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n have_v no_o body_n that_o consist_v of_o quantity_n d._n martyr_n this_o be_v even_o it_o that_o i_o look_v for_o god_n chadse_o find_v guilty_a of_o theft_n and_o sacrilege_n towards_o god_n to_o find_v you_o guilty_a both_o of_o robbery_n &_o of_o sacrilege_n for_o you_o do_v uniustlie_o rob_v the_o bread_n of_o substance_n and_o desposse_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o his_o quantity_n d._n chadse_n not_o only_o shall_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o our_o body_n also_o be_v glorify_v after_o the_o resurrection_n and_o shall_v be_v immortal_a and_o without_o quantity_n d._n martyr_n i_o can_v wonder_v sufficient_o how_o you_o speak_v this_o will_v you_o not_o perceive_v that_o by_o take_v away_o quantity_n from_o a_o humane_a body_n you_o take_v away_o the_o body_n itself_o for_o since_o it_o be_v a_o live_a body_n it_o have_v instrument_n also_o and_o it_o behoove_v it_o that_o it_o have_v many_o member_n and_o part_n the_o which_o can_v consist_v without_o substance_n and_o quantity_n and_o therefore_o it_o follow_v very_o well_o that_o quantity_n be_v take_v away_o from_o a_o humane_a body_n the_o body_n itself_o also_o be_v extinguish_v d._n chadse_n i_o deny_v the_o argument_n d._n martyr_n where_o do_v you_o then_o place_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o quantity_n d._n chadse_n he_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o in_o place_n d._n martyr_n then_o you_o do_v not_o appoint_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o if_o he_o be_v there_o without_o a_o quantity_n it_o may_v indeed_o be_v a_o substance_n but_o no_o humane_a body_n for_o that_o consist_v of_o diverse_a part_n and_o instrument_n the_o which_o if_o quantity_n be_v remoove_v they_o have_v no_o place_n d._n chadse_n we_o say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o yet_o not_o in_o quantity_n nor_o yet_o as_o be_v in_o a_o place_n d._n martyr_n if_o it_o be_v both_o without_o place_n and_o quantity_n when_o it_o be_v under_o your_o show_n then_o shall_v it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a substance_n for_o bodily_a and_o unbodilie_a substance_n be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o substance_n quantitative_a and_o not_o quantitative_a neither_o be_v spirit_n of_o dimension_n as_o body_n be_v and_o this_o do_v christ_n confirm_v when_o he_o say_v a_o spirit_n have_v no_o flesh_n and_o bone_n d._n chadse_n i_o admit_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v some_o spiritual_a thing_n because_o the_o sense_n do_v not_o judge_v thereof_o as_o it_o may_v judge_v of_o other_o body_n which_o be_v of_o quantity_n d._n martyr_n i_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v perceive_v or_o not_o perceive_v by_o the_o sense_n nor_o yet_o speak_v i_o of_o our_o capacity_n but_o i_o speak_v of_o that_o body_n as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o and_o i_o affirm_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v of_o quantity_n and_o that_o it_o have_v a_o bigness_n otherwise_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o substance_n without_o a_o body_n and_o shall_v whole_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o kind_n of_o spirit_n d._n chadse_n we_o entreat_v here_o of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o we_o affirm_v to_o be_v as_o touch_v the_o thing_n itself_o and_o the_o substance_n thereof_o and_o we_o pass_v not_o for_o the_o accident_n of_o christ_n body_n that_o be_v for_o the_o quantity_n and_o proportion_n whether_o they_o be_v present_a or_o not_o present_a and_o as_o touch_v your_o argument_n i_o say_v it_o be_v but_o weak_a see_v it_o conclude_v not_o to_o say_v this_o body_n be_v not_o under_o the_o selfsame_o quality_n and_o quantity_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o selfsame_o body_n and_o christ_n now_o in_o heaven_n have_v not_o the_o same_o quality_n which_o he_o have_v here_o therefore_o he_o have_v not_o the_o same_o body_n the_o argument_n be_v not_o good_a for_o if_o all_o those_o quality_n which_o be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v require_v now_o in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o this_o purpose_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o selfsame_o body_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o now_o in_o heaven_n be_v not_o the_o self-same_a christ_n which_o be_v crucify_v for_o now_o those_o quality_n be_v not_o in_o he_o which_o he_o have_v
the_o scripture_n for_o this_o proposition_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n be_v doubtful_a wherein_o it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n for_o hereof_o some_o do_v gather_v transubstantiation_n other_o a_o bodily_a presence_n with_o the_o bread_n other_o impanation_n whereby_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o bread_n do_v join_v into_o one_o person_n other_o appoint_v a_o bare_a sign_n and_o other_o a_o effectual_a sign_n and_o there_o want_v not_o those_o which_o care_v no_o more_o for_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o they_o may_v hereby_o drive_v away_o all_o worship_v as_o i_o know_v a_o young_a man_n of_o england_n do_v forsomuch_o therefore_o as_o we_o see_v diverse_a man_n diverslie_o affirm_v teach_v i_o what_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n must_v be_v retain_v d._n martyr_n scripture_n the_o sense_n of_o this_o proposition_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n the_o proper_a meaning_n of_o these_o word_n may_v easy_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n if_o they_o be_v well_o examine_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n christ_n most_o plain_o show_v that_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o body_n must_v be_v understand_v spiritual_o for_o he_o say_v that_o his_o word_n be_v spirit_n and_o life_n and_o again_o that_o the_o spirit_n quicken_v but_o the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o and_o straitwaie_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o ascension_n and_o of_o this_o matter_n he_o deal_v so_o plentifullie_o in_o that_o chapter_n that_o afterward_o in_o his_o last_o supper_n he_o speak_v nothing_o thereof_o as_o augustine_n testify_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr consensu_fw-la euangelistarum_fw-la consider_v afterward_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n that_o christ_n deny_v the_o carnal_a eat_n which_o the_o capernaite_n surmise_v whereby_o you_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o eat_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o carnal_a but_o spiritual_a and_o so_o as_o touch_v this_o say_n you_o have_v a_o easy_a and_o clear_a sense_n beside_o this_o the_o scripture_n do_v evident_o call_v it_o bread_n 25._o matt._n 26._o verse_n 26._o 1._o cor._n 10_o 16._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 25._o the_o lord_n take_v bread_n bless_v it_o break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v say_v paul_n be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n again_o so_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n wherefore_o in_o like_a manner_n appear_v by_o these_o saieng_n that_o bread_n remain_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v complain_v of_o the_o obscureness_n of_o the_o place_n as_o touch_v this_o matter_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o figurative_a kind_n of_o speech_n in_o these_o word_n many_o thing_n declare_v for_o it_o be_v not_o proper_o agreeable_a to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v eat_v see_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o eat_v we_o crash_n &_o grind_v with_o our_o tooth_n and_o be_v pass_v down_o into_o the_o belly_n we_o digest_v they_o and_o convert_v they_o into_o our_o own_o substance_n which_o to_o speak_v proper_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v great_a wickedness_n and_o at_o the_o cup_n there_o be_v use_v a_o most_o manifest_a figure_n 25._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 25._o when_o it_o be_v say_v this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n etc._n etc._n herewithal_o in_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v most_o manifest_a and_o evident_a speech_n of_o the_o sacrament_n from_o the_o which_o may_v be_v have_v the_o interpretation_n of_o this_o place_n for_o circumcision_n be_v call_v the_o covenant_n &_o the_o lamb_n or_o sacrifice_n be_v call_v the_o passeover_n paul_n say_v of_o baptism_n that_o therein_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o christ_n neither_o do_v he_o say_v there_o that_o a_o sepulchre_n be_v signify_v again_o we_o know_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a humane_a body_n and_o that_o he_o be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o from_o thence_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n all_o these_o place_n if_o a_o man_n do_v well_o compare_v together_o will_v judge_v no_o otherwise_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o scripture_n than_o we_o do_v m._n morgan_n luther_n have_v the_o scripture_n and_o disagré_v from_o zuinglius_fw-la the_o catholic_n see_v they_o and_o read_v they_o and_o disagree_v from_o they_o both_o and_o the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o be_v so_o ambiguous_a that_o unless_o they_o be_v clear_v by_o a_o other_o light_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n by_o the_o father_n they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o our_o instruction_n d._n martyr_n yes_o indeed_o they_o plentifullie_o suffice_v as_o you_o hear_v i_o even_o now_o declare_v m._n morgan_n since_o i_o see_v that_o you_o stand_v to_o the_o scripture_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v wrest_v of_o diverse_a man_n diverslie_o now_o will_v i_o deal_v with_o you_o by_o a_o brief_a reason_n draw_v from_o that_o place_n wherein_o the_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v christ_n take_v bread_n what_o bread_n take_v he_o d._n martyr_n since_o you_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v diverslie_o wrest_v by_o diverse_a man_n according_a as_o they_o be_v affect_v i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o fault_n either_o of_o evil_n or_o ignorant_a man_n yet_o must_v not_o the_o scripture_n be_v accuse_v as_o dark_a in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n when_o they_o be_v bring_v forth_o &_o read_v with_o a_o sincere_a mind_n they_o do_v their_o part_n excellentlie_o well_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n testify_v that_o they_o be_v profitable_a to_o teach_v to_o reproove_v and_o to_o instruct_v a_o man_n that_o he_o may_v be_v perfect_a and_o well_o order_v to_o every_o good_a work_n but_o if_o that_o any_o have_v doubt_v it_o be_v their_o own_o fault_n not_o the_o scripture_n fault_n and_o the_o scripture_n must_v not_o be_v accuse_v because_o of_o their_o contention_n as_o though_o it_o can_v teach_v us._n we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v oftentimes_o demonstration_n make_v against_o the_o arrian_n and_o that_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o christ_n be_v god._n yet_o will_v they_o contend_v neither_o change_v they_o their_o opinion_n neither_o be_v this_o any_o derogation_n to_o the_o light_n and_o worthiness_n of_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n therefore_o that_o you_o shall_v object_v unto_o i_o man_n either_o yet_o live_v or_o but_o late_o dead_a which_o disagré_v one_o from_o a_o other_o and_o yet_o have_v the_o scripture_n since_o there_o may_v be_v other_o cause_v assign_v of_o their_o disagréement_n beside_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o how_o i_o shall_v judge_v now_o of_o those_o man_n the_o place_n serve_v not_o to_o declare_v it_o suffice_v for_o i_o that_o i_o have_v defend_v the_o right_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o as_o to_o that_o which_o you_o demand_v namely_o what_o bread_n christ_n take_v i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v common_a and_o usual_a bread_n to_o wit_n swéetbread_n because_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n be_v celebrate_v m._n morgan_n when_o do_v he_o consecrate_v the_o same_o whether_o when_o he_o take_v it_o into_o his_o hand_n or_o when_o he_o bless_v it_o or_o else_o when_o he_o give_v it_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v when_o the_o bread_n be_v consecrate_v d._n martyr_n make_v when_o and_o how_o consecration_n be_v make_v by_o give_v of_o thanks_o by_o say_v as_o he_o say_v and_o do_v as_o he_o do_v wherefore_o we_o also_o must_v say_v and_o do_v even_o the_o very_a same_o that_o he_o say_v and_o do_v and_o because_o we_o have_v not_o elsewhere_o by_o demonstration_n of_o the_o scripture_n any_o certain_a place_n that_o be_v four_o or_o five_o word_n whereby_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v therefore_o must_v we_o recite_v all_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o supper_n m._n morgan_n the_o minister_n do_v consecrate_v after_o the_o selfsame_o manner_n that_o christ_n do_v do_v therefore_o the_o minister_n consecrate_v by_o receive_v bread_n into_o his_o hand_n d._n martyr_n consecration_n what_o be_v consecration_n no_o but_o by_o perform_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v consecrate_v that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v appoint_v to_o a_o holy_a use_n and_o through_o the_o word_n and_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v make_v a_o instrument_n to_o signify_v effectual_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v then_o consecrate_a when_o all_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v and_o distribution_n make_v to_o the_o faithful_a m._n morgan_n if_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v not_o write_v certeinelie_o then_o be_v not_o the_o scripture_n sufficient_a of_o itself_o as_o touch_v consecration_n again_o i_o demand_v of_o you_o whether_o the_o bread_n be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o sign_n before_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o take_v bread_n be_v
the_o bread_n as_o yet_o make_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n d._n martyr_n no_o sacramental_a sign_n according_a as_o we_o speak_v and_o to_o that_o which_o you_o infer_v by_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o determine_a word_n of_o consecration_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o then_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a i_o answer_v that_o it_o follow_v not_o for_o though_o it_o do_v appoint_v four_o or_o five_o word_n only_o whereby_o consecration_n shall_v preciselie_o be_v make_v yet_o do_v it_o faithful_o describe_v the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o this_o mystery_n the_o which_o be_v sufficient_a wherefore_o we_o ought_v to_o repeat_v the_o same_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o both_o we_o may_v do_v and_o say_v that_o which_o christ_n do_v and_o say_v and_o this_o be_v command_v we_o when_o the_o lord_n say_v this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o 24_o luk._n 22_o 19_o 1._o co._n 11_o 24_o the_o which_o must_v be_v refer_v as_o well_o unto_o the_o word_n as_o unto_o the_o deed_n for_o the_o lord_n mean_v not_o that_o when_o the_o five_o word_n be_v pronounce_v we_o shall_v think_v that_o we_o have_v perform_v so_o great_a a_o mystery_n m._n morgan_n he_o bless_v the_o bread_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v he_o break_v the_o bread_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v he_o give_v the_o bread_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v therefore_o he_o give_v the_o bread_n before_o it_o be_v yet_o a_o sign_n or_o sacrament_n d._n martyr_n this_o sacrament_n consist_v of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v and_o say_v and_o when_o he_o say_v do_v these_o thing_n he_o mean_v as_o touch_v all_o those_o thing_n and_o not_o of_o one_o or_o two_o alone_a and_o he_o make_v it_o a_o sign_n by_o blessing_n by_o break_v by_o give_v and_o by_o add_v such_o thing_n as_o follow_v m._n morgan_n it_o follow_v that_o since_o christ_n give_v bread_n before_o he_o have_v finish_v all_o the_o word_n he_o give_v bread_n which_o be_v not_o consecrate_v see_v unto_o consecration_n all_o the_o word_n be_v require_v wherefore_o i_o be_v a_o minister_n and_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n when_o do_v i_o make_v the_o sacrament_n d._n martyr_n even_o by_o say_v and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o christ_n say_v and_o do_v that_o be_v to_o wit_n when_o that_o action_n be_v perform_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v describe_v but_o whether_o you_o tend_v or_o what_o your_o meaning_n be_v i_o perceive_v not_o but_o that_o many_o word_n be_v waste_v in_o vain_a m._n morgan_n i_o will_v speak_v more_o plain_o the_o minister_n do_v all_o the_o thing_n that_o christ_n do_v otherwise_o they_o shall_v fail_v in_o the_o right_a use_n but_o the_o minister_n do_v not_o consecrate_v it_o for_o a_o sacrament_n before_o all_o the_o word_n be_v utter_v and_o therefore_o christ_n also_o do_v it_o not_o but_o if_o so_o be_v he_o give_v the_o bread_n before_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o word_n he_o give_v common_a bread_n but_o not_o a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n d._n martyr_n here_o have_v i_o answer_v already_o that_o christ_n give_v no_o sign_n before_o he_o have_v finish_v the_o action_n nor_o before_o he_o have_v say_v and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v and_o say_v and_o when_o those_o thing_n be_v perform_v he_o give_v not_o a_o only_a substance_n of_o bread_n but_o he_o give_v the_o same_o with_o a_o condition_n adjoin_v the_o which_o be_v symbolical_a or_o signify_v first_o therefore_o he_o take_v bread_n but_o and_o if_o afterward_o by_o reason_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o say_v and_o do_v there_o be_v add_v a_o sacramental_a or_o symbolical_a condition_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o disproove_v but_o that_o he_o give_v bread_n for_o he_o give_v both_o to_o wit_n bread_n &_o a_o sacrament_n neither_o be_v it_o requisite_a that_o you_o shall_v so_o cavil_v that_o christ_n give_v bread_n first_o before_o he_o utter_v the_o word_n for_o this_o may_v appear_v if_o only_o a_o respect_n be_v have_v unto_o the_o order_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o narration_n but_o let_v we_o set_v the_o action_n before_o our_o eye_n &_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o christ_n in_o give_v finish_v the_o word_n which_o be_v necessary_a so_o as_o this_o which_o you_o urge_v so_o sore_o be_v but_o a_o sophistical_a cavil_n for_o while_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_o do_v break_v and_o give_v he_o say_v withal_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o so_o unto_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v nothing_o want_v m._n morgan_n what_o do_v he_o give_v common_a bread_n or_o sacramental_a bread_n d._n martyr_n he_o give_v sacramental_a bread_n m._n morgan_n but_o yet_o he_o give_v it_o before_o he_o have_v pronounce_v this_o be_v my_o body_n so_o than_o he_o give_v no_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n say_v i_o these_o thing_n to_o the_o intent_n i_o may_v show_v that_o we_o can_v be_v blame_v when_o we_o say_v that_o christ_n give_v his_o body_n after_o the_o word_n be_v finish_v and_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o accusative_fw-mi case_n bread_n must_v not_o be_v join_v with_o the_o verb_n give_v as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o verb_n that_o go_v before_o d._n martyr_n no_o man_n blame_v you_o in_o this_o that_o you_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v after_o the_o ceremony_n be_v perform_v but_o in_o this_o respect_n that_o you_o exclude_v the_o bread_n for_o we_o must_v determine_v that_o as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o be_v give_v and_o that_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o accusative_fw-mi case_n be_v govern_v of_o all_o those_o verb_n according_a as_o order_n and_o grammatical_a construction_n require_v neither_o be_v that_o true_a which_o you_o still_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n have_v first_o give_v it_o before_o he_o pronounce_v all_o the_o word_n since_o in_o give_v and_o distribute_v or_o break_v he_o finish_v the_o word_n which_o serve_v to_o the_o purpose_n here_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o enchantment_n to_o be_v imagine_v although_o all_o be_v do_v by_o the_o finish_n of_o one_o letter_n syllable_n or_o one_o silly_a word_n m._n morgan_n he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n what_o give_v he_o he_o give_v his_o body_n rather_o than_o bread_n for_o body_n be_v a_o nigh_a word_n unto_o those_o verb_n than_o be_v this_o word_n bread_n d._n martyr_n grammatical_a sense_n require_v that_o bread_n shall_v remain_v for_o all_o these_o verb_n do_v govern_v a_o accusative_a case_n neither_o be_v the_o nearness_n of_o place_n to_o be_v respect_v in_o this_o sentence_n for_o albeit_o that_o this_o particle_n my_o body_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o near_a speech_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o govern_v of_o those_o word_n he_o break_v he_o give_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v you_o but_o of_o the_o verb_n substantive_a est_fw-fr is._n but_o whereas_o it_o be_v write_v that_o christ_n first_o give_v before_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n it_o be_v the_o usual_a figure_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o wit_n when_o a_o thing_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o a_o contrary_a order_n but_o yet_o not_o proper_o for_o it_o be_v admit_v for_o a_o necessity_n of_o set_v forth_o the_o matter_n since_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v do_v both_o together_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o give_v and_o that_o he_o speak_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o strife_n to_o be_v make_v for_o this_o matter_n m._n morgan_n if_o it_o be_v the_o figure_n hysteron_fw-gr proteron_fw-gr then_o be_v the_o word_n body_n near_o unto_o the_o verb_n give_v than_o be_v the_o accusative_a case_n bread_n and_o then_o this_o word_n body_n be_v as_o well_o construe_v with_o the_o verb_n give_v as_o be_v that_o word_n bread_n and_o this_o make_v as_o well_o for_o we_o as_o for_o you_o &_o the_o case_n be_v equal_a on_o both_o part_n and_o so_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o answer_v this_o other_o day_n be_v good_a to_o wit_n that_o christ_n rather_o give_v his_o body_n than_o the_o bread_n d._n martyr_n say_v what_o you_o listen_v that_o this_o phrase_n make_v for_o your_o part_n the_o phrase_n itself_o do_v plain_o deny_v it_o and_o show_v evident_o that_o bread_n must_v be_v retain_v wherefore_o my_o argument_n remain_v invincible_a that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v some_o way_n give_v i_o deny_v not_o that_o which_o be_v give_v be_v both_o namely_o bread_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o why_o you_o exclude_v bread_n you_o have_v no_o reason_n for_o it_o and_o the_o form_n of_o speak_v do_v manifest_o make_v against_o you_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o equality_n of_o the_o case_n between_o us._n neither_o as_o i_o have_v say_v in_o a_o grammatical_a construction_n must_v the_o near_o
it_o walk_v beside_o as_o i_o say_v before_o the_o scripture_n show_v of_o this_o miracle_n but_o so_o do_v it_o not_o show_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o this_o be_v my_o chief_a principle_n against_o transubstantiation_n m._n morgan_n also_o augustine_n in_o the_o three_o tome_n 39_o such_o a_o body_n have_v christ_n as_o be_v put_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o therefore_o be_v of_o quantity_n luk._n 24._o 39_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ago_o christiano_n chap._n 24._o neither_o let_v we_o give_v ear_n unto_o they_o which_o deny_v that_o such_o a_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n rise_v again_o as_o be_v put_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n for_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v such_o a_o body_n he_o himself_o will_v not_o have_v say_v to_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o resurrection_n handle_v and_o see_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v no_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v and_o it_o be_v sacrilege_n to_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n he_o himself_o be_v the_o truth_n do_v make_v a_o lie_n in_o any_o thing_n nor_o let_v it_o move_v we_o that_o because_o it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o appéer_v sudden_o to_o his_o disciple_n the_o door_n be_v shut_v we_o shall_v therefore_o deny_v that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o humane_a body_n see_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o body_n we_o see_v that_o he_o enter_v in_o by_o the_o door_n when_o they_o be_v shut_v for_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a unto_o god_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o to_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o body_n and_o yet_o not_o only_o the_o lord_n himself_o before_o his_o passion_n walk_v after_o such_o a_o manner_n but_o he_o also_o make_v peter_n so_o to_o walk_v and_o so_o likewise_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o do_v with_o his_o body_n what_o he_o will_v if_o doubtless_o he_o be_v able_a before_o his_o passion_n to_o glorify_v that_o body_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v as_o bright_a as_o the_o sun_n why_o can_v he_o not_o also_o after_o his_o passion_n reduce_v the_o same_o in_o a_o moment_n to_o what_o thinness_n he_o will_v that_o he_o may_v enter_v in_o at_o the_o door_n fast_o shut_v you_o hear_v out_o of_o augustine_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n become_v very_o slender_a or_o subtle_a for_o his_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o two_o body_n be_v together_o in_o one_o place_n which_o be_v no_o less_o absurd_a unto_o nature_n than_o one_o very_a body_n to_o be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o d._n martyr_n this_o place_n contain_v in_o it_o three_o chief_a point_n first_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n arise_v such_o a_o one_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n a_o very_a humane_a body_n which_o be_v true_a it_o can_v not_o be_v without_o a_o quantity_n and_o the_o measure_n thereof_o the_o second_o point_n be_v that_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n do_v with_o his_o body_n what_o he_o will_v the_o which_o i_o easy_o hold_v with_o but_o yet_o he_o say_v not_o that_o he_o will_v have_v his_o body_n to_o be_v without_o a_o quantity_n or_o to_o be_v find_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o the_o three_o be_v that_o he_o can_v reduce_v the_o same_o in_o a_o moment_n of_o time_n to_o become_v as_o slender_a as_o he_o will_v that_o he_o may_v enter_v in_o at_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v by_o which_o manner_n of_o speech_n quantity_n be_v not_o take_v away_o but_o prove_v for_o thinness_n be_v a_o quality_n of_o a_o substance_n that_o have_v body_n and_o quantity_n wherefore_o it_o require_v a_o quantity_n and_o some_o measure_n of_o the_o same_o it_o be_v also_o remember_v that_o christ_n say_v handle_v and_o see_v etc._n etc._n but_o who_o be_v ignorant_a that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v handle_v have_v both_o quantity_n &_o measure_n of_o quantity_n wherefore_o by_o slenderness_n he_o understand_v agility_n yet_o not_o that_o which_o take_v away_o the_o body_n but_o as_o for_o that_o which_o follow_v to_o wit_n that_o two_o body_n be_v together_o i_o have_v already_o deny_v it_o because_o in_o some_o part_n the_o quantity_n of_o the_o wall_n may_v give_v place_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o the_o thinness_n of_o christ_n body_n to_o be_v add_v again_o the_o father_n which_o on_o this_o wise_a affirm_v this_o pierce_a through_o perhaps_o account_v it_o not_o for_o so_o great_a a_o absurdity_n in_o nature_n to_o have_v two_o body_n to_o be_v in_o one_o place_n as_o to_o have_v one_o body_n to_o be_v together_o in_o many_o place_n last_o i_o have_v already_o say_v that_o of_o this_o access_n of_o christ_n unto_o his_o apostle_n when_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v the_o scripture_n speak_v but_o it_o do_v not_o teach_v as_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v in_o many_o place_n together_o or_o without_o quantity_n and_o by_o this_o miracle_n there_o be_v nothing_o diminish_v as_o touch_v the_o verity_n of_o christ_n body_n neither_o be_v his_o proper_a quantity_n take_v away_o m._n morgan_n i_o allow_v not_o that_o which_o you_o last_o speak_v to_o wit_n that_o augustine_n by_o subtility_n understand_v agility_n because_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o swiftness_n of_o motion_n but_o the_o quality_n whereof_o augustine_n speak_v do_v serve_v to_o the_o pierce_a through_o of_o thick_a matter_n but_o now_o i_o will_v show_v that_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o a_o glorify_a body_n to_o penetrate_v when_o it_o will_v through_o most_o thick_a body_n for_o ambrose_n upon_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o luke_n say_v but_o thomas_n have_v cause_n to_o wonder_v when_o he_o see_v a_o body_n come_v in_o among_o they_o all_o place_n be_v fast_o shut_v by_o way_n unpossible_a to_o be_v enter_v be_v compass_v about_o with_o body_n &_o the_o place_n remain_v sound_n &_o therefore_o a_o marvel_n how_o a_o bodily_a nature_n convey_v itself_o in_o by_o a_o body_n that_o can_v not_o be_v pass_v through_o by_o a_o invisible_a entrance_n but_o by_o visible_a appearance_n easy_o to_o be_v touch_v and_o hard_o to_o be_v conceive_v final_o the_o disciple_n be_v trouble_v they_o think_v they_o see_v a_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o his_o resurrection_n say_v feel_v you_o and_o see_v 39_o lk_v 21._o 14._o 39_o for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v wherefore_o he_o pass_v not_o through_o that_o way_n shut_v up_o and_o unused_a by_o nature_n without_o a_o body_n 44_o 1._o co._n 15_o 44_o but_o by_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o bodily_a resurrection_n sith_o that_o which_o be_v touch_v be_v a_o body_n that_o which_o be_v handle_v be_v a_o body_n and_o in_o a_o body_n shall_v we_o rise_v for_o it_o be_v sow_v a_o natural_a body_n it_o shall_v arise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n but_o that_o shall_v be_v more_o subtle_a this_o be_v more_o gross_a as_o that_o which_o yet_o be_v compact_v with_o the_o quality_n of_o earthly_a corruption_n for_o how_o can_v that_o not_o be_v a_o body_n wherein_o remain_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o wound_n and_o print_n of_o the_o scar_n which_o the_o lord_n offer_v to_o be_v feel_v wherein_o he_o not_o only_o confirm_v faith_n but_o also_o whet_v devotion_n because_o it_o please_v he_o to_o carry_v into_o heaven_n the_o wound_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v for_o our_o sake_n but_o abolish_v they_o he_o will_v not_o that_o he_o may_v show_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n here_o do_v ambrose_n affirm_v that_o all_o glorify_a body_n have_v power_n to_o carry_v themselves_o through_o the_o thick_a body_n for_o he_o say_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o his_o bodily_a resurrection_n he_o pass_v through_o place_n which_o usual_o be_v unpossible_a to_o be_v pass_v and_o so_o we_o conclude_v here_o that_o it_o must_v be_v attribute_v unto_o glorify_a body_n that_o when_o they_o will_v they_o can_v penetrate_v through_o the_o thick_a body_n and_o you_o shall_v note_v that_o he_o say_v the_o body_n come_v in_o when_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v without_o breach_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v join_v together_o d._n martyr_n it_o serve_v not_o for_o my_o matter_n to_o dispute_v now_o of_o agility_n wherefore_o as_o concern_v this_o i_o grant_v that_o augustine_n by_o this_o latin_a word_n subtilitas_fw-la understand_v tenuitas_fw-la that_o be_v slenderness_n or_o thinness_n we_o will_v not_o strive_v for_o this_o matter_n but_o i_o will_v refer_v you_o to_o that_o which_o i_o say_v a_o little_a before_o to_o wit_n that_o subtility_n be_v a_o quality_n of_o quantity_n and_o do_v necessary_o suppose_v a_o measure_n of_o quantity_n then_o do_v i_o answer_v that_o this_o place_n of_o ambrose_n make_v
that_o righteousness_n be_v set_v before_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v also_o manifest_v and_o signify_v by_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o visible_a word_n of_o god_n therewithal_o come_v faith_n which_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o by_o it_o we_o do_v apprehend_v the_o righteousness_n that_o be_v show_v wherefore_o christ_n send_v his_o apostle_n say_v 15_o mar._n 16._o 15_o preach_v you_o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o creature_n and_o he_o add_v he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v in_o esai_n the_o 53._o chapter_n be_v say_v 11._o verse_n 11._o that_o with_o his_o knowledge_n he_o shall_v justify_v many_o this_o be_v the_o life_n eternal_a 3._o john_n 17._o 3._o that_o they_o may_v know_v thou_o the_o only_a god_n and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n 14._o col._n 2._o 14._o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v a_o new_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o therefore_o a_o new_a altar_n he_o fasten_v to_o his_o cross_n the_o handwriting_n of_o ordinance_n that_o be_v against_o we_o and_o he_o triumph_v over_o his_o enemy_n this_o be_v the_o triumphant_a chariot_n of_o christ_n the_o cross_n be_v the_o cup_n wherein_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v hang_v up_o it_o be_v give_v a_o price_n for_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o unless_o it_o have_v be_v better_a than_o the_o whole_a world_n it_o have_v not_o redeem_v the_o world_n here_o it_o shall_v behoove_v we_o to_o run_v through_o all_o the_o grief_n which_o the_o lord_n suffer_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o we_o but_o that_o be_v unpossible_a for_o even_o as_o wise_a painter_n do_v show_v unto_o the_o world_n more_o than_o they_o paint_v so_o do_v there_o here_o remain_v more_o to_o be_v consider_v of_o than_o can_v be_v speak_v even_o of_o those_o that_o shall_v have_v a_o iron_n voice_n a_o hundred_o tongue_n and_o a_o hundred_o mouth_n but_o yet_o will_v i_o distribute_v the_o grief_n of_o christ_n into_o certain_a principal_a part_n otherwise_o as_o mercy_n do_v abound_v so_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a that_o misery_n shall_v abound_v but_o unless_o that_o mercy_n have_v conquer_v the_o misery_n we_o shall_v still_o have_v be_v in_o misery_n the_o first_o calamity_n be_v to_o lose_v estimation_n the_o thief_n be_v prefer_v aboove_o christ_n 26._o mat._n 27._o 26._o barrabas_n be_v dismiss_v christ_n be_v account_v among_o the_o wicked_a an_o other_o calamity_n as_o touch_v bodily_a deliverance_n he_o be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o god_n help_n 46._o ibid._n 46._o my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o augustine_n unto_o honoratus_n make_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o new_a and_o old_a testament_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o holy_a man_n do_v not_o receive_v redemption_n that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o better_a resurrection_n therefore_o be_v they_o leave_v in_o death_n that_o they_o may_v have_v eternal_a life_n but_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n they_o be_v in_o jeopardy_n as_o touch_v their_o good_n &_o as_o touch_v the_o life_n of_o their_o body_n but_o they_o be_v deliver_v a_o hundred_o foul_v be_v restore_v they_o there_o be_v judge_n give_v for_o the_o delivery_n of_o they_o etc._n etc._n not_o that_o there_o be_v some_o in_o the_o old_a time_n which_o be_v not_o leave_v in_o death_n as_o abel_n nabaoth_n esay_n etc._n etc._n they_o have_v the_o portion_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o many_o also_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v sometime_o deliver_v but_o augustine_n speak_v as_o in_o the_o most_o part_n and_o of_o the_o public_a state_n and_o of_o the_o promise_n and_o therefore_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v forsake_v and_o true_o cry_v my_o god_n thou_o have_v forsake_v i_o and_o that_o the_o contrary_n may_v be_v know_v it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 22._o psalm_n the_o father_n cry_v and_o be_v deliver_v 5._o verse_n 5._o they_o cry_v and_o be_v not_o confound_v 6._o ibid._n 6._o but_o i_o be_o a_o worm_n and_o no_o man_n and_o the_o word_n of_o my_o fault_n be_v far_o from_o my_o salvation_n the_o three_o grief_n be_v suffer_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o ill_a minister_n namely_o of_o the_o jew_n of_o judas_n and_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o also_o for_o many_o evil_a and_o ungrateful_a person_n unto_o who_o that_o death_n shall_v bring_v no_o commodity_n the_o four_o he_o be_v forsake_v of_o his_o own_o moses_n when_o he_o see_v his_o rod_n turn_v into_o a_o serpent_n flee_v from_o it_o 3._o exod._n 4._o 3._o christ_n deliver_v many_o from_o sundry_a disease_n none_o step_v forth_o amongst_o his_o persecutor_n and_o say_v abstain_v you_o from_o this_o man_n for_o he_o be_v holy_a this_o or_o that_o have_v he_o do_v for_o i_o the_o five_o calamity_n they_o which_o remain_v and_o be_v present_a to_o behold_v increase_v his_o temptation_n they_o mock_v he_o they_o think_v he_o to_o be_v unjust_a and_o with_o who_o god_n be_v angry_a 6._o job._n 4._o 6._o so_o do_v eliphas_n the_o themanite_n think_v of_o job_n that_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n of_o god_n 3._o john_n 9_o 3._o so_o the_o apostle_n think_v of_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v blind_a so_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o melitum_fw-la judge_v of_o paul_n because_o of_o the_o viper_n 3._o acts._n 28._o 3._o but_o a_o extreme_a temptation_n be_v that_o when_o they_o say_v he_o trust_v in_o god_n 43._o mat._n 27._o 43._o let_v he_o deliver_v he_o let_v he_o save_v he_o if_o he_o will_v have_v he_o they_o doubt_v whether_o god_n love_v he_o and_o predestinate_v he_o we_o say_v o_o christ_n deliver_v we_o from_o this_o temptation_n at_o our_o death_n but_o when_o it_o come_v let_v we_o hold_v our_o peace_n let_v we_o imitate_v christ_n &_o say_v unto_o the_o father_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n also_o let_v we_o imitate_v the_o thief_n that_o have_v so_o great_a a_o faith_n who_o when_o all_o man_n deny_v he_o confess_v he_o 42._o luk._n 23._o 42._o remember_v i_o when_o thou_o come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n he_o answer_v he_o this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n o_o good_a jesu_n thou_o be_v fasten_v to_o the_o cross_n and_o yet_o thou_o will_v bring_v this_o man_n unto_o heaven_n how_o with_o what_o key_n will_v thou_o open_v undoubted_o great_a be_v the_o faith_n of_o this_o thief_n which_o hope_v in_o so_o miserable_a a_o christ_n let_v other_o wonder_v at_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o sun_n at_o the_o shake_n of_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o rent_v of_o the_o rock_n etc._n etc._n this_o do_v i_o marvel_v at_o that_o the_o thief_n heart_n can_v be_v in_o such_o wise_a inflame_v with_o so_o great_a a_o faith_n peter_n deny_v he_o upon_o the_o earth_n this_o man_n confess_v he_o upon_o the_o cross_n he_o have_v not_o see_v the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n christ_n have_v not_o say_v unto_o he_o i_o will_v make_v thou_o a_o fisher_n of_o man_n 17._o mark_n 1._o 17._o i_o will_v make_v thou_o sit_v upon_o the_o twelve_o throne_n and_o yet_o he_o not_o only_o beléeve_v but_o he_o also_o confess_v he_o open_v his_o sin_n and_o have_v a_o care_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o neighbour_n there_o be_v no_o king_n that_o assoon_o as_o he_o come_v into_o his_o kingdom_n take_v a_o thief_n to_o be_v his_o companion_n christ_n do_v this_o and_o do_v not_o defile_v paradise_n but_o rather_o make_v it_o more_o honourable_a because_o it_o have_v such_o a_o lord_n that_o can_v straightwaie_o so_o purify_v thief_n and_o harlot_n as_o they_o shall_v be_v meet_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o sixth_o affliction_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o his_o body_n be_v on_o every_o side_n torment_v 15._o esa_n 53._o 6._o psal_n 69._o 2._o &_o 15._o god_n in_o very_a deed_n do_v cause_n to_o fall_v upon_o he_o all_o our_o iniquity_n and_o punishment_n in_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v say_v hiphghibat_fw-la these_o be_v water_n which_o david_n say_v do_v pass_v through_o even_o unto_o the_o soul_n a_o most_o deep_a mire_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o steady_a ground_n howbeit_o if_o we_o will_v fruitful_o behold_v these_o thing_n every_o one_o of_o we_o will_v say_v my_o pride_n fasten_v the_o thorn_n to_o christ_n head_n my_o covetousness_n be_v his_o nail_n my_o leawdnes_n open_v his_o hart_n as_o a_o lance_n the_o universal_a corruption_n of_o all_o my_o sin_n do_v disquiet_v all_o his_o whole_a body_n when_o we_o behold_v all_o these_o thing_n i_o beseech_v you_o let_v we_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n look_v into_o the_o most_o sacred_a breast_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o incredible_a flame_n of_o charity_n and_o inestimable_a fire_n of_o his_o love_n whereby_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v be_v kindle_v if_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v
power_n or_o authority_n have_v a_o séelie_o man_n which_o shall_v perish_v within_o a_o while_n that_o he_o shall_v think_v himself_o to_o see_v more_o than_o have_v be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n tertullian_n tertullian_n tertullian_n in_o his_o apology_n the_o 46._o chapter_n teach_v that_o lycurgus_n desire_v to_o hang_v or_o to_o starve_v himself_o because_o the_o lacedaemonian_n have_v somewhat_o amend_v his_o law_n against_o his_o credit_n do_v the_o man_n that_o be_v but_o flesh_n and_o blood_n take_v it_o gréevouslie_o that_o his_o own_o citizen_n shall_v decree_v any_o thing_n and_o add_v unto_o the_o law_n which_o he_o make_v and_o will_v our_o good_a and_o mighty_a god_n quiet_o suffer_v the_o same_o to_o be_v do_v of_o man_n who_o be_v most_o far_o separate_v from_o his_o worthiness_n and_o wisdom_n oh_o shame_n and_o boldness_n that_o if_o we_o be_v wise_a shall_v never_o be_v suffer_v let_v heaven_n and_o earth_n pass_v 35._o mat._n 24._o 35._o but_o let_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n remain_v firm_a pure_a and_o inviolate_a for_o ever_o 6._o esa_n 40._o 6._o let_v all_o flesh_n as_o say_v esay_n be_v grass_n &_o the_o glory_n thereof_o as_o the_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n 7._o psal_n 12._o 7._o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o be_v most_o purify_v shall_v continue_v sound_a and_o sincere_a for_o ever_o 27._o luk._n 16._o 27._o let_v the_o rich_a man_n which_o be_v torment_v in_o the_o flame_n of_o hell_n desire_v that_o the_o dead_a may_v arise_v and_o admonish_v his_o brethren_n and_o such_o as_o he_o be_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n but_o let_v we_o that_o be_v by_o faith_n the_o choose_a generation_n of_o abraham_n according_a to_o his_o godly_a counsel_n hear_v moses_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n of_o who_o book_n while_o we_o ask_v counsel_n believe_v i_o we_o do_v not_o go_v unto_o the_o storehouse_n of_o a_o poor_a lord_n but_o unto_o the_o most_o plentiful_a and_o fruitful_a treasury_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n which_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a by_o any_o labour_n of_o we_o be_v it_o never_o so_o great_a to_o make_v empty_a and_o even_o as_o the_o nature_n be_v of_o a_o continual_a spring_v well_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n that_o it_o be_v not_o consume_v by_o continual_a draw_v but_o the_o water_n thereof_o be_v rather_o make_v both_o pure_a and_o better_a thereby_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n make_v more_o sweet_a and_o pleasant_a unto_o we_o in_o how_o much_o we_o more_o profound_o and_o continual_o labour_v in_o the_o same_o and_o as_o labour_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o draw_v out_o of_o outward_a water_n for_o the_o body_n so_o in_o peruse_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o grave_a judgement_n and_o spiritual_a attention_n which_o thing_n how_o justly_o and_o for_o how_o good_a cause_n they_o be_v require_v of_o we_o the_o decree_n of_o magistrate_n and_o edict_n of_o king_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v for_o while_o these_o thing_n be_v by_o crier_n or_o herald_n publish_v unto_o the_o people_n such_o a_o diligent_a ear_n and_o attentivenesse_n of_o hear_v be_v in_o they_o that_o stand_v by_o as_o there_o do_v nothing_o pass_v and_o escape_v they_o but_o it_o be_v well_o consider_v of_o from_o this_o commendable_a study_n and_o diligent_a endeavour_n do_v they_o which_o above_o measure_n exaggerate_v the_o darkness_n of_o the_o scripture_n excéedinglie_o draw_v back_o the_o young_a student_n of_o the_o gospel_n obscure_a the_o scripture_n feign_v to_o be_v obscure_a as_o who_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o veil_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n so_o far_o as_o our_o salvation_n require_v be_v not_o make_v plain_a by_o his_o spirit_n they_o which_o declare_v that_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v more_o than_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o cimmerian_n &_o that_o the_o obscureness_n of_o they_o be_v every_o where_n more_o than_o can_v be_v overcome_v say_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n must_v not_o be_v search_v out_o and_o while_o they_o make_v the_o efficasie_a of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o consist_v rather_o in_o recite_v and_o in_o understanding_n they_o of_o divine_a oracle_n and_o holy_a scripture_n make_v most_o shameful_a magic_n even_o we_o also_o do_v grant_v that_o man_n reason_n must_v be_v restrain_v within_o certain_a bound_n lest_o it_o shall_v judge_v of_o divine_a thing_n according_a to_o the_o imagination_n thereof_o howbeit_o no_v christian_n man_n ought_v to_o be_v hinder_v but_o that_o he_o may_v endeavour_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v to_o understand_v those_o thing_n whereof_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n have_v instruct_v us._n let_v no_o rashness_n be_v use_v in_o read_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o as_o touch_v the_o study_n and_o diligent_a inquisition_n thereof_o let_v no_o man_n wax_v cold_a or_o slack_a wherefore_o we_o easy_o grant_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v reverence_v and_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o must_v remember_v that_o the_o same_o be_v light_n shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n 19_o ●_o pet._n 1._o 19_o from_o which_o if_o we_o shall_v cast_v our_o eye_n never_o so_o little_a aside_o we_o shall_v at_o length_n perish_v in_o error_n and_o utter_a darkness_n but_o when_o the_o hater_n of_o the_o light_a jangle_n so_o much_o of_o the_o obscureness_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o themselves_o do_v think_v that_o they_o deem_v not_o amiss_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o they_o make_v he_o equal_a to_o the_o poete_n and_o philosopher_n of_o who_o the_o one_o sort_n by_o their_o intricate_a fable_n have_v so_o cover_v over_o with_o cloud_n &_o transform_v the_o plain_a and_o bright_a face_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v very_o far_o flee_v away_o from_o the_o eye_n of_o unfaithful_a man_n and_o the_o other_o by_o their_o riddle_n imagination_n number_n &_o atom_n have_v make_v their_o doctrine_n so_o intricate_a as_o all_o the_o whole_a life_n of_o man_n live_v he_o never_o so_o long_o can_v hardly_o be_v sufficient_a to_o expound_v the_o same_o but_o we_o have_v not_o find_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n our_o good_a father_n to_o be_v so_o great_o straiten_v and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v so_o simple_a neither_o have_v they_o so_o give_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o they_o may_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o mortal_a man_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n have_v not_o dally_v with_o we_o neither_o have_v it_o give_v scripture_n unto_o man_n out_o of_o which_o they_o may_v not_o reap_v any_o profit_n these_o thing_n let_v we_o leave_v to_o apollo_n who_o the_o grecian_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o he_o answer_v overthwartlie_a these_o be_v deceit_n of_o the_o devil_n not_o the_o livelie_a doctrine_n of_o our_o god_n or_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o know_v indeed_o that_o croesus_n ask_v thales_n what_o be_v the_o nature_n or_o definition_n of_o god_n who_o ever_o now_o and_o then_o desire_a space_n and_o delay_n to_o answer_v at_o some_o certain_a day_n neither_o can_v he_o at_o any_o time_n absolve_v the_o question_n propound_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o more_o he_o consider_v with_o himself_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n the_o less_o come_v to_o his_o remembrance_n what_o he_o shall_v say_v but_o those_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o true_a faith_n be_v able_a out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n not_o only_o to_o know_v god_n so_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a unto_o their_o salvation_n but_o can_v express_v he_o in_o excellent_a manner_n and_o holy_a work_n wherefore_o let_v none_o call_v we_o unto_o the_o father_n none_o unto_o the_o counsel_n none_o unto_o any_o man_n as_o though_o we_o can_v find_v a_o more_o plentiful_a light_n among_o they_o than_o proceed_v from_o the_o most_o bright_a day_n star_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n assure_o the_o father_n and_o the_o counsel_n have_v their_o discord_n their_o darkness_n their_o hard_a say_n their_o obscurity_n and_o incredible_a variableness_n i_o will_v not_o say_v inconstancy_n neither_o in_o read_v of_o they_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o meet_a with_o we_o as_o when_o we_o weigh_v &_o repeat_v with_o ourselves_o the_o word_n of_o god_n see_v it_o be_v not_o meet_v but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v more_o honour_n give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o to_o the_o word_n of_o man_n 28._o acts._n 8._o 28._o for_o if_o god_n send_v philip_n the_o evangelist_n for_o a_o aid_n unto_o the_o eunuch_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o candace_n read_v the_o prophet_n esaie_n he_o be_v yet_o no_o christian_a much_o more_o be_v he_o present_a by_o his_o spirit_n with_o they_o
in_o themselves_o as_o sometime_o they_o have_v which_o may_v further_o the_o preservation_n of_o man_n life_n and_o the_o true_a salvation_n of_o they_o wherefore_o see_v other_o faculty_n and_o science_n have_v take_v many_o thing_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o it_o nothing_o at_o all_o from_o other_o it_o be_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o right_n call_v most_o ancient_a which_o also_o the_o plainness_n thereof_o and_o simplicity_n without_o counterfeit_v join_v with_o a_o wonder_a gravity_n do_v declare_v and_o so_o ancient_a be_v the_o history_n therein_o rehearse_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o other_o writer_n be_v compare_v with_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v perceive_v to_o be_v do_v many_o age_n after_o but_o since_o all_o commendation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o antiquity_n therefore_o we_o will_v now_o have_v a_o regard_n to_o the_o utility_n thereof_o and_o as_o i_o hope_v will_v show_v that_o the_o same_o be_v far_o more_o plentiful_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n than_o can_v ever_o be_v find_v any_o where_o else_o what_o more_o plentiful_a fruit_n i_o beseech_v you_o can_v man_n of_o sober_a and_o sound_a judgement_n look_v for_o by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o worldly_a thing_n when_o they_o have_v very_o perfect_o attain_v to_o the_o same_o than_o that_o some_o knowledge_n of_o almighty_a god_n may_v at_o the_o length_n by_o the_o effect_n thereof_o lighten_v man_n understanding_n &_o that_o by_o those_o thing_n we_o may_v be_v holpen_v to_o sustain_v the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n in_o these_o knowledge_n there_o can_v be_v have_v or_o imagine_v a_o great_a profit_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v in_o many_o place_n set_v forth_o the_o natural_a work_n of_o god_n and_o do_v every_o where_o teach_v that_o god_n himself_o by_o his_o eternal_a power_n and_o singular_a providence_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n never_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o nature_n chance_n fortune_n form_n privation_n element_n imagination_n divide_v imagination_n a_o thing_n so_o small_a as_o can_v be_v divide_v atomy_n concord_n or_o discord_n as_o the_o principle_n of_o all_o thing_n no_o doubt_n but_o the_o knowledge_n of_o man_n be_v busy_v in_o consider_v the_o effect_n of_o god_n but_o how_o seldom_o herein_o be_v there_o recourse_n unto_o god_n himself_o his_o goodness_n counsel_n and_o wisdom_n indeed_o natural_a knowledge_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v somewhat_o curious_a in_o search_v out_o the_o power_n of_o thing_n and_o somewhat_o more_o subtle_a and_o diligent_a in_o find_v out_o the_o secret_n of_o nature_n but_o as_o touch_v the_o end_n itself_o to_o wit_n that_o god_n may_v be_v true_o know_v by_o the_o effect_n and_o that_o we_o may_v well_o and_o godly_a use_n his_o creature_n if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o divinity_n it_o be_v far_o more_o negligent_a yea_o and_o in_o a_o manner_n blind_a and_o dumb_a final_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v speak_v of_o a_o certain_a notable_a and_o wonder_a kind_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n be_v overcome_v and_o the_o accustom_a course_n of_o thing_n be_v cut_v off_o wherein_o god_n both_o more_o proper_o and_o more_o express_o shine_v than_o in_o the_o daily_a and_o common_a succession_n of_o thing_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o a_o continual_a use_n thereof_o be_v become_v of_o small_a estimation_n and_o by_o a_o word_n now_o receive_v these_o thing_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v call_v miracle_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n indeed_o but_o that_o they_o have_v common_o make_v mortal_a man_n to_o wonder_v altogether_o at_o they_o but_o the_o work_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v keep_v secret_a in_o natural_a knowledge_n for_o there_o shall_v you_o never_o read_v of_o that_o first_o creation_n of_o thing_n of_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n of_o breathe_v the_o breath_n of_o life_n by_o god_n into_o the_o clay_n of_o our_o body_n of_o the_o godheade_n speak_v open_o with_o man_n of_o the_o sea_n give_v place_n unto_o man_n pass_v through_o the_o deep_a thereof_o so_o as_o it_o make_v wall_n of_o water_n both_o on_o the_o right_a side_n and_o the_o leave_v for_o they_o that_o pass_v through_o of_o the_o stand_n still_o of_o heaven_n and_o of_o stay_v the_o perpetual_a turn_n about_o thereof_o from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n of_o god_n to_o be_v make_v a_o man_n of_o a_o virgin_n to_o be_v a_o mother_n of_o the_o raise_n from_o life_n they_o that_o be_v dead_a and_o of_o man_n grieve_v with_o desperate_a and_o incurable_a disease_n to_o be_v cure_v by_o a_o wonder_a efficacy_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n these_o marvellous_a thing_n without_o doubt_n god_n will_v have_v we_o to_o know_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n lest_o perhaps_o we_o may_v doubt_v that_o all_o his_o virtue_n and_o power_n be_v so_o spend_v and_o consume_v in_o bring_v forth_o and_o preserve_v of_o natural_a thing_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a yet_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n great_a and_o more_o excellent_a this_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n do_v not_o philosophy_n teach_v but_o only_o behold_v the_o accustom_a course_n of_o nature_n assure_o it_o be_v no_o small_a comfort_n unto_o godly_a man_n bring_v what_o fruit_n the_o doctrine_n of_o providence_n bring_v to_o understande_v that_o god_n be_v the_o prince_n and_o author_n of_o nature_n for_o since_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n while_o they_o consider_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o good_a father_n they_o fear_v the_o power_n of_o no_o creature_n since_o they_o know_v for_o a_o certainty_n that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bring_v upon_o they_o any_o trouble_n or_o sorrow_n but_o somuch_o as_o god_n the_o guide_n thereof_o have_v decree_v to_o bring_v upon_o they_o for_o their_o salvation_n this_o be_v the_o singular_a fruit_n which_o be_v have_v of_o the_o saint_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o natural_a thing_n but_o how_o much_o more_o ample_a be_v this_o if_o they_o be_v persuade_v with_o a_o constant_a faith_n that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o heavenly_a father_n be_v infinite_a whereby_o he_o be_v able_a still_o to_o do_v and_o produce_v many_o yea_o infinite_a thing_n otherwise_o than_o they_o be_v in_o the_o common_a course_n of_o nature_n hereby_o godly_a man_n be_v incorage_v become_v of_o a_o excellent_a hope_n even_o in_o adversity_n in_o peril_n valiant_a even_o in_o the_o cross_n itself_o joyful_a of_o a_o invincible_a courage_n and_o altogether_o without_o fear_n when_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n or_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n they_o must_v abide_v any_o conflict_n hereof_o spring_v that_o noble_a speech_n of_o daniel_n fellow_n behold_v our_o god_n who_o we_o worship_v be_v mighty_a to_o save_v we_o from_o the_o furnace_n of_o burn_a fire_n and_o shall_v pluck_v we_o out_o of_o thy_o hand_n o_o king_n 27._o psal_n 27._o hereupon_o do_v david_n with_o a_o invincible_a mind_n sing_v the_o lord_n be_v my_o right_n and_o my_o salvation_n who_o shall_v i_o fear_v the_o lord_n be_v the_o strength_n of_o my_o life_n of_o who_o shall_v i_o be_v afraid_a though_o a_o host_n of_o man_n besiege_v i_o yet_o shall_v not_o my_o heart_n be_v afraid_a though_o there_o rise_v up_o war_n against_o i_o yet_o will_v i_o put_v my_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o again_o although_o i_o shall_v walk_v through_o the_o valley_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n i_o will_v fear_v no_o evil_n 3._o psa_fw-la 23._o 3._o final_o by_o this_o mean_n do_v paul_n say_v 34._o rom._n 8._o 34._o who_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n shall_v affliction_n shall_v penury_n shall_v persecution_n shall_v hunger_n shall_v nakedness_n shall_v peril_n shall_v the_o sword_n as_o it_o be_v write_v for_o thy_o sake_n we_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o death_n all_o the_o day_n long_o we_o be_v account_v as_o sheep_n appoint_v to_o the_o slaughter_n but_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o overcome_v through_o he_o that_o love_v us._n for_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n such_o thing_n do_v the_o child_n of_o god_n teach_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n pronounce_v with_o true_a boast_n that_o god_n suffer_v not_o nature_n as_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o the_o world_n teach_v to_o go_v forward_o according_a to_o those_o law_n which_o he_o at_o the_o very_a beginning_n appoint_v thereunto_o but_o that_o he_o direct_v temper_v and_o rule_v all_o thing_n at_o every_o instant_n according_a to_o his_o own_o pleasure_n &_o that_o he_o
and_o now_o they_o will_v remain_v if_o they_o be_v so_o instruct_v by_o their_o captain_n god_n will_v not_o that_o all_o his_o faithful_a one_o shall_v die_v at_o once_o no_o man_n lawful_o fly_v away_o go_v unto_o the_o enemy_n camp_n neither_o for_o this_o cause_n do_v he_o fly_v that_o he_o may_v escape_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n nay_o rather_o he_o commit_v himself_o unto_o he_o firm_o assure_v himself_o that_o whensoever_o need_n shall_v require_v he_o will_v lay_v down_o his_o life_n and_o blood_n for_o christ_n his_o cause_n and_o then_o they_o believe_v that_o need_n require_v when_o they_o be_v come_v into_o the_o magistrate_n power_n when_o they_o be_v move_v by_o god_n to_o tarry_v still_o when_o by_o reason_n of_o any_o vocation_n they_o be_v so_o tie_v as_o they_o may_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a fly_v away_o but_o so_o long_o as_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n shall_v press_v they_o they_o doubt_v not_o but_o in_o fly_v they_o serve_v god_n see_v they_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o lord_n both_o by_o commandment_n and_o by_o example_n the_o example_n also_o of_o the_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o father_n agree_v thereunto_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o any_o shall_v except_v that_o these_o be_v particular_a privilege_n or_o extraordinary_a prerogative_n because_o this_o than_o have_v place_n in_o the_o action_n of_o the_o saint_n when_o they_o be_v commend_v by_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n although_o they_o be_v do_v against_o some_o general_a precept_n which_o thing_n must_v not_o be_v imitate_v of_o we_o who_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o general_a commandment_n a_o example_n whereof_o be_v the_o fact_n of_o abraham_n when_o he_o will_v kill_v his_o son_n which_o he_o do_v against_o that_o law_n of_o god_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v and_o this_o deed_n be_v commend_v 2._o gen._n 22._o 2._o because_o abraham_n be_v drive_v thereunto_o by_o a_o peculiar_a motion_n and_o he_o obay_v without_o delay_n which_o nevertheless_o behoove_v he_o alone_o to_o do_v other_o be_v straitlie_o bind_v to_o the_o common_a precept_n but_o the_o example_n of_o fly_v by_o holy_a man_n set_v before_o we_o see_v we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o repugnant_a but_o rather_o agreeable_a to_o holy_a writ_n we_o may_v not_o condemn_v they_o which_o judge_v that_o they_o themselves_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o same_o for_o christian_a charity_n be_v neither_o violate_v nor_o yet_o receive_v any_o detriment_n by_o fly_v away_o because_o it_o oftentimes_o happen_v that_o man_n fly_v where_o neither_o our_o presence_n can_v profit_v they_o that_o tarry_v nor_o yet_o our_o absence_n hurt_v they_o even_o as_o it_o be_v say_v before_o 15._o mar._n 16._o 15._o furthermore_o if_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v to_o go_v into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n that_o the_o faith_n may_v be_v spread_v far_o and_o wide_a why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v lawful_a to_o change_v place_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o faith_n already_o receive_v &_o obtain_v it_o belong_v no_o less_o unto_o charity_n to_o preserve_v faith_n receive_v the_o same_o be_v the_o pledge_n of_o holy_a doctrine_n than_o it_o do_v to_o increase_v the_o same_o neither_o be_v it_o against_o charity_n to_o leave_v they_o that_o be_v near_o unto_o we_o after_o such_o a_o manner_n and_o fashion_n as_o we_o have_v aboove_o declare_v for_o christ_n teach_v in_o the_o 10._o of_o matthew_n 37._o verse_n 37._o that_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o brethren_n and_o such_o like_a must_v be_v leave_v if_o they_o be_v a_o let_v unto_o our_o salvation_n or_o faith_n the_o same_o do_v christ_n teach_v by_o his_o precept_n in_o the_o 5._o of_o matthew_n 29._o verse_n 29._o that_o there_o be_v no_o member_n in_o one_o body_n so_o noble_a which_o must_v not_o be_v cut_v off_o if_o it_o be_v offensive_a that_o be_v if_o it_o be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o our_o salvation_n wherefore_o if_o in_o fly_v we_o observe_v due_a circumstance_n we_o shall_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n violate_v christian_a charity_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o a_o man_n shall_v object_v that_o charity_n be_v therefore_o violate_v by_o fly_v away_o charity_n that_o flight_n be_v not_o against_o charity_n because_o we_o have_v less_o care_n of_o our_o neighbour_n soul_n than_o of_o their_o body_n for_o to_o who_o shall_v it_o be_v lawful_a without_o sin_n to_o lay_v open_a a_o other_o man_n body_n unto_o the_o peril_n of_o death_n or_o to_o leave_v it_o to_o be_v tear_v of_o wolf_n thief_n &_o murderer_n assure_o charity_n here_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v present_a with_o our_o neighbour_n and_o to_o help_v they_o which_o be_v certain_a it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o by_o fly_a charity_n be_v break_v for_o in_o fly_v we_o forsake_v our_o neighbour_n and_o lay_v open_a their_o soul_n unto_o the_o danger_n of_o damnation_n while_o we_o leave_v they_o in_o the_o power_n of_o pharisées_fw-fr hypocrite_n and_o false_a teacher_n of_o who_o they_o be_v deprive_v of_o our_o help_n be_v easy_o seduce_v and_o lose_v héereunto_o first_o i_o answer_v the_o they_o which_o fly_v do_v not_o offer_v unto_o peril_n the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o tarry_v behind_o for_o persecution_n be_v begin_v they_o be_v already_o lay_v open_a thereto_o whereunto_o their_o fly_v away_o give_v no_o occasion_n further_o this_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o they_o which_o fly_v be_v not_o always_o apt_a to_o help_v and_o save_v they_o that_o remain_v in_o trial_n here_o many_o be_v deceive_v think_v that_o all_o they_o which_o refuse_v to_o fly_v be_v fit_a for_o to_o help_v the_o brethren_n not_o consider_v that_o they_o themselves_o which_v tarry_v whereas_o otherwise_o they_o may_v fly_v do_v oftentimes_o by_o take_v a_o false_a oath_n procure_v themselves_o great_a evil_n who_o if_o they_o have_v flee_v away_o shall_v have_v bear_v no_o discommodity_n at_o all_o for_o if_o they_o tarry_v they_o themselves_o be_v weak_a have_v need_v rather_o of_o other_o man_n labour_n and_o help_v so_o as_o they_o have_v more_o need_n to_o be_v confirm_v themselves_o than_o they_o be_v able_a to_o confirm_v other_o wherefore_o the_o fly_a of_o these_o man_n nothing_o at_o all_o hurt_v the_o weak_a and_o to_o the_o strong_a that_o remain_v it_o be_v also_o profitable_a because_o they_o be_v rid_v of_o the_o charge_n and_o care_n of_o their_o salvation_n rejoice_v excéedinglie_o that_o they_o have_v escape_v &_o that_o they_o be_v go_v thither_o where_o by_o consolation_n and_o good_a example_n they_o may_v be_v more_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v that_o if_o at_o any_o time_n there_o shall_v be_v any_o need_n they_o may_v return_v whence_o they_o depart_v renew_v battle_n with_o the_o adversary_n and_o succeed_v in_o the_o place_n of_o they_o which_o by_o glorious_a martyrdom_n be_v depart_v unto_o christ_n for_o this_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v do_v in_o city_n besiege_v that_o they_o which_o be_v the_o weak_a sort_n otherwise_o man_n of_o good_a hope_n and_o noble_a may_v be_v send_v into_o some_o safe_a place_n for_o a_o time_n that_o be_v make_v more_o strong_a through_o age_n and_o industry_n may_v afterward_o in_o due_a time_n be_v a_o succour_n unto_o their_o country_n and_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o be_v safe_a from_o danger_n may_v through_o the_o fear_n that_o be_v have_v of_o they_o deliver_v those_o strong_a man_n which_o valiant_o fight_v for_o their_o country_n as_o touch_v they_o which_o so_o great_o excel_v in_o learning_n valiant_a courage_n and_o magnanimity_n as_o they_o be_v fit_n both_o to_o build_v up_o and_o also_o to_o defend_v godliness_n it_o seem_v we_o may_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n answer_v first_o if_o they_o certain_o perceive_v that_o by_o their_o tarry_n they_o may_v bring_v fruit_n and_o by_o their_o go_v away_o offence_n and_o ruin_n undoubted_o they_o ought_v to_o tarry_v but_o if_o they_o understande_v as_o many_o time_n they_o do_v that_o if_o they_o be_v take_v of_o tyrant_n they_o shall_v privily_o die_v or_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o use_n of_o their_o mouth_n and_o tongue_n as_o they_o may_v not_o with_o one_o small_a word_n edify_v the_o church_n but_o contrariwise_o do_v think_v that_o if_o they_o fly_v they_o shall_v by_o their_o write_n and_o speech_n very_o much_o further_a the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v hereunto_o call_v by_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o ought_v to_o take_v their_o flight_n if_o the_o way_n of_o fly_v be_v open_a without_o offence_n which_o i_o therefore_o add_v because_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o fly_v if_o either_o we_o be_v cast_v in_o prison_n or_o else_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o appear_v before_o the_o magistrate_n upon_o promise_n or_o surety_n for_o in_o these_o case_n we_o be_v
that_o of_o a_o dangerous_a disease_n neither_o do_v it_o now_o any_o less_o grieve_v i_o when_o i_o perceive_v that_o your_o sickness_n which_o trouble_v you_o be_v a_o quarten_v ague_n i_o for_o my_o part_n be_o able_a to_o say_v much_o of_o the_o untowardness_n and_o as_o it_o be_v rebellious_a obstinacy_n of_o this_o disease_n against_o medicine_n and_o physician_n as_o he_o that_o have_v two_o sundry_a time_n strive_v therewith_o the_o chief_a thing_n be_v that_o they_o which_o be_v in_o this_o state_n must_v use_v great_a &_o long_a patience_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o be_v not_o to_o seek_v in_o matter_n without_o see_v it_o be_v abundant_o enough_o plant_v within_o your_o mind_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n but_o i_o together_o with_o many_o other_o have_v two_o cause_n to_o sorrow_n for_o this_o your_o sickness_n the_o one_o be_v because_o you_o yourself_o be_v break_v and_o weaken_v which_o can_v otherwise_o be_v especial_o in_o a_o slender_a body_n now_o in_o a_o manner_n dry_v up_o with_o labour_n and_o the_o other_o cause_n be_v that_o your_o labour_n in_o preach_v and_o write_v be_v discontinue_v to_o the_o great_a detriment_n of_o all_o christian_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o much_o enemy_n unto_o this_o disease_n as_o be_v study_n and_o care_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o disquiet_v not_o only_o i_o but_o all_o that_o be_v true_a godly_a man_n howbeit_o since_o the_o case_n so_o stand_v it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o pray_v as_o earnest_o as_o we_o can_v that_o you_o may_v spéedilie_o be_v restore_v to_o your_o former_a health_n and_o it_o be_v your_o part_n with_o all_o diligence_n to_o forbear_v from_o all_o thing_n that_o may_v do_v you_o hurt_v especial_o from_o earnest_a study_n and_o care_n of_o weighty_a matter_n whereby_o the_o humour_n of_o melancholy_n from_o whence_o this_o fever_n be_v stir_v up_o be_v so_o force_a and_o strike_v as_o it_o settle_v even_o into_o the_o marrow_n of_o the_o bone_n very_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o since_o it_o have_v so_o seem_v good_a unto_o god_n you_o shall_v much_o rather_o quiet_v yourself_o for_o certain_a day_n or_o month_n than_o either_o to_o die_v which_o god_n forbid_v to_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o the_o godly_a or_o else_o to_o the_o incredible_a hindrance_n of_o the_o church_n to_o live_v the_o rest_n of_o your_o life_n altogether_o with_o a_o feeble_a and_o consume_v body_n and_o mind_n wherefore_o take_v heed_n you_o offend_v not_o either_o against_o yourself_o or_o against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n yesterday_o there_o come_v hither_o certain_a messenger_n send_v from_o the_o english_a gentleman_n which_o live_v at_o strasborough_n which_o do_v certify_v that_o their_o queen_n die_v the_o 16._o day_n of_o november_n marie_n the_o death_n of_o queen_n marie_n and_o that_o the_o most_o noble_a elizabeth_n be_v succéede_v in_o the_o kingdom_n &_o that_o with_o a_o full_a consent_n of_o all_o state_n for_o by_o chance_n they_o be_v gather_v together_o at_o this_o time_n from_o all_o the_o part_n of_o england_n to_o the_o assembly_n which_o they_o common_o call_v the_o parliament_n now_o must_v we_o desire_v god_n that_o this_o alteration_n of_o the_o state_n may_v turn_v happy_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a gospel_n i_o know_v that_o you_o and_o your_o godly_a church_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o do_v what_o in_o you_o lie_v perhaps_o the_o time_n be_v now_o wherein_o the_o wall_n of_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v build_v up_o again_o in_o that_o kingdom_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o martyr_n may_v seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v spend_v in_o vain_a other_o news_n than_o this_o i_o have_v not_o save_v that_o my_o book_n be_v under_o the_o press_n martyr_n gardiner_n book_n confute_v by_o peter_n martyr_n wherein_o i_o have_v discover_v and_o confute_v all_o the_o false_a argument_n and_o shift_n of_o stephen_n gardiner_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n touch_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o as_o i_o hope_v have_v happen_v in_o very_o good_a season_n for_o it_o will_v be_v profitable_a especial_o at_o this_o time_n that_o the_o english_a papist_n may_v understande_v that_o that_o book_n be_v not_o invincible_a as_o hitherto_o they_o have_v brag_v fare_v you_o well_o and_o long_o may_v you_o live_v unto_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o church_n i_o salute_v all_o the_o minister_n and_o also_o beza_n and_o the_o marquis_n from_o zuricke_n the_o first_o of_o december_n to_o a_o certain_a friend_n it_o be_v even_o in_o deed_n as_o you_o write_v right_o worthy_a man_n and_o dear_a belove_a friend_n in_o christ_n and_o i_o be_o every_o day_n teach_v more_o and_o more_o by_o experience_n itself_o that_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n of_o that_o most_o godly_a young_a man_n edward_n king_n of_o england_n belong_v unto_o many_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bring_v great_a harm_n than_o many_o do_v now_o perceive_v but_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n grant_v that_o within_o a_o while_n they_o feel_v it_o not_o to_o their_o great_a sorrow_n but_o i_o which_o after_o some_o sort_n have_v be_v partaker_n of_o these_o matter_n if_o i_o shall_v not_o bitter_o lament_v for_o the_o miserable_a case_n of_o our_o excellent_a brethren_n and_o for_o their_o most_o constant_a danger_n aswell_o of_o mind_n as_o of_o body_n and_o shall_v not_o every_o day_n shed_v just_a tear_n for_o the_o mishap_n of_o that_o people_n very_o i_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o stone_n and_o piece_n of_o lead_n while_o they_o be_v now_o grievous_o afflict_v lay_v open_a on_o every_o side_n to_o offence_n burn_v every_o hour_n with_o the_o fire_n of_o temptation_n while_o with_o extreme_a ungodliness_n of_o hypocrite_n that_o church_n be_v suppress_v and_o tread_v under_o foot_n how_o may_v it_o be_v that_o i_o and_o such_o as_o i_o be_o can_v sorrow_n temperate_o and_o moderate_o while_o i_o teach_v in_o that_o country_n there_o be_v very_o many_o learner_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o very_o towards_o scholar_n in_o divinity_n who_o harvest_n be_v welnéere_o ripe_a who_o now_o against_o their_o will_n i_o see_v either_o miserable_a wander_a in_o uncertain_a habitation_n or_o else_o most_o unhappilie_o subvert_v if_o they_o tarry_v there_o be_v in_o that_o kingdom_n a_o great_a sort_n of_o most_o sincere_a and_o learned_a bishop_n who_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o most_o straight_a prison_n even_o now_o ready_a to_o be_v pluck_v away_o as_o thief_n unto_o death_n in_o that_o nation_n be_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o a_o noble_a church_n and_o with_o a_o few_o year_n labour_v the_o holy_a building_n be_v in_o good_a forwardness_n and_o better_a and_o better_a be_v every_o day_n hope_v for_o but_o now_o final_o unless_o god_n put_v to_o his_o help_a hand_n it_o be_v like_a to_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o step_n of_o godliness_n in_o outward_a profession_n will_v be_v leave_v these_o and_o other_o thing_n suffer_v not_o my_o heart_n to_o be_v at_o rest_n nor_o my_o mind_n at_o quiet_a wherefore_o i_o beseech_v god_n with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o he_o will_v remit_v some_o part_n of_o the_o punishment_n and_o for_o jesus_n christ_n his_o sake_n will_v forbear_v to_o pour_v out_o his_o great_a wrath_n otherwise_o we_o shall_v be_v oppress_v with_o the_o heap_n of_o infinite_a evil_n and_o that_o which_o i_o do_v so_o earnest_o wish_v i_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o in_o like_a manner_n will_v desire_v of_o god_n that_o yet_o at_o the_o length_n he_o will_v take_v pity_n of_o afflict_a england_n which_o i_o very_o well_o know_v do_v before_o this_o calamity_n very_o much_o favour_v you_o and_o other_o godly_a man_n and_o good_a learning_n and_o whereas_o you_o admonish_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v here_o seek_v and_o maintain_v concord_n with_o they_o that_o teach_v i_o judge_v that_o you_o speak_v the_o same_o of_o love_n and_o good_a will_n and_o i_o assure_v you_o in_o deed_n that_o so_o much_o as_o in_o i_o lie_v peace_n and_o charity_n shall_v remain_v inviolate_a i_o have_v be_v always_o of_o mild_a nature_n and_o have_v very_o much_o love_v peace_n and_o tranquillity_n wherefore_o i_o mind_n not_o especial_o now_o in_o my_o old_a age_n to_o change_v my_o nature_n welnéere_o all_o the_o professor_n of_o good_a art_n and_o learning_n do_v make_v much_o of_o i_o and_o i_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v love_n they_o in_o the_o same_o wise_a do_v the_o case_n stand_v towards_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n save_v that_o i_o perceive_v some_o of_o they_o bear_v i_o not_o so_o good_a will_n yet_o nevertheless_o i_o cease_v not_o to_o have_v they_o in_o the_o same_o estimation_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o the_o holy_a
ministry_n and_o purpose_n so_o to_o continue_v wherefore_o i_o will_v seek_v and_o maintain_v peace_n as_o you_o admonish_v i_o yet_o so_o nevertheless_o that_o when_o occasion_n be_v offer_v not_o a_o snatch_a or_o seek_v occasion_n but_o that_o which_o be_v just_a and_o necessary_a i_o will_v teach_v and_o speak_v that_o which_o i_o judge_v true_a concern_v that_o matter_n wherein_o i_o know_v they_o disagree_v from_o i_o and_o that_o with_o such_o moderation_n and_o temperance_n as_o i_o will_v not_o gréeve_v or_o bitter_o taunt_v any_o man_n that_o be_v of_o a_o other_o judgement_n but_o as_o for_o command_v i_o to_o silence_n or_o recantation_n neither_o have_v i_o hitherto_o suffer_v it_o neither_o will_v i_o now_o suffer_v it_o for_o i_o judge_v that_o to_o be_v most_o unworthy_a for_o a_o godly_a man_n and_o he_o that_o public_o teach_v the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o long_o as_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o can_v be_v show_v to_o be_v otherwise_o than_o i_o believe_v for_o when_o that_o shall_v appear_v and_o i_o may_v know_v it_o so_o to_o be_v i_o will_v not_o for_o any_o cause_n delay_n to_o testify_v the_o truth_n and_o open_o to_o confess_v it_o these_o thing_n worthy_a sir_n and_o as_o you_o write_v my_o most_o near_o join_v brother_n in_o christ_n i_o speak_v familiar_o to_o you_o as_o you_o see_v and_o do_v sincere_o open_v my_o mind_n and_o thought_n even_o as_o it_o be_v affect_v for_o i_o have_v such_o a_o confidence_n in_o your_o justice_n and_o equity_n as_o i_o never_o will_n or_o can_v seem_v to_o refuse_v your_o own_o self_n for_o a_o right_n and_o indifferent_a judge_n fare_v you_o well_o and_o live_v you_o happy_o to_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n i_o will_v to_o god_n i_o may_v once_o at_o the_o length_n see_v you_o and_o talk_v with_o you_o according_a to_o my_o earnest_a desire_n from_o strasborough_n the_o 26._o of_o june_n 1554._o to_o master_n john_n caluin_n i_o be_o glad_a that_o the_o little_a book_n of_o defence_n of_o the_o consent_n of_o our_o church_n as_o touch_v the_o controversy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n geneva_n a_o consent_n of_o the_o helvetian_a church_n with_o the_o church_n of_o geneva_n be_v now_o come_v forth_o and_o i_o wish_v that_o the_o same_o may_v bring_v abundance_n of_o fruit_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o for_o the_o godliness_n and_o instruction_n wherewith_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v furnish_v it_o will_v bring_v commodity_n unto_o the_o weak_a comfort_n unto_o the_o learned_a and_o much_o stomach_n and_o hatred_n to_o they_o that_o be_v obstinate_a neither_o will_v this_o be_v any_o new_a thing_n because_o such_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o i_o give_v counsel_n be_v change_v i_o understand_v the_o reason_n which_o you_o have_v make_v in_o your_o epistle_n do_v not_o only_o take_v it_o well_o but_o in_o very_o good_a part_n but_o yet_o this_o have_v i_o marvel_v at_o and_o i_o will_v with_o a_o glad_a mind_n hear_v it_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o n._n have_v allow_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o you_o write_v for_o i_o love_v the_o man_n because_o of_o other_o his_o goodly_a gift_n but_o in_o this_o controversy_n which_o we_o be_v now_o in_o hand_n with_o he_o have_v always_o seem_v unto_o i_o to_o be_v more_o than_o enough_o a_o right_a saxon_a and_o to_o carry_v a_o contrary_a mind_n unto_o the_o truth_n which_o we_o defend_v of_o what_o judgement_n our_o man_n will_v be_v i_o know_v not_o we_o think_v good_a to_o send_v both_o letter_n and_o a_o book_n unto_o marpachius_n marpachius_n marpachius_n for_o you_o do_v write_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o may_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v take_v in_o good_a part_n of_o man_n which_o be_v of_o a_o sound_a judgement_n but_o marvel_v not_o that_o there_o be_v some_o slackness_n in_o the_o answer_n of_o your_o letter_n for_o there_o be_v assembly_n have_v after_o your_o letter_n be_v deliver_v and_o marpachius_n himself_o be_v absent_v a_o whole_a month_n which_o return_v four_o day_n since_o he_o go_v into_o his_o own_o country_n and_o in_o return_v make_v his_o journey_n by_o zuricke_n and_o salute_v i_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o those_o minister_n in_o talk_n he_o be_v gentle_a and_o courteous_a enough_o but_o exceed_a obstinate_a in_o his_o opinion_n thus_o much_o have_v he_o profit_v that_o he_o include_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o bread_n but_o say_v that_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o communicant_n be_v most_o true_o and_o in_o very_a deed_n to_o be_v affirm_v and_o that_o such_o a_o presence_n as_o wicked_a man_n and_o the_o unworthy_a eater_n do_v feed_v thereon_o which_o plain_o show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o attribute_v the_o receive_n unto_o faith_n unless_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o lively_a &_o wholesome_a receive_n as_o though_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a other_o true_a and_o real_a eat_n as_o they_o call_v it_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o wicked_a also_o do_v use_v but_o hereof_o i_o speak_v too_o much_o and_o especial_o with_o you_o which_o in_o one_o word_n understande_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n as_o touch_v n._n n._n which_o you_o write_v of_o i_o also_o do_v both_o know_v and_o sorrow_n that_o it_o be_v so_o he_o do_v not_o sincere_o admit_v the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n and_o as_o i_o can_v perceive_v he_o agree_v altogether_o with_o philip_n yea_o and_o he_o express_v many_o thing_n which_o even_o philip_n will_v not_o subscribe_v unto_o he_o which_o i_o judge_v meet_v at_o this_o time_n to_o be_v keep_v in_o silence_n but_o i_o see_v no_o just_a reason_n that_o can_v be_v allege_v why_o he_o shall_v deny_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v the_o element_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o reason_n although_o he_o can_v show_v yet_o will_v i_o judge_v that_o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o give_v credit_n unto_o the_o divine_a scripture_n than_o unto_o he_o whereby_o as_o well_o the_o bread_n as_o the_o cup_n be_v commend_v as_o symbol_n or_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o will_v i_o grant_v unto_o he_o that_o the_o very_a action_n itself_o that_o be_v the_o eat_n and_o drink_v be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o most_o sweet_a food_n of_o soul_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a restore_n of_o our_o nature_n which_o figure_n we_o receive_v by_o communicate_v in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o give_v to_o be_v meat_n i_o so_o understand_v he_o as_o though_o in_o speak_v this_o he_o stand_v against_o they_o which_o vain_o babble_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v let_v pass_v into_o the_o belly_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n by_o the_o tooth_n tongue_n roof_n of_o the_o mouth_n and_o by_o the_o jaw_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v any_o otherwise_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n very_o this_o be_o i_o most_o assure_v of_o that_o whatsoever_o nourishment_n or_o spiritual_a food_n be_v receive_v of_o we_o by_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v have_v by_o his_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n which_o heretofore_o be_v nail_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o sake_n and_o now_o fit_v in_o heaven_n compass_v about_o with_o the_o high_a glory_n for_o whatsoever_o food_n there_o be_v as_o doubtless_o there_o be_v very_o much_o draw_v unto_o we_o by_o faith_n who_o will_v say_v that_o that_o faith_n be_v carry_v unto_o a_o feign_a or_o fantastical_a body_n true_o none_o that_o regard_v the_o truth_n and_o honour_n of_o faith_n will_v so_o affirm_v for_o faith_n apprehend_v thing_n even_o as_o they_o be_v wherefore_o see_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o unclothe_v of_o his_o nature_n neither_o heretofore_o upon_o the_o cross_n nor_o yet_o now_o in_o heaven_n it_o be_v by_o faith_n receive_v of_o we_o a_o natural_a body_n as_o it_o be_v but_o while_o i_o write_v unto_o you_o these_o thing_n of_o n._n n._n behold_v another_o thing_n come_v to_o mind_n whereof_o i_o be_o move_v for_o just_a cause_n to_o demand_v and_o also_o to_o write_v what_o i_o myself_o judge_v of_o it_o which_o as_o i_o do_v bold_o so_o it_o shall_v be_v free_a for_o you_o when_o you_o be_v at_o leisure_n to_o show_v what_o you_o judge_v thereof_o for_o i_o do_v not_o urge_v a_o answer_n know_v that_o you_o be_v overpress_v with_o profitable_a business_n as_o touch_v the_o communion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o with_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o nature_n all_o man_n be_v not_o of_o one_o opinion_n and_o i_o think_v you_o shall_v hear_v the_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v a_o
celebrate_v their_o assembly_n as_o yet_o nothing_o be_v do_v save_v that_o three_o day_n a_o go_v they_o meet_v together_o the_o queen_n mother_n be_v present_a and_o the_o king_n and_o also_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o other_o peer_n the_o cardinal_n also_o and_o the_o bishop_n be_v present_a mother_n the_o oration_n of_o beza_n before_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n mother_n the_o matter_n be_v commit_v to_o beza_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v the_o entry_n or_o preface_n of_o the_o conference_n who_o speak_v in_o french_a the_o space_n of_o one_o hour_n as_o they_o say_v but_o towards_o the_o end_n when_o he_o happen_v to_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o eucharist_n he_o say_v that_o this_o they_o ought_v to_o know_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v as_o far_o from_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o heaven_n be_v from_o the_o earth_n these_o word_n so_o offend_v and_o stir_v up_o the_o bishop_n as_o they_o begin_v to_o mutter_v and_o final_o to_o make_v a_o rumour_n so_o that_o beza_n have_v much_o a_o do_v to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o his_o oration_n the_o prince_n fear_n lest_o hereof_o the_o ecclesiastical_a man_n will_v take_v a_o occasion_n of_o break_v off_o or_o rather_o of_o refuse_v the_o conference_n and_o this_o do_v the_o prince_n of_o condie_n affirm_v unto_o i_o yesterday_o that_o they_o have_v determine_v to_o offer_v unto_o the_o king_n a_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o to_o have_v a_o contrary_a preface_n whereby_o they_o may_v confute_v beza_n and_o then_o to_o testify_v that_o they_o will_v not_o deal_v with_o we_o but_o he_o add_v withal_o that_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v permit_v they_o by_o the_o king_n majesty_n the_o cardinal_n of_o turnois_n after_o bezaes_n preface_n say_v unto_o the_o queen_n mother_n lest_o she_o shall_v believe_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o beza_n have_v say_v that_o he_o hope_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v now_o allege_v shall_v both_o be_v confute_v and_o utter_o abolish_v but_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n in_o his_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n say_v as_o touch_v beza_n i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o yesterday_o either_o we_o have_v be_v deaf_a to_o his_o blasphemy_n or_o else_o that_o he_o have_v be_v dumb_a mother_n peter_n martyr_n f●l_a conference_n with_o the_o queen_n mother_n this_o day_n namely_o the_o xj_o of_o this_o month_n i_o be_v call_v to_o the_o queen_n mother_n who_o very_o courteous_o both_o see_v i_o &_o hear_v i_o i_o deliver_v she_o the_o letter_n of_o our_o magistrate_n and_o also_o those_o letter_n which_o belong_v to_o her_o son_n i_o be_v a_o long_a while_n with_o she_o such_o thing_n i_o speak_v then_o as_o seem_v most_o to_o belong_v unto_o the_o present_a cause_n and_o that_o with_o great_a liberty_n she_o conceive_v very_o great_a hope_n of_o i_o but_o we_o must_v pray_v that_o it_o be_v not_o frustrate_a which_o i_o be_o afraid_a of_o for_o she_o will_v have_v the_o church_n reform_v but_o yet_o by_o leave_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n man_n which_o thing_n can_v never_o yet_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v nor_o now_o can_v be_v i_o excuse_v praise_v and_o confirm_v unto_o she_o those_o thing_n which_o beza_n have_v speak_v and_o when_o she_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o confession_n make_v at_o augusta_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o and_o that_o she_o shall_v not_o persuade_v herself_o that_o if_o the_o confession_n of_o augusta_n be_v receive_v it_o will_v be_v do_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a man_n also_o the_o very_a same_o day_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n i_o be_v with_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n who_o talk_v with_o i_o a_o great_a while_n before_o he_o reveal_v himself_o in_o fine_a when_o i_o have_v the_o letter_n in_o my_o hand_n to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o he_o he_o demand_v what_o letter_n those_o be_v i_o say_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n i_o say_v he_o be_o the_o same_o man_n then_o i_o give_v he_o his_o due_a honour_n and_o deliver_v they_o he_o deal_v very_o courteous_o with_o i_o but_o to_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n he_o be_v very_o cold_a as_o they_o say_v in_o religion_n and_o go_v unto_o mass_n he_o also_o speak_v of_o the_o confession_n of_o augusta_n who_o i_o answer_v as_o before_o i_o say_v to_o the_o queen_n the_o chancellor_n of_o france_n deal_v there_o with_o i_o in_o the_o same_o matter_n &_o can_v get_v no_o other_o thing_n of_o i_o final_o i_o so_o depart_v from_o the_o queen_n as_o she_o say_v she_o will_v talk_v many_o time_n with_o i_o i_o will_v expect_v and_o will_v certify_v you_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o shall_v happen_v our_o adversary_n have_v set_v forth_o four_o principal_a thing_n to_o be_v dispute_v of_o namely_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o counsel_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o real_a and_o substantial_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n fare_v you_o well_o my_o most_o love_a friend_n god_n keep_v you_o many_o year_n in_o health_n pray_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o for_o i_o &_o love_v i_o as_o you_o do_v i_o love_o salute_v all_o my_o fellow_n minister_n also_o your_o son_n daughter_n and_o son_n in_o law_n and_o especial_o your_o wife_n i_o salute_v in_o the_o name_n of_o you_o and_o of_o my_o fellow_n minister_v all_o these_o colocutor_n who_o on_o the_o other_o side_n send_v salutation_n unto_o all_o you_o also_o julius_n and_o gulielmus_fw-la stuccius_n who_o you_o have_v join_v with_o i_o desire_v i_o to_o salute_v you_o fare_v you_o well_o from_o s._n germane_a the_o 12._o of_o september_n to_o the_o same_o man_n 52._o so_o often_o as_o occasion_n shall_v be_v offer_v of_o write_v unto_o you_o my_o reverend_n and_o most_o love_a gossip_n i_o will_v not_o omit_v the_o same_o wherefore_o i_o do_v write_v the_o 12._o day_n of_o this_o month_n now_o unto_o those_o letter_n i_o will_v add_v such_o thing_n as_o do_v follow_v afterward_o a_o oration_n be_v to_o be_v make_v four_o day_n since_o by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n wherein_o he_o shall_v have_v confute_v the_o preface_n of_o beza_n and_o when_o our_o brethren_n and_o associate_n be_v to_o go_v thither_o namely_o to_o poissi_n where_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v hold_v it_o be_v long_o and_o very_a much_o debate_v in_o the_o king_n court_n whether_o i_o shall_v be_v fetch_v thither_o or_o no_o and_o it_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n determine_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o go_v because_o the_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o be_v there_o howbeit_o the_o queen_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o go_v thither_o call_v i_o forth_o and_o command_v i_o to_o go_v the_o prince_n of_o condie_n take_v order_n that_o i_o shall_v be_v bring_v by_o he_o that_o be_v his_o secretary_n and_o he_o send_v his_o own_o mule_n whereby_o i_o may_v be_v bring_v both_o easy_o and_o quiet_o wherefore_o i_o go_v thither_o apart_o from_o the_o brethren_n for_o they_o when_o the_o hour_n be_v near_o go_v forth_o before_o i_o and_o when_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o man_n who_o bear_v as_o they_o call_v they_o spear_n and_o halberde_n which_o be_v the_o guard_n of_o the_o king_n person_n suffer_v none_o to_o enter_v in_o but_o such_o as_o shall_v the_o duke_n of_o guise_n who_o be_v captain_n will_v not_o let_v i_o enter_v but_o when_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o prince_n servant_n that_o i_o be_v peter_n martyr_n he_o take_v i_o by_o the_o arm_n and_o bring_v i_o in_o wherefore_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o hall_n i_o see_v a_o great_a company_n of_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n sit_v within_o a_o very_a large_a place_n enclose_v behind_o who_o sit_v a_o very_a great_a number_n of_o abbot_n doctor_n sorboniste_n and_o moonke_n when_o i_o have_v see_v these_o thing_n and_o perceive_v that_o neither_o the_o queen_n nor_o the_o king_n nor_o other_o of_o the_o noble_a personage_n be_v present_a i_o withdraw_v myself_o into_o a_o corner_n of_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o hall_n that_o i_o may_v there_o sit_v and_o attend_v the_o come_n of_o the_o brethren_n for_o i_o know_v not_o whither_o they_o be_v go_v and_o since_o i_o be_v there_o alone_o i_o can_v not_o be_v hide_v the_o cardinal_n chastillion_n together_o with_o two_o bishop_n in_o their_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n apparel_n first_o
in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o man_n but_o he_o never_o instruct_v more_o nor_o be_v more_o to_o be_v marvel_v at_o than_o in_o public_a disputation_n for_o if_o any_o disputer_n be_v to_o be_v moderate_v he_o show_v himself_o so_o equal_a a_o judge_n and_o be_v move_v with_o those_o reason_n only_o which_o be_v of_o force_n to_o persuade_v as_o no_o man_n can_v ever_o suspect_v he_o to_o be_v partial_a he_o depress_v not_o the_o sound_n argument_n of_o adversary_n he_o wink_v not_o at_o the_o error_n &_o false_a argument_n of_o friend_n if_o they_o will_v wander_v out_o of_o the_o bound_n of_o disputation_n he_o revoke_v they_o courteous_o to_o the_o matter_n propound_v but_o if_o the_o matter_n proceed_v to_o brawl_n he_o quiet_v they_o by_o his_o authority_n and_o he_o so_o finish_v those_o encounter_n that_o always_o at_o the_o first_o he_o repeat_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v most_o necessary_a and_o then_o at_o the_o last_o pronounce_v of_o the_o whole_a cause_n that_o both_o truth_n may_v have_v the_o victory_n and_o that_o thereby_o also_o may_v redound_v to_o the_o hearer_n no_o small_a commodity_n and_o if_o so_o he_o it_o come_v to_o his_o part_n to_o dispute_v he_o always_o so_o behave_v himself_o both_o in_o propound_v and_o answer_v as_o there_o be_v no_o suspicion_n of_o any_o desire_n either_o of_o chide_v or_o of_o carry_v away_o the_o victory_n from_o a_o overthrow_v adversary_n but_o his_o mind_n be_v free_a from_o affection_n he_o rather_o teach_v that_o which_o be_v the_o truth_n than_o contend_v with_o any_o about_o word_n and_o therefore_o when_o oftentimes_o afterward_o he_o encounter_v with_o the_o stout_a defender_n of_o the_o pope_n religion_n neither_o be_v he_o move_v to_o anger_n at_o any_o time_n by_o their_o rail_a speech_n neither_o yet_o by_o the_o acclamation_n and_o praise_n of_o our_o side_n be_v he_o make_v any_o thing_n the_o lofty_a by_o vain_a glory_n but_o he_o perpetuallie_o keep_v one_o and_o the_o same_o modesty_n &_o equality_n of_o mind_n and_o what_o perspicuity_n of_o speak_v he_o use_v in_o public_a reading_n the_o same_o do_v he_o follow_v much_o more_o diligent_o in_o dispute_v for_o he_o judge_v that_o a_o darkness_n of_o speech_n and_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o very_a many_o contention_n and_o hereof_o do_v his_o write_n give_v a_o manifest_a testimony_n for_o whereas_o he_o write_v many_o thing_n of_o the_o justification_n of_o man_n of_o god_n predestination_n not_o a_o little_a very_o he_o write_v most_o of_o all_o of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o explication_n whereof_o very_a many_o learned_a man_n use_v a_o certain_a affect_a obscurity_n but_o in_o his_o write_n there_o be_v nothing_o read_v but_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a plain_a and_o manifest_a and_o when_o bucer_n who_o he_o honour_v and_o great_o esteem_v will_v oftentimes_o exhort_v he_o that_o in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n he_o will_v use_v some_o certain_a obscure_a and_o doubtful_a kind_n of_o speak_v which_o he_o himself_o therefore_o use_v because_o the_o good_a man_n persuade_v himself_o that_o by_o this_o mean_n may_v be_v take_v away_o the_o great_a controversy_n which_o be_v about_o this_o matter_n and_o so_o the_o long_o desire_a peace_n to_o be_v restore_v to_o the_o church_n at_o the_o length_n he_o give_v place_n to_o he_o and_o use_v the_o self_n same_o form_n of_o speak_v that_o he_o do_v but_o perceive_v within_o a_o while_n the_o danger_n that_o will_v ensue_v he_o change_v his_o mind_n for_o he_o see_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v satisfy_v by_o this_o mean_n which_o affirm_v the_o gross_a and_o carnal_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n unless_o that_o also_o their_o gross_a kind_n of_o speech_n be_v receive_v with_o a_o full_a and_o gross_a interpretation_n and_o again_o he_o have_v try_v that_o the_o weak_a brethren_n by_o this_o doubtfulness_n of_o speech_n be_v in_o part_n great_o offend_v and_o in_o part_n so_o entangle_v &_o trouble_v as_o they_o scarce_o know_v what_o they_o be_v to_o judge_v in_o this_o matter_n wherefore_o leave_v to_o bucer_n his_o own_o phrase_n of_o speech_n he_o follow_v also_o in_o this_o doctrine_n the_o self_n same_o perspicuity_n which_o he_o do_v in_o other_o thing_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o between_o they_o remain_v a_o firm_a and_o constant_a friendship_n for_o neither_o do_v bucer_n disallow_v of_o martyr_n judgement_n neither_o be_v martyr_n ignorant_a of_o bucers_n meaning_n although_o he_o use_v doubtful_a speech_n so_o that_o although_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o teach_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v diverse_a yet_o be_v there_o a_o full_a consent_n of_o they_o in_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n and_o a_o perpetual_a friendship_n and_o conjunction_n of_o life_n which_o if_o i_o will_v express_v and_o rehearse_v all_o the_o pleasure_n whereby_o they_o declare_v their_o mutual_a love_n rather_o word_n will_v frail_a than_o matter_n wherefore_o leave_v these_o thing_n i_o will_v come_v to_o private_a matter_n and_o speak_v of_o his_o domestical_a life_n for_o at_o strasborough_n he_o first_o begin_v to_o have_v a_o house_n and_o family_n and_o first_o he_o live_v without_o a_o wife_n all_o in_o one_o house_n with_o his_o friend_n that_o follow_v he_o out_o of_o italy_n be_v content_a with_o a_o mean_a or_o rather_o a_o very_a small_a stipend_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v afterward_o augment_v for_o since_o he_o leave_v his_o country_n and_o great_a riches_n and_o high_a honour_n for_o christ_n his_o sake_n he_o think_v it_o will_v not_o become_v any_o to_o be_v aggrieve_v at_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o stipend_n special_o since_o he_o be_v of_o so_o spare_v a_o life_n that_o this_o which_o he_o have_v be_v not_o only_o sufficient_a for_o himself_o but_o that_o there_o also_o remain_v somewhat_o for_o the_o help_a of_o friend_n now_o since_o for_o diverse_a cause_n he_o disallow_v of_o single_a life_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o friend_n he_o betroth_v himself_o to_o a_o honest_a and_o noble_a virgin_n catherine_n dampmartin_n who_o live_v at_o metes_n and_o love_v true_a religion_n be_v send_v for_o to_o strasborough_n by_o godly_a man_n and_o afterward_o be_v marry_v to_o martyr_n this_o woman_n die_v afterward_o in_o england_n without_o any_o issue_n when_o she_o have_v live_v viij_o year_n with_o her_o husband_n unto_o this_o woman_n all_o that_o know_v she_o give_v such_o praise_n as_o be_v due_a to_o a_o good_a and_o excellent_a matron_n for_o first_o she_o be_v one_o that_o fear_v god_n love_v her_o husband_n wise_a and_o industrious_a in_o govern_v of_o her_o domestical_a affair_n bountiful_a towards_o the_o poor_a who_o not_o only_o aid_v they_o with_o her_o substance_n but_o also_o with_o all_o the_o counsel_n and_o help_v she_o can_v moreover_o in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o her_o life_n she_o be_v godly_a modest_a and_o sober_a it_o be_v report_v that_o the_o common_a sort_n in_o oxford_n love_v she_o not_o only_o as_o a_o benefactor_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o mother_n of_o the_o needy_a but_o that_o they_o also_o wonder_v at_o she_o as_o though_o she_o have_v be_v endue_v with_o some_o divine_a power_n because_o that_o in_o sickness_n and_o especial_o in_o childbirth_n their_o wife_n by_o her_o counsel_n and_o help_v obtain_v for_o the_o most_o part_n undoubted_a safety_n the_o dead_a body_n of_o this_o woman_n cardinal_n pole_n command_v to_o be_v dig_v up_o and_o to_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o dunghill_n and_o that_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o deal_v justly_o when_o he_o have_v no_o other_o thing_n to_o accuse_v she_o of_o he_o ascribe_v this_o cause_n to_o wit_n that_o she_o be_v bury_v hard_o by_o the_o body_n of_o s._n fridesuide_v and_o that_o she_o be_v the_o wife_n of_o a_o heretic_n very_o this_o cardinal_n which_o be_v sometime_o a_o special_a friend_n of_o martyr_n after_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o italy_n not_o only_o forsake_v his_o friendship_n but_o he_o utter_o cast_v away_o the_o care_n of_o true_a religion_n which_o for_o a_o time_n he_o have_v feign_v and_o become_v a_o earnest_a enemy_n and_o persecuter_n of_o our_o professor_n therefore_o since_o he_o can_v not_o burn_v martyr_n himself_o as_o he_o desire_v and_o with_o great_a pleasure_n will_v have_v see_v it_o he_o show_v his_o cruelty_n upon_o a_o dead_a carcase_n which_o have_v be_v martyr_n wife_n but_o after_o that_o england_n under_o the_o most_o excellent_a queen_n elizabeth_n have_v receive_v the_o former_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o abolish_v this_o note_n of_o infamy_n the_o body_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v again_o dig_v out_o of_o the_o filth_n and_o dunghill_n and_o in_o a_o great_a assembly_n of_o people_n be_v solemn_o bury_v
be_v impart_v both_o upon_o the_o present_a and_o the_o absent_a 2_o 521_o b_o observation_n in_o distribute_v thereof_o 2_o 562_o a_o 520_o b_o 519a_o a_o reward_n give_v by_o god_n for_o the_o same_o 2_o 521_o b_o give_v alm_n and_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v clean_o unto_o thou_o expound_v 3_o 223_o ab_fw-la 3_o 116_o a_o a_o old_a error_n touch_v the_o attainment_n of_o eternal_a life_n thereby_o answer_v 2_o 520_o ab_fw-la man_n use_v mercy_n have_v thereby_o no_o fruit_n at_o all_o before_o they_o have_v faith_n say_v chrysostome_n 2_o 262_o b_o of_o cornelius_n his_o alm_n &_o good_a work_n and_o whether_o he_o be_v regenerate_v when_o he_o do_v they_o or_o no._n 2_o 259_o ab_fw-la in_o what_o case_n our_o alm_n may_v be_v direct_v by_o lot_n 1_n 60_o a_o 2_o 519_o a_o almightiness_n god_n almightiness_n describe_v 3_o 336_o ab_fw-la 2_o 613_o a_o altar_n a_o altar_n be_v refer_v to_o a_o outward_a sacrifice_n 4_o 225_o b_o of_o what_o thing_n it_o be_v a_o testification_n &_o to_o who_o it_o must_v be_v erect_v 2_o 308_o b_o altar_n whether_o the_o christian_n have_v altar_n among_o they_o 4_o 225_o b_o 226_o a_o two_o sort_n of_o they_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n 4_o 225_o a_o not_o to_o be_v erect_v unto_o image_n 2_o 352_o a_o alteration_n of_o alteration_n in_o god_n and_o in_o what_o respect_v 1_n 109b_v 110_o a_o 168_o a_o 207_o a_o whereto_o the_o alteration_n of_o king_n and_o kingdom_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v 4_o 227_o b_o 228_o a_o ¶_o look_v change_n alteration_n alteration_n of_o the_o state_n of_o a_o happy_a man_n note_v by_o aristotle_n 1_n 165_o ab_fw-la the_o life_n of_o man_n full_a thereof_o read_v the_o place_n it_o be_v notable_a 1_n 158_o a_o am._n ambition_n against_o ambition_n and_o what_o canton_n and_o punishment_n have_v be_v provide_v by_o many_o just_a law_n against_o that_o vice_n 1_o 144_o b_o the_o devil_n deceive_v thereby_o and_o how_o 1_n 83_o a_o among_o the_o apostle_n 2_o 505_o a_o of_o john_n and_o nabuchadnezzar_n 2_o 572b_n ithamar_n and_o eleazar_n in_o strive_v for_o the_o priesthood_n 4_o 247_o b_o a_o sentence_n of_o sallust_n touch_v the_o same_o and_o of_o abimelech_n 2_o 382_o a_o of_o the_o romanist_n 4_o 71_o a_o of_o alexander_n the_o great_a 1_n 53_o b_o of_o the_o ministry_n 4_o 24_o ab_fw-la in_o the_o roman_a commonwealth_n &_o also_o in_o the_o church_n and_o restraint_n for_o the_o same_o 1_o 144_o b_o 145_o a_o reward_v with_o shame_n read_v the_o place_n 3_o 321_o ab_fw-la the_o law_n of_o ethnik_n condemn_v it_o and_o how_o it_o be_v punish_v 2_o 382_o a_o a_o definition_n thereof_o 2_o 381_o b_o unto_o the_o commit_n of_o what_o villainy_n man_n be_v drive_v thereby_o 2_o 382_o a_o amen_n from_o whence_o the_o word_n amen_o be_v derive_v 3_o 93_o a_o it_o make_v a_o great_a affirmation_n 2_o 601_o a_o an._n anathema_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v malediction_n or_o curse_n 4_o 87_o a_o why_o the_o city_n of_o jericho_n be_v make_v anathema_n 2_o 403_o a_o the_o form_n end_n and_o matter_n thereof_o 2_o 403_o b_o 404_o a_o by_o what_o anathema_n god_n prove_v and_o try_v his_o people_n 2_o 403_o b_o of_o anathema_n use_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o in_o the_o new_a ¶_o look_v cross_n 2_o 403_o ab_fw-la angel_n the_o angel_n that_o speak_v to_o moses_n in_o the_o bush_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 1_o 28_o a_o angel_n why_o wing_n be_v attribute_v unto_o angel_n and_o also_o youth_n 1_n 112_o a_o sundry_a order_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o they_o 3_o 391_o b_o 392_o a_o they_o turn_v about_o the_o celestial_a sphere_n 3_o 393_o b_o their_o nature_n or_o as_o the_o schoolman_n say_v their_o substance_n be_v uncorrupt_a and_o immortal_a 2_o 249_o b_o how_o they_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n 2_o 249_o b_o their_o labour_n be_v sometime_o disappoint_v of_o that_o end_n whereunto_o it_o be_v a_o mean_a 2_o 249_o b_o how_o they_o may_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v subject_a unto_o vanity_n 2_o 249_o b_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v rid_v of_o all_o kind_n of_o affection_n 2_o 249_o a_o the_o sadducee_n error_n suppose_v they_o to_o be_v a_o bare_a service_n of_o no_o substance_n sever_v from_o matter_n 1_o 112_o a_o they_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o vanity_n or_o corruption_n 2_o 248_o a_o the_o benefit_n or_o christ_n appertain_v also_o unto_o they_o 2_o 250_o a_o tertullian_n attribute_v a_o body_n not_o only_o unto_o they_o but_o also_o to_o god_n himself_o 1_n 113_o a_o rabbi_n selomoh_n say_v that_o their_o name_n be_v se●…e●_n and_o that_o they_o know_v not_o their_o own_o name_n 1_n 111_o b_o they_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n and_o carry_v a_o very_a truth_n of_o a_o substantial_a body_n 1_n 114_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v it_o for_o they_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o similitude_n of_o man_n 1_n 113_o b_o whether_o they_o may_v take_v very_a body_n upon_o they_o and_o those_o natural_a which_o be_v body_n before_o etc._n etc._n 1_n 114_o a_o of_o the_o fall_n of_o they_o that_o be_v conversant_a with_o woman_n and_o diverse_o man_n have_v think_v of_o they_o 1_n 128_o b_o 129_o a_o how_o and_o in_o what_o sense_n they_o be_v call_v messenger_n or_o segate_n 1_n 118_o b_o the_o diverse_a opinion_n of_o philosopher_n father_n and_o schoolman_n touch_v they_o 1_n 112_o ab_fw-la augustine_n attribute_v body_n unto_o they_o read_v how_o 1_n 113a_o note_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o rabbin_n concern_v they_o and_o their_o name_n 1_n 111_o b_o 112_o a_o as_o well_o evil_a as_o good_a be_v god_n minister_n to_o punish_v sin_n 1_n 120._o 121_o a_o of_o they_o and_o spirit_n that_o be_v above_o mention_v by_o paul_n in_o the_o ephesian_n 1_n 120_o a_o governor_n of_o kingdom_n and_o guardian_n of_o man_n 1_n 120_o a_o god_n do_v punish_v by_o the_o good_a one_o as_o for_o example_n 1_o 65b_v we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o fellowship_n of_o they_o in_o heaven_n but_o not_o use_v their_o ministry_n 1_o 119_o b_o send_v to_o punish_v sin_n and_o by_o what_o name_n they_o be_v call_v 1_n 120_o b_o of_o certain_a name_n mention_v by_o paul_n whereby_o both_o good_a &_o evil_a be_v mean_v 1_n 120_o a_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o their_o state_n will_v bring_v no_o great_a danger_n unto_o us._n 1_o 118_o b_o whether_o they_o do_v offer_v up_o our_o prayer_n unto_o god_n as_o the_o scripture_n say_v 1_n 118_o b_o how_o the_o rabbin_n conclude_v that_o godly_a man_n be_v better_a than_o they_o 1_n 119_o a_o they_o may_v use_v the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o speak_v in_o they_o prove_v 1_n 114_o a_o augustine_n doubt_v whether_o god_n have_v benefit_v man_n by_o miracle_n do_v by_o evil_a one_o 1_n 65_o b_o the_o cause_n why_o good_a one_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o their_o prediction_n 1_n 82b_v 83_o b_o they_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o second_o cause_n by_o who_o god_n work_v his_o will_n 1_o 173_o ab_fw-la when_o first_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o they_o and_o where_o 1_o 111_o b_o augustine_n doubt_v whether_o the_o egyptian_n plague_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o good_a one_o or_o by_o the_o devil_n 1_n 65_o b_o and_z what_o be_v conclude_v 66_o a_o of_o their_o appearing_n whether_o with_o a_o body_n or_o only_o in_o a_o fantasy_n 1_n 112_o a_o origens_n opinion_n that_o their_o body_n wherein_o they_o be_v visible_a be_v neither_o perfect_a body_n nor_o humane_a nor_o fantastical_a and_o yet_o body_n nevertheless_o 1_n 116_o a_o whether_o we_o shall_v be_v endue_v with_o great_a glory_n than_o they_o as_o the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o affirm_v 1_n 119_o ab_fw-la they_o have_v no_o body_n though_o diverse_a thing_n incident_a to_o the_o body_n have_v be_v in_o they_o 1_n 113b_v they_o take_v their_o name_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o do_v proved_a 1_n 111_o b_o godly_a and_o ungodlie_a man_n be_v vex_v by_o evil_a one_o after_o a_o sundry_a fashion_n 1_n 65_o b_o of_o three_o way_n whereby_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o they_o have_v appear_v 1_n 114_o b_o whether_o they_o clothe_v with_o body_n do_v eat_v and_o drink_v indeed_o 1_n 118_o a_o the_o body_n wherein_o they_o appear_v be_v true_a humane_a body_n 1_o 117_o ab_fw-la they_o minister_v when_o god_n give_v the_o law_n and_o how_o 1_n 28_o a_o be_v man_n minister_n they_o be_v more_o excellent_a than_o man_n 1_n 5_o b_o 6_o a_o of_o what_o thing_n they_o be_v ignorant_a 2_o 571_o b_o they_o may_v be_v represent_v by_o image_n and_o how_o two_o 335_o b_o neither_o they_o nor_o man_n admit_v worship_n to_o be_v do_v they_o much_o less_o
be_v more_o to_o be_v reproove_v that_o have_v ill_a friend_n than_o he_o which_o have_v corrupt_a child_n 1_n 148_o b_o not_o all_o a_o man_n child_n be_v his_o heir_n 3_o 81_o b_o the_o lack_n or_o loss_n of_o they_o a_o hindrance_n unto_o felicity_n and_o why_o 1_n 148_o b_o 149_o a_o three_o sort_n of_o child_n legitimate_a and_o not_o natural_a natural_a and_o not_o legitimate_a legitimate_a and_o natural_a 2_o 476_o b_o whether_o the_o child_n of_o esau_n be_v legitimate_a or_o no_o 2_o 436_o b_o of_o godly_a parent_n the_o child_n have_v some_o holiness_n 2_o 367_o a_o of_o their_o imitate_v 4_o 124_o a_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o why_o so_o call_v 4_o 6_o b_o they_o that_o abound_v in_o good_a child_n be_v grateful_a to_o the_o city_n and_o honour_v of_o other_o example_n 1_n 148_o a_o the_o child_n of_o the_o elect_v reckon_v among_o the_o beléever_n 2_o 234._o some_o belong_v not_o to_o predestination_n 2_o 233b_n 238_o b_o 239_o a_o they_o be_v holy_a as_o touch_v civil_a action_n and_o how_o that_o be_v mean_v 2_o 238a_o they_o may_v belong_v to_o perdition_n 4_o 117_o b_o 118_o a_o ¶_o look_v holiness_n and_o infant_n choice_n whether_o there_o can_v be_v a_o choice_n make_v in_o evil_a 2_o 295b_n two_o kind_n the_o one_o common_a the_o other_o proper_a 2_o 294_o a_o nor_o free_a in_o all_o thing_n 3_o 201_o a_o in_o what_o it_o may_v take_v place_n 3_o 166_o b_o reason_n prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o opinion_n two_o 296a_v the_o s●o●ks_v assure_v it_o to_o be_v a_o opinion_n sumoon_v 2_o 294_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v of_o that_o which_o be_v pleasant_a and_o unpleasant_a 2_o 295_o a_o the_o same_o consideration_n be_v not_o of_o god_n choice_n that_o be_v of_o man_n choice_n 3_o 17a_n every_o choice_n be_v not_o always_o a_o adversary_n to_o every_o desire_n 2_o ●95_n a_o what_o choice_n be_v offer_v to_o youngman_n as_o the_o pythagorian_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o choice_n of_o paris_n 2_o 295_o b_o the_o make_n of_o choice_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o fortune_n 2_o 294_o a_o that_o no_o kind_n of_o opinion_n be_v all_o one_o therewith_o 2_o 297_o a_o the_o place_n which_o it_o have_v in_o the_o mind_n two_o 295_o a_o of_o three_o thing_n that_o want_v the_o make_n thereof_o 2_o 294_o a_o it_o concern_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o our_o power_n 2_o 296a_o whether_o child_n and_o brute_n beast_n be_v without_o it_o 2_o 294_o a_o it_o be_v exercise_v about_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a 2_o 295_o b_o a_o order_z where_o by_o the_o definition_n thereof_o be_v find_v out_o 2_o 294_o b_o it_o be_v most_o proper_a to_o virtue_n prove_v 2_o 293_o b_o that_o it_o and_o desire_n be_v diverse_a prove_v 2_o 294_o b_o manner_n be_v more_o judge_v thereby_o than_o by_o action_n 2_o 293_o b_o a_o sound_n choice_n be_v ever_o more_o against_o a_o evil_a desire_n 2_o 295_o a_o it_o be_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o the_o end_n 2_o 296a_o free_a place_v in_o the_o will_n but_o root_v in_o the_o reason_n 2_o 252_o b_o it_o pertain_v not_o to_o thing_n unprofitable_a 2_o 296_o a_o our_o will_n have_v a_o affinity_n with_o choice_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o choice_n 2_o 295_o b_o 296_o a_o ¶_o look_v election_n and_o will._n choler_n the_o abundance_n of_o choler_n in_o the_o ton●…e_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o all_o thing_n seem_v bitter_a 1_o 39_o a_o ¶_o look_n humour_n christ_n a_o interpretation_n of_o the_o name_n christ_n 2_o 605b_n 615_o a_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o his_o horn_n shall_v be_v yield_v and_o when_o 2_o 597_o a_o of_o his_o superabundant_a love_n towards_o us._n two_o 610_o a_o what_o his_o burial_n do_v teach_v us._n two_o 610_o b_o 621a_fw-la 608_o ab_fw-la all_o thing_n concern_v he_o be_v certain_o determine_v before_o hand_n 3_o 6_o b_o 7_o a_o he_o take_v humane_a nature_n upon_o he_o free_o 3_o 19_o a_o 1_o 117_o b_o how_o the_o father_n can_v eat_v he_o he_o be_v not_o then_o bear_v 2_o 587_o b_o of_o the_o union_n of_o his_o two_o nature_n 4_o 189b_v 190_o a_o 1_n 115ab_n 2_o 614_o a_o 600_o b_o 340._o 3_o 358_o ab_fw-la the_o reveal_n of_o he_o be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o 3_o 27_o b_o the_o first_o effect_n of_o predestination_n 3_o 25_o b_o a_o creature_n 2_o 616_o b_o 335_o b_o after_o what_o manner_n we_o shall_v worship_v his_o flesh_n 4_o 177_o b_o whether_o his_o body_n be_v more_o worthy_a than_o his_o word_n 4_o 214_o a_o paint_v out_o by_o the_o evangelist_n &_o apostle_n 2_o 353_o b_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o 83_o b_o paint_v with_o ass_n ear_n in_o despite_n 2_o 341_o b_o maintain_v by_o holy_a woman_n 4_o 29_o a_o remain_v with_o we_o though_o he_o be_v ascend_v 4_o 39_o b_o 40_o a_o communicate_v his_o thing_n with_o us._n 4_o 83_o b_o in_o he_o only_o death_n without_o sin_n 2_o 244_o a_o how_o all_o creature_n do_v he_o service_n 2_o 244_o a_o in_o what_o respect_n he_o be_v compare_v with_o melchisedech_n 1_o 102_o a_o that_o his_o soul_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o virgin_n by_o propagation_n 2_o 244_o b_o how_o with_o his_o body_n he_o can_v bear_v his_o own_o body_n 4_o 157_o b_o 177_o a_o how_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v anoint_v since_o he_o be_v not_o anoint_v 606_o b_o why_o god_n will_v have_v his_o death_n to_o be_v the_o only_a mean_n of_o man_n salvation_n 2_o 619_o b_o why_o he_o be_v call_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n &_o how_o 2_o 580_o ab_fw-la of_o his_o image_n &_o in_o what_o respect_v it_o may_v and_o may_v not_o be_v make_v 2_o 340_o b_o in_o what_o respect_n he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o predestination_n 3_o 19_o a_o the_o old_a father_n in_o the_o law_n call_v upon_o he_o 2_o 582_o a_o peculiar_a testimony_n of_o he_o &_o his_o righteousness_n 2_o 581_o a_o of_o his_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n 4_o 144._o 145._o 146._o his_o cross_n &_o death_n 2_o 619_o a_o how_o he_o suffer_v in_o his_o member_n 2_o 608_o b_o why_o his_o flesh_n be_v call_v sin_n 2_o 609_o a_o a_o pattern_n of_o a_o holy_a &_o upright_a life_n 2_o 617_o a_o whether_o his_o body_n be_v everywhere_o 4_o 189b_n his_o humanity_n prove_v 4_o 153_o b_o 3_o 314_o b_o 315a_o how_o he_o be_v present_a with_o we_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 4_o 186_o b_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o he_o make_v intercession_n for_o us._n 3_o 308_o b_o 307_o a_o what_o we_o must_v call_v to_o mind_n in_o think_v of_o his_o death_n 2_o 607_o b_o 608_o ab_fw-la what_o body_n he_o have_v after_o his_o resurrection_n 4_o 186_o ab_fw-la 1_o 113_o b_o 3_o 362_o b_o 2_o 639_o ab_fw-la two_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v in_o his_o death_n two_o 617_o b_o how_o he_o be_v every_o day_n crucify_v 4_o 222_o a_o whether_o he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v in_o the_o mass_n 4_o 221_o b_o he_o have_v natural_a motion_n 2_o 571_o b_o mediation_n in_o the_o legue_v make_v between_o god_n and_o man_n 2_o 583_o a_o his_o death_n be_v effectual_a even_o before_o it_o be_v perform_v 4_o 104_o ab_fw-la prophecy_n touch_v his_o kingdom_n metaphorical_a 3_o 397_o a_o of_o his_o descend_v into_o hell_n 3_o 374._o 375._o 344_o a_o the_o place_n whither_o he_o ascend_v 3_o 370_o b_o the_o error_n of_o the_o millenarii_fw-la touch_v his_o latter_a come_n 3_o 358_o a_o in_o what_o respect_n he_o may_v be_v call_v a_o plague_n or_o destruction_n 3_o 355_o a_o the_o true_a ark_n and_o propitiatory_a 3_o 306_o a_o diverse_a way_n testify_v in_o old_a time_n 2_o 581_o ab_fw-la what_o he_o do_v in_o a_o case_n of_o contumely_n 2_o 53●_n b_o the_o pelagian_o make_v his_o death_n of_o none_o effect_v &_o how_o 2_o 299_o b_o his_o nativity_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 617a_o his_o divinity_n prove_v against_o the_o arrian_n 1_n 101_o ab_fw-la 102_o ab_fw-la 2_o 603a_o b_o the_o nestorian_a heresy_n which_o separate_v his_o divine_a &_o humane_a nature_n asunder_o 2_o 340._o only_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o 36_o a_o two_o 632a_v b_o whether_o the_o old_a jew_n behold_v he_o in_o their_o sacrifice_n 2_o 582_o a_o after_o what_o manner_n he_o dissemble_v 2_o 541_o b_o he_o and_o jeptha_n compare_v 2_o 523_o b_o how_o hylarie_n speak_v of_o his_o body_n 3_o 297_o b_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o he_o grow_v in_o favour_n with_o god_n 2_o 571_o b_o two_o sort_n of_o ministery_n in_o he_o as_o he_o be_v priest_n 3_o 307_o b_o he_o live_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o godly_a 4_o 29_o b_o a_o
as_o how_o 1_n 4_o a_o three_o sort_n of_o end_v assign_v by_o quintilian_n 1_n 5_o a_o the_o diverse_a end_v whereto_o man_n be_v appoint_v 2_o 573_o b_o 574_o a_o by_o what_o mean_v the_o multitude_n of_o end_v be_v show_v 1_n 4_o a_o why_o aristotle_n appoint_v two_o kind_n of_o end_v namely_o action_n &_o work_n 1_o 5_o a_o why_o aristotle_n in_o his_o ethike_n write_v so_o diligent_o of_o end_n 1_o 4b_n simple_n end_v and_o compound_v end_n speak_v concern_v felicity_n 1_o 132_o b_o two_o end_v of_o they_o that_o be_v hearer_n of_o good_a doctrine_n 1_n 54a_o fault_n draw_v their_o excellency_n and_o worthiness_n from_o their_o end_v 1_n 8a_n as_o faculty_n be_v more_o excellent_a so_o be_v also_o their_o end_n as_o how_o 1_n 1_o b_o two_o sort_n of_o end_v to_o wit_n the_o end_n wherefore_o &_o the_o end_n whereunto_o and_o which_o be_v the_o woorthies_n end_n 1_n 61ab_n whether_o that_o whersoever_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o end_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n also_o refer_v to_o the_o same_o end_n 1_o 7_o a_o of_o end_v some_o be_v action_n and_o othersome_a be_v work_n 1_n 8_o a_o the_o holy_a scripture_n appoint_v two_o sort_n of_o end_v of_o man_n and_o how_o 1_n 5_o b_o nature_n have_v ordain_v many_o end_v of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n as_o how_o 1_o 7_o a_o a_o christian_a man_n in_o work_v have_v many_o end_v and_o how_o 1_n 8_o a_o many_o thing_n which_o seem_v grievous_a and_o desperate_a have_v oftentimes_o acceptable_a end_v 1_o 13_o b_o why_o many_o end_v be_v refer_v unto_o one_o 1_n 7_o a_o enemy_n whether_o faith_n and_o promise_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v with_o one_o enemy_n 2_o 537_o a_o how_o we_o may_v speak_v well_o of_o they_o example_n 2_o 401_o a_o they_o must_v be_v sometime_o kill_v and_o sometime_o spare_v 4_o 300b_n 301b_fw-mi what_o it_o be_v to_o love_v they_o 2_o 611_o a_o howe_n god_n fight_v for_o we_o against_o they_o 3_o 284_o b_o 285_o ab_fw-la how_o god_n cause_v their_o weapon_n and_o armour_n to_o become_v we_o 3_o 285_o b_o 286_o a_o we_o must_v both_o speak_v well_o and_o wish_v well_o to_o they_o 2_o 401_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o safety_n sake_n to_o fight_v on_o their_o side_n 3_o 291._o 292._o 293._o 294._o 295_o a_o notable_a sentence_n of_o augustine_n touch_v the_o love_a and_o hate_v of_o they_o two_o 404_o b_o what_o commodity_n the_o godly_a receive_v by_o their_o curssing_n 2_o 401_o b_o 402_o a_o the_o error_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n that_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v by_o precept_n to_o love_v they_o 2_o 403_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a always_o to_o curse_v they_o 2_o 402_o a_o of_o holy_a man_n that_o hate_v they_o and_o do_v worse_a to_o &_o in_o what_o case_n 2_o 404_o b_o 405_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o rejoice_v at_o their_o destruction_n 2_o 400._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v guile_n against_o they_o 2_o 536_o ab_fw-la who_o we_o ought_v to_o count_v enemy_n in_o deed_n 2_o 536_o a_o enoch_n whether_o enoch_n and_o elias_n be_v dead_a 3_o 380_o ab_fw-la 381_o a_o opinion_n touch_v his_o return_n 3_o 382_o ab_fw-la how_o he_o and_o elias_n be_v send_v in_o these_o day_n 3_o 382_o b_o to_z what_o end_n he_o and_o elias_n be_v catch_v up_o 3_o 381_o a_o 382_o a_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o he_o be_v a_o legate_n unto_o the_o angel_n 3_o 148_o b_o 149_o a_o he_o write_v many_o divine_a thing_n &_o whether_o they_o be_v all_o authentical_a 1_n 129_o b_o whether_o he_o be_v take_v up_o into_o the_o air_n or_o into_o the_o starry_a sphere_n 3_o 371_o ab_fw-la 372_o ab_fw-la 373_o etc._n etc._n of_o his_o take_n up_o 3_o 370._o 371_o etc._n etc._n into_o what_o place_n 3_o 378_o b_o concern_v what_o condition_n augustine_n think_v that_o he_o and_o elias_n have_v now_o the_o state_n of_o adam_n body_n 2_o 246_o b_o envy_n of_o envy_n and_o wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o enuiousnes_n 2_o 416_o b_o mere_a repugnant_a to_o mercy_n and_o why_o 2_o 417_o a_o the_o cause_n thereof_o between_o who_o it_o be_v and_o the_o object_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 416_o b_o betwixt_o who_o it_o be_v conversant_a and_o wherein_o it_o rejoice_v 2_o 417_o a_o why_o it_o be_v reprehend_v so_o sore_o in_o the_o scripture_n 2_o 416_o b_o 417_o a_o the_o desire_n of_o glory_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o envy_n 2_o 417_o a_o ep._n ephialtes_n of_o the_o ephialtes_n and_o what_o the_o physician_n say_v thereof_o 1_n 90_o a_o ¶_o look_v spirit_n ephod_n of_o the_o ephod_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o diverse_a excellent_a thing_n to_o be_v note_v thereabouts_o 1_n 58_o b_o doctor_n kinchi_n disproove_v in_o say_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n the_o ark_n and_o the_o ephod_n be_v never_o asunder_o 1_n 59_o b_o ephod_n sometime_o restore_v unto_o true_a religion_n 2_o 358_o b_o epicurus_n epicurus_n opinion_n of_o god_n and_o what_o felicity_n he_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o 1_n 13_o a_o epitaph_n epitaph_n at_o funeral_n 3_o 312_o a_o er._n error_n two_o sort_n of_o error_n in_o reason_n &_o how_o 2_o 252_o b_o 253_o a_o in_o every_o kind_n of_o sin_n there_o always_o happen_v some_o error_n as_o how_o 2_o 242_o b_o the_o error_n of_o the_o academike_v and_o the_o epicure_n concern_v truth_n 1_n 15_o b_o of_o the_o vbiquist_n confute_v 3_o 373_o b_o 359_o a_o of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n touch_v circumcision_n 4_o 102_o a_o 104_o a_o 106_o b_o of_o they_o that_o will_v not_o be_v baptize_v but_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n 4_o 108_o a_o of_o cyprian_a touch_v rebaptise_n of_o heretic_n 4_o 72_o b_o of_o the_o millenarii_fw-la touch_v christ_n latter_a come_n 3_o 358_o a_o 396_o a_o touch_v the_o first_o and_o last_o resurrection_n ●_o 396_o a_o of_o origens_n touch_v soul_n thrust_v into_o body_n 3_o 317_o b_o touch_v resurrection_n 3_o 360._o 361._o 362._o touch_v the_o place_n of_o soul_n depart_v 3_o 374_o b_o of_o diverse_a philosopher_n touch_v soul_n depart_v 3_o 378_o a_o of_o the_o father_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n 3_o 362_o a_o of_o pope_n john_n xx_o touch_v soul_n depart_v 3_o 376_o b_o of_o the_o mahometist_n and_o saracen_n touch_v our_o estate_n at_o our_o resurrection_n 3_o 357_o b_o 358_o a_o of_o auerroes_n and_o the_o peripatetike_n touch_v the_o soul_n 3_o 368_o a_o of_o hylarie_n touch_v christ_n body_n 3_o 297_o b_o 298a_o of_o the_o anthropomorphite_n who_o shape_v god_n like_v to_o man_n 2_o 338_o a_o of_o the_o sadducee_n touch_v the_o resurrection_n 3_o 336_o b_o 337a_o b_o of_o the_o stoike_n touch_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o depart_v 3_o 372_o a_o a_o error_n about_o the_o couple_v of_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n 3_o 328_o b_o ¶_o look_v heresy_n error_n by_o time_n error_n be_v discover_v 3_o 240_o a_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v deadly_a sin_n 1_n 95_o a_o of_o augustine_n and_o ambrose_n 3_o 243_o b_o of_o cyprian_a tertullian_n and_o other_o 3_o 244_o a_o of_o diverse_a sect_n touch_v the_o resurrection_n 3_o 329_o a_o of_o the_o father_n 4_o 50_o b_o 51_o ab_fw-la about_o the_o power_n of_o god_n 1_o 337_o b_o two_o to_o be_v shun_v in_o sacrament_n 4_o 101_o a_o in_o remove_v of_o error_n we_o must_v deal_v wary_o 3_o 240_o a_o ¶_o look_n heresy_n eruditorie_a a_o eruditorie_a for_o soul_n depart_v 3_o 374_o b_o ¶_o look_v purgatory_n es_fw-ge esaie_n what_o jerom_n write_v touch_v the_o death_n of_o esaie_n 1_n 31_o a_o et._n eternal_a the_o word_n eternal_a diverse_o use_v 3_o 389_o a_o ethnic_n chrysostome_n by_o a_o similitude_n teach_v how_o the_o wise_a ethnic_n abuse_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n ●_o 11_o a_o eu._n evil_a a_o definition_n of_o this_o word_n evil_a and_o that_o under_o it_o sin_n be_v contain_v 1_n 180_o b_o distinguish_v 1_n 180_o b_o it_o can_v be_v but_o in_o good_a prove_v by_o reason_n and_o example_n 1_n 180_o b_o how_o it_o be_v take_v for_o good_a and_o contrariwise_o 2_o 407_o b_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o make_v evil_a by_o the_o abuse_n thereof_o 3_o 3_o a_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v evil_a be_v no_o work_n of_o god_n as_o pighius_fw-la say_v 2_o 218_o a_o of_o what_o kind_n of_o good_a evil_a be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o privation_n 1_o 180_o b_o whether_o evil_a be_v a_o essential_a thing_n as_o the_o manichy_n say_v 2_o 228_o a_o p._n martyr_n examine_v their_o argument_n which_o say_v that_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o evil_a 1_o 194_o ab_fw-la and_o so_o forward_o every_o defect_n make_v not_o a_o thing_n evil_n two_o 222_o b_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o will_v
173_o ab_fw-la of_o the_o carpocratian_o touch_v confession_n 3_o 263_o a_o of_o cerynthus_fw-la touch_v christ_n kingdom_n with_o his_o saint_n in_o this_o life_n 3_o 396_o a_o of_o the_o donatist_n touch_v the_o church_n 4_o 70_o b_o 33_o b_o 63_o b_o of_o the_o ebionite_n that_o christ_n be_v a_o mere_a creature_n ●_o 166b_n of_o the_o enchates_n touch_v prayer_n 4_o 166_o a_o of_o the_o luciferian_o touch_v repentance_n 3_o 208_o a_o of_o mahomet_n doctrine_n 4_o 6_o a_o confute_v 2_o 600_o b_o of_o the_o ma●…chtes_n touch_v the_o beginning_n of_o all_o thing_n 4_o ●30_n ab_fw-la concern_v meat_n unclean_a 3_o 190_o b._n 191_o a_o 1●9_n b_o of_o the_o martionite_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n 4_o 153_o b_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o martionite_n and_o valentinian_o that_o christ_n have_v no_o true_a body_n 2_o 354_o b_o touch_v two_o beginning_n of_o all_o thing_n 3_o 328_o b_o of_o the_o messalian_o touch_v prayer_n 3_o 3●…_n a_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o millenari●_n touch_v christ_n kingdom_n 4_o 166_o a_o 51a_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o montanist_n &_o euc●atistes_n touch_v meat_n and_o fast_v 3_o 170a_n 253_o b_o 254_o a_o of_o the_o nestorian_n which_o separate_v christ_n divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n a_o sunder_o 2_o 340_o b_o 183_o a_o of_o the_o nicodemites_n for_o the_o mass_n 3_o 266b_n of_o the_o nicolait_n touch_v the_o commonnesie_n of_o wife_n and_o how_o it_o spring_v 2_o 470_o b_o of_o the_o novatians_n and_o puritan_n touch_v repentance_n 3_o 206_o ab_fw-la of_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la touch_v the_o trinity_n 3_o 364_o a_o of_o the_o pelagian_n in_o baptise_v their_o child_n 4_o 108_o b_o in_o say_v that_o we_o have_v sole_a life_n in_o our_o choice_n 3_o 2●…_n a_o touch_v justification_n without_o grace_n 3_o 107_o a_o for_o ascribe_v righteousness_n to_o nature_n 3_o 120_o b_o touch_v original_a sin_n 4_o 136_o a_o control_v by_o general_a counsel_n 3_o 121_o b_o of_o pighius_fw-la in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n 3_o 138_o b_o 139_o ab_fw-la of_o pope_n john_n the_o 22._o touch_v man_n soul_n 4_o 75_o b_o 76_o a_o of_o the_o priscillianist_n 4_o 299_o b_o 300_o a_o discover_v by_o guile_n 2_o ●40_n a_o of_o the_o sabellian_o touch_v god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 4_o 160_o a_o of_o the_o seruetian_o 3_o 340_o a_o of_o swenkfielde_n about_o christ_n body_n 2_o 602_o b_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o valentinian_o touch_v christ_n body_n 3_o 166_o ab_fw-la 2_o 354_o b_o heresy_n heresy_n the_o cause_n why_o doctrine_n be_v more_o diligent_o discuss_v 3_o 3_o b_o from_o whence_o all_o that_o ever_o be_v have_v flow_v 2_o 631_o a_o the_o rise_n of_o they_o must_v not_o hinder_v the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o why_o 1_n 47_o a_o the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n macedonius_n 4_o 36_o b_o and_o manicheus_fw-la &_o nestorius_n confute_v 2_o 601_o ab_fw-la 603_o b_o how_o arrius_n with_o heresy_n trouble_v the_o church_n 4_o 63_o a_o ¶_o look_v error_n &_o error_n heretic_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o heretic_n out_o of_o s._n augustine_n 3_o 330_o ab_fw-la against_o a_o heretic_n which_o refuse_v moses_n his_o testimony_n and_o why_o 2_o 609_o a_o john_n the_o evangelist_n will_v not_o wash_v or_o bathe_v with_o cerinthus_n the_o heretic_n 2_o 330_o b_o heretic_n whether_o faith_n must_v be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n two_o 538_o a_o whether_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v baptize_v again_o 3_o 244_o a_o punishment_n be_v to_o be_v execute_v upon_o they_o 2_o 446_o b_o of_o the_o mischievous_a marriage_n contract_v and_o make_v with_o heretic_n 2_o 445_o b_o heretic_n opinion_n be_v not_o always_o to_o be_v disallow_v 3_o 251b_n in_o what_o case_n they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o prince_n power_n though_o they_o be_v in_o their_o dominion_n 2_o 538_o b_o many_o have_v live_v godly_a in_o show_n 4_o 46_o a_o why_o they_o believe_v not_o the_o scripture_n 4_o ●4_n b_o of_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n in_o outward_a thing_n 2_o 330_o b_o whether_o they_o and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o resolve_v in_o the_o t●…eth_v may_v be_v compel_v to_o divine_a service_n and_o sacrament_n 2_o 325_o ab_fw-la augustine_n opinion_n touch_v the_o punishment_n of_o heretic_n 4_o 245_o a_o how_o the_o papist_n punish_v both_o parent_n and_o child_n be_v heretic_n 2_o 367_o b_o of_o certain_a heretic_n which_o publish_v and_o give_v out_o themselves_o to_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_n 109_o a_o hi._n history_n the_o rule_n of_o a_o true_a history_n 1_n 49_o a_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o history_n out_o of_o ●…tilian_n and_o augustine_n 1_n 48_o a_o praise_v 1_n 45_o a_o history_n be_v not_o devise_v by_o man_n but_o god_n be_v the_o author_n thereof_o 1_n 49_o a_o whether_o the_o narration_n of_o dives_fw-la and_o lazarus_n be_v a_o history_n or_o a_o parable_n 3_o 325_o b_o a_o pleasant_a history_n of_o a_o deform_a man_n that_o have_v a_o foul_a wife_n and_o yet_o will_v have_v fair_a child_n 1_o 50_o b_o history_n history_n before_o the_o time_n of_o moses_n 1_n 49_o a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o chronicle_n 1_o 48_o ab_fw-la 49a_o write_v by_o man_n scarce_o true_a 1_n 49_o ab_fw-la what_o commodity_n be_v reap_v by_o the_o read_n of_o they_o 1_n 49_o b_o 50_o a_o the_o latin_a of_o more_o credit_n than_o the_o greek_a 1_o 49_o a_o the_o history_n of_o the_o scripture_n most_o true_a 1_n 49_o b_o the_o prophet_n mingle_a history_n with_o their_o prophecy_n 1_n 49_o a_o holy_a whatsoever_o be_v holy_a be_v just_a but_o not_o contrary_a 3_o 175_o b_o holy_a day_n a_o holy_a day_n beside_o the_o sabbath_n may_v be_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n 2_o 375_o a_o holy_a ghost_n certain_a visible_a form_n wherein_o the_o holy_a ghost_n visible_o appear_v 1_n 109_o a_o the_o holy_a ghost_n show_v himself_o in_o a_o dove_n 1_n 26_o a_o what_o become_v of_o the_o dove_n 1_n 115_o a_o origens_n error_n note_v about_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n 1_n 108_o b_o a_o distinct_a person_n from_o the_o father_n &_o the_o son_n prove_v by_o 7._o reason_n 1_n 103_o ab_fw-la 2_o 627_o b_o neither_o beget_v nor_o unbegotten_a prove_v by_o a_o reason_n ab_fw-la absurdo_fw-la 1_o 107_o b_o 108_o a_o signify_v by_o oil_n 4_o 14_o a_o depend_v not_o upon_o ceremony_n 4_o 23_o b_o whether_o infant_n may_v be_v endue_v therewith_o 4_o 120_o a_o how_o he_o make_v intercession_n for_o us._n 3_o 307_o b_o 1_n 103_o ab_fw-la 1_n 107_o a_o when_o he_o be_v give_v unto_o man_n 3_o 141_o a_o not_o effectual_a in_o all_o alike_o 3_o 141a_o the_o beginning_n of_o faith_n 3_o 140_o a_o they_o that_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o all_o that_o they_o do_v by_o he_o 4_o 207_o b_o his_o two_o effect_n 2_o 594_o b_o his_o chief_a work_n 2_o 628_o b_o 629_o a_o the_o state_n of_o such_o as_o be_v void_a thereof_o and_o of_o such_o as_o have_v it_o 2_o 628a_o why_o he_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o spirit_n 2_o 627_o a_o how_o many_o be_v his_o gift_n and_o their_o property_n 3_o 66_o b_o 67_o a_o what_o benefit_n we_o obtain_v by_o he_o 2_o 628_o ab_fw-la how_o we_o have_v he_o in_o us._n two_o 628_o b_o how_o he_o be_v know_v 3_o 87_o b_o how_o to_o know_v that_o we_o be_v quicken_v by_o he_o 2_o 629_o a_o how_o we_o have_v he_o by_o faith_n see_v it_o go_v always_o before_o faith_n 2_o 578_o a_o why_o in_o the_o distribution_n of_o gift_n he_o use_v a_o inequality_n 1_n 72_o a_o he_o be_v not_o together_o of_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o dove_n though_o it_o be_v a_o very_a dove_n wherein_o he_o descend_v 1_n 117_o ab_fw-la what_o the_o cause_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o call_v a_o son_n see_v he_o have_v not_o beginning_n of_o himself_o 1_n 107_o ab_fw-la why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pour_v into_o the_o heart_n when_o we_o be_v regenerate_v 4_o 114_o a_o the_o holy_a ghost_n promise_v in_o baptism_n 4_o 113_o b_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v christ_n vicar_n 4_o 157_o a_o of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o communion_n 4_o 196_o a_o how_o he_o be_v in_o man_n not_o regenerate_v 3_o 140_o b_o why_o he_o be_v give_v us._n two_o 628_o b_o reason_n object_v against_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_n 107_o a_o whether_o the_o holy_a ghost_n know_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n some_o say_v nay_o 1_n 108_o b_o whether_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n prove_v by_o reason_n 1_n 103._o and_o so_o forwards_o whether_o the_o dove_n wherein_o he_o appear_v be_v a_o very_a dove_n or_o no._n 1_o 115_o a_o the_o holy_a
from_o it_o 3_o 155_o b_o 156_o a_o the_o law_n be_v not_o idle_a no_o not_o after_o it_o 2_o 300_o a_o the_o order_n thereof_o in_o man_n reason_n how_o it_o behove_v to_o be_v 1_n 16_o b_o the_o promise_n concern_v the_o same_o be_v not_o conditional_a 3_o 136_o b_o how_o often_o it_o be_v take_v hold_n of_o 3_o 136_o a_o life_n and_o it_o be_v so_o join_v that_o oftentimes_o one_o be_v take_v for_o another_o 3_o 130_o b_o whether_o it_o may_v be_v separate_v from_o faith_n 3_o 131_o ab_fw-la 132_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o sacrament_n 3_o 157_o b_o 158_o a_o how_o diverslie_o the_o father_n understand_v it_o 3_o 158_o a_o who_o they_o be_v that_o cast_v away_o the_o grace_n thereof_o 3_o 160_o a_o why_o the_o father_n attribute_n it_o to_o charity_n only_o 3_o 159_o a_o whether_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v can_v doubt_v thereof_o 3_o 135_o a_o the_o effect_n of_o charity_n do_v follow_v it_o 3_o 237_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o faith_n 3_o 136_o b_o whether_o it_o depend_v of_o attrition_n 3_o 214_o b_o 215_o ab_fw-la in_o who_o proper_o it_o consist_v 3_o 124_o b_o 125_o a_o it_o depend_v not_o of_o baptism_n 4_o 136_o b_o 137_o a_o what_o faith_n bring_v it_o 3_o 57_o b_o predestination_n confirm_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o 3_o 3_o b_o how_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o christ_n resurrection_n 2_o 610_o a_o wherein_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v declare_v 2_o 609_o b_o it_o depend_v not_o of_o man_n will_n 3_o 28_o b_o of_o two_o inward_a motion_n thereof_o 3_o 124_o a_o one_o manner_n thereof_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n 2_o 586_o ab_fw-la why_o god_n will_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v by_o faith_n 3_o 96_o a_o it_o be_v show_v by_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n not_o of_o charity_n 3_o 137_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v give_v we_o by_o the_o promise_n 3_o 145_o b_o 146_o a_o whether_o in_o any_o respect_n it_o depend_v upon_o man_n 3_o 123_o b_o 124_o a_o whether_o charity_n do_v work_v it_o 3_o 77_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v only_o as_o touch_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n 3_o 103_o ab_fw-la 104_o ab_fw-la 105_o ab_fw-la unto_o who_o paul_n write_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o 3_o 108_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o work_n 3_o 93._o 94._o 95._o 96._o 97._o 98._o 99_o 100_o 101._o 102._o 106._o 107._o attribute_v by_o s●me_n both_o to_o work_v moral_o good_a and_o superstitious_a 3_o 102_o b_o whether_o it_o may_v concur_v with_o work_n 3_o 156_o b_o how_o it_o be_v grant_v unto_o work_n 3_o 147a_o goodly_a work_n a_o let_v or_o impediment_n thereunto_o 1_n 95_o ab_fw-la of_o work_n preparatorie_n thereunto_o and_o in_o who_o they_o be_v 2_o 264_o b_o how_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v by_o work_n 3_o 14_o b_o what_o the_o father_n say_v thereof_o give_v free_o 3_o 119_o b_o 120_o a.b_fw-ge by_o faith_n only_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o father_n in_o the_o law_n aswell_o as_o to_o us._n two_o 584_o a_o it_o do_v consist_v of_o grace_n not_o of_o work_n 1_n 145_o b_o the_o pelagian_n heresy_n touch_v justification_n without_o grace_n 3_o 107_o a_o howe_n pighius_fw-la understand_v free_a justification_n 3_o 147_o b_o unto_o what_o thing_n he_o ascribe_v it_o 3_o 138_o b_o how_o he_o proove_v that_o it_o be_v have_v of_o love_n 3_o 138_o b_o smith_n deni_v it_o by_o faith_n 3_o 147_o b_o 148_o a_o aristotle_n understand_v not_o nor_o beléeve_v the_o justification_n through_o christ_n mention_v in_o scripture_n 1_n 132_o ab_fw-la the_o difference_n and_o order_n of_o divine_a and_o humane_a or_o civil_a justification_n 2_o 303_o a_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o publican_n be_v not_o in_o work_n but_o in_o prayer_n 2_o 266_o ab_fw-la proof_n of_o cornelius_n his_o justification_n when_o he_o pray_v 2_o 260_o a_o the_o cause_n and_o effect_n thereof_o 2_o 259_o ab_fw-la the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n be_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o all_o godliness_n 3_o 93_o b_o 94_o a_o ke._n key_n what_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 4_o 108_o a_o 297._o 2_o asleep_o 636_o a_o 3_o 116_o b_o diverslie_o interpret_v 3_o 218_o a_o look_v church_n ki._n king_n king_n be_v the_o head_n of_o common_a weal_n 4_o 35_o b_o whether_o they_o may_v be_v depose_v by_o a_o bishop_n in_o a_o case_n of_o offence_n 4_o 232_o ab_fw-la whether_o they_o or_o bishop_n be_v superior_a 4_o 22●b_n 230_o a_o why_o they_o be_v consecrate_v ●y_a bishop_n 4_o 623_o b_o how_o god_n reign_v together_o with_o the_o good_a 4_o 35_o a_o after_o what_o sort_n the_o bad_a must_v be_v obey_v 4_o 3●_n b_o in_o what_o manner_n we_o be_v all_o king_n and_o priest_n 4_o 12_o ab_fw-la kingdom_n terrestrial_a the_o papist_n make_v a_o division_n of_o a_o kingdom_n into_o two_o part_n 4_o 23●_n b_o the_o kingdom_n be_v not_o give_v to_o saul_n by_o the_o same_o covenaunt_n that_o it_o be_v unto_o david_n and_o why_o 1_n 209_o b_o two_o cause_n why_o saul_n be_v cast_v out_o and_o david_n surrogated_a in_o his_o room_n 2_o 209_o b_o of_o restore_v the_o kingdom_n of_o david_n 1_n 608_o b_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o god_n kingdom_n 3_o 161_o b_o 162_o a_o why_o in_o old_a time_n the_o kingdom_n and_o priesthood_n be_v commit_v to_o one_o man_n 4_o 327_o b_o kingdom_n whether_o empire_n and_o kingdom_n be_v of_o god_n 4_o 228_o a_o why_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n transfer_v they_o from_o nation_n to_o nation_n 2_o 264a_o unto_o who_o the_o distribution_n of_o they_o belong_v 4_o 305_o a_o by_o what_o mean_v god_n give_v they_o 4_o 306_o a_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o distribution_n of_o they_o by_o lot_n 4_o 305b_n the_o cause_n of_o their_o alteration_n 4_o 227_o b_o 228_o a_o the_o prophet_n may_v be_v a_o certain_a occasion_n not_o a_o cause_n of_o the_o overthrow_n of_o kingdom_n 4_o 237_o ab_fw-la kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o god_n prophecy_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n two_o 596_o b_o 597_o ab_fw-la 3_o 397_o a_o diverse_a error_n touch_v the_o same_o in_o this_o life_n 3_o 396_o a_o of_o the_o millenaru_n 3_o 358_o a_o whether_o it_o shall_v have_v a_o end_n 2_o 607_o a_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o his_o deliver_v up_o of_o the_o same_o to_o his_o father_n 2_o 607_o a_o that_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v fulfil_v the_o ministery_n of_o angel_n and_o labour_n of_o celestial_a body_n shall_v cease_v and_o why_o they_o now_o move_v 1_n 120a_o who_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 2_o 598_o ab_fw-la kingdom_n of_o heaven_n what_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n signify_v preach_v by_o christ_n 3_o 203_o b_o under_o the_o name_n thereof_o the_o church_n be_v understand_v 3_o 392_o a_o kindred_n a_o definition_n of_o kindred_n declare_v what_o it_o be_v 2_o 453_o a_o within_o what_o degree_n thereof_o marriage_n may_v not_o be_v make_v 447._o 448._o 449._o 450._o 451._o 452._o 453._o ¶_o look_v marriage_n kiss_n of_o the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o original_n thereof_o 4_o 218_o b_o kn._n knowe_n how_o we_o may_v knowe_n god_n by_o the_o workmanship_n of_o the_o world_n 1_n 16_o a_o we_o may_v know_v he_o three_o manner_n of_o way_n 1_n 16_o a_o two_o way_n natural_o 1_n 10_o b_o knowledge_n physical_a wherein_o opinion_n and_o knowledge_n do_v differ_v 2_o 296_o a_o it_o be_v either_o reveal_v or_o get_v by_o endeavour_n &_o study_n two_o 300_o b_o of_o certain_a affect_n which_o follow_v the_o knowledge_n either_o of_o evil_n or_o good_a two_o 411_o a_o it_o breed_v unquietness_n prove_v 1_n 168_o b_o wherein_o the_o power_n thereof_o consist_v 3_o 137_o a_o whether_o the_o body_n be_v troublesome_a thereunto_o 3_o 316_o b_o 317_o a_o we_o be_v lead_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o cause_n by_o their_o effect_n 1_n 47_o a_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n come_v partly_o by_o cause_n and_o partly_o by_o effect_n 3_o 75_o b_o how_o particular_a thing_n overcome_v a_o general_a knowledge_n 3_o 70_o b_o 71_o a_o of_o a_o knowledge_n that_o may_v seem_v both_o true_a and_o false_o 3_o 73_o b_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o to_o who_o the_o same_o be_v grant_v 1_n 81_o b_o of_o the_o knowledge_n which_o spirit_n have_v 1_n 81_o b_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o principal_a end_n be_v profitable_a 1_o 9_o a_o our_o natural_a knowledge_n corrupt_v 3_o 166_o a_o of_o certain_a thing_n which_o can_v be_v gather_v thereby_o 1_n 17_o a_o the_o pride_n of_o philosopher_n note_v therein_o 1_n two_o a_o they_o hide_v that_o which_o they_o have_v of_o god_n 1_o 11_o a_o how_o philosophy_n and_o divinity_n do_v vary_v concern_v
in_o the_o godly_a 1_n 207b_v how_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o happen_v in_o god_n 1_o 206_o b_o it_o restore_v the_o regenerate_v 2_o 565_o a_o repentance_n in_o the_o party_n oftend_v must_v be_v the_o mean_a of_o reconciliation_n 2_o 497_o a_o the_o cause_n why_o certaie_v time_n be_v prescribe_v thereto_o 3_o 208_o a_o who_o be_v enemy_n to_o it_o and_o who_o favour_v it_o 3_o 206_o ab_fw-la a_o exhortation_n to_o the_o same_o 3_o 226_o a_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n thereof_o notable_o describe_v 3_o 207_o ab_fw-la whether_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n have_v it_o 3_o 216_o ab_fw-la who_o can_v possible_o be_v renew_v by_o it_o 3_o 206_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o virtue_n 3_o 212_o a_o it_o be_v the_o gibbet_n of_o the_o old_a man_n 3_o 204_o a_o a_o distinction_n thereof_o 3_o 205_o a_o 207_o a_o what_o evil_a follow_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n touch_v it_o 3_o 225b_n 226_o a_o define_v 3_o 215_o b_o 204_o b_o whether_o faith_n be_v a_o part_n thereof_o 3_o 213a_o the_o original_n of_o repentance_n and_o that_o god_n consecrate_v it_o in_o himself_o 3_o 203_o b_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o same_o sacramental_a 3_o 108_o b_o why_o it_o be_v call_v the_o second_o table_n or_o board_n 3_o 204_o a_o of_o one_o that_o be_v a_o virtue_n another_o a_o sacrament_n 3_o 208_o b_o a_o heathenish_a or_o ethnic_a repentance_n 3_o 205_o a_o that_o the_o work_n of_o repentance_n have_v the_o nature_n of_o prayer_n 3_o 223_o b_o certain_a name_n and_o description_n of_o repentance_n 3_o 204_o a_o a_o confutation_n of_o such_o as_o can_v both_o weaken_v and_o take_v it_o away_o 3_o 205_o b_o it_o must_v be_v join_v with_o baptism_n 4_o 114_o ab_fw-la provocation_n thereunto_o 3_o 354._o 355_o a_o god_n offer_v of_o occasion_n to_o fall_v to_o it_o 3_o 386_o b_o 387_o ab_fw-la ignorance_n with_o repentance_n and_o without_o repentance_n 2_o 286_o a_o what_o the_o scripture_n determine_v of_o that_o which_o have_v the_o same_o follow_v it_o and_o of_o the_o contrary_n 2_o 292_o ab_fw-la repentance_n in_o a_o adulterous_a wife_n reconcile_v she_o to_o her_o husband_n 2_o 487_o b_o 488_o a_o how_o long_o a_o time_n the_o trial_n thereof_o must_v last_v 2_o 488._o five_o why_o public_a repentance_n must_v sometime_o be_v renew_v 3_o 247_o a_o why_o they_o that_o do_v it_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o ministry_n 3_o 208_o a_o the_o repentance_n of_o solomon_n suppose_v 3_o 368b_n whether_o achabs_n repentance_n please_v god_n 3_o 225_o b_o 111b_v how_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n 4_o 306_o b_o 1_n 208_o ab_fw-la representation_n representation_n of_o god_n by_o image_n admit_v in_o christendom_n 2_o 338_o b_o by_o what_o god_n open_v himself_o in_o old_a time_n 2_o 338_o a_o the_o scripture_n do_v usual_o call_v they_o by_o the_o name_n of_o thing_n represent_v prove_v 1_n 74_o a_o reprobate_n the_o cause_n why_o the_o reprobate_n be_v condemn_v 3_o 12_o a_o they_o be_v not_o predestinate_a and_o why_o 3_o 11_o a_o whether_o adam_n be_v of_o their_o number_n 3_o 26_o a_o the_o reprobate_n be_v not_o without_o some_o benefit_n of_o god._n 3_o 30_o b_o whether_o the_o reprobate_n do_v serve_v the_o purpose_n of_o god._n 3_o 33a_o outward_a calling_n be_v common_a to_o the_o reprobate_n and_o the_o predestinate_a 3_o 30_o a_o why_o the_o godly_a suspect_v not_o that_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o reprobate_n 3_o 24_o a_o note_v what_o god_n do_v unto_o the_o reprobate_n 3_o 36_o b_o reprobation_n a_o definition_n of_o reprobation_n 3_o 11_o b_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 12a_o contrary_a to_o predestination_n 3_o 8_o a_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 25b_n 26_o ab_fw-la whether_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o 3_o 13_o a_o 25_o b_o 24_o ab_fw-la god_n give_v sign_n &_o token_n of_o it_o 3_o 23b_n 24a_o whether_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o 3_o 11_o ab_fw-la 22b_fw-la 23._o 24._o 25._o 26._o the_o last_o end_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 12_o a_o a_o wonder_a example_n of_o reprobation_n in_o francis_n spiera_n 3_o 23_o b_o 24_o a_o reproach_n a_o definition_n of_o reproach_n out_o of_o law_n and_o philosophy_n 2_o 528_o b_o what_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n of_o in_o suffer_v of_o reproach_n 2_o 531_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v suffer_v 2_o 530_o a_o a_o division_n thereof_o and_o that_o sometime_o it_o be_v not_o contumely_n two_o 529_o a_o reproach_n be_v a_o vice_n worse_o than_o theft_n prove_v 2_o 530_o a_o whether_o david_n do_v well_o in_o bear_v it_o 2_o 531_o b_o ¶_o look_v commne_o reproach_n the_o reproach_n that_o christ_n suffer_v depend_v upon_o two_o special_a point_n ●_o 617_o b_o 618_o a_o reprove_v reprove_v define_v 4_o 56_o b_o request_n why_o god_n oftentimes_o defer_v our_o request_n 3_o 301_o a_o ¶_o look_v desire_v and_o prayer_n resident_n against_o non_fw-la resident_n 4_o 20_o b_o ¶_o look_v more_o in_o minister_n resurrection_n of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o ●36b_n from_o whence_o soul_n come_v to_o body_n at_o the_o resurrection_n 3_o 35_o a_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o comfortable_a in_o affliction_n 3_o 341_o b_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o resurrection_n 3_o 330_o b_o of_o our_o state_n after_o it_o and_o between_o our_o departure_n hence_o 1_n 73a_n what_o kind_n of_o body_n we_o shall_v have_v at_o our_o resurrection_n 2_o 637_o b_o 638_o ab_fw-la 623a_o 1_o 25_o a_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a new_a birth_n 3_o 331_o b_o a_o very_o good_a argument_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o easiness_n thereof_o 1_o 122_o b_o 123_o a_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o resurrection_n 2_o 623_o b_o 622_o a_o why_o part_n of_o the_o body_n whereof_o shall_v be_v no_o use_n shall_v remain_v after_o our_o resurrection_n 3_o 360_o b_o of_o the_o condition_n and_o property_n of_o body_n at_o their_o resurrection_n 3_o 357_o b_o both_o of_o the_o good_a and_o the_o bad_a 3_o 389_o ab_fw-la unto_o who_o the_o hope_n thereof_o bring_v great_a comfort_n two_o 637_o ab_fw-la christ_n prove_v it_o by_o the_o sense_n 4_o 153_o b_o the_o state_n of_o the_o just_a after_o the_o resurrection_n 3_o 394_o a_o 352_o a_o resurrection_n prove_v universal_a 3_o 352_o a_o 350_o b_o 369_o b._n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a prove_v out_o of_o genesis_n two_o 585a_v their_o argument_n and_o reason_n which_o deny_v it_o 3_o 330a_o b_o 331_o a_o resurrection_n after_o the_o revolution_n of_o the_o great_a year_n 3_o 328b_n ●…9_n a_o what_o action_n resurrection_n be_v 3_o 331_o ab_fw-la semblance_n thereof_o 3_o 335_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o body_n or_o to_o the_o soul_n 3_o 331_o b_o diverse_a error_n touch_v the_o resurrection_n 3_o 329_o a_o 396_o a_o 361._o 362._o 13_o a_o 1_n 116_o ab_fw-la 1_o 72b_n the_o definition_n and_o nature_n thereof_o 〈◊〉_d 331_o a_o 332_o a_o a_o place_n of_o 〈…〉_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n 〈◊〉_d ●ded_v 3_o 351_o b_o prove_v by_o t●monies_n of_o scripture_n ●_o resurrection_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o 〈◊〉_d respect_n 3_o 332b_n whether_o it_o depend_v of_o celestial_a body_n ●_o 328_o b_o 329_o a_o notable_a point_n in_o persuasion_n thereof_o 3_o 327_o b_o reason_n draw_v from_o natural_a thing_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o resurrection_n 3_o 335_o b_o wherein_o chief_o the_o difficulty_n thereof_o be_v 3_o 336_o b_o whether_o after_o it_o shine_v excel_v other_o in_o glory_n 3_o 389_o b_o 390_o a_o difference_n between_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o 3_o 333_o a_o whether_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v in_o judea_n alone_o 3_o 350_o ab_fw-la both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n requisite_a 3_o 329a_o b_o 332_o ab_fw-la the_o cause_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 348_o a_o 356_o b_o 357_o ab_fw-la how_o in_o the_o dead_a we_o testify_v it_o 3_o 322_o a_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o the_o resurrection_n 3_o 331a_n why_o god_n do_v institute_v the_o resurrection_n 3_o 328a_n the_o old_a father_n must_v attend_v our_o resurrection_n 3_o 324b_n a_o place_n of_o job._n 3_o 340_o b_o 341_o ab_fw-la of_o osee_n 3_o 353_o b_o 354_o a_o in_o the_o psalm_n touch_v it_o expound_v 3_o 342_o a_o cavil_v against_o daniel_n prophesy_v thereof_o and_o the_o same_o answer_v 3_o 352_o ab_fw-la 353_o a_o mean_v use_v that_o the_o effect_n thereof_o may_v come_v to_o our_o remembrance_n 3_o 326_o b_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a new_a creation_n 3_o 360_o a_o of_o our_o age_n then_o 3_o 359_o b_o a_o satisfy_n of_o such_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o seem_v to_o make_v against_o it_o 3_o
sufficient_a to_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a 2_o 355_o a_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o have_v a_o everlasting_a continuance_n 1_n 40_o a_o se._n secret_n we_o must_v reverence_v the_o secret_n of_o god_n and_o not_o carp_v at_o they_o example_n of_o cato_n 2_o 221_o a_o why_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o secret_n of_o salvation_n be_v hide_v from_o man_n furnish_v with_o art_n 1_n 3_o b_o sect_n diverse_a sect_n among_o the_o jew_n 3_o 336_o b_o 337_o a_o sect_n of_o schoolman_n diverse_a 4_o 50_o a_o security_n security_n define_v and_o whence_o it_o spring_v 3_o 68_o a_o two_o kind_n thereof_o and_o of_o their_o difference_n 3_o 67_o b_o a_o good_a and_o a_o bad_a 3_o 68_o b_o the_o effect_n thereof_o 3_o 88_o a_o 68_o a_o whereunto_o it_o be_v contrary_a 3_o 68_o a_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o impiety_n 3_o 6●_n a_o what_o be_v the_o true_a &_o laudable_a security_n 3_o 69_o b_o sedition_n sedition_n define_v 4_o 320_o a_o 322_o a_o how_o great_a a_o crime_n it_o be_v 4_o 322_o b_o 323_o a_o the_o kind_n thereof_o 4_o 320_o b_o the_o ground_n thereof_o 4_o 322_o b_o what_o noble_a thing_n it_o take_v away_o 4_o 320b_n 321_o a_o cause_n thereof_o 4_o 321_o b_o 322a_o christ_n and_o his_o faithful_a one_o charge_v therewith_o 4_o 319_o a_o the_o crymon_n of_o the_o word_n 4_o 320_o a_o whether_o all_o that_o contend_v therein_o must_v be_v accuse_v 4_o 323_o a_o the_o end_n thereof_o 4_o 322_o a_o those_o that_o strive_v against_o the_o magistrate_n be_v guilty_a thereof_o 4_o 323_o b_o severe_a punishment_n for_o it_o 4_o 322_o b_o 323_o a_o ¶_o look_v trouble_n selfelove_n selfelove_n a_o common_a disease_n and_o how_o it_o deceive_v man_n 1_o 144_o a_o sense_n of_o the_o sense_n compound_v and_o the_o sense_n divide_v 3_o 35_o ab_fw-la what_o affect_v do_v follow_v the_o sense_n of_o touch_v 2_o 405_o b_o two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v touch_v the_o affect_n that_o follow_v the_o sense_n of_o feel_v 2_o 406_o b_o the_o scripture_n do_v often_o time_n feign_v sense_n &_o motion_n unto_o thing_n without_o life_n 2_o 251_o b_o sense_n of_o the_o illusion_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o how_o many_o way_n they_o may_v be_v deceive_v 1_n 88_o b_o 89_o a_o 114_o ab_fw-la the_o power_n of_o understanding_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o they_o and_o the_o similitude_n that_o we_o contemplate_v 1_n 147_o ab_fw-la how_o they_o be_v destroy_v and_o preserve_v by_o their_o object_n 2_o 407_o a_o they_o may_v take_v pleasure_n though_o they_o have_v not_o be_v offend_v or_o remove_v from_o their_o natural_a state_n as_o how_o 1_n 137_o a_o of_o the_o mean_n whereby_o they_o work_v and_o how_o 1_n 137_o a_o they_o be_v the_o gross_a part_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o by_o it_o we_o communicate_v with_o beast_n 1_n 134_o b_o from_o whence_o the_o pleasure_n of_o they_o spring_v as_o plato_n think_v 1_n 135_o a_o of_o what_o thing_n they_o do_v judge_v and_o not_o judge_v 1_n 117_o a_o the_o sense_n of_o touch_v and_o taste_v be_v very_o near_a one_o another_o 2_o 412_o a_o galens_n opinion_n of_o grief_n and_o pleasure_n in_o they_o all_o and_o how_o 1_n 136_o b_o 137_o a_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o the_o papist_n say_v 1_o 114_o ab_fw-la the_o quickenesse_n of_o they_o at_o our_o resurrection_n 3_o 359_o b_o christ_n prove_v it_o by_o they_o 4_o 153_o b_o lie_v sense_n minister_v to_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o body_n 3_o 3●6_n b_o separation_n cause_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o popish_a church_n 4_o 94_o ab_fw-la 95_o a_o 68_o 69._o 86._o 87._o 88_o 89._o 69_o ab_fw-la it_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o 4_o 90b_fw-ge whether_o the_o lewd_a life_n of_o minister_n be_v no_o cause_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n 4_o 85_o b_o a_o separation_n even_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n between_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a 4_o 89_o a_o what_o kind_n of_o separation_n be_v a_o confess_v of_o the_o evangelicall_a truth_n 4_o 88_o a_o whether_o any_o man_n have_v authority_n of_o himself_o to_o use_v separation_n from_o his_o neighbour_n 4_o 63_o a_o of_o separation_n from_o god_n &_o whether_o excommunication_n be_v a_o token_n thereof_o 4_o 60_o a_o ¶_o look_v excommunication_n sepulcher_n watch_n at_o dead_a man_n sepulcher_n to_o receive_v oracle_n from_o they_o 1_n 73_o b_o ¶_o look_v grave_n seraphim_n of_o seraphim_n the_o name_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o 1_n 111_o b_o come_v fly_v unto_o esaie_n 1_n 113_o a_o ¶_o look_v cherubin_n &_o seraphin_n sermon_n how_o it_o come_v that_o at_o one_o very_a sermon_n part_n of_o the_o hearer_n believe_v and_o part_v not_o 3_o 141_o a_o sermon_n the_o diverse_a hear_n of_o sermon_n &_o that_o therein_o paul_n rule_n must_v be_v follow_v 1_n 22_o a_o of_o vain_a and_o trifle_a sermon_n 2_o 633_o a_o ¶_o look_v preach_v servant_n a_o servant_n define_v 4_o 316_o a_o the_o property_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o servant_n 3_o 162_o ab_fw-la servant_n how_o servant_n must_v be_v handle_v of_o their_o master_n 4_o 314_o b_o what_o the_o law_n of_o god_n decree_v for_o they_o in_o the_o jew_n time_n 4_o 316_o b_o how_o they_o be_v equal_a and_o unequal_a to_o their_o master_n 4_o 314_o b_o child_n and_o they_o compare_v 3_o 143._o whether_o we_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n 3_o 162_o ab_fw-la 163_o a_o a_o difference_n between_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o world_n 3_o 276_o b_o what_o kind_n of_o servant_n the_o father_n under_o the_o law_n be_v 2_o 595_o b_o service_n what_o be_v say_v too_o and_o fro_o of_o the_o service_n in_o the_o church_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n 3_o 309_o b_o 310._o 311._o 2_o 317_o b_o 318_o a_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v it_o in_o the_o mothertoong_a 3_o 310_o b_o no_o strange_a tongue_n use_v therein_o of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a 3_o 311_o a_o of_o comeliness_n require_v therein_o 4_o 65_o b_o how_o defective_a we_o be_v therein_o be_v show_v by_o a_o proper_a analogy_n 3_o 162_o ab_fw-la solomon_n make_v a_o division_n thereof_o and_o of_o his_o punishment_n of_o like_a for_o like_v 2_o 324_o a_o how_o all_o creature_n do_v service_n unto_o the_o godly_a 2_o 251_o b_o 252_o a_o servitude_n servitude_n distinguish_v 4_o 316_o a_o 3_o 163_o a_o the_o original_a and_o cause_n thereof_o 4_o 314_o a_o from_o whence_o the_o name_n spring_v 4_o 313_o b_o voluntary_a &_o religious_a 4_o 315_o a_o ¶_o look_v bondage_n seven_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o put_v for_o any_o other_o number_n 2_o 237_o a_o it_o comprise_v all_o the_o former_a number_n 1_n 3a_o it_o betoken_v a_o complete_a number_n in_o scripture_n and_o how_o 2_o 362_o b_o it_o be_v mystical_a and_o it_o be_v a_o number_n wherewith_o god_n be_v delight_v &_o why_o 2_o 374_o b_o by_o it_o be_v express_v the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o 368_o a_o seven_o day_n why_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v name_v to_o have_v neither_o morning_n nor_o evening_n 2_o 375_o a_o of_o the_o sanctification_n thereof_o 2_o 374_o ab_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o thing_n god_n have_v give_v we_o by_o it_o 2_o 374_o b_o how_o god_n rest_v thereon_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v 2_o 374_o b_o ¶_o look_v sabbath_n day_n sh._n shadowe_n how_o the_o shadow_n accompany_v not_o the_o body_n always_o after_o one_o manner_n 1_n 142_o b_o 143_o a_o shame_n shame_n take_v sometime_o for_o frustration_n 3_o 82_o b_o in_o what_o thing_n the_o flesh_n reckon_v it_o 3_o 261_o ab_fw-la who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v put_v to_o shame_n or_o make_v ashamed_a 3_o 227_o ab_fw-la shamefastness_n shamefastness_n be_v no_o virtue_n &_o yet_o commend_v 2_o 412_o a_o of_o the_o excess_n and_o defect_n which_o make_v it_o commendable_a 2_o 412_o a_o sheep_n a_o distinction_n of_o sheep_n 3_o 281_o b_o shepherds_z watch_n of_o shepherd_n 3_o 256_o b_o their_o troublesome_a life_n describe_v 4_o 29_o b_o 30_o a_o shewbread_n the_o use_n and_o end_n of_o the_o shewbread_n 4_o 162_o ab_fw-la shrove_n tide_n the_o abuse_n that_o man_n use_v at_o shrove_n tide_n 3_o 255_o b_o si._n sibyl_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o sibyl_n and_o what_o authentical_a writer_n have_v think_v of_o they_o 1_n 21_o a_o the_o french_a sibyl_n do_v geld_v themselves_o 1_n 21_o b_o sicera_fw-la what_o kind_n of_o drink_n sicera_fw-la be_v 3_o 178_o b_o 179_o a_o sickness_n sickness_n of_o the_o mind_n 3_o 69_o a_o sight_n dishonest_a sight_n must_v be_v avoid_v and_o why_o 2_o 481_o b_o sign_n what_o a_o sign_n be_v and_o the_o same_o distinguish_v 4_o 97_o b_o a_o analogy_n must_v be_v keep_v between_o
there_o always_o happen_v some_o error_n as_o how_o 2_o 242_o b_o god_n do_v govern_v it_o and_o after_o what_o sort_n he_o govern_v the_o same_o 1_n 184_o b_o creature_n suffer_v punishment_n together_o with_o we_o when_o we_o sinne._n 2_o 250_o b_o how_o the_o revenge_n of_o adam_n sin_n in_o we_o must_v be_v understand_v 2_o 234_o ab_fw-la howe_n ample_o the_o word_n sin_n be_v to_o betake_v 2_o 241_o b_o the_o soul_n be_v create_v without_o sin_n and_o how_o it_o become_v sinful_a 2_o 246_o a_o voluntary_a if_o we_o speak_v of_o actual_a sin_n but_o not_o voluntary_a if_o we_o speak_v of_o original_a sin_n 1_o 198_o a_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o concupiscence_n prove_v against_o pighius_fw-la 2_o 220_o b_o whether_o christ_n in_o remove_v thereof_o remoove_v death_n 3_o 315_o a_o it_o remoove_v we_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o how_o miserable_a we_o be_v become_v thereby_o 1_n 32a_o sin_n take_v place_n in_o the_o mind_n only_o 1_n 180_o b_o against_o three_o several_a opinion_n of_o man_n maintain_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sinne._n 1_o 180_o ab_fw-la whether_o the_o first_o parent_n be_v dead_a straight_a way_n after_o it_o 3_o 325_o a_o god_n proper_o and_o by_o himself_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n thereof_o prove_v at_o large_a by_o p._n martyr_n 1_n 181_o a_o whether_o he_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o one_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o 2_o 555_o ab_fw-la diverse_a definition_n thereof_o 2_o 570_o b_o it_o may_v be_v even_o where_o notable_a virtue_n be_v 2_o 555_o ab_fw-la whether_o before_o it_o the_o woman_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o man_n 2_o 379a_o how_o sin_n arm_v our_o servant_n against_o us._n 1_o ●24_n b_o who_o be_v sell_v under_o it_o 2_o 565_o a_o how_o manifold_a it_o be_v which_o be_v know_v by_o the_o law_n 2_o 575_o b_o one_o excel_v another_o 2_o 555_o a_o argument_n or_o reason_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 27._o prove_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o 1_n 178_o ab_fw-la 179_o ab_fw-la 180_o a_o what_o it_o be_v 2_o 576_o a_o augustine_n definition_n thereof_o be_v doubtful_a 2_o 570_o b_o whether_o that_o of_o adam_n or_o eve_n be_v the_o gréevouser_n 2_o 490_o a_o 493_o ab_fw-la by_o what_o name_n the_o angel_n that_o be_v send_v to_o punish_v sin_n be_v call_v 1_n 120_o b_o 121_o a_o what_o remain_v thereof_o when_o it_o be_v past_a 3_o 205_o b_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n 2_o 575_o b_o how_o that_o which_o be_v sin_n become_v no_o sin_n 2_o 475_o a_o sin_n distinguish_v one_o of_o necessity_n the_o other_o of_o plenty_n 3_o 295_o b_o that_o which_o be_v only_a sin_n and_o that_o which_o be_v both_o sin_n and_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n 2_o 273_o a_o the_o degree_n thereof_o from_o the_o original_n to_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 363_o b_o remissible_a two_o way_n to_o be_v understand_v 2_o 272_o ab_fw-la why_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o punishment_n 2_o 273_o b_o of_o a_o kind_n thereof_o which_o though_o it_o be_v do_v by_o compulsion_n yet_o it_o be_v voluntary_a 2_o 323_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o commit_v a_o less_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o a_o great_a 305_o b_o 306_o ab_fw-la it_o be_v a_o privation_n or_o want_n of_o that_o good_a thing_n which_o the_o law_n prescribe_v 2_o 271_o b_o why_o god_n require_v of_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v utter_o without_o it_o 3_o 55_o a_o whether_o paul_n be_v without_o it_o as_o his_o speech_n import_v 3_o 54_o b_o christ_n die_v not_o altogether_o without_o it_o 3_o 42_o b_o 43_o a_o even_o the_o holy_a be_v subject_a unto_o sinne._n 3_o 55_o a_o who_o be_v to_o be_v repute_v without_o it_o and_o how_o 3_o 77_o b_o 78_o b_o whether_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o in_o adam_n 3_o 26_o a_o jerom_n against_o manicheus_fw-la who_o say_v that_o we_o therefore_o can_v resist_v it_o for_o that_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n create_v evil_a by_o a_o evil_a god_n two_o 274_o a_o necessity_n take_v not_o away_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o 3_o 21_o b_o remissible_a and_o irremissible_a 2_o 272_o a_o a_o examination_n of_o this_o definition_n that_o it_o be_v whatsoever_o withstand_v the_o law_n of_o god_n 2_o 271_o b_o the_o horriblenesse_n thereof_o set_v open_a 2_o 619_o b_o the_o proper_a cause_n of_o sin_n be_v inward_a to_o wit_v the_o naughty_a will_n of_o man_n 1_n 181_o a_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o death_n where_o note_v contrary_a opinion_n confute_v 2_o 246_o a_o 247_o a_o what_o the_o first_o ground_n thereof_o be_v 4_o 108_o b_o it_o lie_v asleep_a in_o infant_n say_v augustine_n and_o why_o 2_o 224_o a_o by_o adam_n as_o by_o the_o common_a root_n and_o mass_n it_o enter_v 2_o 242_o a_o the_o effect_n which_o follow_v it_o 3_o 203_o a_o the_o devil_n no_o perfect_a cause_n but_o a_o allure_a or_o persuade_v cause_n thereof_o 1_n 184_o b_o how_o by_o sin_n all_o thing_n be_v subject_a unto_o vanity_n a_o notable_a place_n 2_o 247_o b_o 248_o a_o of_o the_o guiltiness_n thereof_o or_o bond_n unto_o punishment_n 1_n 188a_o god_n be_v not_o the_o proper_a cause_n but_o the_o remoo●ing_n or_o prohibit_v cause_n of_o it_o and_o how_o 1_n 181_o a_o whether_o that_o of_o adam_n do_v any_o way_n depend_v of_o god_n will_n 1_o 204_o ab_fw-la a_o objection_n that_o if_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n thereof_o than_o he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o allthing_n 3_o 198_o a_o why_o god_n take_v not_o away_o sin_n since_o he_o hate_v it_o a_o excellent_a place_n teach_v by_o similitude_n 1_o 191_o b_o how_o it_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o second_o cause_n 1_n 189_o b_o it_o be_v no_o imperfection_n in_o god_n that_o he_o can_v make_v it_o and_o why_o he_o can_v make_v it_o 1_n 190_o ab_fw-la the_o proper_a and_o true_a cause_n thereof_o particular_o what_o they_o be_v 1_n 190_o b_o of_o the_o subject_n whereunto_o the_o deformity_n of_o it_o do_v clean_o 1_n 188_o ab_fw-la three_o consideration_n touch_v the_o proposition_n that_o it_o depend_v on_o god_n 1_o 188_o a_o how_o god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o deficient_a cause_n thereof_o 1_n 187_o a_o a_o error_n that_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n unless_o it_o be_v voluntary_a 2_o 213_o b_o 214_o a_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o sacrament_n pertain_v to_o the_o first_o table_n 2_o 332_o a_o a_o reason_n why_o man_n can_v choose_v but_o sinne._n 2_o 254_o b_o whatsoever_o want_v his_o due_a perfection_n be_v sinne._n 265_o b_o death_n have_v no_o right_a where_o there_o be_v no_o sinne._n 2_o 217_o a_o the_o sin_n of_o imitation_n can_v be_v do_v away_o by_o baptism_n 2_o 216_o a_o it_o be_v only_a sin_n whereby_o we_o resist_v god_n and_o how_o general_a it_o be_v 2_o 607_o b_o inclination_n to_o sin_n and_o not_o actual_a sin_n only_o suffice_v to_o damnation_n prove_v by_o a_o similitude_n 2_o 218._o example_n of_o occasion_n of_o commit_v sin_n 1_o 185_o a_o why_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v sinne._n 2_o 227_o b_o how_o god_n offer_v occasion_n of_o sinne._n 1_o 184_o b_o 185_o a_o a_o oblation_n for_o sin_n be_v call_v sin_n 2_o 609_o a_o the_o pelagian_o say_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v count_v sin_n which_o can_v be_v avoid_v confute_v 2_o 239_o ab_fw-la no_o efficient_a but_o deficient_a cause_n of_o sin_n and_o what_o they_o be_v 1_n 184_o ab_fw-la a_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n in_o infant_n count_v sin_n by_o reti●ius_n a_o old_a bishop_n 2_o 225_o ab_fw-la the_o error_n of_o the_o libertine_n that_o god_n do_v all_o thing_n in_o we_o and_o therefore_o sin_n be_v nothing_o 1_o 211_o a_o good_a thing_n unto_o the_o wicked_a be_v occasion_n of_o commit_v sin_n prove_v 1_n 185_o a_o how_o these_o word_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v count_v sin_n which_o depend_v not_o of_o election_n 2_o 2●6_n ab_fw-la a_o very_a hard_a opinion_n that_o god_n shall_v contaminate_v with_o sin_n a_o soul_n which_o as_o yet_o pertain_v not_o to_o adam_n 2_o 245_o b_o 246_o a_o the_o sin_n of_o imitation_n can_v be_v do_v away_o by_o baptism_n 2_o 216_o a_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o false_a reason_n that_o because_o child_n have_v no_o actual_a sin_n therefore_o they_o have_v no_o sin_n 2_o 239_o 239_o a_o how_o paul_n mean_v that_o every_o sin_n be_v without_o the_o body_n 2_o 469_o b_o 470_o a_o josua_n punish_v the_o child_n for_o the_o father_n sin_n contrary_a to_o the_o common_a law_n 2_o 235_o b_o sin_n and_o death_n be_v compare_v together_o as_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o effect_n two_o 244a_v augustine_n sentence_n that_o every_o sin_n be_v the_o
the_o old_a jew_n be_v say_v to_o line_n under_o it_o 2_o 595_o a_o god_n spirit_n be_v give_v to_o they_o 2_o 592_o b_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n &_o no_o body_n and_o by_o what_o reason_n the_o same_o be_v prove_v 1_n 24b_n 25_o a_o the_o power_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a 3_o 349_o b_o a_o reason_n why_o he_o sometime_o take_v it_o away_o from_o man_n 1_n 181_o b_o how_o it_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o person_n 4_o 53_o b_o how_o we_o be_v say_v to_o gréeve_v or_o make_v it_o sorrowful_a 206_o b_o 1_n 207_o a_o whether_o all_o man_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n 1_n 41_o b_o we_o can_v drink_v christ_n without_o it_o 2_o 593b_v it_o be_v not_o grant_v no_o not_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o after_o his_o resurrection_n it_o shall_v pass_v into_o a_o spirit_n and_o why_o 1_n 25_o a_o why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o spirit_n two_o 627_o a_o it_o be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o church_n two_o 629_o b_o 630_o a_o the_o law_n can_v do_v her_o office_n without_o it_o 2_o 593_o a_o two_o effect_n thereof_o 2_o 594_o b_o who_o they_o be_v that_o be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o first_o fruit_n thereof_o 2_o 248_o b_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n take_v to_o be_v both_o one_o 4_o 122_o a_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 3_o 349b_fw-ge how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n be_v all_o one_o 3_o 36●_n a_o ¶_o look_v holy_a ghost_n spirit_n of_o wander_a spirit_n 3_o 326_o b_o 327_o a_o a_o definition_n of_o they_o out_o of_o apuleius_n 1_n 78_o b_o what_o manner_n of_o body_n they_o have_v 1_n 80_o b_o 81_o a_o many_o cause_n why_o they_o be_v often_o time_n deceive_v 1_n 82b_n 83_o ab_fw-la of_o the_o air_n and_o that_o they_o see_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n 1_n 82_o a_o to_o what_o end_n they_o put_v on_o body_n 1_n 88_o a_o that_o they_o can_v raise_v up_o tempest_n prove_v 1_n 90_o b_o whether_o they_o see_v the_o thought_n of_o man_n 1_n 83_o b_o they_o that_o stir_v by_o prophet_n be_v sometime_o good_a sometime_o evil_a 1_n 19_o a_o of_o the_o knowledge_n which_o they_o have_v 1_n 81_o b_o they_o beguile_v the_o outward_a sense_n &_o how_o 1_n 88_o b_o 89_o a_o their_o power_n distinguish_v and_o how_o 1_o 85_o b_o 81_o b_o 84_o b_o whether_o they_o be_v body_n or_o but_o mere_a fantasy_n 1_n 87_o b_o 88_o a_o among_o the_o celestial_a there_o be_v order_n and_o office_n 1_n 120_o b_o their_o old_a age_n their_o nimbleness_n and_o why_o they_o be_v term_v fly_v 1_n 81_o b_o 82_o a_o they_o can_v pierce_v through_o the_o massy_a substance_n 1_n 87_o a_o how_o spirit_n work_v thing_n so_o sudden_o and_o with_o such_o speediness_n 1_o 86_o ab_fw-la the_o opinion_n of_o the_o platonist_n touch_v they_o and_o their_o substance_n 1_n ●8_o b_o whether_o they_o know_v thing_n to_o come_v 1_o 81_o b_o 82_o a_o there_o be_v some_o which_o govern_v the_o sphere_n prove_v 1_n 77_o ah_o four_o kind_a mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n 1_n 81_o ab_fw-la both_o good_a and_o bad_a be_v call_v demon_n 1_o 77_o a_o of_o some_o that_o be_v not_o impulsion_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o very_a substance_n 1_n 81_o a_o they_o be_v present_a at_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n and_o be_v call_v to_o execute_v his_o commandment_n prove_v 1_n 82_o ab_fw-la whether_o the_o body_n of_o spirit_n be_v elementary_a 1_o 80b_v of_o who_o they_o which_v walk_v about_o the_o earth_n to_o our_o great_a harm_n be_v beget_v as_o say_v lactantius_n and_o other_o 1_n 128_o b_o 129_o a_o of_o a_o people_n in_o norway_n which_o have_v great_a familiarity_n with_o spirit_n 1_n 90_o b_o of_o spirit_n which_o be_v adversary_n unto_o god_n note_v by_o paul_n in_o the_o ephesian_n 1_n 120_o a_o their_o office_n and_o unto_o what_o several_a function_n they_o be_v appoint_v 1_n 78_o b_o in_o the_o upper_a region_n of_o the_o aer_fw-la prove_v 1_n 80_o b_o how_o they_o do_v eat_v which_o proove_v they_o to_o have_v body_n consist_v of_o vital_a part_n 1_n 88_o a_o by_o what_o mean_v they_o can_v give_v answer_n 1_n 84_o a_o a_o division_n of_o they_o into_o sundry_a sort_n 1_n 78_o b_o how_o spirit_n be_v in_o a_o place_n 3_o 373_o they_o take_v to_o themselves_o airy_n body_n and_o how_o that_o be_v prove_v 1_n 87_o ab_fw-la 88_o a_o they_o gather_v the_o cause_n by_o the_o effect_n and_o how_o 1_n 82_o b_o they_o that_o be_v create_v of_o god_n can_v be_v see_v with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n 1_n 27_o a_o tris●…egistus_n deni_v that_o there_o be_v any_o at_o all_o and_o why_o 1_o 78_o a_o a_o proof_n of_o good_a spirit_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 1_n 79_o a_o they_o do_v not_o deceive_v and_o why_o 1_n 88_o b_o they_o do_v not_o obey_v magical_a enchantment_n say_v origen_n 1_n 73_o b_o a_o proof_n of_o evil_a spirit_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 1_n 79_o a_o they_o have_v talk_v with_o god_n himself_o 1_n 74_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o ask_v counsel_n of_o they_o 1_n 91_o a_o they_o do_v oftentimes_o deceive_v man_n 4_o 131_o a_o they_o be_v move_v not_o only_o unto_o fleshly_a lust_n and_o other_o sensual_a pleasure_n but_o also_o unto_o cruelty_n 1_n 90_o ab_fw-la the_o use_n of_o the_o power_n of_o evil_a spirit_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n and_o to_o who_o the_o same_o belong_v 1_n 66_o b_o 67_o a_o by_o what_o mean_v we_o must_v succour_v the_o possess_v with_o they_o 4_o 132_o b_o of_o cast_v they_o out_o 4_o 129_o b_o 130_o ab_fw-la whether_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o dead_a wander_v up_o and_o down_o 3_o 326_o b_o none_o of_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v so_o transform_v in_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v come_v spirit_n or_o cease_v to_o be_v body_n any_o long_o 1_n 25_o a_o why_o paul_n say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n 1_n 2d_o b_o the_o great_a number_n of_o administer_a spirit_n reckon_v up_o of_o daniel_n and_o their_o office_n 2_o 357_o b_o of_o the_o spirit_n wherewith_o the_o father_n under_o the_o law_n and_o the_o spirit_n wherewith_o we_o under_o the_o gospel_n be_v move_v 2_o 592_o b_o two_o rule_n for_o the_o try_v of_o spirit_n 4_o 46_o a_o how_o to_o discern_v between_o the_o revelation_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a ●_o 37_o a_o 4_o 45_o b_o the_o gift_n of_o try_v they_o cease_v in_o the_o church_n 4_o 59_o a_o spiritual_a it_o shall_v rise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n expound_v 3_o 359_o b_o spittle_n in_o spittle_n be_v a_o property_n against_o poison_n 4_o 127_o b_o add_v to_o baptism_n 4_o 127_o a_o a_o blind_a and_o a_o lame_a man_n heal_v of_o vespasian_n by_o his_o spital_n 1_n 77_o b_o spoil_n of_o spoil_n take_v in_o war_n what_o be_v determine_v ●_o 3●3_n 304._o 305._o the_o division_n of_o they_o 4_o 306_o b_o 307_o a_o st._n star_n what_o thing_n be_v foretell_v by_o star_n ●_o 7_o a_o state_n adam_n be_v free_a in_o his_o first_o state_n 2_o 253_o a_o four_o difference_n of_o state_n in_o man_n at_o the_o least_o 2_o 253_o a_o stature_n the_o common_a stature_n of_o man_n of_o our_o time_n 1_n 130_o b_o beauty_n and_o stature_n do_v nothing_o further_o unto_o salvation_n 1_n 131_o a_o the_o stature_n of_o giant_n both_o out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o ethnic_a writer_n 1_n 130_o ab_fw-la of_o man_n body_n shall_v be_v less_a &_o less_o say_v esdras_n 1_n 131_o a_o the_o stature_n of_o saul_n and_o that_o he_o be_v high_a than_o the_o other_o hebrews_n by_o the_o shoulder_n upward_o 1_n 148_o a_o steal_v steal_v away_o of_o servant_n punish_v with_o death_n 2_o 518_o b_o ¶_o look_v theft_n and_o rapt_v stew_n against_o the_o maintain_n of_o the_o stew_n in_o christendom_n 2_o 470b_v 471_o a_o a_o sentence_n of_o augustine_n for_o maintain_v of_o they_o 2_o 471_o a_o common_a maintain_v in_o rome_n 2_o 472b_v 473_o ab_fw-la justinians_n grief_n when_o he_o see_v they_o maintain_v to_o near_a to_o god_n church_n 2_o 473_o b_o stranger_n a_o law_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o poor_a stranger_n 2_o 521_o a_o strength_n the_o weakness_n of_o strength_n be_v admit_v for_o no_o excuse_n in_o the_o ethnike_v 1_n 14_o b_o if_o by_o our_o own_o strength_n we_o can_v perform_v the_o law_n how_o be_v we_o excusable_a ●_o 14a_o ¶_o look_v power_n student_n a_o lesson_n for_o student_n touch_v these_o diet_n 3_o 174_o a_o su._n subject_n a_o distinction_n or_o
circumcision_n and_o what_o it_o signify_v 150_o a_o baptism_n and_o it_o be_v all_o one_o and_o how_o 150_o a_o collect_v and_o the_o reason_n of_o those_o prayer_n and_o their_o name_n 136_o a_o commandment_n which_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n 102_o b_o 103_o a_o the_o first_o and_o last_o observe_v of_o none_o 167_o b_o commandment_n of_o god_n must_v be_v distinguish_v and_o how_o 160_o b_o four_o in_o the_o first_o table_n and_o which_o they_o be_v 165_o a_o six_o in_o the_o second_o and_o what_o they_o be_v 165_o a_o why_o some_o be_v affirmative_a and_o some_o negative_a 169_o b_o what_o we_o have_v to_o note_v in_o the_o content_n of_o the_o ten_o 164_o b_o the_o conjunction_n of_o they_o 165_o a_o the_o substance_n of_o they_o 164_o a_o b_o three_o kind_n of_o action_n handle_v in_o they_o 164_o b_o what_o we_o must_v do_v when_o two_o contrary_a meet_a which_o can_v be_v perform_v both_o at_o once_o 166_o a_o b_o 71_o a_o b_o 72_o a_o come_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n only_o two_o 231_o b_o commonweal_n and_o what_o kind_n of_o rule_n be_v good_a therein_o 163_o a_o plato_n imagine_v 52_o a_o communion_n or_o conjunction_n of_o we_o with_o christ_n 105_o b_o 97_o a_o what_o opinion_n cyril_n hold_v thereof_o 106_o b_o the_o instrument_n or_o knot_n of_o the_o same_o 98_o a_o of_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_v thereof_o 106_o a_o sign_n and_o token_n of_o it_o 98_o a_o distance_n of_o place_n hinder_v it_o not_o 97_o b_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o part_n or_o member_n of_o the_o body_n 97_o b_o communion_n in_o the_o morning_n a_o devise_n of_o man_n 119_o b_o 120_o a_o ¶_o look_v eucharist_n concubine_n of_o the_o patriarch_n be_v their_o wife_n 152_o a_o concupiscence_n of_o two_o kind_n recite_v in_o the_o last_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n 165_o a_o confession_n of_o sin_n both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n allow_v 157_o a_o three_o manner_n of_o way_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n 170_o a_o how_o flight_n in_o persecution_n be_v a_o kind_n thereof_o 70_o a_o auricular_a must_v not_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o church_n 170_o a_o conjunction_n of_o we_o with_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n 140_o b_o 141_o a_o b_o 106_o a_o b_o 184_o a_o b_o 220_o a_o b_o 124_o a_o b_o disagréement_n touch_v the_o same_o 97_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v do_v by_o christ_n or_o by_o faith_n 126._o how_o it_o be_v increase_v in_o christ_n 124_o b_o 125._o 126_o a_o 127_o a_o a_o certain_a kind_a common_a to_o all_o man_n in_o general_a 105_o b_o that_o the_o weakness_n of_o faith_n let_v it_o not_o 126_o a_o of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n 139_o a_o b_o 140_o a_o b_o of_o christ_n humanity_n and_o divinity_n 3_o a_o b._n conjunction_n two_o which_o we_o have_v with_o christ_n 97_o a_o conscience_n clear_v a_o great_a comfort_n 112_o b_o we_o must_v do_v nothing_o against_o it_o 122_o a_o b._n consecration_n be_v a_o sacramental_a thing_n 242_o b_o the_o force_n thereof_o special_o in_o the_o eucharist_n 138_o b_o 239_o a_o when_o and_o how_o that_o of_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v make_v 212_o a_o consequent_a deny_v by_o deny_v of_o the_o antecedent_n 130_o b_o 131_o a_o constancy_n in_o persecution_n for_o true_a religion_n exhort_v read_v the_o 47._o epistle_n begin_v at_o pag._n 139_o renew_v in_o the_o godly_a 145_o b_o consubstantiation_n of_o luther_n and_o brentius_n 153_o b_o contempt_n of_o christ_n 3_o b_o contrary_n can_v be_v together_o in_o one_o subject_n at_o once_o 204_o a_o b_o 205_o a_o b._n contrition_n and_o how_o it_o be_v not_o effectual_a to_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n 157_o a_o controversy_n about_o the_o understanding_n of_o scripture_n 187_o a_o conversion_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o compulsion_n 111_o b_o 112_o a_o 119_o b_o touch_v the_o power_n of_o god_n therein_o 108_o b_o thereunto_o we_o bring_v nothing_o activelie_a 117_o b_o 118_o a_o whereto_o it_o and_o our_o disposition_n to_o do_v good_a must_v be_v attribute_v 110_o a_o b_o 111_o a_o b_o 112_o a_o b_o of_o paul_n 115_o a_o whether_o he_o therein_o be_v draw_v by_o free_a will_n 118_o a_o b._n correction_n brotherlie_a extend_v to_o every_o estate_n 170_o a_o covenant_n and_o the_o definition_n and_o scope_n thereof_o 160_o a_o what_o god_n require_v of_o we_o to_o he_o ward_v therein_o 28_o b_o 29_o a_o that_o in_o the_o law_n and_o that_o in_o the_o gospel_n all_o one_o 150_o a_o what_o jew_n at_o this_o day_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o same_o 150_o b_o what_o god_n mean_v when_o in_o that_o which_o he_o make_v with_o the_o levite_n he_o promise_v peace_n 28_o a_o b._n counsel_n general_a and_o how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v regard_v 210_o b_o 197_o a_o b_o that_o they_o can_v err_v as_o the_o cardinal_n of_o loren_n say_v 152_o b_o not_o to_o rely_v or_o lean_v too_o much_o to_o they_o 249_o a_o b._n counsel_n ask_v of_o god_n in_o every_o enterprise_n 38_o a_o court_n &_o of_o leave_v it_o or_o live_v in_o it_o 158_o b_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o probable_a proposition_n concern_v the_o same_o 144_o a_o creature_n have_v a_o substance_n circumscriptible_a 190_o b_o how_o it_o come_v that_o some_o be_v clean_a and_o some_o unclean_a 147_o b_o wherein_o their_o holiness_n stand_v 163_o a_o cross_n be_v christ_n triumphant_a chariot_n 5_o b_o 6_o a_o 8_o a_o how_o it_o make_v all_o thing_n savoury_a 9_o a_o b_o how_o diverslie_o man_n be_v addict_v to_o the_o same_o 4_o a_o crucifix_n and_o of_o worship_v the_o same_o 121_o a_o b_o the_o image_n thereof_o must_v not_o be_v on_o the_o table_n when_o the_o word_n be_v preach_v or_o the_o sacrament_n minister_v 123_o a_o b._n curiosity_n define_v and_o what_o be_v intend_v thereby_o 152_o a_o why_o it_o do_v much_o hinder_a faith_n 163_o a_o curse_n be_v lawful_a for_o the_o godly_a and_o so_o be_v oath_n 164_o b_o what_o we_o be_v to_o gather_v by_o those_o that_o be_v lay_v upon_o our_o first_o parent_n 146_o a_o b._n d._n dagon_n and_o the_o form_n and_o figure_n of_o he_o be_v the_o philistine_n god_n 86_o b_o dance_v and_o what_o be_v thereof_o determine_v 161_o a_o deacon_n and_o why_o they_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o church_n 50_o a_o 42_o b_o dead_a and_o touch_v their_o burial_n in_o choose_a place_n and_o special_o in_o temple_n 152_o a_o death_n more_o fear_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n than_o of_o the_o gospel_n 149_o a_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n set_v before_o adam_n 145_o a_o of_o sorrow_v and_o reioise_v therein_o and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o 155_o b_o the_o cruelty_n thereof_o complain_v of_o 82_o a_o how_o the_o godly_a desire_n that_o which_o they_o fear_v 67_o a_o how_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o same_o be_v not_o of_o itself_o faulty_a 73_o a_o b._n of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o bodily_a the_o other_o spiritual_a 74_o b_o within_o what_o bound_v the_o fear_n thereof_o must_v be_v restrain_v 67_o b_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v fear_v 66_o a_o how_o it_o do_v always_o bring_v fear_n 67_o a_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o faultinesse_n in_o the_o fear_n thereof_o 66_o a_o not_o good_a by_o itself_o 67_o a_o whether_o the_o fear_n thereof_o in_o a_o christian_a man_n be_v sin_n 65_o b_o a_o sermon_n of_o christ_n 1_o a_o and_o so_o forward_o in_o what_o respect_n he_o strive_v with_o it_o 5_o a_o dearth_n and_o provision_n against_o it_o when_o and_o by_o who_o to_o be_v make_v 157_o a_o disagreement_n and_o bear_v of_o hatred_n differ_v 176_o a_o b._n discipline_n ecclesiastical_a and_o how_o necessary_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v 88_o b_o where_o the_o rule_n thereof_o must_v be_v seek_v for_o 89_o a_o under_o what_o pretence_n it_o be_v reject_v 88_o b_o disputation_n must_v not_o be_v count_v unprofitable_a nor_o refuse_v and_o why_o 176_o a_o devil_n let_v loose_a and_o at_o liberty_n 103_o b_o divine_a be_v a_o god_n speak_v among_o man_n 49_o b._n divinity_n a_o sermon_n concern_v the_o study_n of_o the_o same_o 43_o b_o and_o so_o forward_o the_o ancientness_n thereof_o 45_o b_o the_o utility_n and_o profit_n of_o it_o 46_o a_o the_o worthiness_n thereof_o 45_o a_o 249_o a_o b_o school_n for_o it_o and_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v in_o they_o 89_o a_o b_o the_o chief_a thing_n whereby_o to_o judge_v matter_n thereof_o 210b_o how_o that_o when_o it_o be_v commend_v under_o one_o labour_n be_v reap_v two_o fruit_n 44_o b_o the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o it_o set_v forth_o by_o similitude_n 56_o b_o a_o kind_a thereof_o condemn_v &_o why_o 54_o a_o a_o definition_n thereof_o 56_o b_o divinity_n or_o godhead_n and_o a_o distinction_n
or_o diversity_n make_v in_o the_o essence_n thereof_o 103_o a_o ¶_o look_v god_n and_o trinity_n doctrine_n must_v not_o be_v ground_v on_o doubtful_a speech_n 134_o a_o draw_v &_o how_o god_n draw_v we_o unto_o he_o be_v show_v by_o similitude_n 111_o b_o 112_o a_o dream_n and_o why_o be_v send_v from_o god_n they_o be_v grant_v to_o some_o unbeléever_n 156_o b_o of_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a 151_o a_o even_o vain_a one_o do_v god_n use_v in_o most_o weighty_a matter_n 37_o b_o droonkards_n must_v be_v excommunicate_v 151_o a_o what_o we_o be_v to_o determine_v of_o the_o evil_n do_v by_o they_o 151_o a_o droonkennesse_n and_o in_o who_o it_o be_v to_o be_v condemn_v and_o in_o who_o not_o 148_o a_o in_o the_o vice_n thereof_o what_o be_v sin_n and_o what_o not_o 151_o a_o e._n election_n and_o whether_o it_o depend_v of_o work_n foresee_v 131_o a_o b_o god_n and_o man_n be_v diverse_a 131_o a._n element_n and_o in_o what_o sort_n they_o be_v in_o compound_a body_n 183_o b._n error_n be_v not_o particular_o condemn_v in_o the_o scripture_n 135_o a_o b_o diverse_a &_o their_o favourer_n 135_o b_o 136_o a_o ¶_o look_v heresy_n eucharist_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n earthly_a and_o heavenly_a 183_o b_o 232_o b_o whether_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n give_v therein_o be_v passable_a or_o impassable_a 204_o a_o a_o comparison_n of_o our_o change_n with_o the_o change_n of_o bread_n in_o it_o 183_o a_o origin_n opinion_n that_o the_o natural_a substance_n thereof_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o draught_n 182_o a_o how_o both_o bread_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v therein_o 186_o b_o whether_o the_o bread_n in_o it_o be_v metaphorical_a 215_o b_o 216_o a_o 235_o b_o 236_o a_o whether_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v corporal_o and_o substantial_o in_o it_o 188_o a_o 189_o a_o b_o etc._n etc._n 226_o b_o etc._n etc._n 243_o b_o 244_o a_o etc._n etc._n three_o question_n touch_v the_o same_o dispute_v of_o 175._o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v both_o that_o christ_n body_n and_o the_o bread_n be_v therein_o 198_o b_o how_o christ_n be_v therein_o show_v by_o comparison_n 280_o a_o as_o christ_n bless_a bread_n so_o he_o give_v bread_n in_o the_o same_o 198_o b_o two_o kind_n of_o analogy_n therein_o 195_o b_o the_o adversary_n will_v not_o decree_v that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n bread_n can_v remain_v and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v in_o it_o 198_o a_o to_o what_o end_n augustine_n make_v mention_v to_o dardanus_n thereof_o 190_o a_o it_o do_v not_o derogate_v from_o the_o majesty_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v bread_n present_v therein_o 198_o b_o that_o in_o these_o word_n thereof_o this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v a_o figure_n be_v show_v for_o three_o cause_n 199_o b_o 201_o a_o a_o sacramental_a change_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n in_o it_o 213_o b_o 214_o a_o b_o 215_o a_o 240_o 241_o etc._n etc._n certain_a proposition_n like_v unto_o this_o this_o be_v my_o body_n use_v therein_o 199_o a_o what_o be_v to_o eat_v christ_n therein_o 208_o b_o 209_o a_o why_o christ_n speak_v of_o his_o ascension_n in_o the_o word_n thereof_o 200_o a_o whether_o the_o wicked_a receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n therein_o 207_o b_o 208_o 209_o 245_o b_o the_o adversary_n say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n therein_o consist_v not_o of_o quantity_n 205_o b_o 206_o a_o a_o place_n of_o paul_n touch_v the_o same_o expound_v 200_o b_o of_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n therein_o when_o and_o how_o 212_o a_o if_o christ_n be_v carnal_o present_a in_o the_o same_o he_o shall_v hinder_v our_o spiritual_a commodity_n 208_o a_o two_o sort_n of_o nourishment_n therein_o 227_o a_o how_o the_o eat_n of_o christ_n body_n therein_o must_v be_v understand_v 211_o a_o what_o bread_n christ_n take_v and_o give_v therein_o 211_o b_o 212_o b_o 213_o a_o of_o the_o change_n of_o bread_n therein_o after_o consecration_n 234_o a_o touch_v unlevened_a bread_n in_o the_o same_o 123_o a_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v receive_v therein_o which_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o diverslie_o 243_o b_o 244_o a_o why_o the_o sacrament_n thereof_o be_v institute_v 1_o a_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n do_v much_o depend_v upon_o a_o pure_a communicate_v thereof_o 88_o a_o the_o force_n of_o faith_n in_o receive_v it_o 244_o a_o that_o which_o be_v change_v therein_o remain_v as_o touch_v the_o subject_n 218_o a_o that_o the_o figure_n be_v not_o the_o thing_n figure_v 203_o b_o 202_o a_o b_o 201_o a_o b_o we_o receive_v whole_a christ_n in_o the_o same_o yet_o by_o faith_n 88_o a_o every_o thing_n can_v be_v a_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n as_o that_o be_v 245_o b_o after_o what_o manner_n we_o be_v true_o change_v into_o christ_n therein_o 220_o b_o 221_o a_o by_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v prove_v that_o bread_n remain_v therein_o 197_o b_o this_o proposition_n the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o same_o be_v not_o unpossible_a 237_o b_o 238a_o a_o place_n of_o ambrose_n touch_v the_o similitude_n of_o christ_n his_o death_n and_o his_o blood_n therein_o 202_o b_o 203_o a_o excessive_a speech_n use_v about_o the_o same_o 219_o a_o b_o 220_o a_o why_o bread_n must_v be_v retain_v in_o it_o 179_o a_o how_o the_o bread_n be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v flesh_n therein_o 218_o b_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o reason_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n therein_o 230_o b_o 231._o augustine_n say_v that_o christ_n give_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n therein_o 203_o a_o the_o force_n of_o consecration_n in_o the_o same_o 238_o b_o 239_o a_o we_o no_o less_o receive_v christ_n in_o his_o word_n than_o in_o it_o 231_o a_o what_o body_n of_o christ_n we_o receive_v therein_o 195_o b_o the_o cardinal_n of_o loren_n maintain_v real_a presence_n therein_o 154_o b_o 155_o a_o a_o comparison_n between_o the_o sacrament_n thereof_o and_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n 179_o b_o 180_o a_o the_o outward_a sign_n be_v name_v both_o bread_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n therein_o 242_o a_o b_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o thing_n which_o substantial_o corporal_o and_o real_o be_v absent_a 202_o b_o a_o controversy_n at_o strasborough_n touch_v it_o 53_o a_o with_o what_o faith_n we_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n therein_o 96_o a_o b_o whether_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v have_v without_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 164_o a_o gardiner_n book_n touch_v it_o confute_v by_o p._n martyr_n 94_o b_o the_o controversy_n about_o it_o make_v manifest_a 100_o b_o against_o diverse_a fond_a devise_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o 162_o a_o b_o beza_n opinion_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n therein_o 150_o b_o 154_o b_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d therein_o 161_o b_o 162_o a_o with_o what_o mouth_n it_o be_v receive_v 87_o b_o 88_o a_o what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o receive_v the_o same_o 230_o b_o the_o true_a eat_n thereof_o 231_o a_o 163_o 164_o most_o perstilent_a seed_n of_o idolatry_n in_o the_o same_o 87_o b_o note_v that_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n therein_o which_o the_o adversary_n deny_v 242_o a_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n therein_o be_v say_v of_o that_o which_o as_o touch_v power_n be_v insensible_a 185_o b_o of_o our_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n therein_o 220_o a_o b_o 127_o a_o b_o 184_o a_o b._n excommunication_n prefigure_v in_o adam_n cast_v out_o of_o paradise_n 146_o b_o the_o end_n thereof_o 89_o a_o unto_o who_o the_o right_a thereof_o belong_v 88_o b_o 26_o b_o 27_o a_o f._n faith_n the_o instrument_n whereby_o we_o attain_v eternal_a life_n 126_o b_o whole_a christ_n receive_v in_o the_o eucharist_n thereby_o 88_o a_o why_o curiosity_n do_v much_o hinder_v it_o 163_o a_o of_o what_o kind_a baptism_n be_v a_o seal_n 137_o b_o why_o a_o weak_a one_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v 160_o b_o the_o force_n thereof_o show_v by_o the_o force_n of_o imagination_n 155_o a_o of_o our_o communion_n with_o christ_n thereby_o 98_o a_o 125_o b_o 126_o a_o with_o what_o kind_n we_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n 96_o a_o b._n how_o necessary_a it_o be_v in_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n 138_o b_o the_o word_n go_v natural_o before_o it_o 114_o b_o that_o the_o weakness_n thereof_o let_v not_o the_o conjunction_n that_o we_o have_v with_o christ_n 126_o a_o the_o force_n thereof_o in_o make_v thing_n far_o distant_a to_o be_v present_a 140_o a_o what_o be_v and_o be_v not_o the_o rule_n thereof_o
uncerteine_a for_o we_o use_v they_o so_o often_o as_o any_o present_a danger_n urge_v us._n but_o paul_n say_v 9_o rom._n 1_o 9_o that_o he_o always_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o his_o prayer_n and_o in_o some_o book_n be_v add_v the_o adverbe_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d every_o where_o although_o some_o copy_n have_v blot_v it_o out_o there_o be_v heretic_n which_o be_v call_v messalian_o of_o they_o the_o tripartite_a history_n make_v mention_v eutich_n the_o heresy_n of_o the_o messalian_o or_o eutich_n they_o attribute_v all_o thing_n unto_o prayer_n and_o that_o so_o much_o as_o they_o do_v derogate_a both_o from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o also_o from_o the_o sacrament_n affirm_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n do_v nothing_o profit_n but_o what_o commodity_n soever_o we_o have_v the_o same_o come_v by_o prayer_n and_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o labour_v with_o their_o hand_n or_o to_o do_v any_o other_o thing_n if_o a_o man_n have_v urge_v they_o to_o work_v they_o will_v have_v say_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v nothing_o at_o all_o profit_n see_v we_o ought_v to_o do_v nothing_o but_o prey_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n nevertheless_o warn_v express_o 10_o 2._o thes_n 3_o 10_o that_o he_o which_o labour_v not_o ought_v not_o to_o eat_v he_o also_o write_v that_o a_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o neglect_v the_o care_n of_o his_o own_o 8._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 8._o especial_o of_o his_o household_n which_o fault_n if_o any_o man_n commit_v he_o shall_v be_v take_v as_o one_o that_o have_v renounce_v his_o faith_n but_o pass_v over_o this_o superstition_n we_o must_v attribute_v very_o much_o unto_o prayer_n see_v this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n often_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v to_o pray_v often_o even_o for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o give_v themselves_o unto_o prayer_n for_o that_o be_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n for_o while_o we_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n can_v obtain_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o give_v he_o by_o god_n we_o be_v oftentimes_o provoke_v to_o pray_v humble_o for_o his_o aid_n in_o such_o necessity_n as_o do_v happen_v and_o while_o we_o pray_v we_o do_v no_o less_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o god_n than_o the_o clay_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o potter_n for_o we_o chéeflie_o make_v our_o prayer_n that_o whatsoever_o we_o desire_v we_o may_v have_v the_o same_o if_o it_o be_v his_o will_n and_o forsomuch_o as_o in_o pray_v the_o mind_n be_v lead_v away_o from_o cark_n and_o worldly_a care_n and_o be_v whole_o carry_v up_o unto_o god_n there_o ought_v nothing_o to_o be_v more_o pleasant_a unto_o we_o than_o to_o occupy_v ourselves_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o study_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v lament_v at_o this_o day_n that_o the_o manner_n of_o pray_v be_v so_o wear_v out_o of_o ure_n among_o christian_n that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n but_o rare_o use_v and_o especial_o in_o so_o great_a a_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n then_o though_o all_o thing_n do_v wax_v so_o cold_a certeinlie_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n heat_n do_v there_o increase_v where_o the_o light_n can_v not_o easy_o pass_v through_o but_o be_v heaten_a back_n again_o and_o as_o they_o say_v rebound_v to_o the_o upper_a part_n wherefore_o this_o low_a part_n of_o the_o air_n which_o compass_v the_o earth_n be_v most_o hot_a because_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o strike_v upon_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o able_a for_o the_o thickness_n thereof_o to_o pierce_v do_v rebound_v back_o again_o &_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n double_v whereby_o the_o heat_n be_v stir_v up_o in_o like_a manner_n ought_v it_o to_o be_v in_o our_o heart_n when_o the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n shine_v upon_o they_o for_o when_o we_o have_v receive_v it_o we_o ought_v to_o return_v it_o unto_o god_n in_o make_v prayer_n unto_o he_o to_o perform_v those_o thing_n in_o we_o which_o he_o have_v command_v &_o which_o he_o have_v vouchsafe_v to_o reveal_v unto_o us._n us._n when_o we_o speak_v to_o god_n and_o god_n to_o us._n for_o when_o we_o read_v the_o scripture_n god_n speak_v unto_o we_o but_o when_o we_o pray_v we_o speak_v unto_o god_n and_o we_o ought_v very_o often_o to_o use_v this_o dialog_n that_o when_o we_o hear_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o god_n either_o reveal_v himself_o or_o command_v any_o thing_n we_o again_o for_o our_o part_n may_v desire_v of_o he_o that_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o speak_v in_o vain_a unto_o we_o but_o may_v be_v do_v with_o profit_n and_o fruit_n 2_o we_o be_v also_o teach_v by_o paul_n so_o to_o order_v our_o prayer_n that_o we_o pray_v not_o only_o for_o ourselves_o but_o also_o for_o our_o neighbour_n further_o 10._o rom._n 1_o 10._o when_o he_o pray_v that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o prosperous_a iornie_n unto_o the_o roman_n he_o signify_v that_o our_o work_n shall_v begin_v with_o prayer_n if_o we_o will_v have_v they_o to_o have_v good_a success_n but_o some_o be_v fear_v away_o from_o call_v upon_o god_n because_o they_o say_v he_o hear_v they_o not_o but_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v confirm_v see_v they_o hear_v that_o paul_n be_v oftentimes_o let_v from_o go_v unto_o rome_n and_o yet_o continue_v he_o still_o in_o the_o same_o desire_n and_o use_v to_o repeat_v the_o self_n same_o prayer_n yea_o and_o in_o the_o latter_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n ●_o 2._o cor._n 12._o ●_o he_o write_v that_o he_o desire_v no_o less_o than_o three_o time_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o sting_n of_o the_o flesh_n unto_o who_o yet_o at_o the_o last_o answer_n be_v make_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o have_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n wherefore_o either_o we_o be_v hear_v at_o length_n or_o else_o if_o that_o which_o we_o desire_v be_v not_o grant_v there_o be_v something_o grant_v in_o the_o steed_n thereof_o far_o better_o and_o more_o profitable_a unto_o our_o salvation_n god_n do_v oftentimes_o defer_v our_o request_n request_n why_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o defer_v our_o request_n to_o the_o end_n as_o augustine_n say_v in_o a_o certain_a homily_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o desire_v great_a thing_n with_o great_a ferventness_n other_o be_v call_v away_o from_o prayer_n because_o they_o thus_o determine_v with_o themselves_o although_o i_o desire_v not_o these_o thing_n yet_o god_n will_v do_v that_o which_o shall_v seem_v good_a unto_o he_o neither_o can_v his_o will_v be_v alter_v by_o my_o prayer_n but_o these_o man_n understand_v not_o that_o god_n before_o he_o grant_v any_o good_a thing_n unto_o his_o elect_a be_v wont_v excéedinglie_o to_o kindle_v their_o mind_n with_o a_o desire_n to_o obtain_v those_o thing_n give_v why_o god_n will_v have_v we_o to_o pray_v for_o that_o which_o otherwise_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v further_o when_o he_o will_v do_v any_o thing_n he_o stir_v up_o those_o that_o be_v he_o to_o desire_v that_o which_o otherwise_o he_o will_v have_v do_v to_o the_o intent_n that_o for_o honour_n sake_n he_o may_v attribute_v the_o same_o unto_o their_o prayer_n this_o be_v also_o another_o cause_n for_o that_o god_n benefit_n be_v then_o the_o more_o acceptable_a when_o they_o be_v crave_v and_o desire_v moreover_o in_o pray_v our_o mind_n be_v more_o join_v unto_o god_n yea_o and_o these_o vow_n and_o holy_a desire_n seem_v to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o ladder_n and_o degree_n whereby_o we_o ascend_v up_o unto_o god_n neither_o do_v the_o godly_a doubtless_o while_o they_o pray_v think_v that_o by_o their_o prayer_n they_o deserve_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o pray_v for_o god_n that_o prayer_n be_v no_o cause_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n why_o then_o will_v thou_o say_v be_v prayer_n make_v i_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v as_o certain_a way_n and_o space_n whereby_o we_o come_v unto_o that_o which_o we_o earnest_o desire_v wherefore_o god_n will_v grant_v unto_o we_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v seem_v to_o he_o profitable_a and_o convenient_a but_o yet_o he_o have_v decree_v to_o give_v they_o by_o these_o degree_n not_o that_o prayer_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o benefit_n but_o because_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o way_n whereby_o we_o must_v attain_v to_o those_o thing_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n if_o thou_o will_v go_v unto_o a_o river_n thou_o must_v go_v that_o way_n which_o lead_v thither_o whereas_o nevertheless_o that_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n whereby_o thou_o come_v to_o the_o river_n for_o if_o thou_o lack_v power_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o strength_n of_o the_o body_n thou_o go_v thither_o in_o vain_a similitude_n a_o similitude_n and_o when_o a_o schoolmaster_n go_v to_o the_o school_n
he_o must_v ascend_v by_o stair_n when_o as_o nevertheless_o the_o stair_n be_v no_o cause_n unto_o he_o that_o he_o come_v for_o the_o final_a cause_n of_o his_o go_n be_v to_o teach_v and_o the_o efficient_a cause_n be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o body_n after_o the_o selfsame_o manner_n must_v we_o judge_v of_o prayer_n but_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v but_o can_v god_n give_v those_o thing_n that_o he_o will_v even_o without_o prayer_n yes_o very_o he_o can_v and_o oftentimes_o he_o do_v it_o unto_o after_o what_o manner_n god_n must_v be_v pray_v unto_o neither_o will_v he_o be_v over-curiouslie_a pray_v unto_o as_o tyrant_n use_v as_o though_o he_o may_v not_o be_v entreat_v without_o our_o fair_a speech_n neither_o will_v he_o be_v pray_v for_o his_o own_o cause_n but_o for_o we_o for_o if_o any_o man_n may_v be_v long_o and_o much_o conversant_a with_o a_o man_n endue_v with_o virtue_n and_o knowledge_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v become_v the_o better_a and_o also_o the_o learneder_n but_o how_o much_o more_o and_o excellent_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o to_o be_v conversant_a and_o to_o talk_v with_o the_o most_o excellent_a god_n the_o philosopher_n do_v think_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a perfection_n of_o man_n for_o to_o know_v himself_o next_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v want_v to_o himself_o last_o to_o know_v that_o god_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o only_a good_a that_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v for_o and_o of_o who_o all_o thing_n must_v be_v desire_v wherefore_o god_n command_v prayer_n as_o a_o certain_a mean_n whereby_o we_o shall_v attain_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o desire_v so_o then_o they_o be_v fond_a and_o foolish_a which_o say_v if_o god_n have_v predestinate_v i_o to_o salvation_n he_o will_v give_v i_o the_o same_o even_o without_o prayer_n for_o god_n have_v together_o with_o the_o end_n predestinate_v also_o the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o must_v prepare_v ourselves_o to_o the_o same_o and_o final_o we_o pray_v not_o in_o any_o case_n to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v change_v god_n which_o thing_n we_o shall_v attempt_v in_o vain_a see_v he_o be_v immutable_a but_o rather_o that_o we_o ourselves_o shall_v be_v change_v forsomuch_o as_o in_o pray_v we_o be_v make_v capable_a of_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n how_o god_n say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o give_v that_o which_o he_o will_v give_v and_o so_o contrariwise_o 3_o but_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o ten_o of_o judge_n 13._o in_o judg._n 10_o verse_n 13._o that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v a_o help_n unto_o the_o israelite_n when_o as_o afterward_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v help_v they_o do_v god_n lie_v no_o in_o no_o wise_a but_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o people_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o he_o will_v have_v have_v it_o in_o such_o state_n and_o condition_n as_o they_o be_v then_o in_o he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o be_v a_o help_n unto_o they_o for_o god_n know_v the_o moment_n of_o time_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n so_o do_v the_o physician_n use_v to_o handle_v a_o sick_a man_n when_o he_o desire_v wine_n in_o the_o heat_n and_o feruentnes_n of_o his_o ague_n i_o will_v give_v none_o say_v he_o not_o because_o he_o will_v never_o give_v he_o any_o but_o for_o that_o he_o know_v when_o it_o will_v be_v profitable_a for_o he_o to_o give_v it_o again_o the_o sick_a man_n desire_v a_o medicine_n the_o physician_n deni_v it_o because_o he_o will_v first_o have_v the_o humour_n to_o be_v ripe_a that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o bring_v forth_o even_o so_o god_n do_v now_o deal_v with_o his_o people_n neither_o be_v this_o a_o rare_a form_n of_o speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o lord_n say_v unto_o moses_n 10_o exod._n 32_o 10_o suffer_v that_o my_o wrath_n may_v be_v kindle_v and_o i_o will_v destroy_v they_o at_o once_o this_o he_o say_v when_o he_o be_v mind_v nevertheless_o to_o spare_v his_o people_n but_o the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n please_v god_n therefore_o he_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v inflame_v and_o his_o desire_n and_o faith_n to_o be_v increase_v in_o matthew_n the_o woman_n of_o chanaan_n cry_v unto_o christ_n but_o he_o pass_v by_o in_o silence_n as_o though_o he_o hear_v she_o not_o afterward_o she_o be_v instant_n in_o prayer_n he_o say_v i_o be_o not_o send_v 23._o matt._n 15_o 23._o but_o unto_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o when_o as_o she_o cease_v not_o he_o call_v her_o dog_n it_o be_v not_o good_a say_v he_o to_o take_v the_o bread_n and_o give_v it_o unto_o dog_n and_o yet_o be_v he_o mind_v even_o at_o the_o first_o to_o help_v she_o but_o first_o he_o will_v have_v her_o faith_n to_o come_v to_o light_n that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v by_o all_o mean_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n under_o the_o parable_n of_o he_o that_o ask_v bread_n 7._o luk._n 11_o 7._o he_o say_v unto_o who_o the_o goodman_n of_o the_o house_n that_o be_v within_o say_v i_o and_o my_o child_n be_v lay_v in_o bed_n and_o when_o the_o other_o have_v make_v earnest_a suit_n by_o his_o importunacie_n he_o obtain_v as_o many_o loaf_n as_o he_o will_v so_o in_o this_o place_n god_n make_v answer_v that_o he_o will_v not_o help_v namely_o that_o people_n be_v in_o such_o state_n as_o then_o they_o be_v for_o even_o at_o that_o time_n the_o repentance_n of_o they_o be_v not_o full_a god_n change_v not_o his_o purpose_n but_o he_o will_v have_v man_n to_o be_v change_v more_o and_o more_o 18._o jere._n 18_o 18._o 4_o jeremie_n in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n say_v if_o i_o shall_v speak_v evil_a against_o any_o nation_n and_o that_o nation_n shall_v repent_v it_o shall_v also_o repent_v i_o of_o that_o evil_n which_o i_o say_v i_o will_v do_v and_o that_o jeremie_n may_v the_o more_o plain_o understand_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v he_o bid_v he_o go_v into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o potter_n where_o he_o see_v the_o workman_n make_v a_o vessel_n of_o clay_n 1._o ibidem_fw-la 1._o the_o which_o be_v break_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o that_o make_v it_o but_o the_o potter_n fashion_v a_o other_o vessel_n of_o the_o same_o clay_n so_o the_o lord_n say_v if_o they_o shall_v repent_v they_o i_o also_o will_v repent_v i_o i_o now_o devise_v evil_a for_o they_o but_o in_o steed_n of_o evil_a i_o will_v devise_v good_a thing_n neither_o for_o all_o this_o as_o i_o have_v say_v do_v he_o change_v his_o mind_n because_o such_o threaten_n and_o promise_n depend_v upon_o the_o condition_n which_o sometime_o be_v change_v whereas_o god_n remain_v one_o and_o the_o same_o chrysost_n chrysost_n of_o this_o matter_n do_v chrysostome_n very_o well_o write_v upon_o genesis_n the_o 25._o homily_n the_o lord_n have_v command_v 14._o gen._n 6_o 14._o that_o noah_n shall_v build_v the_o ark_n and_o he_o threaten_v that_o after_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n 3._o ibidem_fw-la 3._o he_o will_v utterlie_o destroy_v all_o mankind_n with_o a_o flood_n but_o when_o he_o see_v no_o amendment_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o abate_v twenty_o of_o the_o year_n and_o send_v the_o flood_n in_o the_o hundred_o year_n yet_o be_v not_o god_n alter_v but_o the_o condition_n of_o man_n be_v change_v the_o same_o father_n also_o upon_o matthew_n the_o 65._o homily_n 28_o matt._n 19_o 28_o when_o he_o interprete_v that_o say_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o you_o that_o have_v leave_v all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n he_o demand_v whether_o judas_n be_v not_o one_o of_o those_o twelve_o and_o whether_o judas_n shall_v sit_v upon_o the_o twelve_o seat_n and_o judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n have_v christ_n therefore_o change_v his_o mind_n no_o say_v he_o but_o the_o same_o judas_n be_v change_v the_o very_a which_o thing_n we_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o city_n of_o ninive_n 1._o jona._n 3_o 4._o esai_n 38_o 1._o and_o of_o king_n ezechias_n who_o god_n have_v threaten_v to_o die_v for_o neither_o do_v ninive_n perish_v at_o that_o time_n neither_o yet_o do_v ezechias_n die_v at_o the_o time_n prescribe_v because_o both_o be_v change_v 2._o gen._n 9_o 2._o god_n pronounce_v at_o the_o beginning_n that_o the_o fear_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v upon_o the_o beast_n but_o the_o contrary_n happen_v for_o man_n do_v now_o fear_v lion_n bear_n and_o tiger_n because_o of_o they_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o tear_v in_o piece_n which_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o reason_n that_o the_o condition_n of_o man_n be_v change_v and_o not_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n 5_o wherefore_o understand_v how_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n must_v be_v understand_v those_o promise_n of_o god_n must_v be_v
it_o therefore_o say_v he_o it_o be_v a_o command_a figure_n namely_o that_o we_o shall_v sweet_o &_o profitable_o lay_v up_o in_o memory_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v crucify_v and_o wound_v for_o us._n in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o boniface_n he_o say_v most_o plain_o that_o sacrament_n take_v their_o name_n of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o shall_v be_v sacrament_n and_o he_o express_v by_o name_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o this_o he_o write_v to_o show_v that_o baptism_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v faith_n and_o that_o young_a child_n be_v baptize_v have_v faith_n because_o they_o receive_v this_o sacrament_n and_o lest_o that_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o these_o be_v sign_n substantial_o as_o these_o man_n speak_v of_o the_o thing_n present_a let_v they_o consider_v of_o the_o similitude_n which_o these_o man_n have_v allege_v to_o wit_n that_o we_o say_v when_o we_o be_v near_o unto_o easter_n that_o to_o morrow_n or_o the_o next_o day_n after_o shall_v be_v the_o passion_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o upon_o sunday_n the_o lord_n rise_v again_o when_o as_o yet_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o now_o present_v but_o be_v do_v long_o before_o further_o he_o here_o affirm_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o young_a child_n be_v faith_n which_o nevertheless_o young_a child_n present_o have_v not_o yea_o and_o the_o same_o father_n as_o we_o have_v it_o de_fw-fr consecratione_fw-la distinct_a 2._o in_o the_o chapter_n interrogo_fw-la vos_fw-la say_v that_o it_o be_v as_o sinful_a a_o negligence_n to_o suffer_v the_o word_n which_o be_v preach_v to_o slip_v out_o of_o our_o mind_n as_o it_o be_v for_o a_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o fall_v upon_o the_o earth_n which_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v this_o transubstantiation_n will_v take_v but_o small_a place_n for_o it_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v far_o more_o absurd_a that_o the_o body_n itself_o of_o christ_n shall_v fall_v or_o be_v tread_v under_o foot_n than_o if_o any_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a word_n shall_v be_v hear_v with_o small_a regard_n moreover_o upon_o the_o 8._o psalm_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n admit_v judas_n in_o the_o supper_n when_o he_o commend_v unto_o we_o the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n they_o be_v accustom_v to_o say_v that_o the_o figure_n or_o sign_n in_o this_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v hide_v with_o accident_n be_v his_o own_o dead_a and_o unbloudie_a body_n as_o he_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o the_o blood_n hide_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o wine_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o blood_n shed_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n but_o who_o perceive_v not_o that_o the_o devise_n of_o these_o man_n be_v vain_a for_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v put_v a_o sign_n and_o figure_n which_o be_v sensible_a &_o more_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n signify_v therefore_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n out_o of_o augustine_n define_v a_o sacrament_n to_o be_v a_o visible_a sign_n of_o a_o invisible_a grace_n sacrament_n a_o definition_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v hide_v under_o accident_n as_o themselves_o affirm_v be_v no_o less_o obscure_a than_o be_v that_o which_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n yea_o and_o if_o i_o may_v say_v the_o truth_n more_o unknowen_a and_o obscure_a than_o the_o thing_n signify_v which_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sign_n and_o figure_n for_o more_o easy_o be_v the_o body_n know_v and_o consider_v of_o we_o how_o it_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n than_o as_o they_o make_v it_o in_o the_o eucharist_n 28_o leo_n the_o pope_n in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o the_o clergy_n &_o people_n of_o constantinople_n write_v leo._n leo._n that_o this_o be_v a_o mystical_a distribution_n a_o spiritual_a food_n and_o a_o heavenly_a virtue_n that_o here_o we_o receive_v it_o to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v be_v make_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n who_o for_o our_o sake_n take_v our_o flesh_n upon_o he_o cyrillus_n in_o the_o 4._o cyril_n cyril_n book_n and_o 14._o chapter_n upon_o john_n on_o this_o wise_a he_o give_v unto_o the_o beléeve_a disciple_n piece_n of_o bread_n say_v take_v you_o the_o same_o father_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o calosyrius_n wherefore_o it_o become_v he_o after_o a_o sort_n to_o be_v unite_v unto_o our_o body_n by_o his_o holy_a flesh_n and_o by_o his_o precious_a blood_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o lively_a blessing_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n now_o will_v we_o allege_v theodoritus_n bishop_n of_o cyrus_n theodoritus_n theodoritus_n he_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o cyrillus_n and_o be_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedone_n and_o he_o be_v account_v most_o learned_a and_o eloquent_a and_o when_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o ephesus_n there_o have_v happen_v a_o descension_n between_o john_n the_o patriarche_n of_o antioch_n and_o cyrillus_n the_o patriache_n of_o alexandria_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o theodoritus_n to_o cleave_v unto_o the_o patriarche_n of_o antioch_n howbeit_o the_o matter_n come_v to_o a_o agreement_n and_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o chalcedone_n theodoritus_n be_v know_v for_o a_o very_a learned_a man_n and_o holy_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n yea_o and_o in_o the_o book_n which_o he_o write_v he_o purposely_o withstand_v nestor_n and_o by_o express_a word_n deal_v against_o he_o the_o book_n be_v print_v at_o rome_n and_o the_o papist_n perceive_v that_o he_o be_v most_o manifest_o against_o transubstantiation_n and_o they_o have_v excuse_v he_o for_o two_o cause_n first_o for_o that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o pronounce_v as_o concern_v that_o matter_n as_o though_o we_o shall_v seek_v what_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o cardinal_n decree_v either_o at_o constance_n or_o in_o the_o synod_n where_o berengarius_fw-la be_v condemn_v and_o not_o rather_o what_o have_v be_v preach_v and_o beléeve_v in_o the_o old_a church_n further_o they_o say_v that_o this_o man_n in_o write_v against_o heretic_n when_o he_o entreat_v of_o those_o mystery_n do_v overmuch_o lean_a unto_o the_o other_o part_n and_o so_o be_v against_o transubstantiation_n to_o the_o intent_n the_o adversary_n may_v be_v the_o easy_o confute_v but_o how_o vain_a a_o excuse_n this_o be_v it_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o discourse_n of_o the_o writer_n where_o thou_o may_v perceive_v that_o not_o one_o word_n have_v escape_v he_o but_o that_o the_o whole_a argument_n and_o strength_n thereof_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n so_o as_o if_o thou_o mingle_v therewithal_o transubstantiation_n there_o can_v be_v nothing_o conclude_v yea_o rather_o the_o heretic_n will_v carry_v away_o the_o victory_n they_o add_v that_o he_o in_o the_o self_n same_o book_n speak_v sometime_o more_o reverent_o of_o the_o eucharist_n but_o all_o thing_n be_v consider_v he_o speak_v no_o where_o so_o reverent_o that_o he_o be_v against_o our_o opinion_n which_o we_o have_v now_o affirm_v he_o dispute_v against_o they_o which_o deny_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n and_o say_v that_o his_o body_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o ascension_n be_v whole_o turn_v into_o the_o divine_a nature_n first_o he_o allege_v the_o pprophecy_n of_o the_o patriarch_n jacob_n that_o he_o may_v prepare_v himself_o a_o way_n to_o derive_v a_o argument_n from_o the_o sacrament_n the_o word_n be_v these_o 29_o orth._n do_v thou_o know_v that_o god_n call_v bread_n his_o own_o body_n sod._n i_o know_v it_o orth._n and_o again_o that_o at_o another_o time_n his_o flesh_n be_v call_v corn_n sod._n this_o also_o i_o know_v for_o i_o have_v hear_v he_o say_v that_o the_o hour_n come_v wherein_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v glorify_v 23._o joh._n 12._o 23._o and_o unless_o the_o grain_n of_o corn_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o earth_n and_o die_v it_o remain_v alone_o but_o if_o it_o be_v dead_a it_o will_v bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n orth._n he_o undoubted_o in_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o mystery_n call_v bread_n his_o body_n &_o the_o cup_n mix_v his_o blood_n sod._n so_o in_o deed_n he_o name_v it_o orth._n but_o it_o may_v also_o according_a to_o nature_n be_v call_v a_o body_n yea_o even_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n sod._n it_o be_v grant_v orth._n yea_o very_o our_o saviour_n himself_o change_v the_o name_n and_o to_o the_o body_n he_o give_v the_o name_n of_o the_o sign_n and_o to_o the_o sign_n the_o name_n of_o the_o body_n 1._o john_n 15._o 1._o after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o vine_n he_o call_v his_o blood_n the_o
sign_n sod._n this_o in_o deed_n be_v true_a but_o i_o will_v also_o learn_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o change_v of_o the_o name_n orth._n the_o end_n why_o it_o be_v so_o call_v be_v manifest_a unto_o they_o which_o be_v instruct_v in_o religion_n for_o he_o will_v that_o they_o which_o be_v partaker_n of_o those_o divine_a mystery_n shall_v not_o have_v regard_n unto_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v but_o that_o by_o the_o change_n of_o name_n they_o shall_v believe_v that_o transmutation_n which_o be_v do_v by_o grace_n for_o he_o that_o call_v his_o own_o natural_a body_n corn_n and_o bread_n and_o also_o call_v himself_o a_o vine_n even_o he_o himself_o also_o honour_v those_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v sign_n with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o forsooth_o change_a nature_n itself_o but_o unto_o nature_n add_v grace_n sod._n true_o the_o mystical_a thing_n be_v speak_v mystical_o &_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o know_v unto_o all_o man_n be_v make_v clear_a and_o manifest_a orth._n wherefore_o see_v he_o confess_v that_o the_o robe_n and_o garment_n be_v by_o the_o patriarch_n call_v the_o lord_n body_n and_o that_o we_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o talk_n of_o divine_a mystery_n tell_v i_o in_o very_a deed_n who_o sing_v and_o figure_n thou_o think_v that_o most_o holy_a meat_n to_o be_v be_v it_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o very_a divinity_n of_o christ_n or_o else_o of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n sod._n doubtless_o even_o of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o also_o they_o receive_v their_o name_n orth._n do_v thou_o mean_v of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n sod._n so_o i_o mean_v orth._n thou_o have_v true_o speak_v for_o the_o lord_n take_v the_o sign_n say_v not_o this_o be_v my_o divinity_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o again_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n and_o in_o another_o place_n but_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n sod._n 51._o john_n 6._o 51._o in_o very_a deed_n all_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a for_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god._n orth._n certain_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a the_o lord_n have_v a_o body_n in_o deed_n sod._n but_o i_o say_v that_o he_o be_v without_o body_n orth._n but_o thou_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v a_o body_n etc._n etc._n 30_o out_o of_o the_o second_o dialogue_n we_o have_v these_o word_n sod._n we_o must_v doubtless_o according_a to_o the_o proverb_n remove_v every_o stone_n that_o we_o may_v attain_v unto_o the_o truth_n especial_o in_o set_v forth_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n orth_n show_v i_o then_o whereof_o the_o sign_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n by_o the_o minister_n of_o holy_a thing_n be_v mystical_a sign_n sod._n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n orth._n of_o the_o true_a body_n or_o not_o sod._n of_o the_o true_a body_n orth._n very_o well_o say_v for_o they_o must_v be_v a_o principal_a pattern_n of_o the_o image_n for_o the_o painter_n do_v follow_v nature_n and_o they_o paint_v the_o image_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v see_v sod._n thou_o say_v true_a orth._n if_o then_o those_o divine_a mystery_n be_v example_n of_o a_o body_n be_v then_o be_v the_o lord_n body_n now_o also_o a_o body_n and_o be_v not_o change_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o divinity_n but_o be_v replenish_v with_o divine_a glory_n sod._n in_o good_a time_n have_v thou_o move_v this_o speech_n of_o divine_a mystery_n for_o thereby_o will_v i_o show_v thou_o a_o change_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n into_o a_o other_o nature_n answer_v therefore_o unto_o my_o question_n orth._n i_o will_v answer_v sod._n what_o call_v thou_o that_o gift_n which_o be_v offer_v before_o the_o priest_n invocation_n orth._n we_o must_v not_o speak_v open_o for_o it_o be_v very_o lykelie_o that_o some_o here_o present_a be_v not_o yet_o through_o instruct_v sod._n this_o be_v a_o diffuse_v answer_n orth._n look_v what_o seed_n it_o be_v such_o meat_n it_o be_v sod._n but_o how_o do_v we_o name_v the_o other_o sign_n orth._n this_o name_n also_o be_v common_a betoken_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o cup._n sod._n how_o do_v thou_o call_v those_o thing_n after_o sanctification_n orth._n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n sod._n and_o do_v thou_o believe_v that_o thou_o receave_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n orth._n yea_o very_o i_o believe_v it_o sod._n therefore_o even_o as_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v one_o thing_n undoubted_o before_o the_o invocation_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o after_o the_o very_a invocation_n be_v change_v from_o one_o to_o a_o other_o and_o become_v other_o thing_n so_o likewise_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n after_o it_o be_v receive_v be_v change_v into_o divine_a substance_n orth._n thou_o be_v catch_v in_o the_o same_o net_n which_o thou_o have_v lay_v for_o those_o mystical_a sign_n after_o sanctification_n do_v not_o change_v their_o own_o proper_a nature_n nature_n note_v that_o the_o sign_n do_v not_o cast_v away_o their_o old_a nature_n for_o they_o in_o very_a deed_n remain_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n both_o in_o figure_n and_o form_n and_o be_v even_o so_o see_v and_o handle_v as_o before_o and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v be_v understand_v and_o beléeve_v &_o honour_v as_o though_o they_o be_v such_o as_o they_o be_v beléeve_v to_o be_v compare_v therefore_o the_o image_n with_o the_o principal_a figure_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o similitude_n for_o a_o figure_n must_v agree_v with_o the_o truth_n for_o that_o very_a body_n itself_o have_v his_o first_o figure_n and_o form_n and_o circumscription_n and_o to_o speak_v plain_o the_o very_a substance_n also_o of_o a_o body_n but_o after_o the_o resurrection_n it_o become_v immortal_a and_o it_o be_v account_v worthy_a of_o the_o seat_n which_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o be_v woorship_v of_o all_o creature_n as_o a_o body_n be_v of_o the_o lord_n own_o nature_n sod._n howbeit_o that_o mystical_a sign_n change_v his_o first_o name_n and_o be_v not_o afterward_o name_v by_o that_o name_n which_o it_o be_v first_o call_v but_o be_v call_v a_o body_n wherefore_o the_o truth_n itself_o must_v now_o be_v call_v god_n and_o not_o any_o more_o a_o body_n orth._n thou_o appear_v ignorant_a unto_o i_o it_o be_v not_o only_o call_v a_o body_n but_o also_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n for_o so_o the_o lord_n call_v it_o yea_o and_o we_o also_o call_v this_o a_o divine_a body_n and_o a_o quicken_a body_n and_o the_o master_n body_n and_o the_o lord_n body_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v no_o common_a body_n of_o every_o man_n but_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v god_n and_o man_n even_o jesu_n christ_n yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o the_o same_o for_o ever_o 31_o there_o be_v extant_a a_o epistle_n in_o the_o lybrarie_n of_o florence_n albeit_o not_o imprint_v of_o chrysostome_n to_o caesarius_n the_o moonke_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o second_o banishment_n chrysost_n chrysost_n canterbury_n a_o example_n of_o that_o epistle_n be_v extant_a with_o the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n write_v against_o appolinaris_n and_o other_o which_o confound_v the_o divinity_n and_o humanity_n of_o christ_n christ_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n god_n because_o he_o can_v suffer_v man_n because_o of_o his_o passion_n and_o suffering_n one_o son_n one_o lord_n one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o doubtless_o possess_v one_o dominion_n and_o one_o power_n of_o the_o nature_n unite_v although_o they_o be_v not_o together_o of_o one_o substance_n and_o each_o one_o of_o they_o be_v unmingled_a keep_v a_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o own_o property_n for_o this_o cause_n that_o they_o be_v two_o thing_n not_o confound_v for_o like_v as_o before_o the_o bread_n be_v sanctify_v we_o name_v it_o bread_n and_o the_o same_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o divine_a grace_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v undoubted_o deliver_v from_o the_o name_n of_o bread_n and_o be_v account_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n body_n although_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n have_v remain_v in_o it_o and_o be_v declare_v not_o to_o be_v two_o body_n but_o one_o body_n of_o the_o son_n even_o so_o this_o divine_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o overflow_a body_n have_v make_v both_o these_o one_o son_n and_o one_o person_n hesychius_n in_o the_o 20._o hesychius_n hesychius_n book_n upon_o leviticus_fw-la the_o 8._o chapter_n therefore_o he_o command_v that_o the_o flesh_n shall_v be_v eat_v with_o bread_n to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v understand_v the_o same_o to_o be_v call_v a_o mystery_n of_o he_o